385 90 111MB
English Pages 358 [381] Year 2019
Social DimenSionS of canaDian Sport anD phySical activity
Editedby
Jane Crossman LakeheadUniversity
JayScherer Universityof Alberta
Toronto
Acquisitions Marketing Program Project
Editor:
Matthew Christian
Manager: Lisa Gillis Manager: Madhu Ranadive
Manager: SusanJohnson
Developmental Production
Editor:
Christine Langone
Services: Kailash Jadli, iEnergizer
Permissions Project Photo Permissions Text Permissions
Manager: Kathryn
Aptara, Inc.
OHandley
Research: Krystyna Sperka Borgen Research: Varoon Deo-Singh
Cover Designer: Bill Gillis, iEnergizer
Aptara, Inc.
Cover Image: Steve Kingsman/Dreamstime Credits and acknowledgments for this textbook
material borrowed from other sources and reproduced,
with permission, in
appear on the appropriate page within the text.
If you purchased this book outside the
United States or Canada, you should be aware that it has been imported
without the approval of the publisher or the author. Copyright
2015 Pearson Canada Inc.
All rights reserved.
Manufactured in
Canada. This publication is
protected by copyright and permission should be obtained from the publisher prior to any prohibited reproduction,
storage in a retrieval system, or transmission in any form or by any means,electronic,
mechanical, photocopying, recording,
or likewise.
To obtain permission(s) to use material from this work,
pleasesubmit a written request to Pearson Canada Inc., Permissions Department, 26 Prince Andrew Place, Don Mills, Ontario,
M3C 2T8, or fax your request to 416-447-3126, or submit a request to Permissions
Requests at www.pearsoncanada.ca. Library and Archives
Canada Cataloguing in Publication
Crossman, Jane, author Social dimensions of Canadian sport and physical activity / Jane Crossman, Lakehead University, Jay Scherer, University of Alberta. Includes bibliographical references and index. ISBN
978-0-13-344446-9
1.SportsSocial
(pbk.)
aspectsCanada.I.Scherer,
Jay, authorII.Title.
GV706.5.C76 2014306.4830971C2014-905540-4
10 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1[WC]
ISBN
978-0-13-344446-9
This book is dedicated to Paulene, Heather and Emma.
This page intentionally left blank
Contents Prefaceix
3Canadian
Sport in
Acknowledgments xiii
Perspective
43
Contributors
Don Morrow
xiv
1Perspectives of Sport
on the
and Physical
Canada
Social Activity
Dimensions
Historical
Doing History44 Sporting Traditions in Early Canada46
in
First Nations Gamesand Contests46
1
French Conquests47
Jane Crossman andJay Scherer
British Traditions47
Sociology as a Social Science 5
Horseracing and the Garrisons49
Origins of Sport Sociology7
Industrialization and Technological Changes50
Defining Sport: Powerat Play
10
Waysof Looking at Social Phenomena
Sporting Equipment Evolution52
11
The Sociological Imagination12
Montreal: The Cradle of Organized Sport53
Amateur Idealism54
Social Structure14
Transitionsto Commercial MassSport56
Agency and Power14
Entrepreneurial Interests56
Hegemony
The Hero/Starin Sport57
15
Conclusions
State Sport60
16
Critical Thinking
Questions17
Conclusions
61
Suggested Readings17
Critical Thinking Questions62
References
Suggested Readings62
18
References 62 2Sociological
Theories
of Sport
19
Ian Ritchie
4Sport
UnderstandingSociological Theory: General Themes and Historical Contexts19
Social Facts:Emile Functionalism
Durkheim and Structural
22
Classand Goal-Rational Action: Karl Marx, Max Weber,and Conflict
Theory25
Understanding Everyday Experiences: George Herbert Meadand Symbolic Interactionism31
Critical Social Theories: Cultural, Feminist, and Critical Race Studies33
and Social Stratification64
Rob Beamish Sport and Social Stratification:
Terms 65 Social Inequality:
The Canadian Profile67
The Top 1%68 Factors Contributing to Economic Inequality69
Stratification in CanadianSport: Early Studies71 Class and Social Inequality:
Theories
Early
73
Karl Marx74
Conclusions40
Max Weber75
Critical Thinking
Classand Social Inequality:
Questions40
Some Preliminary
Suggested Readings41
Theories76
References41
Anthony
Giddens77
v
Contemporary
Pierre Bourdieu78 ClassAnalysisunder Giddensand Bourdieu 79
Gender-BasedRulesin Sport128 Lesbianand GayIssues129
Classand Sport: Current Patterns of Engagement81
Feminism and WomensSport130 The Transformation of WomensSport132
The Escalating Costof Sport83
Conclusions 134 Critical Thinking Questions134 SuggestedReadings135 References135
Conclusions85 Critical Thinking Questions 86 SuggestedReadings87 References 87
5Ethnicity
and Racein Canadian Sport
90
7Children, Youth, and Parental Involvement in Organized Sport138
VictoriaParaschak andSusanTirone
RalphE. Wheeler, JayScherer, andJaneCrossman
Ethnicity and Sportin Canada 91
Socialization141 The Organizationof Minor Sport143
The Conceptof Ethnicity 91 Diversity Theories92 Immigration Trends94 Ethnic Minority Peopleand Sportin Canada 96 Ethnicity, Poverty,and Accessto Sport 97 Discrimination98
Raceand Sportin Canada 99
Factors Determining Childrens Involvement in Sport146 Controversiesand Issuesin Childrens Sport148
The Conceptof Race99 RacialPatternsin CanadianSport 100 Raceand Ethnic Relations 103 WhitestreamSport104 Doing Race,Doing Racism 107 Race-StructuredSport Systems108
Ethics and Fair Playin Youth Sport:Is Winning Everything?148 Sport Specialization150 Dropoutand Withdrawalfrom Sport151 Riskof Injury in Childrens OrganizedSport152 ParentalInterference153 The Role CoachesPlayin Youth Sport155
Conclusions 110 Critical Thinking Questions111 SuggestedReadings112 References 112
6Sex,
Gender, and Sexuality
116
MaryLouiseAdams Clarifying Our Terms117 Social Construction: A Frameworkfor Thinking About GenderNorms119 Is Sport Reallya MaleThing?120 FemaleAthletes in Sport Media122 Sexand Gender Differencesin Sport
Publicly Funded Community Sport and Recreation Organizations143 Local Sports Clubs144 Service Agenciesand Special-Interest Groups145 School-BasedSports145 Other Youth Sport Organizations145
Conclusions158 Critical Thinking Questions159 SuggestedReadings160 References 160
8Sport
Deviance163
JasonLaurendeau 123
Conceptualizing Deviance165 Devianceand Otherness166
SeparateEventsfor Menand Women124 Sex Testingin Sport125 Transgenderand TranssexualAthletesin Sex-SegregatedSport126
Social Control169 Devianceon the Field of Play171
Sport Typing127
Drugsin Sport173
vi
Contents
DeviantizedBodiesand Embodiments168
Deviance Offthe Field of Play175 DeviantizedSports and Sporting Identities 177 Conclusions 178 Critical Thinking Questions179 Suggested Readings 179 References180 Endnotes 182
9
Violence
183
StacyL. Lorenz Theoriesof Violence184 Violence and Masculinity: A Historical Perspective 187 Contemporary Sporting Violence190 A Framework for Understanding Violence in Sport193 Crowd Violence197 Conclusions 199 Critical Thinking Questions200 Suggested Readings201 References201
10Sport and Physical Activity in Canadian Educational Systems205 Tim Fletcherand DuaneBratt The Natureand Purposesof Physical Education in CanadianSchools206 A Glimpseatthe Past208 Curriculum 209 Learners and Learning211 Teachersand Teaching213 History of Canadian University Sport215 GenderEquity216 Athletic Scholarships216 Doping 217 Hazing218 The Challengeofthe NCAA219 AlumniFunding Model221 AcademicAchievement222 Student-AthleteLife223 Conclusions 224 Critical Thinking Questions225 Suggested Readings225
References 225 Endnotes 229
11Sport,
Media, and Ideology230
Jay Scherer The CanadianSports-Media Complex 235 The Early Daysof Canadian Television235 A NewSport Broadcasting Order?238 The End of Viewing Rights for Canadians? 240
TheIdeological Roleof the Media241 (Re)presenting Sport241 Genderand Sexuality243 Militarismand Nationalism246 Raceand Ethnicity247
SportsJournalism and New Media248 Conclusions 252 Critical Thinking Questions253 SuggestedReadings253 References 253 Endnotes 256
12Sport,
Politics, and Policy257
Jean Harvey Sport as a Sitefor Political Resistance258 GovernmentInvolvement in Sport261 Defining Some Key Concepts262 Reasonsfor StateIntervention in Sport264 The SportPolicy Context266 Recent Policiesand Programs267 Sport Support Program269 The Athlete AssistanceProgram271 The HostingProgram272 Other Policies, Programs,and Regulations272
Issues and Controversiesin CanadianSport Policy 273 Conclusions 275 Critical Thinking Questions275 SuggestedReadings276 References276
13The
Business of Sport277
Brad R. Humphreysand MosheLander The Structure of Professional Team Sports278 ProfessionalTeam Sport Leagues in Canada278
Contents
vii
LeagueStructure280 LeagueFunctions283 Teams 285 Pricing 289 Labour Relations291
Fans: Constructingthe Global Consumer?313 Conclusions 314 Critical Thinking Questions316 SuggestedReadings317 References 317 Endnotes 319
Fans 292 Attendance 292
Sports Leaguesand Public Policy
293
Facility Subsidies293 Subsidiesfor Canadian Teams294
International Issues: The Olympic Games 295 The Olympicsandthe IOC295 Biddingand Costs296 LegacyEffects297 Conclusions 298 Critical Thinking Questions298 SuggestedReadings299 References 299
14Globalization
and Sport300
David Whitson Globalization: A Conceptual Overview301 The New Sporting World Order305 Professionalizationand Globalizationin the Sports Labour Market307 CorporateStrategies:The Promotion of Sports Product 311
viii
Contents
15Sport
and the Future320
Brian Wilson Drivers of Social Changeand Implications for the Future of Sport and Society321 Governance 322 Globalization 327 Technology 332 Environment 334
How Sociologistsand Others Can Drive Social Change337 Strategiesfor Change337 Conclusions338 Critical Thinking Questions339 SuggestedReadings339 References 339 References 343 Index
358
Preface Manyof ourstudents whostudythe social dimensionsof sport and physicalactivity inevitably bring their own perceptions of whatthese popular practices are all about. Yet,in manyinstances, after completing one or two sociocultural and historical courses,their perceptionschange quite remarkably. Forexample,studentslearn that the opportunities to participatein sport arent equitable;that the control of sportis in the handsof a minority, manyof whom are white malesof affluence;that racismin sport still existstoday even though it maynot bereadily apparent when watchinga contest ontelevision or reading aboutit online; that powerful economic and political forcesshape whatsport is today and whatit mightlook like in the future; and that the massmediaact asafilter of what wesee and how weseeit. AlthoughSocialDimensions of CanadianSportand PhysicalActivityhasa deliberatelydistinctly Canadianfocus, welive in a worldthat hasneverbeen moreinterconnected.Indeed, what happensin the world of sport outsideour bordersinfluences sportinside our borders. Canadianshave, historically, embraceda widerange oflocal sport and athletic heroes,in addition to consumingcopiousamountsofsportscontent from our Americanneighboursvia the massmedia.Today, moreand moreCanadians follow not onlythe majorleaguesof North Americansport, but teams andleaguesfrom aroundthe world,including the mostpopular Europeansoccerleagues.Forgenerations, meanwhile,immigrants havebeen bringingtheir sportsandtheir waysof doing physicalactivity to Canada.Assuch, weare not simply a carbon copy of another country or an amalgamationof countries. Weare uniquely Canadian and, overtime, wehaveshapedour own culturalideologiesand our own waysofinterpreting and playingsport,sometimesin competingand contradictory ways.
THE COnTEnT OFTHE TExT SocialDimensions of CanadianSportand PhysicalActivitycontains 15chapters. Becausethe chapter sequence hasbeen purposelycoordinated, werecommend that the chapters be read consecutively. However,since their content is so distinctive, it is possibleto read the chaptersin an altered order. Eachchapter concludes with relevant Critical Thinking Questions,SuggestedReadings,and References. In thefirst chapter, Drs.Jane Crossmanand Jay Scherer provide an introductory foundation for understandingthe social dimensionsof sport and physical activity from a Canadianperspective. They describehow pervasivesport is in Canadiansociety and outline terms that will be usedthroughout the text, such associologicalimagination, agency, socialstructures,power,ideology,and hegemony. In the secondchapter, Dr.Ian Ritchie presentsa rich overview of sociological theories that set the foundation for understandingthe social world, and morespecificallyfor our purposesthe world of sport. Sinceit is impossibleto presenta completeinventory of the myriadsociological theories, hefocusesonfour majorones: Durkheimsfunctionalism, Marxsconflicttheory, Meadssymbolicinteractionism, and critical socialtheories(cultural, feminist, and critical racestudies).
ix
In
Chapter 3, Dr. Don Morrow condenses Canadian sport history from the 15th
century to the present day. He highlights the people who have influenced our sport history (First
Nations, French, British), as well as the existing social conditions, power rela-
tions, and developments that have had such a profound effect on shaping the development of sport in Canada. Highlighted areindustrial and technological sporting equipment, transitions to commercial
changes, the evolution of
masssport, and the impact ofthe entrepre-
neurial spirit. Dr. Rob Beamish, author of Chapter 4, addressesthe inequalities opportunity that exist in sport today. Theories of social inequality
of condition
and
are outlined as well as
current patterns of class and sport. He points out that in Canada weendorse an unequal, performance-based rewards system. Successis linked, for example, to proximity to facilities, gender, social class, and physical ability. In
Chapter 5, Drs. Victoria Paraschak and Susan Tirone explore issues of racial and
ethnic discrimination in Canadian sport. They point out that sport provides opportunities to feel pride in ones own cultural heritage. Unfortunately, the system is structured sothat some individualsthat
is, those of white European heritagefeel
Poverty and access are key components that prevent ethnic participating in sport in
more pride than others. minority people from fully
Canada. The need to create equal opportunities in sport for all
Canadian people (e.g., through race-structured sport systems) is afundamental
message in
this chapter. In Chapter 6, Dr. Mary Louise Adams helps us understand the current issues relevant to gender, sexuality, and sport and posesthe question: Is sport really a malething? does not shy away from controversial topics such asseparate events for sex testing in sport, and sport typing (certain sports are male
Adams
menand women,
only). Issues for athletes
who are transgender, transsexual, gay, orlesbian are also discussed. In
Chapter 7, Drs. Ralph Wheeler,Jay Scherer, and Jane Crossman outline the cur-
rent sport system in
Canadafor children and youth, including
school, community,
and
private agencies. Critical issues and concerns related to organized sport for children and youth are described and include reasons for the high rate of dropout, ethical issues, sport specialization, risk of injury,
parental interference,
and coaches influence.
Solutions to
remedy the problems posed are offered. Chapter 8 by Dr.Jason Laurendeau focuses on sport deviance. Hedescribes how deviance is conceptualized and differentiates deviance on and off the field
of play. Hecovers
timely topics such as drug usein sport and risk sports and points out that deviance arises out of an overly enthusiastic adoption of aset of expectations that characterizes particular activities. Dr. Stacy Lorenz, author of Chapter 9, addressesthe fact that sport is replete
with
violence. Theories of violence are explained along with a historical overview of how vio-
lence in sport hasgrown in our society. Whoencouragessport violenceis a question he broaches to help the reader better understand contemporary trends in sport violence com-
mitted by both playersand fans. He also discussesgenderand genderrelations asthey relate to violence.
In Chapter10, Drs.Tim Fletcher and DuaneBrattconsiderthe relationship between sport and educational institutions
in
Canada. They describe the nature and purposes of
physicaleducationin the public school systemand howthe curriculum hasevolved. The challenges and issuesinherent in Canadian interuniversity
x
Preface
sport are outlined andinclude
gender equity, athletic scholarships,
doping, hazing, challenging the
NCAA, alumni
funding, and academic achievement. In Chapter 11, Dr.Jay Scherer explains the influence, extent, and powerthe mediahave in shaping what weknow and how wethink.
He outlines the historical development of the
televised sports-media complex in Canadaand points out that sports mediaare replete with symbols of nationalism and militarism and other gender and racial ideologies. Sportjournalism and new mediatechnologies that will change how weview andinterpret sport are alsoincluded. Dr.Jean Harvey,in Chapter 12, focuses on the marriage between politics and sport. He provides a historical overview and reasons for the Canadian governments intervention in sport. The author outlines current federal sport policies that include programs such as the
Athlete
Assistance Program, Hosting Program, and the
Childrens
Fitness Tax
Credit. Also included is the controversial topic of funding for high-performance
sport
versus massparticipation sport. Chapter 13, written by Dr. Brad Humphreys and Professor MosheLander, delvesinto the ever-changing and multifaceted business of sport. They cover the structure and functioning of professional leagues such asthe NHL, CFL, MLB, NBA, NFL, and MLS. Under the auspice ofthese cartels, they address a host of issues such asthe costs and revenues to the owners, reserve clauses, free agency, collective
bargaining agreements, work stop-
pages, payroll caps, ticket pricing, revenue sharing, and facility about the costs to bid on and subsequently
host the
Olympic
subsides. A discussion Games concludes this
chapter. Students with an interest in the economic side of professional sport willfind this chapter afascinating read. In the penultimate chapter, tion affects sport along cultural,
Dr. David Whitson lends a keen eye to how globalizapolitical,
upside and downside to globalization, tions and the global sports labour
and economic lines.
He discusses both the
homing in on the power of transnational
corpora-
market. He points out that, thanks to electronic
media,
professional sport is now marketed and consumed around the globe in fascinating contradictory
and
ways.
Dr. Brian Wilsonframes the final
chapter on the future of sport on four overarching
categories that have been associated with majorsocial changes: governance, globalization, technology,
and the environment.
He makes 11 predictions based on the social trends
from the above four categories and describes waysto useresearch and theory to inform intervention. On behalf of all the contributors,
we hope you enjoy reading this bookand
further-
morethat it provides you with a sound basisfor understanding the social dimensions of sport and physical activity from a uniquely Canadian perspective. Jane Crossman and Jay Scherer
SuPPlEMEnTS Test Item
File (978-0-13-344160-4)The
TestItem Fileincludes chapter-relevant
questionsto help instructors create quizzes,exams, homework, and practice handouts. There are approximately
400 questions in
multiple-choice format that address factual,
applied, and conceptual materialfrom the textbook. It is availablefrom the Pearsononline catalogue to instructors
who adopt the textbook at http://catalogue.pearsoned.ca.
Preface
xi
CourseSmart
for Instructors
(978-0-13-344158-1)CourseSmart
goesbeyond
traditional expectationsproviding instant, online accessto the textbooksandcourse materialsyou needat alower costfor students. And evenasstudentssave money,you can
savetime andhasslewitha digitaleTextbookthat allowsyouto searchfor the mostrelevant content at the very momentyou needit.
Whetherits evaluatingtextbooks or creat-
ing lecture notesto helpstudents with difficult concepts,CourseSmart can makelife a little easier.Seehow whenyou visit www.coursesmart.com/instructors.
CourseSmart for Students (978-0-13-344158-1)CourseSmart traditional expectationsproviding
goesbeyond
instant, online accessto the textbooks and course
materials you needat an average savingsof 60%. Withinstant access from anycomputer and the ability to search your text, youll find the content you need quickly, no matter
whereyouare. Andwithonlinetoolslike highlightingandnotetaking,youcansavetime andstudy efficiently. Seeall the benefitsat www.coursesmart.com/students.
Pearson Custom libraryFor
enrolmentsofatleast 25students,youcancreateyour
owntextbook by choosingthe chaptersthat bestsuit yourowncourseneeds.Tobeginbuilding
yourcustomtext, visit www.pearsoncustomlibrary.com. You mayalso workwitha dedicated PearsonCustomEditorto createyourideal textpublishing
yourown originalcontent or mix-
ing and matchingPearson content. Contactyourlocal Pearson representative to getstarted. peerScholarFirmly
groundedin publishedresearch,peerScholaris a powerful online
pedagogical tool that helpsdevelopstudentscritical andcreativethinking skillsthrough creation, evaluation, andreflection. Workingin stages,students begin bysubmitting writ-
ten assignments. peerScholarthen circulatestheir workfor othersto review, a process that can be anonymousor not, depending oninstructors preferences.Studentsimmedi-
atelyreceivepeerfeedbackandevaluations,reinforcingtheir learning anddriving development of higher-orderthinking skills. Studentscan then re-submit revised work,again
dependingoninstructors preferences. Contact your Pearsonrepresentative to learn more about peerScholar and the
researchbehindit.
xii
Preface
Acknowledgments Thecompletion ofthis text would not have been possiblehadit not beenfor the willingness of the contributors to share their expertise. To each of them
we extend our sincere
gratitude and wetrust that readers will appreciate their knowledge, insights, and wisdom. The authors and contributors
greatly appreciate the advice and guidance of our col-
leagues in their review of the text and the
manuscript:
Marc Belanger, Vanier College Graham Fletcher, University of the Fraser Valley Susan L. Forbes, Lakehead University Peggy Gallant, St. Francis Xavier University Fred Mason, University of New Brunswick Barbara Ruttenberg, Concordia University
Susan M. M.Todd, LangaraCollege Also, wethank Pearsonfor their willingnessto publish thisfirst edition. Specific thanks go to
Matthew Christian,
Pearsons acquisitions
editor
who kick-started
this
project; Christine Langone, our ever-cooperativeand motivating developmental editor; and Leanne Rancourt, our thorough, attention-to-detail
copy editor.
Wearegratefulfor the ever-presentsupport of ourfamilies in Canadaand NewZealand, without whom this book simply would not have been possible. Jane would like to thank through
Dr. Brent Rushall for his mentorship and cheerleading
her career and Dr.John
Vincent,
her research partner,
who, through
his deft
research and writing skills elevated the quality of their published papers. She extends special gratitude to Paulene McGowanfor her feedback and constant encouragement. Jay would like to thank those individuals gogical insights and teaching
philosophies
who have generously shared valuable pedawith him over the years, including:
Whitson, Lisa McDermott, Judy Davidson, Steve Jackson, Brian
Dave
Wilson, and, especially,
Vicky Paraschak.
Jane Crossmanand Jay Scherer
xiii
Contributors EDITORS Dr. Jane Crossman is a Professor Emerita at Lakehead University whereshe held several administrative
positions throughout
her career including
Chair and Graduate Coordina-
tor of the School of Kinesiology. She taught graduate and undergraduate coursesin sport sociology, research
methods, and mental training.
Janes research, which pertains to the
newspaper coverage of sporting events and the psychosocial dimensions of sports injuries, has been published in a number of scholarly journals.
She has edited three books: Coping
with SportsInjuries: Psychological Strategiesfor Rehabilitation (2001) and Canadian Sport Sociology, Editions 1 (2003) and 2 (2007). Jane contributed a chapter to the book The Sport Scientists Research Adventuresin gratification
which she gave insights into the challenges and
of being a researcher. Jane is on the editorial board of the Journal of Sport
Behaviorand regularly reviews for a number of journals and texts in the fields of sport sociology, sport psychology, and research methods. During sabbaticals, Jane has been a Visiting Professor at the
Universities of Exeter and Brighton (UK), the
(New Zealand), Victoria
University (Australia),
and the
University of Otago
University of Ulster (Northern
Ireland). Jane enjoys exercising a border collie, golfing, andfiction
and nonfiction
writing.
Dr. Jay Scherer is an Associate Professor in the Faculty of Physical Education and Recreation at the
University of Alberta where he hastaught sociology of sport coursessince
2005. His primary research interests include cultural studies of sport andleisure; globalization, sport and public policy; and sport and the media.Jays research has been published in a number of scholarly journals,
and his mostrecent book (with
Public Broadcasting,and Cultural Citizenship: Signal Lost?(2013). enjoys cycling, running, and cross-country skiing.
David Rowe) is Sport, Outside of the office, Jay
Heis an avidfiction
suffering fan of the Toronto Blue Jays and the Edmonton
reader and along-
Oilers.
COnTRIBuTORS Dr. Mary Louise Adamsis a Professor in the School of Kinesiology and Health Studies and the Department of Sociology at Queens University sport and culture, the sociology offitness,
where she teaches courses on
and contemporary issues in sexuality.
Sheis
the author of Artistic Impressions: Figure Skating, Masculinity andthe Limits of Sport (2011) and The Trouble with Normal: Postwar Youth and the She writes on issues related to the history of sexuality,
Making of Heterosexuality (1997). queer and feminist social
ments, and on gender and sexuality in sport and physical activity. started
move-
She has recently
work on two new projects: an oral history with feminist sport activists on the
legacies offeminism in contemporary
womens sport and a historical cultural study of the
meanings of walking. Dr. Rob Beamish holds a joint
appointment
in the
Department of Sociology and the
School of Kinesiologyand Health at Queens University. Duringthat time, in addition to histeaching and research responsibilities, he hasserved asthe Associate Dean(Studies)
xiv
and two terms as the Head of the Department of Sociology. Dr. Beamishs research centres on high-performance
sport as a form of work and specific issues related to
work,
labour, and classical social theory. In addition to numerous articles, book chapters, and encyclopedia entries related to social theory and sport sociology in general, and the use of performance-enhancing substances in particular, he is the author of several books,including
Marx, Methodand the Division of Labor: Fastest, Highest, Strongest: The Critique of
High-Performance Sport (with Ian Ritchie);
The Promise of Sociology: The Classical Tradi-
tion and Contemporary Sociological Thinking; and Steroids: A New Look at PerformanceEnhancing Drugs. Dr. Duane Bratt is a Professor of Political Science and Chair of the Department of Policy Studies at Mount Royal University.
Heteaches public policy and international
politics.
While his primary research interests are in nuclear energy and Canadian foreign policy, he also writes on sport policy. This includes a recent research project that led to the inclusion of physical literacy standards in practitioner,
he is the
Albertas daycare accreditation standards. Asa sport
National Resource Person and Chair of the LTAD committee for
the Canadian Lacrosse Association. Dr. Tim Fletcher is an Assistant Professorin the University.
Department of Kinesiology at Brock
Histeaching and research interests are in physical education pedagogy and
teacher education. In particular,
his research focuses on waysin which teachers under-
stand the connections between their teaching identities, Much of his recent
work has used self-study
practices, and student learning.
methodology, including
the co-edited text
Self-Study of Physical Education: The Interplay of Scholarship and Practice (forthcoming 2014) with Alan Ovens from the was awarded a Young Scholar Education in Dr. Jean
University of Auckland in
New Zealand. In 2014 he
Award from the International
Association for Physical
Higher Education (AIESEP).
Harvey is a Professor at the School of Human Kinetics at the
Ottawa. Heis also the founding
University of
director of the Research Centre for Sport in
Society. His main areas of research aresport policy in
Canadian
Canada and abroad as well assport
in the context of globalization. Jean has published extensively both in French and in English in
multiple refereed journals.
Heis also the co-editor
with Lucie Thibault of Sport
Policyin Canada(2013) and co-author of Sport and Social Movements(2013). Dr. Brad Humphreys is a Professorin the ment of Economics at
College of Businessand Economics, Depart-
WestVirginia University. He holds a PhD in economics from Johns
Hopkins University. He previously held positions at the University of Illinois Champaign and the
at Urbana-
University of Alberta. Hisresearch on the economics of gambling,
the economics andfinancing
of professional sports, and the economics of higher educa-
tion has been publishedin academicjournals in economics and policy analysis. He has published morethan 80 papersin peer-reviewed journals in economics and public policy.
Hetwice testified beforethe United States Congresson the economicimpact of professional sports teams and facilities.
His current research projects include an assessment of
the informational efficiency ofsports betting markets,an examination ofthe effect of new sports facilities
on urban residential
construction
projects, an assessment of the causal
relationship betweenrecreational gambling and health outcomes,and an evaluation of the value Canadians place on Olympic gold medals.
Contributors
xv
Professor
Moshe Lander is a Lecturer at Concordia
University.
He holds a Mastersin
Applied European Languages and is a PhD candidate in Economics. winning teacher, having spent mathematics, andfinance
Heis an award-
mostof the last two decadesteaching economics, statistics,
at postsecondary institutions
in
Alberta, Ontario, and Quebec.
Mosheis known on campus as muchfor his unique presentation skills and his appearance as he is for his extremely dry wit and linguistic time in the classroom teaching, esquesummer retreat in
dexterity. Though he spends much of his
Mosheloves to spend his down time either at his pictur-
Hapolonia orin Flin Flon, Manitoba, watching the annual migra-
tion of fake tootie birds. Dr. Jason Laurendeau is an Associate Professor in the the
University of Lethbridge.
Department of Sociology at
Hereceived an undergraduate degree in
Mastersand PhD degreesin Sociology from the
Kinesiology, and
University of Calgary. His research and
teaching interests include deviance and social control, sport and embodiment, gender, risk, fatherhood, and autoethnography. journals, including
His work has appeared in a number of scholarly
Deviant Behavior, Sociological Perspectives, Sociology of Sport Journal,
Journal of Sport and SocialIssues, and Emotion, Spaceand Society.Jason enjoys a number of sport and leisure pursuits, including cycling, and swimming.
cross-country skiing, hiking, backcountry camping,
Heis also active in hislocal community and an avid traveller.
He
dedicates this chapter to the memory of Rosco. Dr. Stacy L. Lorenz is an Associate Professorin Physical Education and History at the University of Alberta, Augustana Campus. Hecompleted a bachelors degreein
History at
Augustana University College, a mastersin History at the University of Western Ontario, and a PhD in History at the University of Alberta. Heteaches in the areas of sport history, sociocultural
aspects of sport and physical activity, sport and social issues, and sport and
popular culture.
He also coached the mens basketball team at Augustanafor eight years.
Stacys research interests include newspaper coverage of sport, sport and local
and national identities,
Canadian culture.
violence and
mediaexperiences of sport,
masculinity, and hockey and
He has written several book chapters and published articles in such
journals as Canadian Journal of
History of Sport, Journal of Sport History, Sport History
Review,Journal of CanadianStudies,and Journal of Sport & SocialIssues. He has also written a number of newspaper articles about issuesrelated to sport, society, and culture. Dr. Don Morrow is a Professor of Kinesiology at
Western University.
His academic
teaching and research interest areasare Canadian sport history, sport literature, ture and concepts of exercise history, integrative Heis the author of eight textbooks, including
health/medicine, the
mostrecent third
Canada: A History (2013) and numerous academic journal
body cul-
and health promotion. edition of Sport in
articles, an award-winning
teacher, a past-president of the North American Society for Sport History, and an elected Fellow of the
American Academy Kinesiology and Physical Education.
Dr. Victoria Paraschakis a Professorof Kinesiologyat the University of Windsorwhere she teaches sociology of sport, government and sport, social construction
of leisure, and
outdoorrecreation. Shereceived a bachelors degreefrom McMasterUniversityin 1977, a masters from the
University of
Windsor in 1978, and a PhD from the
University of
Albertain 1983. The primaryfocus of herresearchis Aboriginal peoplesin sport andin physical cultural practices more broadly. In 1999 she took a years leave to work with
xvi
Contributors
seven different
Northwest Territories sport and recreation organizations and establish a
direction for the new millennium. She looked at the creation of health services for the Canada Games held in
Whitehorse, Yukon, in February 2007, examining the interfaces
between sport and public health perspectives on such services as part of a health services legacy for these Games. Her work focuses on power relations, social construction, and the creation, reproduction,
or reshaping of cultural practices through the duality of structure.
She is currently expanding which includes fostering
on that framework
to incorporate
a strengths perspective,
practices of hope that enable individuals
to
work together to
achieve broader collective goals. Dr. Ian Ritchie is Associate Professorin the Department of Kinesiology at Brock University. Ian received his PhD in Sociology from
Bowling
Green State University,
where he studied classical and contemporary sociological theory. sport sociology and sociology of the include
performance-enhancing
modern Olympic
Ohio,
Heteaches courses in
Games.Ians research interests
drug usein sport and the history of anti-doping rules,
media,gender, and various aspects of the
Olympic Games.In addition to several chapters
in edited volumes, he co-authored (with
Rob Beamish) the book Fastest, Highest,Stron-
gest: A Critique of High-Performance Sport (2006) and is currently the history of the
modern Olympic Games. Aformer
writing a manuscript on
Canadian varsity rower and coach,
Ian now enjoys long distance trail and marathon running,
golfing, cycling, curling, and
various outdoor travel-related activities such as hiking and camping. Ian lives in Fenwick, Ontario, with his wife and three children. Dr. Susan Tirone is the Associate Director of the College of Sustainability at Dalhousie University.
Her administrative
duties involve
ity and Society program, a multi-disciplinary
overseeing the Environment,
Sustainabil-
undergraduate program with an enrolment
of over 600 students each year, and she is the academic leader of the RBC Sustainability Leadership Certificate program offered by the College of Sustainability.
She co-teaches a
problem-based learning course in the College, drawing upon current and topical sustainability issues in the local community
to inform
discussions about how people in their
various roles as employers, volunteers, consumers, and engaged citizens contend with the sustainability
problems weface. Susan is interested in how communities sustain their
populations by welcoming new and diverse groups of immigrants.
Shefocuses her studies
on the formal and informal social support networks that facilitate
a welcoming environ-
mentfor new immigrants. contribute
to
welcoming
Some of her research has delved into how sport organizations new immigrants
to communities
in
Canada. She is cross-
appointed in the Faculty of Health Professions at Dalhousie University
where she has
taught since 2001. Dr. Ralph
Wheeleris an Associate Professorin the School of Human Kinetics and Rec-
reation at Memorial University.
Hereceived his PhD from the
1998. Hisresearch and teaching interests include
University of Alberta in
pedagogy of teaching and curriculum
studies. Ralph wasasuccessful varsity and club swim coach and his CIS teams went undefeated in fifth
Atlantic
University Sport competition for four years and wasranked as high as
in the CIS national team rankings.
National
Coaching Certification
He also served as provincial coordinator for the
Program. Ralph has served on many provincial
and
national committees promoting physical education and sport, and in 2006 he wasawarded
Contributors
xvii
the
Certificate of Honour from the Provincial Physical Education
standing contribution to the profession. A passionatefly fisherman, disappear
Council for his outhe has been known to
for weeksinto the Labrador wildernessin pursuit of the king of sportfishthe
Atlantic salmon. Dr. David Whitsonis a Professor Emeritus in the Department of Political Science at the University of Alberta. Heis co-author
of Game Planners: Transforming Canadas Sport
System(with
Donald Macintosh), Hockey Nightin Canada: Sport, Identities, and Cultural
Politics (with
Richard Gruneau), and
Writing Offthe Rural West: Globalization, Govern-
ments,and the Transformation of Rural Communities(with
Roger Epp), as well as numerous
articles on global events and the globalization of sport and culture. In retirement,
he con-
tinues to enjoy cycling and skiing and watching the world of sport. Dr. Brian
Wilsonis a sociologist and Professorin the School of Kinesiology at the Univer-
sity of British Columbia. Heis author of Sport & Peace: A Sociological Perspective(2012) and Fight, Flight or Chill: Subcultures, Youth and Raveinto the Twenty-First Century(2006) as well as articles on sport, social inequality, and youth culture.
His mostrecent
environmental issues, media,social movements,
work focuses on how the sport of running is usedfor
peace promotion in Kenya and on responses to golf-related environmental
xviii
Contributors
concerns.
Chapter 1 Perspectives onthe Social Dimensionsof Sportand Physical Activityin Canada Jane Crossmanand Jay Scherer
Take afew momentsto think about the importance of sport and physical activity in your life.
Sport provides opportunities socialization
for
Mark Spowart/Alamy
Blend Images
Pete Saloutos/Brand
X Pictures/Getty
Images
1
Canadians.
for
For thousands of students enrolled in kinesiology, education
human kinetics, and physical
programs across the country, the practices of sport and physical activity
so pervasive that they are widely taken for granted as a part of the rhythm lives and also indelible earliest childhood
elements of the fabric of Canadian society. For many of us, our
memoriesinclude
settings or informal
are
of their own
our first athletic
experiences in organized sport
experiences at the playground or in school.
popular and pleasurable everyday topic of conversation
Moreover, sport is a
among ordinary
Canadians of
all ages and is widely regarded as a common sense social lubricant.
We habitually
cuss the chances of our favourite
team
National
Hockey League (NHL)
playoffs, the performance of our fantasy football
dis-
making the
team, the latest scandal rocking the
sports world, how the high school soccer team is performing, or the latest tweet by a sports personality. Sport is intimately
connected to the
dian society (e.g., the
social institutions
of Cana-
media,the education system, and various levels of government).
Canadians are inundated on an unprecedented
mostsignificant
with images and stories of sports and athletes that now air
number of specialty sport channels (such as TSN and Sportsnet)
that are part of the BCE and Rogers telecommunications well aware that the Internet
has a never-ending reservoir
empires. Students of sports-specific
will be
sites offer-
ing live feeds, recent and past game results and statistics, and continual insider information about teams and players. Online fantasy leagues, meanwhile, allow sports fans to control the destiny of their nience.
Most city
newspapers still
online),
knowing that
winning Games in
a significant
percentage of readers purchase or subscribe to fact
audiences. Following
goal for the
Canadian
Vancouvera
conve-
devote an entire section to sports (in print and
newspapers for the sports coverage alonea sizable and predictable
millions of
teams and chosen players at their
not lost on advertisers in search of
Sidney Crosbys overtime gold-medal-
mens hockey team at the 2010
game watched by 26.5 million
wireless and wireline networks carried the
Winter Olympic
CanadiansBell
mostcalls and text
Canada
messagesin its history.
In sum, sport is an extremely popular social phenomenon that has exploded in visibility and popularity in the last 30 years. Of course, we arent
merely a nation that follows sports.
Many parents devote huge
amounts of time, energy, and moneyso that their children can participate in organized sport. Provinces, mindful of the declining fitness levels and soaring obesity rates of children and youth, are taking a hard look at extending the number of hours per week devoted to physical education.
Canadian colleges and universities offer a widerange of intramural
and interschool sports for both women and men. Some baby boomers now reaching retirement age arespending significant amounts of their leisure time actively involved in their favourite sport or physical activity.
The number of sporting activities and leisure pursuits
availableto Canadianshas expandedradically overthe past 50 years. Wehaveapproximately 2,500 arenas, 1,300 curling rinks, and more than 2,300 golf courses. The 2013
GoodlifeFitness Toronto Marathonsawroughly 12,000 peoplecrossthe finish line. Many of these activities are morethan sports played for the fun of friendly competitiontheyre
also popularsocial and cultural events. In addition, manygroupsthat have historically beenleft out of the sport equation are now
finding moreopportunitiesto participate.Forexample,the 2014 WinterParalympicGames in Sochi, Russia,had 585 competitors from 45 countries. The 2014 North American Indigenous
2Chapter
1
Gamesheld in Regina, Saskatchewan, had 6,000 competitors. Cleveland, Ohio, home of the 2014 Gay Games,welcomed morethan 10,000 athletesfrom morethan 65 countries. Unprecedented numbers of girls and women now participate in a host of sporting activities they were once excluded fromespecially
sportsthat traditionally emphasized aspectsof physicality for
boys and men,like wrestling. Still, while there is no doubt that the opportunities to do sport have expanded across Canada,there remain significant and enduring issues of inequality between menand women,rich and poor, and along racial and ethnic lines that continue to structure sporting experiencesfor Canadiansin different ways.For example, according to the latest research paper on sport participation rates released by Canadian Heritage(2013): 1. Sport participation rates acrossthe country continue to decline. 2. The gender gap in sport participation
hasincreased, and menare morelikely to par-
ticipate in sport than women. 3. Sport participation rates decrease as Canadians get older, yet the participation rates of young Canadians are declining faster than that of older Canadians.
4. Higherincome earners are morelikely to participate in sport than less affluent Canadians, and household income
decisively influences
childrens
participation
in sport. 5. Sport participation
of non-Anglophones
is declining, and established immigrants
participate in sport less than recent immigrants. There are other obvious disparities as well. For example, female athletes are still regularly marginalized and under-represented by the
media and society at large. Furthermore, in
2013 women comprised only 21 of 101 active membersof the International
Olympic Com-
mittee (IOC), and in 2011 women held only 15% of head coaching positions in Canadian Interuniversity
Sport (CIS).
Yet, while all of these observations are important
and point to
the fact that interest and participation in sport and physical activity are related to a number of standard sociological variables (gender, race, social class, age, geographic location, education levels, etc.), they dolittle to addressthe wider sociological significance of these seemingly obvious facts. Instead, it is
morefruitful
to ask, as Hall, Slack, Smith, and
Whitson(1991) did over two decadesago, are patterns of maleandfemale participation in sport products of social structures that favour and empower menin innumerable
ways?
Whatis it about the classstructure of Canadian society that perpetuates unequal classrelations and unequal accessto sport participation?
Why do older Canadians continue to
struggle to gain accessto various sports facilities? These questions and many others connect the study of sport to the study of change andresistancein relations between dominant and subordinate groupsin society. Whenthese questions are asked, and when research uncovers interesting lines of analysis and further investigation,
weshow
that to study sport sociology is not just of interest to a few fans but something that is important to the understanding of Canadian society. (Hall et al., 1991, p. 20)
In this respect, while sport continues to offer a host of opportunities and pleasurable
experiences,including fun and relaxation for millionsof Canadians,wewouldbe naiveto believe that the world of sport is devoid ofthe problems, social issues, and unequal power
relations presentin oursociety. Moreover,sport regularly makesthe headlinesfor all the wrong reasons: Discriminatory
Perspectives
on
the
practices, exploitation
Social
Dimensions
of
Sport
of athletes, labour disputes, drug
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canada3
Christine
Sinclair,
2012
Canadian
Carlos
Osorio/ZUMA
captain Athlete
of the of the
2012
bronze-medal-winning
Olympic
soccer
team
and the
Year.
Press/Newscom
use,sexualabuseandassault,gambling,andthe habitualglorificationof violence which arebyproductsof anindustryfocusedon promotinga hypermasculine spectaclefor profit. Indeed,it seemsasthe rationalization of sport continuesto increase, moralconduct decreases whileother waysofimaginingsport areobscured. Thesociologicalanalysisofsport and physicalactivity providesstudentswiththe opportunityto askthought-provokingquestionsusingconceptsandtheoriesthat emphasizesocial asopposedto individual causesandthat pointtowardstructuralsolutionsto problems identifiedin sport (Hall et al., 1991,pp.1112). Forexample: n
Whyhasparticipationin sport historicallybeenstratifiedby age,gender,race,and socioeconomic status? is a power and performance modelof sport privileged over alternative waysof playing and doing sport?
nWhy
leagues with high rates of concussionsand otherinjuries (e.g.,the Canadianand National Football Leagues)still existin two decades?
nWill
n
Whydo so manycities invest significant amounts of public funds in world-class sports arenasandstadiums? do countriesspend billions of dollarsto hostthe Olympic Games?
nWhy
the Canadian government investin high-performance sport(e.g.,the Ownthe Podiumprogram)atthe expenseof programs that couldincreasemass participation?
nShould
do gay menhesitateto come outin professionalsports environments?
nWhy
4Chapter
1
Crucially,in raising thesetypes of difficult questionsand political issues,the sociology of sport is going beyond a concern with phenomena within sport. It is seeking to demonstrate the significance of sport to some ofthe central problems ofsociology: the explanation of structures of class,gender,and racial inequality, as well asthe processes through whichsocial changeis achievedand circumscribed (Hall et al., 1991, p. 12). Thus,the chaptersin this text will emphasizethat sport is not simply areflection or mirror of society but, asJean Harvey(2000) (author of Chapter12) notes,a worldin its own right, with its ownlife and its own contradictions (p. 19). It is alsoimportant to recognize,though, that assportis shapedbythe social worldaroundus,soit activelyshapes the social world. As weshall seethroughout this textbook, whilesport is asocial practicethat is shaped by broader powerrelations that benefitsomeindividuals and groups morethan others,it alsoenablesindividuals and groups with varyingresourcesto reproduce current practicesorresistthem. Onthis latter note,students often walkinto their first sociology of sport and physical activity course with preconceivedideas about the world of sport and howit works.For example,becauseof the predominanceof black athletesin certain sports, we maybelieve that racism nolonger existsin sport, orthat black athletesarenaturally gifted. Or,thanks to ourregularexposureto hockey, we mayhavecometo acceptthat fighting is simply part ofthe game. Still, even our mostacceptedbeliefsand normalizedvaluesneedto be held up for critical reflection and analysis, whileall of the sportsthat weplay and enjoyand the institutions that they are connectedtoneed to berecognizedassocial and historical productsthat havebeen madeandremade by Canadiansoverthe courseof manydecadesagainst the backdropof arange of cultural struggles.Studentsofsport sociology needto look critically at sport to better describe,explain, andimprove it, but alsoto engagein broaderprocessesof social changeandtransformation. Atits veryroot, then, the sociologicalstudy of sportis afundamentally creative and exhilarating practicethat canreveal newinsights and lines of analysisthat contributeto the understandingof contemporary Canadiansociety.
Sociology
AS A SociAl
Science
Sociologyis one of the social sciences, along with economics, anthropology, political science, and psychology.It is the disciplinedstudy of humansocial behaviour, especially the investigation of the origins, classifications,institutions, and development of human society on a globallevel (Henslin, Glenday,Pupo, & Duffy,2014, p. 5). Sociologistsare interested in social interactions that take place between humans,groups,and societies. They examinethe waysin whichsocial structures, powerrelations, andinstitutions (e.g., family, social class)enableand constrainindividuals and groups;they are concerned with the social rules andideologiesthat not only bind peopletogether, but alsoseparatethem. Yetasthe Englishsociologist Anthony Giddens(1987) noted,it mustalsobe emphasizedthat sociology cannot be a neutral intellectual endeavor (p. viii). Rather,it is a critical examination of the contemporary social situation with the underlying goal not only to understandsocial phenomena but to improve society. Becausesociologyis concerned with our behaviour associal beings,subdisciplines haveemergedthat are broadin scopeand diversein nature. Oneof those subdisciplinesis called sportsociology. Sportsociology examinesthe relationship betweensport andsociety and studiessport as an ever-presentpart of social and cultural life. Sportsociologistsstudy humans/agents
Perspectives
on
the
Social
Dimensions
of
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canada5
involved in sport (e.g., athletes, coaches,fans, team owners),the institutions and social structuresthat affect their sport experiences(e.g., education, media,economics,politics), and the processesthat occur in conjunction with sport (e.g., social stratification and mobility,deviance,violence,inequality). Someofthe aims ofthe sociologyofsport include: nto
nto
nto
nto
nto
nto
nto
examine critically the role, function, and meaningof sport in the lives of people andthe societiesthey form; describeand explain the emergenceand diffusion ofsport overtime and acrossdifferent societies; identify the processesof socializationinto, through, and out of modernsport; investigate the valuesand normsof dominant, emergent,andresidual cultures and subculturesin sport; explore howthe exercise of powerandthe stratified nature ofsocieties placelimits and possibilities on peoplesinvolvement andsuccessin sport as performers,officials, spectators, workers,or consumers; examinethe wayin whichsport respondsto social changesin the larger society; and contribute both to the knowledgebaseof sociology moregenerallyand alsoto the formation of policy that seeksto ensurethat globalsport processes areless wastefulof lives andresources.(ISSA, 2005)
Sport sociologists are also concerned with the links betweenthe structure of organizedsport and dominant cultural ideologiessuch as class,race, sexuality, and nationalism. Indeed, one of the mainroles of sociologists is to disentangle the complex relationships betweenindividuals andtheir social world (Naiman, 2012, p. 2). Wechallenge long-held mythsand common senseassumptionsaboutthe world of sport and, by doingso, seekto makeit betterfor all those involved. An overview of whatsport sociologistsactually dois listed below: 1. Serveas experts to government agencies,public enquiries, and commissionsin areas such as drugs,violence, and health education,thus contributing to their reports. 2. Act as advocatesfor athletes rights and responsibilities by providing researchfor groups whoseekto challengeinequalities of gender,class,ethnicity, age,and disability, particularly with respectto access,resources,andstatus. 3. Promote human development as opposedto performanceefficiency modelswithin physicaleducation andsport science. 4. Encouragebetter use of human and environmental resources, thus ensuring that there is asporting future for generationsto come. (ISSA, 2005) Its important to emphasize,then, that sport sociologistslook for extrinsic or structural and historical explanations to explain social behaviour and social issues. Onthe other hand, psychologistsexamineintrinsic explanationsto explain individual behaviour. However,is it enough to considerintrinsic factors and personal choices by athletes to explain the systemic useof,for example, performance-enhancingdrugsin manyprofessional sports? Ordo weneedto considera host ofstructural issuesand,indeed, the increasing rationalization of high-performance and professionalsport in relation to values of competition and the significant financial rewards(sponsorship and salaries) on offer to
6Chapter
1
contemporary athletes asdecisivefactorsthat contribute to these patterns? Alternatively, whyshould weconsider banning performance-enhancingdrugsat theselevels if their use is endemic(i.e., is it cheatingif everyoneis doingit)? Finally, whyarethe debatesassociated with drug usein sport so heavily moralized whenthe useof other performanceenhancing drugsis normalizedin other occupationsandindustries andactively encouraged and promotedin relation to other aspectsour personallives? Students will be wellaware, for example,that other performance enhancers(i.e., Viagraand Cialis) are habitually promoted during popularsports broadcaststo reach maleaudiences. Becauseweseekto both understandand denaturalizelongstanding assumptionsand beliefs,in addition to engagingin political dialogueand debateon howto improve contemporary sporting practicesand culturesin Canadiansociety, the sociology of sport is a complex, controversial, and often challenging pursuit. Moreover,sport sociologists pose difficult questionsabout social problems andissuesthat are not always answered.It is, however,afascinating endeavourso muchsothat it canfoster stimulating discussionon a widerange oftopics andideas. In so doing, the chaptersin this text will regularly ask youto reflect on your own sporting experiences and, indeed, hold up your own practical consciousness for critical reflection. By practical consciousnesswe meanyour accepted beliefsall of the things aboutsport and Canadiansocietythat you maybetacitly awareof without, attimes, being ableto givethem direct expressionor explanation. Your practical consciousness is shaped by your experiencesof doing, consuming, and interacting with varioussocial structures,institutions, andideologies;these arethe experiencesthat frame the possibilitiesyou canimagine in sport and beyond. However,your practical consciousness is far from simply reflective of dominant interests and beliefsit is alsosubject to ongoing refinement (hence, practical), especiallyas you encounter new experiences,ideas, and information. Assuch, practical consciousnessis neverstatic. Actionsand experiencessupporting practical consciousnessstrengthen it, while new actions and experiencescan challenge our assumptionsand makeus question varioustruths about what weoncetook for granted. Forexample,a power and performance modelbasedon competition, domination of opponents, rationalized rules, and scorekeeping by adults is widely understood as a common senseand normal wayfor children and youth to playsport in the eyes of many administrators, coaches,and parents, whothemselves often grew up playing similarly structured sports.Indeed, your own practical consciousnessmayhavebeenreinforced over years of engagingin these types of sporting experiencesthat have now simply come to seem natural (and, of course,regularly pleasurable,thrilling, andfun). Still, is this the only waythat youth sport can bestructured? Or,arethere alternative waysof structuring sport according to different valuesand principles? Beforerevisiting these ideas, though, lets first briefly considerthe origin of the sociology ofsport andsome of the issuesassociated with defining sport.
originS
of Sport
Sociology
Theacademicstudy ofsportsociologyis relatively new,andscientificresearchin the field only emergedin the 1960s.From 1965to 1969, Kenyonand McPherson (1973) ofthe University of Wisconsinpublishedaseriesof articles devotedto the sociology of sport, positioningit firmly within the positivistic perspectiveof science (Sage,1997, p. 326).In the late 1960s
Perspectives
on
the
Social
Dimensions
of
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canada7
the annual meetingsofthe American Alliancefor Health,PhysicalEducationand Recreation included asessiondevotedto the sociologyof sport (Dance wasaddedto this organizations title in 1979).In 1976,this sameassociationfounded the Sociologyof Sport Academywith the purposeof coordinatingand promotingthe study ofsportsociology(Sage,1997). The 1960sand 1970sconstituted animportant time for the development ofthe study ofsport sociology. Duringthat time there was muchunrestin North America,particularly withregardto the involvement ofthe UnitedStatesin the Vietnam Waras wellasthe civil rights movement.For example,in 1968, during the medalpresentation at the Summer Olympic Games in Mexico City,two blackathletes,John Carlosand Tommie Smith, made a gloved black powersalute, thereby usingthe global visibility provided by the Olympic Gamesasa vehicleto broadcasttheir anger withthe plight of black Americansand unequal racerelationsin the United States.Thisresistantgesture wassymbolic ofthe imbalance of societal powerthat prevailed not only for black Americans,but alsofor other minority groups.Sport wasnoexception. Sportsociologistsunderstoodthat it wasnolonger enough to simply describeand celebratesport and variousathletic accomplishments;instead, they neededto examine and explain how varioussocial institutions transform sport and,likewise,howsport can beusedto transform broadersocial structuresagainstthe backdropof a range of cultural struggles,pressingpolitical debates,andsocial movements. Withinthis context, an organizedsocietyfor the study of sport sociology(which later becamethe North American Societyfor the Sociology of Sport[NASSS]) emergedafter a Big Ten Symposiumin 1978. The missionstatement of the NASSS wasto promote, stimulate, and encouragethe sociological study of play, games,sport and contemporary physical culture. In 1980,the first NASSSconferencetook placein Denver,and subsequently several Canadiancities have hostedthis annual gathering. NASSSpublishesa peer-reviewedjournal entitled the Sociologyof SportJournal. Aninternational umbrella group called the International Sociology of Sport Association(ISSA) wasfounded in 1965. TheISSA holdsannual conferencesand publishesa peer-reviewedjournal entitled the International Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport. Otherinternational journals in which sport sociologistscommonly publishinclude the Journal of Sportand SocialIssues,International Journal of Sport Communication,Sportand Society,LeisureStudies,and Qualitative Research in Sport, Exercise and Health.Somesociology andsport management journals also publish articles with asport sociologytheme. Therefore, whilethere are a host of various national andinternational organizations associatedwiththe sociology ofsport,it is vital for studentsto understandsport within the context of Canadiansociety while also makingconnections to continental and,indeed, global patterns andforms of social organization. Theorganizationof Canadiansociety has manysimilarities with the United States;however,there are alsosignificant differences betweenthe countries. Canadianhistoryis, of course,substantially different from that of the United States,andthere are uniquesocial relations (between Anglophonesand Francophones, Aboriginal and Euro-Canadians,etc.) that point to these enduring distinctions. Canadiansalso havecompeting visions of the roles and structures of government, vastly different commitments to the provision of social services including universal healthcare, alongstanding history of public broadcasting by the Canadian Broadcasting Corporationand Radio-Canada,and, attimes, radically different visions offoreign policy. It should be nosurprise,then, that significant aspectsof the organizationand structure of Canadiansport are different comparedto sport in the United Statesand,indeed,
8Chapter
1
other parts ofthe world. Ofcourse,asJay Schererand David Whitsonnotein Chapters11 and 14, Canadianshavealwaysfollowed the North American majorleaguesin significant numbers(in addition to NCAA football and basketball). As well, weare moreinterconnected with the rest of the worldthan ever before.In 2014,for example, we watched Germany winthe FIFA World Cupin RiodeJaneiro with 32 nations qualifying; Martin Kaymer(Germany) and Michelle Wie(United States) winthe US Open Golf Championships;and Novak Djokovic(Serbia) and Petra Kvitova (Czech Republic) winthe singleseventsat Wimbledon.Soto claim that Canadiansport is a unique entity thriving on its own without any externalinfluences wouldbe naive andinaccurate. There are, however,undeniably unique elementsin Canadianlife and culture, and sport continues to play asignificant role in providing a range of symbolic meaningsand valuesthat areimportant to Canadiansand are part of the ongoingstory that wetell ourselvesabout who weare and whatit means to be Canadian.Forexample, wintersports are often thought of as distinctly Canadiancultural forms, especiallysportslike hockey,curling and, perhapsto alesser extent, cross-countryand alpineskiing and snowboarding.In manyneighbourhoodsacrossthe country the boardsgo upfor outdoorice rinks, and when the weathergets cold enoughsurfacesand backyardsareflooded to makerinks for thousandsof Canadiansto playshinny on. Sport has, moreover,the capacityto represent our communities and indeed our nation on the worldstage. In the 2010 Winter Olympic Gamesin Vancouver, Canadawonthe mostgold medals(N = 14) ofthe 82 nations competing and wasthird overallin medalcount. Boththe womens and mens hockeyteams wongold overtheir USrivals, and Sidney Crosbyssudden-death overtime winning goal, referred to by the Globeand Mailnewspaperas The Shot Heard Around the World
Alexandre Bilodeau,
Canadian freestyle skier,
wasthe first
medal on home soil in 2010. He won a second gold Cameron
Spencer/Getty
Perspectives
Canadian to
win an Olympic gold
medal at the 2014 Sochi Olympic Games.
Images
on
the
Social
Dimensions
of
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canada9
(March 1, 2010, p. A3) becameanindelible Canadian memoryand provided a newgeneration of Canadianswith their own Paul Henderson moment (Globe and Mail, March 2, 2010, p. 4), a reference to the iconic 1972 Summit Seriesbetween Canadaand the Soviet Union. Thesevictories (and others,like Alexandre Bilodeausgold medalin the mens mogulsthe first gold medalfor Canadaat an Olympic Gamesheldin our country) havebeenmythologized in Canadianculture as part ofthe story of who weare and what we value as a country. Similar feats and stories wereexperienced in the 2014 Sochi Olympic Gameswhen Canada wongold medalsin mensand womens hockeyand curling, womens moguls, freestyleskiing, bobsleigh,and mensspeedskating, to nameafew. Thesheer popularity and visibility of these sporting events and physical activities that bring together moregroupsof Canadiansthan other aspectsof culture suggeststhat they areimportant features of everydaylife in Canadaand contribute to a distinctive Canadianculturalidentity. Still, even our mostcherishedidentities and normalizedsporting practicessuch asthe national sport of hockeyarefar from simply natural extensions of the Canadianenvironment, while even the definition of sport hasbeen widely debated and contested.
Defining
Sport:
power
At plAy
The meaningof the wordsport hasevolved overtime, and until recently sport hassimply beenunderstoodasan activity that requires physicalexertion. Forthe purposesofthis textbook,sport shall be defined asanyformally organized,competitive activity that involves vigorousphysical exertion orthe execution of complex physicalskills with rules enforced by aregulatory body. An examination of the components of this definition is worthwhile. First, in order for the activity to be competitivethe organizational and technical aspects mustbecome important, including equipment and systematictraining protocols. Second,the rules of the activity mustbecomestandardizedandformalized by aregulatory bodythat oversees rule enforcement. What wearetalking about,in short, is the institutionalization ofsport and the rationalization of both sportstraining and the sports organizationsthat sponsor training, and under whoseauspicescompetition occurs (Hall et al., 1991, p. 14). Nonetheless, eventhese broad,generalideas do not necessarilyprovidea neatsolution to whatcounts assport. Forexample,arechessboxing(an 11-round matchconsistingof alternaterounds of boxing and blitz chesssessions)or competitiverock-paper-scissors contests sporting events?The World ChessBoxing Organizationandthe WorldRockPaperScissors Society maythink so; others maynot. Alsoconsiderthe made-for-TVcoverageofthe World Seriesof Poker.In hisarticle Sport or Nota Sport?PotIs Split on Poker, Mike Dodd(2006) considersthis question.ESPN(the Estandingfor Entertainment) nevercalled pokerasport. Certainly,a mentalcomponentis requiredto playpoker,butis there a physicalcomponent? Somepoker players,such as DoyleBrunson,age72, arguethat thereis becauseofthe length oftournaments:The last tournamentI won,I played18 hoursoneday,16 hoursthe next day and 16 hoursthe last day. Thats prettytough (Dodd, 2006, p. 13C). Onthe other hand, someathletes mightobjectto the useofthe wordspokerandsportin the samesentence.Bryan Clay,the 2004 Olympicsilver medallist in the decathlon,feelsthat the wordathleteandthe wordsport aregettingso watereddown (Dodd, 2006,p. 13C) Eventhough the IOC hasnt recognizedpoker,it doesrecognizeanother cardgame:contract bridge.
10Chapter
1
Instead of focusing on the endless(but often enjoyable!) debatesand discussionsover the definition ofsport,it is moreproductiveto considersome ofthe ideas associatedwiththe concept of social construction and how both organizedsport andinformal waysof playing haveemergedoverthe courseof manyyears.In so doing, we willfocus not only onformal practicesassociatedwithsport, but alsoonthe lessformalizedaspectsof physicalactivity that areimportant for millionsof Canadians.Byinformal sport, we meanphysicalactivities that areself-initiated with nofixed start orstop times. Informal sport hasnotangible outcomes such as prizesor ribbons, and victory and reward are not dominant featuresin this form of activity (e.g.,children gettingtogether after dinnerto playagameof pickupbaseball,playing agameoftennis with aroommate, goingfor around of golf withthreefriends,rock climbing, or windsurfing). Hereweareinterestedin the socialsignificancenot only of prominentforms ofsport in Canadianculture (e.g., NHL hockeyand the CFL), but alsoof gamesof pickup basketball,shinny, the beerleaguesof old-timer hockey,softball, and all ofthe otherinformalactivities that areimportant and popularpartsof Canadianculture and everydaylife. Sport (formal and informal) is sociallyconstructed,as are all of the meaningsabout sociallife that shapethe worldin which welive. Thatis, sport hasbeeninvented andreinvented by generationsof menand womenfor a widerange of purposes.Sport alsoshapes andis shaped bythe social worldaroundus,and becausesportis asocial constructit can be changedand given different forms and meaningsovertime andfrom placeto place(i.e.,it can besocially reconstructed).Indeed,it scarcely needssayingthat a certain activity that is consideredto beasport in one culture or subculture maysimply not be consideredasport in another culture or another era.In other words,the debatesabout defining sport are less important than studying the social relations and distributions of political and economic resourcesthat have meantthat some gamesand physical pursuits havebecomeinstitutionalizedfeatures of Canadianlife while others have not (Hall et al., 1991, p. 15). Together,all of theseideas point toward the importance of embracinga critical sociological outlook that emphasizesthe role of social construction in all of ourlives; human beingslive in websof meaningthat they themselves havespun. Indeed, even our most naturalizedsocialrelations (money, democracy,the legal system,etc.) andtaken-for-granted identities needto be understoodas historical and cultural constructsthat are constantly changingas weinteract with each other and withsocial structures.In this respect, we will focus on makinghistorical and comparativeconnectionsto illuminate how varioussports andtheir related meaningschange,but alsoillustrating the significance ofsport and human agencyin processes of broadersociohistorical reproduction andtransformation.
wAyS of looking
At SociAl
phenomenA
In the study of sociology, there are different waysof looking at social phenomena: micro, macro,and global. The three levels of social structure are not necessarilyin opposition to each other. Rather,they are waysof looking at social phenomenafrom different perspectives. 1. Microstructuresare intimate, face-to-face social interactions with, for example, friends, family, work colleagues,teachers, and coaches and how they influence society. Thesearesmall groupssuch as a curling foursome, bowling team, or the board of a childrens soccerleague. Peopleparticipatein microstructuresfor personal
Perspectives
on
the
Social
Dimensions
of
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canada11
reasons and becausethey tend to be emotionally deep and enduring An example of a microstructure is a child from a single-parent family
(Brym, 2014). who looks to
his softball coach for guidance in dealing with a problem heis experiencing at home. 2. Macrostructures are larger than
microstructures and represent social relations that
occur outsidea personsinner circle. In this text, we will beconcerned primarily with macrostructures, focusing on the relationship tion, politics, and the
of sport to institutions
such as educa-
media.Inequities in sport asa result of sex, race, ethnicity,
and
socioeconomic status will bethe focus in other chapters. 3. Global structures,
which are larger than
nations, cultures, and societies. communication,
macrostructures, are relations
between
As a result of advancements in transportation
and
sport has globalized. Even though the worlds population is growing
at an alarming rate, asaresult of advancements in transportation our world has,in fact, shrunk. Today, the Internet
and communication
has madecommunication
of every-
thing sport-related instantaneous, and teams and their fans can travel quickly to competitors venues thanks to morerapid
modesof transportation.
Examining social phenomena from a global perspective can besocially important. In light
of the 2013 building collapse of a clothing factory in Bangladesh that killed 1,127
workers and left 2,500 others injured, there is increased concern about the practices of sporting goods companies that outsource the manufacture of clothing and sporting goods and employ cheap labour in developing countries.
Sociologists, and more specifically
those who study social dimensions of sport, have not only studied the events that led up to this disaster but also offered solutions so that it
will hopefully never happen again.
Chapter 14 of this text deals with how globalization haschanged the world of sport in the 21st century. It is important to remember that all of these structures can bestudied relationally
and
need to be understood as historical products that have been madeand remade by genera-
tions of menand women whoarethemselvesthe productsof those verystructures.
The Sociological Imagination In 1961, American sociologist
C. Wright Mills coined the phrase sociologicalimagination,
which is the ability to go beyond a persons immediate life issues and troubles and connect them to societys broader characteristics, including
macro-and global structures. In other
words, what seems to be a personal concern, upon social analysis, is actually a broader social and public issue. For example, if a child cannot participate in hockey because his or her family cannot afford the increasing costs of registration,
equipment, and transporta-
tion required to play in organized hockey leagues, this is clearly a personal trouble and
private matter. However,the root causeofthe familys private problem could bea downturn in the economy whereboth or one of his parents has beenlaid offfrom work resulting
in a reduced householdincome. The costs associatedwith the structure of highly professionalized minor hockey leagues would be prohibitive for hisfamily and many others, thus
pointing to a muchbroaderpublic issue associated withincome inequality and the class structure of Canadian society.
Threekinds ofsensitivitiesareassociatedwithsociologicalimagination: historical,comparative, and critical.
12Chapter
1
Historicalsensitivityis an awarenessthat brings even the smallest details
of personal experience into the larger frame of history. It is also an awarenessthat to truly understand the sporting present, we mustalso understand the past. Withthe de-emphasis of history in our educational system, the importance of a historical perspective has been marginalized across Canada over the course of the pasttwo decades. Clearly, alack offull appreciation of Canadian history leaves us vulnerable to simply repeating the mistakesof the past. However, by neglecting our history and an analysisthat stressesthe reality of sociohistorical change, wealsorisk accepting present realities
and social relations as natural asopposed to
social and historical constructs that have been continually
madeand remade by generations
of menand women against the backdrop of a range of cultural and ideological struggles. The importance
of having historical sensitivity is, of course, one of the
mainreasons
why this text includes a comprehensive chapter about sport history (Chapter account of the Edmonton
Gradsthe
1940, played over 400 games and lost only 20Ann development
of womens basketball in
Hall (2007) outlines the historical
Canada against the backdrop of debates over
gender-based rules and broader changes to around the
Canadian society. The Grads played games
world (often to remarkable crowds) and became, in
ambassadors for the city of Edmonton. the importance
Still,
Edmonton
Oilers and the
many ways, unlikely
many Canadians
of the team, and when most people think
Edmontons nickname, the teams that they likely think franchisesthe
3). In her
womens basketball team that, between 1915 and
may be unaware of
of the City
of Champions,
of are the citys professional sports
Edmonton
Eskimos. Indeed,
for
many
Canadiansit is simply impossible to imagine a contemporary female professional team (or league) like the Edmonton
Gradsthat
would havelevels of visibility and financial remu-
neration on par with the world of maleprofessional sports. In other words, we maysimply take for granted that the current structure of professional sport is distinctly gendered. Comparative sensitivity is learning according to different
about how sport has been socially
constructed
meanings and forms in various cultures. Not only do welearn about
other cultures, but as a result of comparative sensitivity
wecome to appreciate and respect
diversity and the range of waysthat sport and physical activity have beeninstitutionalized and socially constructed around the world. Indeed, one of the
many values of attending
university is that students live and study with people from other cultures and, hopefully, develop an appreciation of cultures other than their own. Sometimes North Americans take a myopic view of the world, particularly those who havent travel and experience different cultures.
the best way or our sports are the only onesthat is that in the World
hadthe opportunity to
Wecan often adopt the attitude that our matter.
wayis
Worthy of note, in this respect,
North American majorleague baseball,the championship competition is called Series even though teams from only two countries vie for the title.
simply understand the
North American versions of gridiron football
Or we may
asthe only way of
playing a sport that has numerous codes (associations of football/soccer,
rugby unions,
rugbyleagues,etc.) and hasbeeninstitutionalized in dramaticallydifferentformsin various cultures around the world. A comparative awareness, like historical sensitivity,
simply
grants usthe perspectiveto be open to newideas and possibilitiesand encouragesusto recognize, once again, that there is nothing
natural about sport or social relations in
Canadiansociety. Finally, critical sensitivity is a willingness to think and act critically.
Certainly there is
muchto celebrateabout sport: cross-countryskiing on perfectsnow, achieving a personal best time, the team you support
Perspectives
on
the
winning the championship.
Social
Dimensions
of
Sport
and
However, our job as sport
Physical
Activity
in
Canada13
sociologists is to examine sport from a critical and analytical perspective so that improvementis realized and social relations are transformed. Students of the social dimensions of sport and physical activity should develop a sociological imagination
so that they can understand how their personal problems link
broader public issuesthat ariselargely from power imbalances in our social structure. sociological imagination how change occurs in
gives students the opportunity to think critically
to This
about sport and
Canadian society in relation to the concepts of structure, agency,
power, and hegemony.
Social Structure Social structures are the patterned relationships that connect different parts of society to one another (from individuals to the entire society of economic structures, political structures, structures of gender and race/ethnicity,
and structures of sexual relations).
Social structures set powerful limits and boundaries within which welive our lives that often appear to be quite naturalthey
become limits
viduals and groups give meaningto them andinteract can facilitate
or restrict
the capacity of individuals
unconsciously) to act. Importantly,
and boundaries when indi-
with them. Structures, in this sense, or groups (either
structures are also transformed
consciously or
when weinteract
with
them; that is, our actions are enabled and constrained by structures and those actions can, in turn, reproduce and maintain those structures or transform and produce new structures via social change. Finally, social structures are often categorized asrules and resources. Byrules we mean both the internal
assumptions and ideologies embraced by men and women as common
sense and the external laws, regulations, and policies that set limits and possibilities with respect to how wecan act in our social lives. Resources, meanwhile, are divided into three main components: financial
(money),
material (equipment,
property, etc.), and human
(other agents).
Agency and Power Agencyis the ability of individuals and groupsto act independently in a goal-directed manner and to pursue their own free
choices. Sociology, in this respect, involves
an
attempt to understandthe degreeto which human agents, whetherindividual or collective, are constrained to think
and act in the waysthey do (Gruneau, 1999, p. 1). Power
is the capacity of a person or group of personsto employresourcesof different typesin order to secure outcomes (Gruneau,
1988, p. 22). In this sense, power can be under-
stood as alevel of control or prestige of one group over another as an exercise of agency, or the
ability of an individual
ers (Naiman, inevitably
2012, p. 6). Power, of course, implies the existence of power relations and
resistance.
Groups and individuals
accessto resources (financial, (internal
or group to carry out its will even when opposed by othdiffer in terms of power with respect to
material, and human) and to benefits derived from rules
and external). In Canada and indeed around the world, the Occupy Movement
drew our attention to unequal power relations along the lines growing gap between the political
14Chapter
of social class and the
wealthiest 1% of Canadians and the influence
and economic levels and the other 99% in our country.
1
they wield at
The Idle
No More
movement, meanwhile,cast a critical spotlight on the continuation of unequal power relations between Euro-Canadians and Aboriginal peoples and the historical significance of colonization in Canada. Despitesignificant gains by the womens movement, feminists continue to draw our attention to the unequal power relations between men and women,including the underrepresentation of womenin positions of economic, political, religious, and military power. Wewantto follow Rick Gruneau(1988, p. 22) by suggestingthat there are at least three notable measuresof the power of different social groups that needto befully consideredin the sociological analysisof sport. They arethe capacityto 1. structure sport in preferred waysand to institutionalize rules and organizations,
these preferencesin sports
2. establishselective sportstraditions, and 3. define the range of legitimate sports practices.
practices and meaningsassociated with dominant
Its important to emphasize,again,that sport is asocial practiceshaped by broaderpower relations and that it benefitssome individuals and groups morethan others.Indeed, to have powerand achieve aresult orsocial change, one needsaccessto arange ofresources andfavourable rules. For example,considerthe debate overthe exclusion of womensski jumping at the 2010 Winter Olympic Gamesin Vancouver.In 2006,the IOC rejected an application by the International Ski Federationto include womensski jumping at the 2010 Olympic Games.TheIOC claimedthat womensski jumping wasnot yet fully establishedand did not deserveto be an Olympicevent. In responseto this decision,a group of 15female ski jumpers took legal action againstthe Vancouver Organizing Committee(VANOC) on the groundsthat a publicly funded sporting competition that included maleski jumping but excludedfemalejumpers wasin violation of the Canadian Charterof Rightsand Freedoms. The womenarguedthat ski jumping wasnot a newevent andthat VANOCs decision wassimply representative of along pattern of discrimination againstfemale athletes (e.g., a womens marathon wasnot added until the 1984 Olympicsin Los Angeles;up until then female athletes weredeemedto betoo frail to participatein such a strenuous event). Whileadmitting that the decision wasdiscriminatory, the judge ruled that the IOC (and not VANOC) had exclusive control over the decision, and thus VANOC could not be held accountable. Moreover,the decision acknowledgedthat becausethe IOC exists as an international nongovernmental organization,it wasnot subject to the constitutional laws of Canada. Asaresult, the womenlost their case(and further appeals) and wereprohibitedfrom participating in Vancouver.
Hegemony Finally, an overridingtheme throughout this textbook is hegemony,which comesfrom the Greek word Hegemoniameaningleadership. The Italian political theorist Antonio Gramscidevelopedthe theory of hegemony(which will be outlined in moredetailin the next chapter)to drawattention to some of the effectsof dominant ideologies andideasin the maintenance(or challenging) of various powerrelations in society. Byideology, we
Perspectives
on
the
Social
Dimensions
of
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canada15
meanaframework of beliefsthat guides behaviour.In particular, Gramsci wasinterested in understanding how varioussocieties with obvious unequalpowerrelations andinequalities (class,race, gender,etc.) wereconsensuallyheldtogether. For Gramsci,the ability of dominantindividuals and groups(with morepowerandresources)to establishideological systemsof meaningsand valuesthat justified those variousinequalities ascommon sense wasa vital stepin the maintenanceoftheir positionsof moralandintellectual leadership. Gramcisideas about hegemony,for example,force usto consider all of the waysin which our daily experiencesin sport and beyond becomea part of our everydaypractical consciousness,a common sensethat offersusnormal aspirationsand waysoffeeling, as wellas orthodox ideas (Hall et al., 1991, p. 45). Historically,the common sense belief that sport wasbyits very naturea masculineendeavourrestricted the opportunities of girls and women(and, by extension, boys and men)to participatein various physical activities. Indeed, to this day a particular vision of masculinitybasedon aggression,violence, and emotional stoicism, whatthe Australiansociologist R.A. Connell (1990, 2005) has called hegemonic masculinity,is culturally exaltedin competitive sport andin broader Canadiansociety.It is a dominant vision of masculinitythat manyboysand menconsent to assomething that is entirely natural and self-evident, even while hegemonic masculinity is being perpetually challenged,reinforced, and reconstructedin relation to other forms of masculinity and femininity. Thus,the valuein Gramscisapproachis that it politicizes our analysisabout culture andsport in Canadiansociety andforces usto recognizethat what weunderstandas our practical consciousnesscannot really be understood without referenceto social structures within which particular cultural practicesare privileged, and particular vocabulariesor motivesare presentednotjust asright but as natural (Hall et al., 1991, p. 45).
conclusions Over50 years ago,in his classictext Beyonda Boundary(1963), the renowned AfroTrinidadian historian and social theorist C. L. R.Jamesposeda powerful questionabout the sport of cricket in the WestIndies: What dothey know of cricketif all they knowis cricket? James wasinterested in examining WestIndian national culture and society (education, family, class,race, and colonialism) through cricket, the sports history, and his ownlife as a cricketer and commentator on the sport. Reflecting on his own experiencesin the sport, and using his ownsociologicalimagination, Jamessimply recognizedin hindsightthat Cricket hadplunged meinto politics long beforeI wasawareofit. Indeed, for Jamesthe sport of cricketits salience, discipline, representational power, and contested meaningsplayed a decisiverole in the broaderanti-colonial struggle of an emergent WestIndian society onthe brink ofindependence. LikeJames,the practicesof sport and physical activity have plunged Canadiansfrom acrossthe country into a widerange of historical and contemporary political struggles, perhapslong before being fully conscious of those powerrelations and social structures. And,like James,sociology of sport studentsin Canadacan poseasimilar question,albeit in aradically different context, that speakspreciselyto the importance of the sociological
16Chapter
1
imagination as a wayof thinking and methodof sociological analysis:What do weknow of hockeyif all weknow is hockey? Manysociologists paint arather gloomy picture of sport in Canadiansociety, especially in light of enduringinequalities and a widerange of social issues,and certainly it would be naive and irresponsible to ignore the range of issuesthat needto be addressed and mendedin varioussports across Canada.Still, its important to recognizethat sport provides millions of Canadians with pleasurable,exhilarating, and enjoyable waysof spending time and powerful understandings of community. Equally important, even though involvement in sport and physical activity has manyimbalances and injustices, Canadiansfrom acrossthe country areinvolved dailyin a complex dance of reproducing and resisting a host of social structures and powerrelations, and are subsequentlytransforming not onlysport and physical activity but Canadiansocietyitself. Thegood newsto leave you with at this chapters end is that some of the problemsthat exist are being addressedthrough an awarenessoftheir existenceand a willingnessto find solutions. The processesof personaland social transformation starts here with you, the student of sociological dimensionsofsport and physical activity.
critical thinking
Questions
1. Discussthereasonswhyacourseinthesociologyofsportandphysicalactivityshould be part of an undergraduate curriculum in a kinesiology/human kinetics/physical education/sportscience program. 2. How doessport sociology differfrom sport psychology? 3. Provide examples of the three notable measuresof the power of different social groupsthat needto befully consideredin the sociological analysisof sport. 4. Discusswhatis meantby the phrasesport (formal and informal) is socially constructed. 5. a. Usingyour sociological imagination, how wasa personalissuethe exclusion of womens ski jumpingintimately connected to a host of public issues of social structurein Canadiansociety and beyond? b. Howdidthosestructuresfacilitate andrestrictthe agencyofthe womenskijumpers? Useeachofthe three measures of powerin your answer. c.
Whatresources did the women need to challenge both VANOCs and the IOCs rules?
d. Whatrules workedin their favour? Whichonesdid not? e.
Whatrole did genderideology playin this debate?
Suggested readings Giddens, A., & Sutton, P.W. (2013). Sociology. London, Gruneau, R.(1999).
Class,sports, andsocial development. Champaign, IL:
Gruneau, R., & Whitson, D.(1993). Toronto,
UK: Polity Press. Human Kinetics.
Hockey nightin Canada: Sports,identities, and cultural politics.
ON: Garamond Press.
Mills, C.W. (1961).
Perspectives
Thesociologicalimagination.
on
the
Social
New York, NY: Grove Press.
Dimensions
of
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canada17
Naiman, J. (2012).
Howsocieties work. Halifax, NS: Fernwood.
Whitson, D., & Gruneau, R.(2006). Artificialice: Hockey,culture, andcommerce.Peterborough, ON: BroadviewPress. Zirin, D.(2013). Gameover: Howpoliticshasturned the sports world upsidedown. New York, NY: The NewPress.
references Brym, R.J. (2014). We the people:Societyin question.Toronto, ON: Nelson. CanadianHeritage.(2013). Sportparticipation2010: Research paper.Retrievedfrom http://publications. gc.ca/collections/collection_2014/pc-ch/CH24-1-2014-eng.pdf. Connell, R. W.(1990). Aniron man: Thebodyandsomecontradictions of hegemonic masculinity. In. M.A. Messner& D.F. Sabo(Eds.), Sport, men,andthe genderorder: Criticalfeminist perspectives (pp. 83114).
Champaign, IL:
Connell, R. W.(2005). Dodd, M.(2006,
Human Kinetics.
Masculinities(2nd ed.). Berkeley, CA: University of California Press.
April 30). Sport or not asport? Potis split on poker. USA Today, p. 13C.
Giddens, A. (1987). Socialtheory and modernsociology. Palo Alto, CA: Stanford University Press. Gruneau, R.(1988).
Modernization and hegemony: Two views on sport and social development. In
J. Harvey & H. Cantelon(Eds.), Notjust a game: Essays in Canadiansportsociology(pp. 932). Ottawa, ON: Universityof OttawaPress. Gruneau,R.(1999). Class,sports, andsocialdevelopment.Champaign,IL: Human Kinetics. Hall, A.(2007). Culturalstruggle andresistance: Gender,history, and Canadiansport. In K. Young & P. White(Eds.), Sportandgenderin Canada,(pp. 5674). Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press. Hall, A., Slack, T., Smith, G., & Whitson, D.(1991). Sportin Canadiansociety. Toronto, ON: McClelland & Stewart. Harvey,J. (2000). Whatsin a game?In P. Donnelly (Ed.), Takingsportseriously. Toronto, ON: Thompson Educational Publishing. Henslin, J. M., Glenday, D., Pupo, N., & Duffy, A. (2014). Sociology: A down to earth approach (6th Canadian ed.). Toronto, ISSA (International
ON: Pearson Canada.
Sociology of Sport
Association). (2005).
About ISSA.
Retrieved from issa.
otago.ac.nz/about.html.
James, C.L. R.(1963). Beyonda Boundary.London: Stanley Paul & Co. Kenyon, G., & McPherson,B.(1973). Becominginvolved in physicalactivity andsport: A process of socialization. In G. L. Rarick(Ed.), Physicalactivity: Humangrowth and development. New York, NY: AcademicPress. Mills, C. W.(1961). Thesociological imagination. New York, NY: GrovePress. Naiman,J. (2012). Howsocietieswork: Class,power,andchange. Halifax, NS:Fernwood. Sage, G.H.(1997). Physicaleducation, sociology, and sociology of sport: Points of intersection. Sociologyof SportJournal, 14, 317339.
18Chapter
1
Chapter 2 SociologicalTheoriesof Sport Ian Ritchie
Sociological theory is the foundation of the discipline of sociology in general andits particular understanding of sport and physical activity in sport sociology. This chapter introduces four majortheoretical perspectives: structural functionalism, conflict theory, symbolic interactionism, and critical social theories. Thetheories offer competing perspectives but at the same time occasionally complement
one another in their attempts to answer questions
A young girl working in a cotton
United States. Child labour
sociologists
activity demonstrate that the perspectives often raise serious challenges to many common
Library
assumptions about sport.
Photographs
Lying at the foundation
of sociology is theory.
theory: contexts
Theory is the central tool that sociolo-
gists useto understand the human world around usin general, and more specifically for sport sociologists,
the role that sport and physical culture
play within that
attempted
to understand
during the early days of the Industrial
sociological and historical
was one
of many hardships the first
about the nature of social and cultural life. Examplesfrom the study of sport and physical
Understanding general themes
mill
in the early 20th century in the
world.
19
Revolution.
of Congress Prints and Division[LC-DIG-nclc-01336]
In simple terms, sociological
theory is a proposition
or set of propositions
nature of the social world and peoples roles or active engagement in that ever, theory is in the
about the world. How-
many ways not so different from the fact that people theorize
about
world around them all the time, in the sense that they ponder various aspects of
social and cultural life, or perhaps just think
about the conduct of other people around
them in their everyday lives. Theory,
then, is a continuation
of something that is universal to human beings:
Their attempt to explain the social world around them to themselves and to gain a better understanding of their personal lives in turn. For example, myths have always played an important
role in human cultures in that they explain to people the nature of their role in
the greater scheme of things. But even our mostcherished and taken-for-granted social anthropologists remind us, and contrary to the literal really stories that are based not only on fictionalized factual ones.
or exaggerated accounts, but also on
Wecan find an example of this bylooking
that the sport of hockey provides afictionalized its history, even though
myths,
meaning of the term itself, are
nofurther than
Canadatoday, in
or exaggerated account of the country and
hockeys mythology often refers to real people and real events,
such as great wins or great players (Gruneau
& Whitson, 1993).
However, what sets serious theory apart from everyday ideas about the world is the fact that sociological theories selves through words, they
must ultimately
a process of verification
be accountablethey
must prove them-
with the facts of the social
must withstand the test of systematic verification,
world. In other
whether in the form of
facts and statistics or simply careful and systematic observations about certain aspects of social life. refinement
Good sociological
and rigorous
theory
debate, and it
withstands the test of time through must be provable through
constant
careful observation
and systematic verification. Sometimes the results are contrary to common perceptions or common Whenthe term common senseis used,it typically practical judgment.
However, here the term is meantin the moreliteral
that there are often ideas that peopleperhaps Einstein, though, once said that Common by age 18,
sense.
meansthat someone is using sound and many peoplehave
meaning;that is,
in common.
Albert
senseis the collection
of prejudices acquired
which points to the problem with this kind of senseit
is quite often wrong.
Weaccumulate ideas through various sources as wegrow, Einstein suggests, but that does not meanthose accumulated sets of ideas are accurate or a true reflection
of the
world
around us. So one of the first points about sociological theory to keepin
mindis that it does not
always support common sense notions about the nature of the social world. Asimple yet profoundly important
example comes from sport.
One myth that has been perpetuated
over time is that sport is, to use afamiliar expression, asold asthe hills. In other words,
people havealways practisedsport in the same wayovertime. Asan important corollary to this,
many believe that the
Olympic Gameslikely
ential example of organizedsport in moderntimeswas Greece when it
the
mostimportant
and influ-
basedon the modelof ancient
wasrevived bythe Frenchman Pierre de Coubertin in the 19th century.
However,solid historical evidence,informed by theory, hasshown that sport in ancient Greece had far
more differences than it did similarities to sport today. For example, the
ancient Greeksadopteda winner takes all approachthat far outweighed our owntoday. In ancient
20Chapter
2
Greece, extremely violent actsin wrestling werecommonplace and victorious
athletesdespite,
and often in fact becauseof their violencewere
equivalent to godsthemselves (Public
Broadcasting Service, 2004). Canadian sport histo-
rian Bruce Kidd (1984) points out that the act of cowardice
held up as almost the
modern handshake would have seemed an
because of the dramatically
different approach the ancients took to
their sport (p. 76). Besidesthe challenges that sociological theories and the discipline of sociology as a whole often bring to some common understandings of sport, there are afew other important points to keep in
mind before considering the theories themselves. First, the theo-
retical perspectives offer not only an interpretation also offer interpretations
of social conditions at present, they
of history. Events in history are interpreted
according to the
tenets of the particular theory, or in other words, theory will guide the mannerin which events of the past are viewed. Historyis not thought of asastatic accumulation of facts but rather a dynamic set of events, and the interpretation ered important us to think
is guided by theory.
of events or what facts
Also, each of the theoretical
are consid-
perspectives encourages
about and evaluate social conditions asthey currently are by putting those
conditions into historical context. In other words, wecan learn alot about the waythings are today by looking back and placing events in their proper historical context. You will find that
many of the authors of chapters in this text remind us of important
elements of
Canadian sport history so that we might better understand current issues. The discipline
of sociology itself should be thought
Whilethe events that lay the foundation out. The first
context.
event was a series of democratic revolutions that led to the emergence of
democratic institutions the
of in this historical
of sociology are many and complex, two stand
and various forms of government; the revolutions in France and
United States in the late 18th century are the
mostimportant
examples. These
changes brought about the idea that governments are responsible to people and that people as citizens can actively play a role in the affairs ofthe state. Sociology emerged in part to consider these changes and to contemplate the newly envisioned role of democratic institutions
and peoples relationship to those institutions.
event wasthe Industrial Revolution. So important
The second, moreimportant,
wasthe development of industrial soci-
ety to the emergence of sociology that the discipline in its earliest days was more or less defined as the study of the causes and consequences of the Industrial dramatically changed the wayin
which goods were produced and people laboured. But it
also brought new social problems:
massexoduses of people from rural settings to urban
centres, miserableand often dangerous working andliving conditions, vastinequalities
Revolution, which
newforms of crime,
between the rich and the poor, and a general sense of alienation or disaf-
fection caused by the dramatic changes in peoples lives. Out of these two historical contexts, sociology emerged to consider two
main ques-
tions or issues. Thefirst wasthe issue of social problems. In light of the hardships wrought
bythe Industrial Revolution andthe full emergenceof capitalism,the earliestsociologists were concerned with how to create a social order that could resolve some of the funda-
mentalproblems:food production and distribution in growing cities,lack of clean water, poor hygienic living conditions, the physical hardships from long hours of strenuous work
in factories, child labour, vastinequalities betweenthe rich and poor, and soforth. These issues, of course, continue to plague ustoday to varying degrees.
The secondissue pertains to community, authority, andtradition. As peasants were lifted from their land to work in cities aslabourers, assmall
manufacturers werereplaced
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport21
by big companies, as urban living
quickly replaced rural life, questions arose as to how to
maintain and develop authority structures in the new social order, how to provide people with a sense of community in light of rapid changes, and how to answer questions regarding the loss of rural and religious traditions
as society became more secularized.
How
should the new social order be organized and established? What wasthe role of individual citizens in relation to newly emerging state-run institutions
and forms of government?
Whatsocial bonds would unite people in newly emerging urban communities? These were some of the important
questions the first sociologists attempted to answer. Again, these
questions continue to be asked and sociologists continue to try to answer them, even if some of the issues of community,
authority, and tradition
have changed, especially in the
context of globalization (see Chapter 14). The theories
weare about to consider should not bethought
in a constant dynamic state in which debate and refinement lead to their change and evolution. is to look for the one that is right; theories that have attempted to
Thetemptation
of asstatic, but instead
haveled and will continue to
at first in reading accounts of theories
however, that search will likely
befutile
because
makeall-encompassing universal claims usually fall short
in one way or another. Instead, each theory should be thought
of as having certain
strengths that help explain certain elements of the social world, but also weaknessesor areasit does not consider. Importantly, sociological theories all havein common a political
motivation to under-
stand the nature of the social world around usto makeit better for everyone. This motivation dates back to the historical foundations
of the discipline itself and the first questions
and issuesit addressed,as discussedearlier. One of the natural consequences of this political motivation is that the theories often point to the many problems that exist in the social world. Thiscritical element of the theories should in no way overshadow sociologys recognition of the many waysin which sport and physical culture moregenerally can play an active and positive role in human life. Identifying
problems, however,is a necessarystepin
making
the positive aspects of physical activity and sport available for as manypeople as possible. Finally, the theories discussed here do not by any meansrepresent a complete inventory of sociological theories. The discipline offers a dizzying array of perspectives, and they continue to grow. However, what follows provides a concise summary of major perspectives that have guided thinking
in sociologys past and continue to guide thinking
rently, that havelaid the foundation and that
cur-
of sociological inquiries in sport and physical activity,
will put into context the various topics in the chapters that follow.
presented here are also very general and, in
The theories
mostcases,there is a diversity of morespecific
perspectives that fall within each. Assuch, they should bethought of asgeneral guidelines as opposed to theoretical formulae
into
which sport can simply be plugged. Having said
that, all sections will quite naturally include a discussion of the application
of theories to
sport using both generalexamplesbut also onesspecificto Canada.
Social FactS: Emile Durkheim Structural FunctionaliSm Thefoundations of structural functionalismoften
anD
referred to synonymously asfunctionalism
are very old and can betraced to elements of ancient Greekthought and, much morerecently, British social philosophy (McQuarie, 1995, pp. 12).
22Chapter
2
Charles Darwins theory of evolution
had an important influence on the theory, and the earliest functionalist theorists equated social processes with biological or organic ones, claiming that society operates according to principles similar to that of animal life and the mannerin whichthat life developsand evolves. The mostimportant basicfunctionalist
and influential
tenets was Emile
figure to develop and morefully express these
Durkheim (18581917).
tics and social life generally, Durkheims
Whileactive in French poli-
most noted accomplishments
wererealized in his
active reforms of French education, and he is generally recognized as the father French sociology.
During his lifetime, the new discipline of sociology
of
was not generally
respected in higher academics, and Durkheim should be credited with working to gain its respect.
Manyidentify
Durkheim as being the single mostimportant
discipline (see Beamish, 2010, pp. 123166;
early founder of the
Loy & Booth, 2002, pp. 4143).
The essential elements of Durkheims theories on social life can beseen in what many consider to be his mostimportant
work, Suicide: A Studyin Sociology, published in 1897.
Suicide, a classic of social science research, gives us not only Durkheims sociological view of the act of suicide, but ultimately an indication
of his moregeneral account of sociology,
asthe subtitle of the book suggests. Durkheim makes what appearsto bethe counterintuitive
claim that the act of suicide is
much morethan just a personal act of agency by an individual. Suicideis, instead, asocial act and in fact operates according to social laws. Durkheim referred to any human activities ofthis sort associalfacts, by which he meantany phenomena that operated according to social rules orlaws independent of any oneindividual.
Hisnotion ofsocial facts wasthe basisfor Durkheims
moregeneral vision of how human social life should bestudied. As he clearly states, [s]ociological
methodas we practice it rests wholly on the basic principle that social facts mustbe
studied asthings, that is, asrealities external to the individual
(Durkheim, 1951, pp. 3738).
This point of view sets Durkheim dramatically apart from common ideas about suicide, particularly in his own day. He challenged two cide in the late 19th century: individual
major waysof thinking
about the act of sui-
psychological views about the
motivations of the
suicide victim, and Christian religious thinking that thought of the act asasin against God. Durkheim collected aremarkable inventory
of statistics on suicide rates across Europe.
After collecting his data, Durkheim observed that suicide rates followed identifiable patterns. For example, men committed suicide at significantly Protestants
more than
Catholics, unmarried
wealthy people, interestingly, theme:
people
higher rates than women,
more than
married people, and
morethan poorer people. Durkheim recognized a common
Levels of social integration across categories of people significantly
chances of a particular individual Bysocial integration,
social
impact the
committing suicide or not.
Durkheim meantcommon ties or bondsthat hold peopletogether
and give them a common outlook and afeeling ofsolidarity. suicide variesinversely with the degree ofintegration
Asstated clearly in his own terms:
of the social groups of which the indi-
vidualforms a part (Durkheim, 1951, p.209). Thus,for example, while menandthose who are wealthy might achieve greater autonomy and independence, such personal gains
may
comeat acost ofreducedintegration andsocial bonds,andthus a greaterchanceofsuicide. Durkheim and other functionalist
theorists
who followed
him in the 20th century
expanded upon this essential notion of the role of social integration to develop a much more general and complex theory
of society. In general, structural functionalism
views
society asa complexsystemin whichall ofthe differentelementsofits structure workto promote stability and solidarity within that system. The essential elements of the theorys
Sociological
Theories
view of
of
Sport23
society can beseenin the two terms in the name of the theory. First, society hasa structure, which meansit has astable and persistent pattern of elements, including institutions, terns of interpersonal function
pat-
behaviour, and values and norms. In terms of function, all elements
or contribute to the overall stability of the structure of society (Parsons, 1961).
For understanding sport, functionalism
has been important
in terms of considering
several vital functions sport serves to wider society. Also,the theory was dominant in the discipline of sociology when the specific subdiscipline of sport sociology wasfirst developing in the 1960s and 1970s. According to the structural functionalist
analysis, sport func-
tions to develop group bonds, to encourage a sense of community, and to integrate people into societys dominant values. Sport also acts as a significant
agent of socialization and
helps children in particular develop solid social skills. In addition, sport functions as positive entertainment
and as an escape valve from some of the
morelaborious aspects of
everyday life. Finally, it is often argued that sport functions to deter youth and others from deviant and antisocial behaviour (Loy
& Booth, 2000, 2002).
Following Durkheim, Alan Ingham (2004) refers to public sporting events asserialized civic ritualsin
other words,sport acts asquasi-religious events in whichideals of communities
become represented and reaffirmed. Regardless of whether our team is winning or losing, Ingham says, the faithful seem compelled by an abstract force, larger than themselves, to go and worship at the shrine (p. 27). Sport,in other words,actssymbolically to represent what is important for communities and ties the people in them together. further than the ritualistic
Canadiens worshipat their respective shrines In one of the
Wedont haveto look
mannerin which fans of the Toronto Maple Leafsand Montreal to understand Inghams point.
moreintriguing recent applications of functionalism
to sport, authors
Simon Kuper and Stefan Szymanski in their book Soccernomicsclaim that soccer actually helps curb suicide rates. Building directly on Durkheims Suicide,the authors cite statistics from several countries to demonstrate that during periods of intense international titions like the feelings
compe-
World Cup, national suicide rates drop. The authors surmise that intense
of belongingness,
often
with attendant
strong
nationalistic
associations,
enhances social cohesionand the strong common bonds necessaryfor social life. Interestingly, supporting a point
madebyIngham above, Kuper and Szymanski also point out that
winning is not a necessary outcome for suicide rates to improve;
win or lose, its the man-
ner in which the intense feelings generated in rooting for the team pulls that
matters(Kuper In
Canada, wecan think
construction
of the many waysin which sport plays a crucial role in the
of a common sense of nationhood.
Athletes supported under Sport Canada
serve as both a meansto enhance nationalism and a common identity, acting asinternational manceat the
people together
& Szymanski, 2009, pp. 253266).
ambassadors. Following
Ben Johnsons
while simultaneously
world-record medal perfor-
World Track and Field Championships in Romein 1987, Minister of Statefor
Fitnessand AmateurSport OttoJelineksaid (ironically, in retrospect)that Ben Johnson, doing what hes doing for Canadiansin Rome,is probably worth morethan a dozen delega-
tions of high-powereddiplomats (Beamish & Borowy,1988,p. 11). And,of course, many Canadians can vividly recall the outpouring of nationalism following
Sydney Crosbysfinal
goalto give Canadathe gold medalat the 2010 Olympic Winter Games in Vancouver. Whileit dominated sociology bythe mid-20th century and influenced the first research
onsportin the 1960sand 1970s,structuralfunctionalismthen declinedin influence becauseof severalflaws. Crucially,the theory wascriticized for what wasseen asits inherent conservatism.
24Chapter
2
In particular, structural functionalism suggeststhat all elements of society are viewed as necessary and goodfor the simple fact that they exist to reinforce the overall structure of the system as a whole. But surely not all elements of social systems are justifiedit
is questionable how
poverty, violence, crime, institutionalized racism or sexism, and many other social problems can be thought of as positive elementsin asocial system. Thelow point for functionalism
came when Kingsley Davisand
Wilbert Moore(1945)
argued that classinequalities are inevitable components of social systems and play important, even positive, functional stratification
roles. Their proof wasbased on their observation that class
has existed in all social systems and, they argued, it
wassimply necessaryto
reward those whospend time and effort training and working in jobs that are moreimportant for society as a whole with greater compensation in the form of status or wealth. Critics pointed out that even if there wassome truth in this claim, it by no meansjustified the often hugeinequalities or discrepancies in terms of status or pay. The mostsuccessful and highly paid professional athletes come to mindright away: Whilethey mayprovide great entertainment,it is difficult to justify their
multimillion-dollar salaries given their questionable utility
or usefulnessto society otherwise. The DavisMoore thesis drew the proverbial line in the sand in debates about sociological theory. Statements such astheirs eventually led to the downfall of functionalist theory and the rise of competing perspectives that attempted to account for the existence of social problems and inequalities in
class
and goal-rational
action:
max Weber, and conFlict Like structural functionalism,
much morerealistic ways.
karl
marx,
theory
some of the central tenets of modern conflict sociology are
very old and can be traced back to ancient times.
However, the theorys
form owesitself to the work of Karl Marx(18181883)
(McQuarie,
1995).
more modern Marx wasborn
in Trier in the Rhineland (in what is now Germany), and in his earliest years asa student he became interested in the study of law and philosophy beforeturning to journalism,
his attention later
political activism, and writing social and political critiques.
itics and involvement sometimes forcedfrom
Hisradical pol-
in workers organizations were partly the causefor his migration Germany to France and eventually England (Beamish, 2002).
Marxsought to develop a social theory that understood the emerging capitalist around him and, at the same time, actively help create social conditions that moreegalitarian and democratic.
Marxs political commitment
world
would be
was dueto a large degree
to the harsh conditions of life, discussed earlier, encountered by a majority of people in the emerging industrial society. Hisfamous words[t]he
philosophers have only interpreted
the world,in various ways;the point, however, is to changeit (Marx, 1972, p. 109) remain a clear and decisive reflection
of his political commitment.
The uniquecharacteristicsabout Marxsanalysisofsocietyand whatlay atthe foundation of his ideas werethreefold: first, his recognition that economicconditions formed the baseor
foundation ofsociallife moregenerally;second,hisability to synthesizeand expandhisobservations regarding the basic economic conditions of social life into a more general theory
regardingthe natureofsocial,cultural, andindividuallife; andthird, hisobservationsregarding the important role socialconflict playedin social and cultural life and the history of societies.
Theidea that economicconditionslay the foundation for sociallife is really at the core of Marxs theory.
Marx observed that throughout
history different economic forms shaped
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport25
social systems and, in turn, peoples lives within those systems. Hereferred to these forms as the modes of production. Within each modeof productionand
Marxstudied manyin human
history, including ancient society, feudalism, and capitalismMarx
also observedthat classes
emerged basedon their ability to wrest control over economic resources and the
meansof
producing goods. This, Marx observed, hadled to a state of conflict between the respective groupsin each case. The opening lines of The Communist Manifesto,one of the mostimportant political documents in
modern history, state this clearly:
The history of all hitherto existingsocietyis the history of classstruggles.Freemanand slave, patrician and plebeian,lord andserf, guildmaster andjourneyman, in a word, oppressorand oppressed,stood in constant opposition to one another, carried on an uninterrupted, now hidden, now openfight, afight that eachtime ended,either in a revolutionary reconstitution ofsociety at large, orin the commonruin of the contending classes.(Marx & Engels,1948,p. 9) While Marx wasinterested in various modesof production throughout
history and the
conflicts that emergedfrom them, the capitalist modeof production drew the lions share of his attention
and work. In his mostimportant
work, Capital, published in 1867,
Marx
attempted to explain in scientific terms the mannerin which the capitalist modeof production worked (Marx, 1977). His central insight is that capitalism, in its unyielding drive to create profit, produces two separate classes:capitalists whorealize the profits and surpluses from the system, and workers who do not. However, the strength of the capitalist productionone
unlike other modesof productionis
that
modeof
workers appearto be acting
freely and oftheir own choice. But Marxclaimed that workers do not in fact realize their full potential becausetheir labour is alienatedlabour; that is, labour that ultimately benefits those who profit from it. he does not fulfill
As Marxstates clearly: work is externalto the worker. . . consequently, himself in his work but denies himself. . . . His work is not voluntary but
imposed, forced labour. It is not the satisfaction of a need, but only a meansfor satisfying other needs (Marx, 1963, pp. 124125). the classsystem within the capitalist
Marxs dual insights regarding the production of
modeof production and the alienation of the worker
would manyyearslater be central to both
Marxist and conflict-based analysesof sport.
Wewill return shortly to the influence of Marxon conflict theory; however, a second major influence
comes from a theorist
who many consider to be the third great figure
(besides Durkheim and Marx)in the foundation
of sociologyMax
Weber(18641920).
Weberis today associated with the discipline of sociology; however, becausethe discipline wasin its infancy during histime, of his life. in
Weber wasformally associated with it only nearthe end
Histraining came in law and economics, and hetaught in several universities
Germany in those disciplines; however, his knowledge base was derived from several
other disciplines, including
philosophy and history.
and AlanIngham (2002)both simply, Weber
Assport sociologists
Hart Cantelon
of whom weredeeplyinfluenced by Webersworkput
wasa superior thinker
(p. 64).
Justlike wecan get a glimpse oftheir respectivetheoretical positionsby understanding
Durkheims Suicide or
Marxs The Communist Manifestoand Capital, so too through
whatis arguably his mostimportant work, The ProtestantEthicand TheSpiritof Capitalism, we can start to understand
Webersinsights.
Well versed on the varied waysin which
religion hadimpacted different societies at different periodsin time,
Weber madethe
specific claim in The Protestant Ethicthat a value system that emergedin the 17th century
26Chapter
2
in Protestant sectsin the United Statesled to a dominant, and ultimately successful, form of capitalism.
While Protestantism and the capitalist economy had been emerging in
other locations
around the globe,
Weberclaimed that the Puritans in the
American
northeast developed a specific value system out of the original teachings of 16th-century Protestant reformer John knowing
Calvin, who had preached, among other things, of Gods all-
ways. Being all-knowing,
Calvin claimed,
God predestined certain dutiful fol-
lowers to be chosen to go to heaven. However,followers could not ever be certain of their ultimate acceptance into
Gods grace, so the bestthey could do wassearch for signs.
The belief in predestination one that
wasthe foundation
of the Puritan sects value system,
wasconducive to the development of capitalism,
particular interpretation
of predestination,
one that
everyday activities and beliefs, wasthat followers
Weberargued. The Puritans
manifested itself in terms of their
mustprove their loyalty to God bylead-
ing an asceticlifestyle; in other words,loyal followers demonstrated their acceptance into Gods grace by leading lives of duty, hard work, and abstaining from such as alcohol consumption, gambling, pleasures of the flesh
worldly pleasures
and, interestingly,
mate-
rial goods. The connection between the belief in the necessity to lead an ascetic life and the economy camein the form of the calling wasthe development of personalfulfillment and, importantly,
the reuse of material rewards, including
toward the work in a rational
and disciplined
hard work could not be used toward course that
(Beamish, 2010, pp. 191194). through the commitment
The calling
of ones life to work
direct financial
ones, back
way. Wealth accumulated based on ones
worldly possessionsfor their
own sake, because of
would have contradicted the essential belief in the importance
of leading an
ascetic life. It could, however, be put back into the calling and the disciplined hard work of the believer. As Weberexplains in an important
section of The Protestant Ethic:
the religious valuation of restless,continuous workin a worldlycalling, asthe highest meansto asceticism,and at the sametime the surest and mostevident proof ofrebirth and genuine faith,
must have been the most powerful conceivable lever for the expan-
sion of that attitude toward life
which we have here called the spirit of capitalism.
(Weber, 1958, p. 172)
Over time, the emphasis on hard, rationalized
work became common even if, as Weber
points out, the original religious source of that value system disappeared. Two things are important
about
Weberstheory regarding the development of modern
capitalism. First, it is important to note the difference between
Weberand Marxin terms of
their respective interpretations of the development of capitalism. Unlike Marx, who emphasized the structure of the economy,
Weberput an emphasis on the important role that ideas
(religious onesin this case) play in human affairs and in human history. Second, and more importantly
with respect to the understanding of modernsport,
Weberbelieved that ascetic
Puritanismandthe economicvaluesystemthat emergedout ofthe 17thcentury ultimatelyled to a greater emphasison what hetermed goal-rational
action, or human action involving the
mostcalculated(rational) meanstoward achieving a particularend (goal) (Beamish,2010, pp. 175179;
Cantelon &Ingham, 2002, p. 65).
Wesee this sort of action every dayin our
lives, aspeople makecalculateddecisionstowardsatisfyingpersonaland professionalobjectives. At one level it is an approach that we mightsimply passoff asmaking sense; in other words,
we mightaskourselveswhyanyone wouldconductthemselvesdifferently. Butfor Webergoalrational action can entrap peopleinto alimited
wayof thinking andleading their lives.
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport27
Wehave to look nofurther than the realm of sport to find examples of goal-rational action.
High-performance athletesthe
onesthe general public tends to look up to asthe
epitome of athleticism and whatsport is supposed to be aboutundertake monthly, and year-by-year training regimens in
which virtually
daily, weekly,
every
movement and
workout is carefully calculated in relation to the other ones to achieve ultimate, longterm goals, such as winning rational
Olympic gold. But in placing such great emphasis on goal-
action, other possibilities for sport, such as emphasizing the play element in
physical
movement and the sheer joy and liberation that uninhibited
providemovement
we often see in childrens spontaneous playget
Wewill return to other implications Both
movement can pushed to the side.
of Webers work momentarily.
Marxs insights into the role of class conflict
and
Webers into the role that
religious ideas played in the development of capitalism formed the base of conflict theory more generally, although
Marxis really the moreimportant figure. The central difference
between Marxs analysis and the one of conflict theory is that the latter developed a much broader and encompassing definition USsociology in the postWorld
of conflict,
especially asthe theory
WarII era (McQuarie,
was adopted in
1995). Conflict wasrecognized as
being much more ubiquitous in society, beyond the conflicts between the capitalists and
The the
German 1972
referred
Democratic
Summer
Republic
Olympic
to as goal-rational
enters the stadium
Games in action
Munich.
of its rival Federal
Nothing
as much as the
accelerated
Cold
Republic
the emphasis
War. Today,
of Germany on what
many of the features
during Weber of
Canadas high-performance sport system are essentially the same as(former) East Germanys. APImages
28Chapter
2
working classesas Marxsaw them. Examplesinclude conflicts between workers and middle managersin industrial settings, between authority figures and subordinates in
many
different bureaucratic organizational contexts, or between political elites and citizens or secondary-level
government
communism, or for that
membersin totalitarian
matterin liberaldemocratic
political regimes, under socialist societies.
Some overarching questions or issues flow from and the moregeneral conflict tribute to or reinforce common
sense for
Marxs and
Webers central insights
modelthat followed from them. First, how doessport con-
class and other power structures in society? many of usto think
While it
maynot be
of sport as reinforcing classinequalities
forms of power, sport hasin fact played an important
role in
or other
Canadas history in this
regard (Gruneau, 1983). In hislandmark book The Strugglefor Canadian Sport, for example, Bruce Kidd (1996a) demonstrates that the active political power struggles between various groups during the period between the two some of the
mostimportant
elements of the
World Warscreated the foundation for
Canadian sport landscape.
businesscartel, the National Hockey League(NHL),
Onefor-profit
wasparticularly successfulin setting
the agenda for Canadian sport. However, Kidd demonstrates that this did not come without a cost: the handful of ownersall
menwere
successful, but their successcame at the
expense of other vibrant sporting traditions, including under the direction of the
a successful womens organization
Womens Amateur Athletic Federation.
Also, amateur leaders, whoin general supported middle- to upper-classsporting clubs and the elite men who made uptheir
membership, actively usedsport to control
working-
class people. This fact is perhaps best embodied in the statement by amateur leader Roxborough in
Macleans magazinein 1926: A
Henry
nation that loves sport cannot revolt
(cited in Kidd, 1996a, p. 50). In other words,sport wasused as an active diversion to keep workers in line
so they would not challenge the authority
supported the interests of bossesin turn: [s]ocial pany loyalty
could be inculcated
(Kidd, 1996a, p. 50). Interestingly,
of bossesand politicians
who
obedience, labour discipline, and com-
amid the joys and excitement attempts to control
of a well-played game
workers lives were met with resis-
tance: a vibrant workers sport movement during the 1920s and 1930s usedsport as a means to fight for workers rights. now it is important
Wewill return to this example later in the chapter; however, for
to recognize the fact that conflict
based on class differences helped
shape the organization and define the meaningof sport in A second issue that arisesfrom conflict theory is the
Canada(see Chapter 3). mannerin which conflict and
change occur within sporting organizations and practices. Donald MacIntoshs and David Whitsons The GamePlanners: Transforming CanadasSport System(1990) is a classic example of this.
The authors demonstrate that during the development of the government-run
and-funded sport system from the 1960s to the late 1980s, particular political objectives combined
with an emerging cadre of sport professionals
determined the direction of the
sport systemto meettheir own interests and agendas. Asa result, despitethe fact that the first legislation supporting government involvement in sport in 1961 called for support for
sport at both the high-performancelevel andthe everydaygrassroots level, the former has completely overshadowed the latter because high-performance sport satisfied the political
and professional objectives of those within the system. One majorand, asthe authors argue, unfortunate consequence is there has been very little support for grassroots efforts to
support mass recreation and sport at the local level. Asecondconsequenceflowing from Webers account of goal-rational
action is that, as the federal sport system developed,
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport29
physical education programs changed to reflect the need to produce performances at the national and international
levels:
In the model of professionality
that now dominates Canadian physical education, the
young sport scientist or sport manageris encouraged to see his or her job asthe production of performance . . . and is seldom seriously introduced to the social and political questions that surround the concentration
of resources on elite sport. (MacIntosh
&
Whitson, 1990, p. 120)
Macintoshs and
Whitsons analysis continues to have direct relevance today. Interest-
ingly, as there has been increased support for the federal high-performance sport system over time, participation rates and activity levels of Canadian youth haveshrunk. The third issue stems both from capitalist
modeof production and
Marxsidea about the alienation of the workerin the Webers analysis of goal-rational action. Some conflict
theorists have claimed that sport has produced an alienated experience that overemphasizes the unquestioned rational
approach. In Sport: A Prison of Measured Time, French
social and political theorist Jean-Marie
Brohm (1978) gives a classic condemnation
sport and, in particular, the Olympic Games.Sport, Brohm claims, is aninstitutional through
which capitalist classinequalities
has become an unquestioned ideal.
of
form
arereproduced and excessive attention to work
Athletes pay excessive attention to the details of time
(thus the subtitle of the book) and the command of space at the exclusion of other forms of physical activity that
might be moreliberating
and fulfilling.
Expressedin his own no
uncertain terms, Brohm claims that sport is the ideology of the body/machinethe turned into a robot, alienated by capitalist labour Rob Beamish (author
body
(p. 77).
of Chapter 4 on social stratification)
dynamic of sports potential combined with the problem of limiting
has also expressed the that potential under
alienating conditions: If sporting activityis sorich with creativepotentialso robust with opportunitiesfor individualsto exploretheir ownlimits andthelimitations of humanphysicalperformancethe loss of control of the product can have devastating consequencesfor the creative potential of physical activity. . . . rather than realising the full productive potential of the athlete, sport stands against the athlete and builds the power of the marketsinfluence over sport whilerestricting the expressive potential ofthe athletes themselves. (Beamish, 2002, p. 37)
Beamish elsewhere has pointed out that the gradual commodification
of virtually every
aspect of high-level professional and commercial sport comes with consequences, as athletes and sport itself become valued only if they become sellable. Interestingly,
Frenchman
Pierre de Coubertin, when he started the modern Olympic Games, had as part of his goal to usethe Olympic movement asa social platform to overcome what he saw asa creeping crass
materialism in late 19th-century European society. This wasone of the reasons that
for the first 80 years of the existence of the Olympic Gamesthe IOC defended the amateur rule in its Charter, restricting payment of any kind to athletes and perpetuating an ideal of Olympic sportsmen as being true
and pure.
The amateur rule, however, wasabandoned,
and Beamish arguesthat in some waysthis is unfortunate because Coubertins vision was one in which sport would overcome the more vulgar aspects of the materialistic world in favour of something 2009, p. 88).
30Chapter
2
better: beauty,
creativity
and transcendental freedom
(Beamish,
It was mentioned at the beginning of this chapter that all sociological theories usedto study sport have a political
motivation.
Thelegacy of Marxs and
Webersideas and con-
of inequalities and the
mannerin which they
flict theory as a whole is the identification
influence the experience of sport and the promise of an unalienated full expression of physical
movementfor as many people as possible. However, one of the problems sociologists
haveidentified
with conflict sociologys perspective is the fact that it tends to favour broad
sweeping social structures and institutions,
economic onesin particular, instead of the peo-
ple who exist within those structures and institutions. the social world around themtheir
The ability of people to influence
volition or agency,in other wordsdisappears.
But of
course real people do have agency and the ability to influence both their own lives and the nature of institutional
structures around them.
And so it is to the next theories that
we
turn for a greater consideration of the everyday experiences of human beings.
Understanding george herbert interactionism
everyday experiences: mead and symbolic
Symbolicinteractionism is part of a much bigger tradition in sociology called microsociology, which in general studies and attempts to understand the real-life society.
Microsociological approaches are generally critical
theoriessuch
as structural functionalism
emphasis on sweeping structural
behaviours of people in
of macrosociologyor grand
and conflict theoriesbecause
of their over-
processes at the expense of understanding
how people
understand the world around them and interact. The mostimportant individual in terms of the development of symbolic interactionism was George Herbert Mead(18631931).
Meads Mind, Self, and Society wasfirst pub-
lished in 1934 afew years after his death based on a collection of notes taken by students who took and wereenthralled by his courses. The book is considered a classic in sociology (Mead, 1962; see also Donnelly, 2002, pp. 8385; Meadclaimed that
McQuarie, 1995, pp. 188190).
macrosociologicaltheories grossly underestimated the role of human
thought and volitional action. In particular they did not account for the symbolic nature of human thought and the ability of humans to interpret and give meaningto the world around them through language. They also did nojustice to the socialcontext orthe role ofsocialinteraction in determining human behaviour. Thesetwo fundamental insights arethe foundation of Meadsthinking and, combined, the source of the perspectivethat would eventually become known assymbolicinteractionism, coined by one of Meadsstudents, Herbert Blumer. At the heart of Meadstheory is the mannerin which humans develop a sense of self. Whenthe term is usedin everyday language it is usually meantin a purely individual sense, asin myself.
However, Meadpointed out that the self is a dynamic, not a static thing. In
other words, we do not simply have aself; rather, timeit
is an ongoing process. Meadspent
wecontinually developasense of self over
muchtime explaining the development of the
self in children asthey grew, pointing out that children grow through a series of stages,each of which gives them a greater sense of themselves asindividuals
and at the same time a
greater sense of others perspectives and how they think others view them (Mead, 1962). Thelatter point regarding the image others have of a person getsto the core of a second important
point
Mead madeabout the self.
Meaddescribed two components of the self,
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport31
which he called the I and the
Me. Whilethe terms are very simple, the ideas they represent
are much moreprofound. TheI for
Meadis the internal
component of our selfthe
part of
the self that is subjectively experienced and initiates a persons actions in the world. Thisis the part of the self weassociate with our internal feelings, motivations, and general purpose in life.
The Me, however, is the image we have of ourselves that comes from outside of
ourselveshow
others view us and how webelieve orthink others view us. Whilethe I is the
subjective experience ofthe self, the
Meis the objective experience. In
Meadsown words:
The I is the responseof the organismto the attitudes ofthe others;the me is the organizedset of attitudes of others which one himself assumes.The attitudes of the others constitutes the organizedme, and then one reacts toward that as an I. (Mead, 1962, p. 175) For Mead,the two parts can be separated at the conceptual level, but not at the reallife level asthey are actually experienced; weconstantly live through and with both the I and the
Me. But what is important
in
making the conceptual break for
Meadlies at the
heart of his theory and its impact on sociology: The Mecomponent of the self is created from the widersocial world, meaning our very sense of ourselvesis, in essence, at one and the same time, part of asocial identity. Intuitively,
wecan think
of what Meadis trying to suggest bythinking
about our own
day-to-day experiences. For example, we have all seen people who are self-conscious about the waythey are dressed, to the extent that they frequently look at themselves to
make
sure whatever pieces of clothing they are wearing on a given day are appropriate.
They
mayalso fix their
hair, or perhaps carry their bodies in particular waysto appear a certain
way. Thefeeling that people have whenthey go through this processrepresents perfectly Meads notions of the self asit is composed of the I and the sense of him or herself is wrapped
cess,in the sense that the person asks How the
and
up, so to speak, in the presentation of self through
physical appearance. But whois doing the looking the processperhaps
Me. The persons identity
moreimportant
here? Certainly, its an internal
do I look? oneis
pro-
But of course the second part of
external.
The imaginary
mirror that
the person is holding up, which generates the external image the person has of him or herself, is the social world itself.
The social world is looking in and has become a part of
the persons personality or sense ofself as he or she learns how to dressand look a certain way,and how to carry or comport Mecomponent of the self
him or herselfin a certain way. This, in essence,is the
Meadis describing. The important
that the self, human identity,
part of Meads analysis is
and even the very act of being conscious of oneself is social.
Meadsoriginal insights and the development of symbolic interactionist led to a collection
of methods for understanding the
perspectives have
meaning that people bring to their
own lives and actions, the lives and actions of others around them, and the complex interaction between peoples everyday lives and the widersocial structure (Beal, 2002). For sports studies, two
majorthemes have emerged. The first is the study of socializa-
tion and the processesthrough
which people are both socialized into sport, and socialized
through sport. Socialization into sport meansthe active process of learning sports rules, codes, values, and norms. Socialization through sport, on the other hand, refers to the lessons that are learned from sport that much of the research in socialization
32Chapter
2
have some application to wider society. has concentrated,
While
not surprisingly, on childrens
sport (see Chapter 7), it should be pointed out that socialization is a life-long One example of this is the development through any one of the many adult
of mid-life sports identities,
process.
such asis gained
Masterssport organizations and competitions.
Also,
sociologists are only just beginning to understand the experience of sport and physical movement for older adults. The second theme is sport subcultures. Here,research has attempted to understand the processthrough
which subcultural groups form their own unique language, belief sys-
tem, normative structure, and general inner-group identity.
Some so-called alternative
sports, such assurfing, rock climbing, extreme sports, skateboarding, ultimate Frisbee, and others provide interesting
and accessible contexts to understand the process through
which members develop subcultural identities.
However, members of all longstanding
traditional sports develop their own unique language, belief system, and identity
as well.
For example, in his book Menat Play: A Working Understandingof Professional Hockey, Michael Robidoux demonstrates how hockey reproduces dominant notions of manliness or of what it
meansto be properly
masculine through the everyday interactions
with
other players and coaches, alongside the rough and sometimes violent aspectsof the game. Farfrom what many consider to be the common senseidea that
masculinity emergesfrom
within players, that it is just how they are, Robidoux points out that social factors such as day-to-day rituals play important roles in producing masculinity: initiation only symbolic representations
of the players transformation
rituals are not
on entering
professional
hockey, they are also a meansof divesting the young player of undesirable (that is, unmanly) qualities so asto ensure his new status within the group (Robidoux, 2001, p. 189). Microsociological perspectives have a bright future becauseresearchers have only just scratched the surface in terms of understanding peoples experiences in sport and in the development of sporting identities.
But Robidouxs work demonstrates one of its general
flaws. In his account of how masculinity is produced in professional hockey, Robidoux also points out that
masculine codes of conduct and everyday rituals accomplish something
important in terms of powerrelations in hockey. Specifically, men have beentaught to not rock the boat; that to be a man within the practical day-to-day confines of professional hockey means,ironically,
being subservient to coaches and owners. Ultimately, Robidoux
points out that manliness
is linked to power and money,becausethe status that is achieved
in the sport ultimately benefits those who profit, namely owners. While afew playersachieve great wealth, the vast majority do not (see also Parcels, 2011). Robidouxs workreminds us that to fully understand the social experience of being a hockey player, one mustunderstand the everyday experience alongside the social factors that influence power relations, orin this case players being treated as a commodity in the system of hockey production. emanating from the theoretical traditions of symbolic interactionism
Whilestudies
have not always con-
sidered these elements of power, morerecent critical theories in sociology have.
CritiCal SoCial theorieS: Cultural, and CritiCal raCe StudieS
FeminiSt,
Critical socialtheories arefirst of all a number of theories that have morerecently been developedin the sociology ofsport. Assuch, they should bethought of asworks in progress.
If any generalizationaboutthese theories can be made,it is that they are a combination, reflection, and development of two of the theories mentioned to this point: conflict theory
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport33
and symbolic interactionism. Powerandinequality tend to be continuing concerns, but generallycritical theories differ from conflict theory in two majorrespects.First,it is not assumedthat peoplearesimply subservient,passivedupes. Asdiscussedbrieflyin the previoussection, peopleand groupshave agency, meaningthey can control, at least to some degree,the conditions of the worldaroundthem, evenin the face of powerrelations that mighttry to limit them. Humansactively and oftenimaginatively interpret and give meaning to the worldandin doingso challengedominant waysofseeingthings. Peoplecan challenge powerrelationsto evokechangeandto makesenseof their lives whilethey are doing so. Second,these theoriestend to expand notions of powerand authority beyondthat of conflict theory, in particularto an understandingof genderandsexualrelations onthe one hand and race relations on the other. Also,as we will see,the work of theorist Michel Foucaulthasbeenimportant, and his notion of power wasvery differentfrom the one developedout of conflict sociology. Three majorstrands can beidentified within these new and emergingtheoretical perspectives. Thefirst is cultural studies, which itself hasemanatedfrom a number of theoretical strands. Thesecond and third critical social theories are genderand feminist studies and critical racestudies,respectively. Whileculturalstudiesitself encompassesa growing and diversebody of work,certain historical predecessors denotecommon elements. Oneimportant inspiration for the development of cultural studies was Antonio Gramsci(18911937), anItalian social and politicaltheorist and activist who wasarrestedin 1926becauseof hisinvolvement in the Central Committee of the Italian Communist Party. Gramsci wasparticularly interested in the mannerin which powerand control are maintainedin capitalist economiesunderliberal democraticforms of government, both of which werestill in relatively early phasesand under contestationfrom alternateforms of economic planning and political structuresin Gramscis day. Gramsciusedthe term hegemonyto describe how this processhappens. Instead of direct physical control, Gramscibelievedthat the power of dominant classesis maintainedthrough a processof developingconsentamongthe populace.Thiscan occurin astructuralsensein that groupsat different levels of social organization makecompromises with ruling classes, such asis the case whenlabour organizationsconcedeto wageor salary increases,or whenvolunteer organizationscompensatefor socialinequalities byfundraising. But consent also occursthrough a second manner, whenthe ideas that benefit the ruling classesareacceptedand becomecommonsensein the mindsof people. For Gramsci, the processis an ongoing onein which consensusof the peoplealways hasto be wonover. Ascultural studiestheorists Jennifer Hargreavesand Ian McDonald(2000) explain: In
Gramscis formula, it is not simply a matter of class control, but an unstable process
which requires the complete
winning of consent from subordinate
groups. It is, then,
never
or fixed, but rather diverse and always changing. (p. 50)
Whilepeoplerarely think ofsport as playing ahegemonic role in reinforcing social powerrelations, thereis no questionthat it hasdonesoin Canadashistory.Interestingly, this was morefully recognized yearsago whensocial and political organizationsusedsport much moredirectly for ideological purposesthan they typically dotoday. In the 1920sand 1930s,the WorkersSports Associationof Canadafully realizedthat amateur organizers would happily usesport asa meansto appeasethe workingclasses(Kidd, 1996a). Earlier in this chapter the example of amateur sport leader Henry Roxboroughs comment in
34Chapter
2
Macleans magazine in 1926 that A nation that loves sport cannot revolt wascited. However,his position could not havebeen morepolitically oppositeto onefrom a workers rights paperthe following year: The whole capitalist class profits by a system that keeps workers excitedly interested in mattersremote from true concerns . . . The brain-numbing
narcotic of the sport-
ing pageis perhaps more deadly to the average worker than the
trivial
more active poison of
the editorial page. (cited in Kidd, 1996a, pp. 50, 167)
In these wordsweseethe dual parts of powerat play ascultural theorists seeit; sport is usedboth as a meansof social control but at the sametime the workersrights paper demonstratesthat a certain degreeof agency,orin this caseresistance,is possible. Workersin fact formed their own Workers Olympic Gamesmovementthat at its peakin the early 1930s wasin many ways moresuccessfulthan the regular Olympics,attracting thousands ofspectatorsand participants whilesimultaneously expanding opportunities to morewomen,children, and those past their prime (Kidd, 1996a, p. 155). Asecondinfluence on cultural studies wasthe creation ofthe Centrefor Contemporary Cultural Studies(CCCS) in Birmingham, England,in 1964. Whilethe Centrestarted as a meansto studythe history of the English workingclass,cultural studies asit became definedat the Centredevelopedovertime andspreadinternationally to include both the culture and structure of classin manyother countries andthe influence of peoples experiences with popularforms of culture,including sport, and howthose experiencesintersect with power and class(Hargreaves & McDonald, 2000).Importantly, one of the central goalsof the CCCS wasto take all elementsof cultureseriously. Traditionally, culture had beendefinedandimplicitly recognizedto behigh culture, meaningrefined arts andthe strict reserveofthose whocould appreciatethem (painting, music,literature, andsoforth). However,the CCCS expandedthis definition to include elements of mass culture popular music,television and other mediaprogramming, and myriadother elements of popularlife, including sport. Taking on this expandeddefinition, Canadianauthors Hall, Slack, Smith, and Whitsondefined culture asthe symbolic forms and the everydaypractices through which people expressand experience meaning (Hall, Slack, Smith, & Whitson,1991, p. 31). Theauthors definition reminds usthat it is important to consider both popular commercial- and media-based sport forms alongsidethe day-to-dayphysical activities in peopleslives that givethem meaningboth areimportant in understanding the role sport playsin peoples lives and both are profoundly affected by (and in turn affect) ongoingstructuresof powerandinequality (Hall et al., 1991, pp. 4546). Finally, the work of French philosopher and historian MichelFoucault(19261984) hashadanimmenseimpact on manysport sociologists working within the cultural studies framework. Foucaults workis complex and deservesgreaterattention for anyoneinterested in understanding modernsport today. However,two facets of humanlife Foucault emphasized, and the interrelationship betweenthe two, gives usinsight into his moregeneral theories: powerand the body(Maguire, 2002). First,it is usefulto think about Foucaults conception of powerin terms of whatit is not. For him, poweris not something that one personor a group of peoplehaveover another personor group of people;this is astandard wayin which manypeoplethink about power.Instead, for Foucault poweris something that is exercisedbetweenpeopleor groups. Althoughit mayappearto beastrangeterm to useto describethis relationship, to exercisepower meanssimply that one personor group
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport35
providespossibilitiesfor the actions of others. Forexample,coachesoften tell athletes not only howto performat their bestin their respectivesport in atechnical and physicalsense, but alsoin asocial sensehow the athletes oughtto behave on the bench, during afterpracticetimes, andsoforth. Here,we havea Foucauldianform of powerbecausethe coach is directing(but not necessarilyordering)the athletes,andthe athletesarein turn (presumably) accepting the direction. Both parties participate in the powerrelationship, even though both partiesdo not havearelationship basedon overt coercion, physical or otherwise.In herexcellentsummary of Foucaults work,Jennifer Maguire(2002) usesthe example ofthe advicecoachesoften giveto get alot ofsleep beforecompetitions: [T]he coach can convince the athletes that it is in their own interests to do asshe suggests. The relation is not repressive in that the athletes ideally refusing or resisting the coachs influence. ating the ideal of (and a self-identity
have the option of
Moreover, the relation is productive, gener-
as) a committed
athlete.
(pp. 295296)
Twoimmediate things flow from this seeminglysimple example.First,the powerrelationship hereis just thata relationship. Eventhough some havethe ability to control the actions of others, others mustultimately acceptthe direction andlead some aspectof their lives accordinglyfor poweras Foucault definedit to exist. Second,poweris not seen bythe athlete (necessarily)as negative. Theathlete maywillingly participatein the direction ofthe coach, andin this sensepoweris positive. Butthereis asignificantly greaterissuerelated to Foucaults workthat lies behindthis everydayexample.In his work, Foucault outlined the histories of manyinstitutions that cameto influence peoples behaviourin moderntimes. Thesenow-famoushistorical studies included the history of modernprisonsystems,liberaldemocratic political governments, mentalhospitalsand the study of psychiatry, medicalhospitalsand the study of medicine,understandingsof human sexuality, and other institutions and approachesto understandinghumanlife as well. Throughout, Foucaultemphasizedthat generalizedforms of power developedbetweeninstitutions, forms of knowledge,and peopleslives. In this process,Foucaultclaimedthat peoplecameto definethemselvesin relation to the manner in whichinstitutions andforms of knowledge production treated, studied, and ultimately directedthem. Foucaults pointis that power pervadespeopleslives in myriadways. Another example highlights this point. Manyreading this text will definethemselves as a university student. In one sense,the purposeof a university educationis to learn knowledgeandskills, andfor manyit is to creategreateropportunitiesfor future careersand (hopefully) higherfinancial compensation. But consider the following questions: How muchof your day-to-dayroutine is determined bythe academicand nonacademicschedule ofthe university?In turn, howis yourroutine organized?Assumingyou experienceatleast some of your educationthrough alecture format, in what waysdo you experiencethe lecture? Whatdo you do whilethe lecture is going on? Areyou generallyquiet and attentive? Doyou argue or take issue with what professorsteach you? How many hoursduring the weekdo yousitin alecture hall orin front of a desk whilestudying? Nowconsiderthe following set of questions:Imagine full-time workafter universitylife is over. Whatdo most full-time jobs entailin terms of day-to-dayroutine? Forhow manyhours will youberequired to sit in front of a deskin most(although certainly not all) jobs? How manyjobs require employeesto follow and accept directionsfrom higher-ups?The point of these questions, perhapsnotsurprisingly,is to think about universitiesandthe institution of education more
36Chapter
2
generally, as aform of power in which students are directed, often with full compliance and acceptance, to act in specific waysthat are conducive to being compliant subjectsin
modern
society. The act of beinga student is one of countless examples of the operation of power. The second major concept introduced earlierthe constantly in his work. Theinstitutions
bodyis
one Foucault addressed
and forms of knowledge directing people in
modern
times, Foucault pointed out, wereoften directing (or exercising power through) the body,in terms of how it should be studied, understood, and ultimately how people in turn should conduct themselves. Forthe study of sport Foucaults workis important
becausethe examples
in which forms of power arelinked to the body are endless. Wecanthink of the manyprivate or public directives that encourage people to be healthy citizens and employees, such as ParticipACTION
in
Canada;the regulation of high-performance athletes lives through their
day-to-day training regimens and the coaches, trainers, physical therapists, psychologists, and so forth that help them attain their goals; or the many waysin which every day exercise regimens encourage people to achieve certain bodyideals or standardized levels of health. A second strand
within critical social theories is feminist studies. Shona Thompson
(2002) has expressedfeminisms
mainsocial and political objectives in clear terms:
Fundamentally,feminism championsthe beliefthat women haverights to all the benefits and privileges ofsociallife equally with men.Forthe purposesof those concerned withsport, this meansthat girls and women havethe right to chooseto participate in sport and physical activity without constraint, prejudice or coercion, to expect their participation to berespected and taken seriously, and to be asequally valued and rewarded assportsmen.(p. 106) Feminist-inspired
histories of sport in Canada haveidentified the important role that
gender relations and ideas about both women and men have played in the countrys sporting traditions.
Alandmark book is Helen Lenskyjs Out of Bounds: Women,Sport & Sexu-
ality, published in 1986. The year is important
because Lenskyjs book waspublished at a
time when there were veryfew published works on the history of or social issues related to womens sport, a reflection
on the fact that the disciplines of sociology and history were
dominated by men who as a rule pushed womens issues to the side. A morerecent example in feminist-inspired
studies is
Ann Halls The Girl andthe
Game: A History of Womens Sportin Canada(2002), likely the account of womens sport in book, The
Canada ever written. Interestingly,
mostcomplete historical Halls opening line of the
history of modernsport is a history of cultural struggle (p. 1) replicates, but
with significant differences, the opening sentence of The Communist Manifesto:The tory of all hitherto existing society is the history of class struggle (Marx
his-
& Engels, 1948,
p. 9). Halls opening line reflects, first, the central difference betweenfeminism and conflict theoriesthe
recognition
by the former that power operates at levels conflict theory, in its
classical theoretical form, had not envisioned; second, the struggle reflects a position common in critical social theories in generalthat and power is never complete.
sometimes menresisted
Womenslong history of confronting movement of containment
Halls sentence
resistance is possible
While malepower and privilege certainly played an impor-
tant role in womens sport historically, womenand
in
Hall recounts in hertext the various waysin which that power and privilege to create opportunities: a male preservelike sport illustrates the double
and resistance that characterizes cultural struggles among
dominant and subordinate groups. (Hall,
2002, p. 2)
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport37
Aninteresting andimportant examplefrom historyverifies Hallspoint. Duringthe 1920s a Frenchwomannamed Alice Milliat was fighting for greaterrecognition of womenin sport. Realizingthat the Olympic Games, the biggestsporting event at the time, wasexclusivelyrun by menand almost exclusivelyfor maleparticipants, Milliat decidedto take matters into her own handsand organizedthe FederationSportiveFeminineInternationalein 1921andsubsequentlythe first WomensOlympic Games in Parisin 1922. Whileonly a one-dayevent,it wasconsideredasuccess,so Milliat continuedthe womens Olympic movement;the second Games in 1926included participantsfrom 10countries,andsomestartedto makecomparisons withthe other Olympic Games.Withthe prestigeofthe womens movement increasing,the IOC threatened Milliat overthe useof the term Olympic, claiming it legally asits own. Recognizing that the IOC ran the mostvisiblesportingeventin the world, Milliat negotiated a settlement wherebyshe would change her event nameto Womens World Gamesin exchangefor the inclusion of 10track andfield eventsin the IOCs Games.TheIOC agreed but then renegedontheir promiseandincluded onlyfive eventsin the 1928 Summer Games in Amsterdam.However,while Milliats bargain wasin some waysunsuccessful, it alsogave womenthe opportunityto showcasetheir skillsand athletic prowessonthe international stage for the first time. Milliatsstory, in other words,is a perfect exampleof resistance(Milliat) alongsidecontainment(IOC) that reflectsso muchof womenssport history(Hall, 2007). Feministtheory continuesto inspire studies of the various waysin which sex,gender, and sexuality influence sporting experiences; these are discussed in moredetail by Mary Louise Adamsin Chapter6.
Myrtle Cook of Canada wins her heat in the 100-metre Gamesin
Amsterdam. If it
male-controlled International
were not for the fact that Frenchwoman
38Chapter
& Underwood/Corbis
2
Olympic
Alice Milliat fought the
Olympic Committee to have more womens events in the
Games, Cook and other Canadian female athletes Underwood
dash at the 1928 Summer
would never have competed.
Olympic
Afinal strand within critical social theories is critical racestudies. The discipline of sociology of sport hasbeenlargely negligentin understandingthe important role of ethnicity, ideas about race, and racismin sport, at least until recently. Critical race studies haveemergedin the attempt to overcomethis gap by pointing out the important role race relations and racism have playedin shaping sporting traditions in Canadianhistory and howthey continue to shapeit today. Generally,critical theorists ofrace areinterested in three things: first, the mannerin which sport and physical movementplayimportant roles in the development of ethnic cultural beliefs and heritage;second, the mannerin which certain ethnic traditions in Canadahave been privileged at the expenseof others; andfinally, the mannerin which ideas about race have been naturalized orreinforced through sport. All ofthese themes are discussed in moredetailin Chapter5 by authors Victoria Paraschakand SusanTirone. Oneof the important themes taken up by critical racetheoryone that hasonlyjust begunto beanalyzedin relation to sportis the manner in whichideasabout whatCanada is and what constitutes atrue Canadian arethemselvesimbued with assumptionsabout race. Sociologist Himani Bannerji(2000) haschallengedthe notion of Canadianness by suggestingthat it contains within it assumptionsaboutrace. Thecountrys colonial history hasled to a certain dominantimage of Canadianness, but these dominant notions have beenbasedonspecific historical conditions and culturaltraditions in which certain groups havebeen privilegedin the developmentof the image while others havebeenerasedfrom the picture.In Bannerjis words, Official multiculturalism,
mainstream political thought and the news mediain Canada
all rely comfortably on the notion of a nation and its state both called Canada, with legitimate subjects called Canadians.. . . There is an assumption that this Canadais a singular entity, a moral, cultural and political essence.. . . And yet, when wescrutinize this Canada, what do wesee? The answer to this question depends on which side of the nation weinhabit.
For those who see it as a homogenous cultural/political
Canadais unproblematic.
entity . . .
For others . . . who have been dispossessedin one sense or
another, the answer is quite different. (pp. 104105)
An examplein Canadas historyis the two solitudes account of the English and Frenchin Canada which, while certainly animportant and real part of Canadashistory and one that continues to influence the countrys social and political life, is also an account of Canadas history that haserased Canadas Aboriginal peoplesfrom the historical picture. Interestingly, in justifying funding for a newfederal sport systemin a campaignspeech he madein 1968, Pierre Trudeauclaimedthat sport could be usedeffectively to promote nationalism and easetensions betweenthe French and the English (MacIntosh, Bedecki, &Franks,1987; MacIntosh & Whitson,1990). However,the sport system that wasdevelopedeffectively ignored the manyand variedsporting traditions of people who weredispossessed, including Aboriginal sport (Morrow & Wamsley,2013, pp. 246247). Someimportant Aboriginalsporting eventstoday representresistanceagainstthe traditional mannerin whichsports and physicalactivity havebeen usedasassimilativetools, wieldedto civilize Canadas Aboriginal peoples (Morrow & Wamsley,2013, p. 247). The North AmericanIndigenous Games, first heldin Edmonton in 1990,is aregularly held multisportevent that attractsthousandsof participants andspectators. Theobjective ofthe
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport39
Games is competition, but moreimportantly, [t]o improve the quality oflife for Indigenous Peopleby supporting self-determinedsportsand cultural activities which encourageequal accessto participationin the social/cultural/spiritualfabric ofthe community. . . and which respectsIndigenous distinctiveness (North AmericanIndigenous Games,2013). Similarly, the Arctic Winter Games, first heldin Yellowknifein 1970,is a circumpolar event attracting northern participants and spectatorsfrom all over the world. The Arctic Winter Gamesincludes competitions of both southern and northern Inuit-based activities, including one- and two-foot high kick, Alaskanhigh kick, sledgejump, arm and head pull, and others. Athletic competitions coincide with cultural exhibitions and exchangesto promote athletic development alongside northern cultural independence, distinctiveness,and exchange(Arctic Winter Games,2013).
conclusions It should be kept in mindthat sociological theory is an ongoing and developing process. Partofthe purposeofthis chapter hasbeento demonstratethat sociologicaltheoriesthemselveshavelong heritagesandin manycasesintersect in terms of perspectivesonthe social and cultural world. Perhapsthe mostimportant thing to keepin mindasyoureadthe chapters that follow and asyou considerthe myriadperspectivesonthe themes presentedis the ultimate political goals of sociological theory and, in turn, the developing discipline of sociology ofsport:to makethe worldthe bestone possible,onein whichsport and physical activity can playimportant andsignificant rolesin the enrichment of peopleslives.
critical thinking
Questions
1. Thischapterdemonstratedthatsociologyviewshistoryitselfasadynamicprocess.What examplescan youthink ofin which having knowledgeaboutsomeaspectof Canadian sport history hasenabledyouto understandanissue or controversyin the present? 2. Thedisciplineofsociologyemergedoutoftheproblemsandissuesgeneratedbytheemergenceof democraticinstitutions andthe Industrial Revolution. Whatproblemsorissues still existtoday that aresimilarto the onesthe first sociologistswereconcerned with? 3. Putyourselfin the shoesof a Marxistthinker. How wouldyou considerthe following topics: the Canadianfederal governments funding of elite athletes, Nike Corporations third-world labour practices,and public accessto facilities and resourcesfor sport andrecreation? 4.
Whatexamplescan youthink ofin which the Me part of the individual character (as defined by GeorgeHerbert Mead)is reinforced in sport?In other words,think of examplesin whichthe external social environment leads to individuals taking on a certain sports character oridentity.
5. InwhatwaysdogenderandsexualitycontinuetoplayanimportantroleinCanadian sport today in terms of both empowering but alsolimiting experiencesin sport?
40Chapter
2
suggested
readings
Beamish, R.(2010). Thepromiseofsociology: Theclassicaltradition andcontemporarysociological thinking. Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press. Coakley,J., & Donnelly, P.(Eds.). (1999). Insidesports.London, UK: Routledge. Coakley,J., & Dunning, E.(Eds.). (2000). Handbookof sportsstudies. Thousand Oaks, CA; Sage Publications. (See especially Chapters 15.) Giulianotti,
R.(Ed.). (2004). Sport and modernsocial theorists. New York, NY: Palgrave Macmillan.
Gruneau, R.(1999).
Class,sports, andsocial development. Champaign, IL:
Hall, M.A. (1996). Feminism andsporting bodies. Champaign, IL: Maguire,J., & Young, K. (Eds.). (2002).
Human Kinetics.
Human Kinetics.
Theory, sport &society. Amsterdam: JAI.
references Arctic Winter Games.(2013). Retrievedfrom http://www.arcticwintergames.org. Bannerji,
H.(2000).
Toronto,
The dark side of the nation: Essayson multiculturalism, nationalism and gender.
ON: Canadian Scholars Press.
Beal, B. (2002).
Symbolic interactionism
and cultural studies:
Doing critical
J. Maguire & K. Young (Eds.), Theory, sport &society (pp. 353373). Beamish,
R. (2002).
Karl
Marxs enduring legacy for the sociology
ethnography.
In
Amsterdam: JAI. of sport. In J.
Maguire&
K. Young(Eds.), Theory,sport &society(pp. 2539). Amsterdam:JAI. Beamish, R.(2009). Marxism,alienation and Coubertins Olympic project. In B. Carrington& I. McDonald(Eds.), Marxism,cultural studies &sport(pp. 88105). London, UK: Routledge. Beamish, R.(2010). Thepromiseofsociology: Theclassicaltradition andcontemporarysociological thinking. Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press. Beamish, R., & Borowy,J. (1988). Q. Whatdo you dofor aliving? A.Im an athlete. Kingston, ON: The Sport ResearchGroup. BrohmJ.-M. (1978). Sport: Aprisonof measured time. London, UK:Ink Links. Cantelon, C., &Ingham, A. G.(2002). Max Weberandthe sociology of sport. In J. Maguire & K. Young (Eds.), Theory, sport &society (pp. 6381).
Amsterdam: JAI.
Davis, K., & Moore, W.E.(1945). Some principles of stratification.
American Sociological Review, 10,
242249. Donnelly, P. (2002).
George Herbert Meadand an interpretive
K. Young (Eds.), Theory, sport &society (pp. 83102).
sociology of sport. In J. Maguire&
Amsterdam: JAI.
Durkheim, E.(1951). Suicide: Astudyin sociology. NewYork, NY: The FreePress. Gruneau,R.(1983). Class, sport,andsocialdevelopment.Amherst, MA: Universityof Massachusetts Press. Gruneau,R. & Whitson, D.(1993). Hockeynightin Canada:Sport,identities andcultural politics. Peterborough, ON: BroadviewPress. Hall, A. (2002). Thegirl andthe game: A history of womenssportin Canada.Peterborough, ON: BroadviewPress. Hall, A. (2007). Cultural struggle and resistance: Gender, history, and Canadian sport. In K. Young & P. White(Eds.), Sportand genderin Canada,(pp. 5674). Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press. Hall, A., Slack, T., Smith, McClelland
G., & Whitson, D. (1991). Sport in
ON:
& Stewart.
Hargreaves,J., & McDonald, I. (2000). E. Dunning (Eds.), Ingham,
Canadian society. Toronto,
A.G. (2004).
Cultural studies and the sociology of sport. In J. Coakley&
Handbook of sport studies (pp. 4860). The sportification
London: Sage.
process: A biographical analysis framed by the work of
Marx, Weber, Durkheim and Freud.In R. Giulianotti (Ed.), Sportand modernsocialtheorists (pp. 1132). London: Palgrave Macmillan.
Sociological
Theories
of
Sport41
Kidd, B. (1984).
The myth of the ancient
Games.In
A. Tomlinson
& G. Whannel (Eds.), Five ring
circus: Money,powerandpoliticsatthe OlympicGames (pp. 7183). London and Sydney:Pluto Press. Kidd, B.(1996a). Thestrugglefor Canadiansport. Toronto, ON: Universityof Toronto Press. Kuper,S., & Szymanski,S.(2009). Soccernomics:WhyEnglandLoses, WhyGermanyand Brazil win, and whythe US,Japan, Australia, Turkeyand evenIraqare destinedto becomethe kingsofthe worlds mostpopularsport. New York, NY: Nation Books. Lenskyj, H.(1986). Outof bounds: Women, sportandsexuality. Toronto, ON: WomensPress. Loy, W.J., & Booth, D.(2000). Functionalism, sport and society. In J. Coakley & E. Dunning (Eds.), Handbookofsportstudies(pp. 827). London: Sage. Loy, W.J., & Booth, D.(2002).Emile Durkheim,structural functionalism and the sociology of sport. In J. Maguire & K. Young(Eds.), Theory,sport &society(pp. 4162). Amsterdam:JAI. MacIntosh, D., Bedecki, T., & Franks, C.E.S.(1987). Sport and politicsin Canada: Federalgovernment involvement since 1961. Montreal, QC: McGill-Queens MacIntosh,
D., & Whitson, D. (1990).
Montreal, QC: McGill-Queens Maguire, J. S. (2002).
University Press.
The game planners: Transforming Canadas sport system.
University Press.
Michel Foucault:
Sport, power, technologies
and governmentality.
In
J. Maguire & K. Young(Eds.), Theory,sport &society(pp. 293314). Amsterdam:JAI. Marx,K. (1963). Economic and philosophical manuscripts.In T.B. Bottomore(Ed.), Karl Marx: Early writings. New York, NY: McGraw-Hill. Marx,K.(1972). Thesison Feuerbach.In R.C. Tucker(Ed.), The Marx-Engels reader(pp. 1079). NewYork, NY: W.W. Norton & Company. Marx,K.(1977). Capital: Vol.I. NewYork, NY: Vintage Books. Marx,K., & Engels,F.(1948). Thecommunist manifesto.NewYork, NY:International Publishers. McQuarie, D.(Ed.). (1995). Readings in contemporarysociologicaltheory: From modernityto postmodernity.Englewood Cliffs, NJ:Prentice Hall. Mead, G. H. (1962).
Mind, self,
&society from the standpoint of a behaviorist.
Chicago, IL:
The
University of Chicago Press. Morrow, D., & Wamsley, K.B. (2013). Sport in Canada: A history. Toronto,
ON: Oxford Univer-
sity Press. North American Indigenous
Games.(2013). Retrieved from http://www.naigcouncil.com/index.php.
Parcels,J. (2011). Straight facts about makingit in pro hockey. In P. Donnelly (Ed.), Taking sportseriously: Socialissuesin Canadiansport (pp. 207211). Toronto, ON: Thompson Educational Publishing. Parsons, T. (1961). An outline of the social system. In T. Parsons,E. Shils, K.D. Naegele, & J.R. Pitts(Eds.), Theoriesof society: Foundationsof modern sociologicaltheory: Vol.I (pp. 3079). NewYork, NY: The Free Pressof Glencoe. Public BroadcastingService.(2004). Thereal Olympics:Ahistoryofthe ancientand modernOlympics Games.Alexandria, VA: PBS Home Video. Robidoux, M.A. (2001). Menat play: A workingunderstandingof professionalhockey. Montreal, QC: McGill-Queens
University Press.
Thompson, S. T. (2002). Sport, gender, feminism. In J. Maguire & K. Young (Eds.), Theory, sport& society (pp. 105127). Weber, M. (1958). Scribners Sons.
42Chapter
2
Amsterdam: JAI.
The protestant ethic and the spirit of capitalism.
New York,
NY: Charles
Chapter 3 CanadianSportin Historical Perspective Don Morrow
As he did in his 2001 honorary doctorate acceptance speech at Western University, Canadian Olympic backstroke-swimmer Mark Tewksburyoften tells the story about his experience on the world stage of sport at the 1992 Barcelona Olympic Games. Tewksburytrained hardfor mostof hislife to becomeasuperb athlete who wonasilver medalin his event at the 1988 Seoul Olympic Games. Hecontinued to work on his skills and compete internationally for the next four years.In Barcelona, heswam his waythrough the heatsinto the semi-finals and earned a placein the mens Olympic backstrokefinals. As hesat alone in hisroom before his event, hefound himself thinking about his competitors, mentally noting their achievements, whenthey had beaten him in past events,their recordsin short, he createdin his mind all the reasons he would not win. Suddenly, herealized what he wasdoing: He wasengagingin what psychologists call negativeself-talkhe wascompiling alist ofreasonsand excusesfor not winning. As his awarenessof his adverseself-handicapping grew, hestarted to shift his perspectiveand reflected on his hard work, his dedication, hisskill, hisfitness, the years
Curling on the St. Lawrence River, Montreal, Quebec, 1878 Bygone
43
Collection/Alamy
he devoted and sacrificed to his sport. What he came up with werethree inspirational wordsin the frame of a question: Why not me? Armoured with this moreaspirational, inspirational, and accurateself-belief, Mark wonthe gold medaland in the processset a new Olympicrecord. Mark Tewksburysstoryis asinspirational andtypical of manystories about Canadian athletes overtime. Wehave arich andfascinating history of sport. It is the intention of this chapter to provide a historical or culturalhistorical context that is essentialto understandingand analyzingthe social constructs and issuesin contemporary Canadian sport from a sociological perspective. Human behaviour hascontinuity to it; socially constructedtraditions, historical customs, norms, and cultural and personal valuescombineto impact behavioural choicesand actions overtime. Atthe sametime, sportis quite literally anarenain whichimportant culturalstrugglesand political issuesones connected to gender,sexuality,social class,and race/ethnicityplay out and mirror or contribute to our culture. Past,present,andfuture are all connectedin important andinextricable ways.Thus, it is exceedingly difficult to comprehend,for example, contemporaryracial, social class, and genderissues(the three dominant social strugglesin Canadiansport overtime) or sexuality in sport (see Chapter 6) without historical context and perspective. For example, with respect to genderissues and sexuality in sport, consider another Mark Tewksburyexample.In achapter entitled Bam from his 2006autobiography, Tewksbury describedthe series of stunning events that occurred when he came out as a gay man shortly after his Olympictriumph. While hisfamily, for the mostpart, wassupportive, the media,his agents,and societyin general wanted himto stay in the closet and not speak of this again. It left Markfeeling terribly and utterly alone. Another example of the power of social constructs within and outside of the institutions of sport wasthe 2013 anti-gaylegislation passedbythe Russiangovernment regarding athletes participating at the 2014 Sochi Winter Olympic Games.Thisincident, along with the Tewksbury example,servesto underscorejust how muchsocial issueslike sexuality permeateand mayeven be magnifiedin the world of sport, impacting athletes from all countries, including Canada.
Doing
History
Theterm and connotations ofthe wordhistory meritdiscussion,becausethere is considerable difference betweenthe pastand history.In everydayterminology, the wordhistoryis usedto talk about anything that happenedin the past. For example, whenreferring to a known sporting championship that waswon 10 yearsago, we mightsay Thats history. Onthe contrary,its not historythat championshipis afact. Facts(and dates)areimportant tools in the historians repertoire, but they are not to be equated with history. Alist of facts or dates of eventsis just alist, its not history. In one sense, history might be perceivedaseverythingthat happenedin the past. Unequivocally,thats true; equallytrue is the fact that wecan never know everything that happenedin the past. Consideryour ownlife. If you wereto sit down and makealist of everythingevery single eventthat hashappenedto yousince the dayyou wereborn, wouldit becomplete? Wouldit beaccurate? Upon whosememory wouldyourely? Whenyoufinished, wouldyou haveanything morethan a compilation of facts that is moreakin to a grocerylist than to something
44Chapter
3
meaningfuland revealing about yourlife? And whateverlist of events (no matter how complete) you compiled, wouldit by itself convey who you are, how youfeel, whatis important to you? Notlikely. Byextension,then, history can neverbethe record of human events simply because we only have a fragment of records and facts about past events. Eventsin the past mustbeinterpreted to be made meaningful,and that interpretation is the work of the historian. In reality, history is a methodofinquiry about the past.In other words,history is what historians do, or history is what a historian articulates about her subject matter. FamedFrench philosopher Voltaire satirically claimed, History is after all nothing but a pack of tricks which weplay upon the dead (Durant, 1926, p. 241). In the same vein, we mightsay that while some historians mightfeel they are reconstructing the past whenthey write history, often they are creating a representation of that pastsimply becauseof the difficulties of knowing everything that happenedconcerning an event or asituation or group of people. Historiansask questionsaboutthe pastto do history, and inquiry is the basisof all science andsocial science. Historiansoften havethe advantage of knowing past peoples futures; their disadvantageis that they cannot ask questions directly to those people.Instead, historiansrely on extant evidence, especially primary evidencediaries, records, newspapers,census data, photographs, drawingsas the basisfor formulating questions about events that happenedin the past. We might ask whatthe formative factors wereleading upto the 1972 hockey Summit Seriesbetween Canadaand the USSR. Or we might ask whatthe nature of Canadianpresscoverage wasofthose games.Both are valid questionsaskedbythe historian, but neither question will reveal everything that happenedduring that hockeyseries. Eventhough it is often the casethat historians wishfor moreabundant evidence,it is really the clear articulation of historical questionsthat determine the nature and the quality of the historythat historians do. Finally,it is important to considerobjectivity and perspectivein doing history. There are historiansand traditional, historical schools of thought that claim historians can be completely objective and reveal events exactly asthose events happened without any interference from the historians values,biases,or beliefs.In basicscience,researcherstry to eliminate bias by manipulatinga single variablefor examination, structuring control groupsin experiments,introducing randomization in subject selection, and soforth. It is difficult to imagine that one historian can eliminate all of his or her biases. What might be moreimportant is for historiansto acknowledgetheir assumptionsand biasesand perspectives. Asyoulearned in Chapter2,researchersusetheoretical frameworksto explain human behaviourtheory informs their perspective. For example, Marxist historians often usethe conceptsinherent in classreproduction to analyze historical events. Our pastin Canadiansport abounds with examples of social class privilege and exclusion (Metcalfe, 1987). Thus,certain rules in sport might haveservedto preservesocial class distinctions. Using a Marxistframework for analysis allows the historian to explain behaviour from that perspective. Other historians take a more narrative approach to doing history; the very wordhi-story doescontain the notion of a story. Thisis not to suggestthat historyis fiction; rather, it underscoresthat one historians version orinterpretation of aseries of events mightbe different than any other historians analysisof the sameevents.It dependsonthe questionsthe historian asksofthe dataandthe perspective usedbythe historian.
Canadian
Sport
in
Historical
Perspective45
This chapter will provide a perspective on some of the trends and issuesin the development of Canadian sport over time,
mostly prior to 1960, the point in time
when federal
government involvement in sport became paramount and pervasive (Chapters 12, 13, and 14 deal with some of the resultant economic, political, international,
and social issues). In
considerable measure,this analysis will follow the framework and perspective inherent in the authors recent, larger work, Sportin Canada: A History(Morrow
& Wamsley,2013). Readers
might wishto refer to that book along with otherslisted in the Suggested Readingslocated at the end of this chapter.
Moreimportantly,
you are encouraged to read critically: Look for my
biasesas a historian, and ask questions about what you read since reading any text
meaning-
fully involves engaging with the material.In essence,the analysis usedin this chapter will be moreissue oriented andthematic. Instead of tracing events linearly, certain issues, especially asthey relate to social constructs such asrace, gender, and social class, will be amplified or explained in different contextsthat
sporting
traDitions
is, morea spiralling of events andissues.
in Early
CanaDa
First Nations Games and Contests By the 15th century,
when European conquests of North America took place, sport in
Europe wasalready an activity that carried great value systems, traditions,
and customs.
Significantly, the impulse to play gamesand sports seemstimeless. Theform and functions of sport before the 15th century seem consistent: Sport wasa malepreservewomen virtually excluded from games and sporting contests in
were
Westerncivilization; the forms of
sport were mostlyrelated to war-like activities; upper classes dictated the forms and functions of sport; codes of behaviour wereendemic and varied from amateurism to professionalism to chivalry; festivals and spectacles and celebrations sport; beauty, excellence, discipline, and victory clear that organization
were often key motivators for
were widely evidenced; and finally, it is
was a key variable in competitive sport, from funeral games to
Olympic Gamesto Roman spectacles to medievaltournaments andjousts. Prior to European contact, the First Nations werethe earliest players of games and contests in Canada. Aboriginal culture for some 10,000 years before contact was a nomadic one. Groups such asthe Algonquians or the Iroquois and subgroups such asthe
Mohawk, Neutral, Cree,
and Ojibwa travelled to be home, not to get home, and they relied on the resourcesthe land provided and demanded of them. That lifestyle required certain skills and attributes such as strength, endurance, and resistance to pain; these, in turn, were values that werereflected in
Aboriginal cultural practices like
wrestling, physical contests (arm pull, finger pull, even
testicle pull), and greeting games that required little
equipment.
Whensubgroups gathered
together, it wasalways an occasion for gamesand contests wherein gambling with material
goodsaddedboth excitement and a means to redistribute tools,food, and other elements. Blanket toss, moose-skin ball, pole push, running contests, and earlyforms of lacrosse called
either baggatawayortewaarathon(depending on the particular group) wereall eventsthat were connected to the land, waysoflife, and the skills of survival.
Celebration wasa para-
mountvirtue in these contestsas wasthe spiritual significance attachedfor game of tewaarathon might be conducted to commemorate the bountiful
example,a
harvest. These
werethe physical contests,gamesand traditions that existed as Europeansinfiltrated the area now known as Canada beginning in the late 16th and early 17th centuries.
46
Chapter
3
French Conquests Multiple agendas brought Europeansto this continent.
The questfor colonization, presumed
riches of gold and other precious metals,a missionaryzeal to instill
Christianity in every
corner of the earth, the allure of a northwest passageto the East,and the discovery of abundantfish (e.g., the Grand Banks) and animal fur (primarily the beaver) all served as magnetic attractions to the New World. The darkness of the Middle Agesgave wayto the progressivenessand idealism of the European Renaissance,an era characterized asthe rebirth
of civi-
lization reminiscent of classical Greece. Scientific discoveriessuch asthe printing pressand medicalinnovations
went part and parcel with aliterary renaissance that was mostnotably
embodied by Shakespeare. Artistssuch as Leonardo da Vinci and Michelangelo revolutionized notions about beauty and the science of the body. Andit wasthis set of ideals andidealism that permeated the minds of those whoset out in conquest of newlands like Canada.
The areasof Canadathat wereinhabited first by Europeanswerethe extreme Maritime coasts closest to the
Grand Banks, the vast fur trading lands of central and northern
Canada,and a majorcluster ofsettlementsthat becameknown as NewFrance(later Lower Canada and subsequently Quebec). New France wasfounded by French explorer Samuel
de Champlainin the early 17th century. Earlytowns establishedat what became Quebec City and Montreal were vibrant communities for the seigneurial or feudal land develop-
ment/settlementsystemthat wascreatedto foster economic growth alongthe Saint Lawrence River. Overthe course of mostof the 17th and the first half of the 18th centuries, the
habitants,or French peasantry, workedthe long, narrowstrips of land and raisedfamilies while the fur traders, voyageurs, and the Jesuit missionariesfostered the fur trade and the predominantly
Catholic religious institutions. Indeed, it is from the Jesuit Relations,a set of
documents written by Jesuit missionariesand sent back to France as propaganda to induce emigration to New France, that
weare able to discern the rich social fabric of this era.
Comparable to the pastimes of ancient and medieval cultures, the form and function of physical activities werethose related to survival (Metcalfe, engagedin games and contests of running,
and canoeing, as well as balls and dances (the latter presumed sinful
nature).
1970). Thus, the habitants
wrestling, horseracing, snowshoeing, sleighing, much despised by the clerics for their
The physical prowess of the coureurs de bois (runners
woods) came to be feared and revered. These men developed into masculine closely linked combined
to the physical demands of their labour: strong, swift,
with fierce independence
administrators
(Morrow
of the
identities
and enduring,
and a lack of deference to the authority
of French
& Wamsley,2005, p. 17).
British Traditions At the end of the Seven Years Warbetween the British and the French in 1763, the British assumed control of what wasthen called British the French were allowed to retain their Aboriginal groups lost control poured troops and resources into (primarily
culture, religion,
and ownership
While
customs, and ways of life,
of massive tracts of land.
BNA and brought their institutions
The British
of justice, religion
Anglican), and social class structures and governance to the
of Nova Scotia and New Brunswick and primarily to The British
North America (BNA).
Maritime areas
Upper Canada (now
Ontario).
were a composite of people of English, Irish, and Scottish descent who
Canadian
Sport
in
Historical
Perspective47
werereinforced later in the 18th century by United Empire Loyalists or British sympathizers living in the United States who came to live in BNA following the defeat of the British in the tion
American
War of Independence.
against gambling, liquor
restrictions,
and hunting
and consumption,
or gaming laws along
tables that these activities early British
production
Weknow from various acts of legislaSabbath
Day activity
with the necessity to license
and practices formed an important
billiard
part of the lifestyles of
North Americans.
A great deal moreis known about the classic pioneer
period of BNA, the years
between the Rebellions of Upperand Lower Canadain the 1830s and the time of Confederation in 1867.
Massiveimmigration
from the
United Kingdom,
which changed the
population from approximately 750,000 in 1821 to over 2 million at mid-century, reflected an economic prosperity that, in turn, games and recreation.
wasaccompanied by a social stability conducive to
For example, circuses brought amusement to small towns, and
weddings and their accompanying chivareesor mockserenades were occasionsfor physical contests and games. So too were work beesin rural BNA, when neighbours gathered to raise a barn, makequilts, or harvest crops, all followed by dancing, contests like
wrestling
and games of chance, and of course drinking (liquor sold for 25 cents per gallon). Taverns were ubiquitous along the highways of early Canada. Bytheir very presence and fostered atmosphere of conviviality, including
taverns served associal and activity centres for the citizenry,
membersof the urban underclass. In fact, the very first sporting club for which
we have a written record, the
Montreal Curling Club, wasformed at Gillis Tavern in 1807
(Lindsay, 1969). Travellers accounts inform
usthat hunting and fishing
were popular
pastimes (obviously derived from subsistence needs) among both upper and lower social classes even though the forms of these activities varied by social class (Gillespie, 2002). By contrast, the 1845 Statutes of Upper Canada list a host of activities that legislators sought to prohibit among the lower classes on Sunday: And be it enacted,
That if any such
Merchant, Tradesman,
Artificer,
Mechanic,
Workman, Labourer, or other person whatsoever, shall . . . purchase any wares, merchandizes, goods, chattels, or personal property, or any real estate whatsoever, on the
Lords Day,commonly called Sunday. . . or shall play at skittles, ball,foot-ball, racket, or any other noisy game,or shall gamble with dice or otherwise, orshall run races on foot, or on horseback,orin carriages,or vehicles of anysort on that day, orif any person or personsshall go outfishing, or hunting orshooting, orin questof, or shall take, kill, or destroyany deer or other game,or any wild animal, bird, or wildfowl, orfish, except as next hereinafter mentioned,orshall useany dog,fishing rod, gun, rifle, or other machine,orshall set any net or trap for the above mentionedpurposeson that day. . . shall payafine or penalty not exceedingten pounds,norlessthan five shillings, current moneyof this Province,for each offence,together with the costsand charges attending the proceedingsand conviction. (Lindsay, 1969,p. 353) Whatis interesting is that such enactments likely reveal the prevalence of these amusements and games rather than any termination restrictions
were measuresimplemented
of such activities. In essence, Sabbath
by the governing classesto control
what were
deemedto be unruly activities of the lower classes. Bythe middle of the 19th century, the cultural practices of subordinate groups wereviewed asa growing social problem, especially where drinking and gambling vices
48Chapter
3
on the part of the subordinate groups wereinvolved.
Horseracing and the Garrisons Prior to Confederation, the single sporting activity that crossed all social classesin interest and in direct or vicarious participation
was horseracing. Some background information
necessaryto understand the prevalence of this activity. America wascontinuous and widespread; every town
The military presence in
is
North
wasa garrison or military post with
troops stationed there. Since military engagements wereinfrequent,
officers and nonoffi-
cers had considerable time at their disposal. Commissioned officers, for the mostpart, were upper- and middle-classgentlemen from Britain who hadreceived their early education at such elite British public schools (equivalent to Canadian private schools) as Eton, Chester, Harrow, and Rugby. Major pedagogical reforms wrought bysuch educators as Dr. Thomas Arnold, headmaster at Rugby School, advocated school systems ofself-governance, hierarchal organization from senior to junior
years, prefects, and houses
or residences that
becamethe social units ofthe schools. Boysorganizedthemselvesinto teamsfor gamesand activities like
hare and hounds (a chase game involving
cross-country running),
rugby,
cricket, football (soccer), and boxing amidstthe prevailing Anglicanreligious culture fostered within the schools. By the time of Dr. Arnolds tenure at Rugby, all boys were
expectedto be both goodstudents and active participantsin gamesand sport. Moreover, the schools and their gaming activities carried an ideological value system, a code of sport-
ing honourthat extolled the virtues of team play,loyalty to ones house,andfair playin short, a set of gendered and classed values that
came to be recognized
as muscular
Christianity. Nowhereis this valuesystembetter portrayedor dispersedthan in one of the most popular novels of the 19th century,
Tom Browns School Days by Thomas Hughes
(1904, originally published in 1857), a tale of Rugby boys and their sporting exploits and attendant values during Arnolds administration
at that school. Graduatesfrom the British
public schools often became government, civic, and military leaders. served as officers in British
North America and carried with them the sporting practices
and values promoted in the British public schools. Sosignificant Canadian sport that one researcher stated unequivocally The the development of sport] for
Many of the latter
wastheir impact on early paramount influence [on
morethan a century after the Conquest wasderived from the
sporting examples set by the British army garrison [officers]
(Lindsay, 1970, p. 33).
Imbued with this British public school sporting tradition, these officers brought their administrative training and expertise, the opportunity afforded by very little
active con-
flict, and their inclinations toward a variety of sports and games, not the least of which was horseracing. The officers supplied the horses, built the racing tracks and venues, purchased the prizes, and provided officials for equestrian events. To all social classes, horserace meetings
werespectacles for amusement, competition,
equestrian steeplechase competition in London, Royal patronage wasgranted to
and gambling. For example, an 1843 Ontario, attracted some 10,000 people.
many of the equestrian events. However, the social and
economic impact of the equine contests was dramatic. Tent cities werespawned for the races, and town commercial and farming activities halted for the events where gambling, brawls, and crime werecommon. In response, the garrison officers tried
moving the events
further into the country to discourage the great unwashed from attending the events, but they still came. One prominent competitions
Canadian city,
Halifax, wassuch a magnetfor horserace
and their attendant social consequences that around mid-century city offi-
cials cancelled and disallowed all horseracing competitions for
Canadian
Sport
morethan a decade.
in
Historical
Perspective49
While horseracing wasthe
mostuniversally popular of the garrison officer leadership
initiatives in sport, there were also other activities promoted by these men. Fox hunting, cricket
matches,tandem and sleighing clubs, skating events, and track and field competi-
tions wereamong the sports and activities fostered bythe garrison officers. Evidence for the dependency on the military for the conduct and participation in these pastimes and sportsis highlighted by their great decline when British troops were withdrawn during the Crimean Warin Europe during the 1850s. Withthe perceived and real threats of the American Civil Warduring the 1860s, British militia poured backinto BNA and the newspapersof that era show dramatic increases, especially in cricket and horseracing. In spite of the initiatives
of the British garrison officers, it mustbe pointed out that by
Confederation there wasa distinct social class and a gendered order to sport. For example, within the
military regular
militia men werecourt-martialled for habitual drunkenness; it
wasthe officers who enjoyed sport participation,
not the lower ranks. Also, while women
worked extremely hard in the home and on the land and demonstrated tremendous physical prowess,increasingly,
social institutions including
government, church, school, and
private organizations such as mens clubs promoted idealized femininities of dependency, domesticity, chastity, and relative daily experiences of most women (Morrow
weaknessin
tied to notions
contradistinction
to the
& Wamsley, 2013). It is abundantly
clear
from this examination ofsporting evolution from ancient cultures through to the mid-19th century that in
Westernsocieties, sport waslargely the preserve of the maleelite citizenry.
Quite simply, the roots of sporting practices seem to be tied indivisibly, universally to
timelessly, and
menand to socially constructed notions of manliness.
inDustrialization tECHnologiCal
anD CHangEs
Within BNA or Canada, up until the dependent on individual the tavern, and the modern organized
initiatives
middle of the 19th century, sporting practices were
and existing social institutions
managerial resourcefulness of the garrison officers. The transition sport wasvery much a product of the Industrial
concomitant technological
to
Revolution and the
changes that characterized the second half of the 19th century.
Coalitions ofinterests such asthose of the Scots and the strong sporting
such asthe work bee,
organizations
Montreal middle class developed
while the process of industrialization
altered society in
general. In broad terms, industrialization characterizes a period of social and economic change that transforms a society from an agrarian to anindustrial part of the process of modernization,
closely related to technological innovation. methods of transportation
one;industrialization
wherein social and economic
development
is are
In Canada, aselsewhere, sweeping changesin
and communication
combined
with advances in sporting
equipment and facilities catalyzedthis processof organizational sophistication in sport, sporting practices, and the availability
ofsport to widersegments of society. By examining
theseinnovations usinga cross-sectionof sports duringthe 19th century, the rate, direction, and magnitude of sporting change can be explained and understood.
Transportation modesup to the early 19th century wereoften cumbersome and relatively
sleighall
slow.
One could
methodsofconveyancethat required time to travel. Forsport, this dependency
on leisure time limited
50Chapter
3
walk, snowshoe, canoe, or ride on horseback, carriage, or
mostsport participation to the elite. Furthermore, it reflected and
contributed
to the social nature of early sporting
motive, clubs like the
clubs. Instead
of a primary athletic
Montreal Curling Club wereformed and developed mainlyfor social
interests, not athletic. It wasthe introduction
of steam to watercraft that led directly to changesin sporting
foci and practices. Steamers and steamboats in the second half of the 19th century werea form ofrecreation in themselves; often, bands wereon board, steamship companies offered excursions, and rival company boats even raced each other to get to destinations. specifically,
these companies offered prizes for sporting
competitions,
More
reduced rates to
attend cycling and baseball events, and often allowed ferryboats and other steamers to serve as grandstands for rowing events. Certainly, these changes had an accelerative and promotional effect on a variety of sports. usedin
Whensteam wasapplied to the tracked vehicles
mining, railway companies quickly developed that form of transportation.
In 1850, there existed some 160 kilometres of railway track in
Canada. Government
grantsinduced railway companies to connect towns and cities that were within 100 kilometres of each other. Thus,areassuch assouthern
Ontario, parts of Quebec,and the Maritimes were
served rapidly by these transit links. By 1900,some 30,000 kilometres ofrailway lines linked Canadacoastto coast. One of the railways primary impacts on society wasa dramatic reduction in travel time.
Whereasit took some three daysto travel bystagecoach from Toronto to
Montreal early in the 19th century, travel from
Toronto to Port Moody, British Columbia,
took only five days by train at the end of the century. So great wasthe time reduction factor that a Canadian, Sir Sandford Fleming, invented the concept of creating time zonesfor different areas of the world. For sport, the impact of the railway wasalmost immediate and widespread. Primarily, railway transportation
permitted
time and convenience factors.
more people to engage in sport simply because of the More profoundly, a universal impact
on sport wasthe
potential crystallization of afundamental concept in organizedsportregularity. lacrosse, rowing, and track and field competitions
could actually
advance of the events to the extent that a whole new conceptleaguescould tured prior to a sporting season. Furthermore,
multi-club
Baseball,
be scheduled
well in be struc-
events were possible. For
example, 32 teams used rail connections to attend a bonspiel (a curling tournament) during the 1860s. International
sporting tours, such asthe visit of a British cricket team
during the 1870s, wereenjoyed because of railway passage.Spur lines, madetemporary tracks split off from especially in
or short, specially
mainlines, were often built to serve as grandstands,
winter for events such as the very popular (in terms of competitor
and
spectator allure) snowshoe races of the 1870s and 1880s. Emergent
methods and means of communication
Mail delivery, for example, took days and weeks;until postage and the bulk of BNA
mail went through
paralleled
methods of transport.
mid-century, the receiver paid the
England. Sports and games could be
arranged byletter, or by wordof mouth, or by setting out a challengefrom one club to another in the press. In the latter regard, the number of newspapers in the country
increasedfrom 200to 1,200from 1840to 1900. Sport wasirregularly coveredfor mostof this period; the sport pages were morea product of the 20th century.
And there wasa time
lag in reporting sporting contests,such that newsof an event in Nova Scotia mighttake some time to appear in the Ontario pressand vice versa. Whenthe telegraph wasinvented
in the 1850s,communication wasrevolutionized. Whenthe Atlantic telegraph cable was completed in 1866, it
meant that
news in 1867 of the Saint John,
Canadian
Sport
in
New Brunswick,
Historical
Perspective51
four-oared rowing crews success at the
World Championships in Paris, France (that team
is known asthe Paris Crew) wasinstantly transmitted to Canadians. A byproduct of such accelerated coverage of sporting events combined with league schedules very likely
meant
reciprocal effects in creating and sustaining fan interest in a variety of sport at the local, provincial, national, and international
levels.
Sporting Equipment Evolution Socially and economically, the 1850s were prosperous years of growth for Canada.In addition,
Canada experienced a 37% increase in population between 1851 and 1861, a clear
reflection of the countrys affluence and its allure to primarily British immigrants.
Prosper-
ity and population increases usually have positive effects on sport, and they certainly did in this case. One of the masstrends in sport and recreation, a virtual skating Gaspeto Sarnia,
maniafrom
wasreflected in the mediaacross Canada during the 1860s. Asymbiotic
part of the zeal for skating wasthe impact
of technology
case, skates. For example, interest and demand
on sporting equipment, in this
meantincreased production
of skates.
More patents weretaken out regarding improvements in blades and boots, accessibility increased, and costs were quickly reduced. Another direct impact distribution
was uniformity
of technology
on equipment
or standardization.
shells, and track and field equipment
manufacture, production, and
Aslacrosse sticks, baseball bats, rowing
were massproduced, participants
better-quality and morestandard equipment.
benefited from
Whereasearly competitors in, for example,
the hammer throwing event at a Caledonian track and field competition in Cape Breton might have had to create and sign an article the hammers to bethrown, standardization equipment.
of agreement
about the size and weight of
meantthat all competitors could usethe same
Theimplications for the sophistication
There are myriad specific sport transitions
of sporting organization are obvious.
brought about by technological
change,
not all of which can be described in this chapter. Cost reduction is one general change that had wide-reaching repercussions for sport diffusion to the
middle and lower classes.
Cricket, a popular sport among the British elite, remained a relatively expensive sport for most of the 19th centurybats,
balls, and pads were often sold in jewellery stores. One
cricket bat cost anywhere from $6 to $9, whereas by 1900 one could purchase alacrosse stick for less than 50 cents. Similarly, facilities for sport werecrucial to sport dispersion and interest.
Baseball and lacrosse fields demanded relatively
little
cost to create and
maintain, whereasgolf courses(which did not appear until the mid-1870s) wereexpensive propositions that kept golf an upper-class sport. Skating rinks and curling areascould be cleared on local rivers or, within cities, fire departments often built outdoor rinks and toboggan runs. Veryfew indoor facilities for sport existed during the late 19th century, but
thosethat didfor hockey,skating, and curlingincreasedtheir respectivesport participation and interest,
especially
when gas lighting
allowed play to extend into the evenings,
thereby providing broaderopportunities to the workingclass(Jobling, 1970). Perhaps one of the
mostintriguing, socially impacting, and recreationally fascinating
piecesof equipment developedduringthe 19th century wasthe bicycle.Its derivation stems from France and England when hobbyhorses (wooden-framed, two-wheeled vehicles with
no pedalsand no steering, morelike a woodenhorse on wheelsthan a bicycle), bicycle precursors, wereused by gardeners to traverse their estate grounds. By mid-century, bicycles
52Chapter
3
Replicaof an old pennyfarthing bicycle. unclepepin/Shutterstock
wereof the penny farthing variety, which had a 120-centimetre front
wheel over which the
rider perched on a springless seat and a diminutive back wheel of some 30 centimetres. Thefirst of these machinesto reach Canadalikely arrived sometime in the early 1870s. In spite of their height, how uncomfortable they wereto ride, poor roads for riding, and their expense (at least $100), the public fascination
with bicycles wasremarkable.
Overthe
next 30 years, massmarketing and innovations in design lead to pneumatic tires, equalsized wheels(dubbed safeties
by the mid-1880s), and all manner of accoutrements, such
aslights, horns, spring seats, and greatly reduced costs. Riders, often representing bicycle clubs, raced on the penny farthings and on the safeties. However, muchlike skating, the real impact of the bicycle wasin its widespread usefor transportation and recreation across social classesand across gender lines and social conventions. bicycle for offering one of the first reform for women (Hall,
meansof recreational
Many historians credit the
pastimes and for catalyzing dress
2002). Specific developments of womens participation in sports
are discussedlater in the chapter.
Montreal: The Cradle of Organized Sport Another component
of industrialization
wasthe phenomenon
of urbanization, or the
tendency of peopleto settle in clusters of towns and cities. Organizedsport is very muchan urban-related and urban-facilitated social behaviour. In manyrespects, asaresult of the twin processesof industrialization
and urbanization,
compete in sport. Leaders and leadership in largest cities, in particular the city of commercial hub of Canada;it
most people had more money and time to
Canadian sport development came from the
Montreal.
Without question,
Montreal wasthe
wasthe nexusfor timber, fur trading, shipping, and railway
Canadian
Sport
in
Historical
Perspective53
companies and it fostered such giants of national industry as the
Molson, Redpath, and
McGill tycoons. This centrality of economic and industrial prowess was mirroredin sport such that
Montrealis often hailed asthe cradle
of organizedsport in Canada.Justin terms
offostering certain sports, entrepreneurs in this city wereresponsible for founding, defining, developing, and institutionalizing
such sports assnowshoeing, ice hockey, figure skating,
speedskating, lacrosse (the non-Native version), cycling, and football. Each of these sports carriesits own unique story of evolution.
However,for the purposes of this chapter, whatis
important to understand about Montreals vanguard role in organizing Canadian sport is the formation
of the
Montreal Amateur Athletic
Association (MAAA)
in 1881.
Atrio of clubs with strong membership and established practicesthe Shoe Club,the
Montreal Lacrosse Club, and the
Montreal Snow
Montreal Bicycle Clubbought
the
Mon-
treal Gymnasium in the core downtown area of the city as a homefor the conglomeration of clubs called the
MAAA. The oldest of these three clubs, the
Montreal Snow Shoe Club
(formed in 1843), played an instrumental role in fostering snowshoe events, races, longdistance tramps or outings, charity events, drama productions, social events of dinners and dancing (men with men), and generally championed the manly virtues of being a snowshoe participant (Becket, 1881). Club membersand executives brought a wealth of managerial experience to the
MAAA. Its sister organization, the
Montreal Lacrosse Club, which had a
lot of crossover members, wasregarded as one of the premier competitive lacrosse clubs in Canada. And of course the
Montreal Bicycle Club wassymbolic of escalating social inter-
estsin the bicycle. The MAAAs the
original stated purpose was practical and unambitious:
promotion of physical and mental culture among, and the providing of rational amuse-
ments and recreation for, its
members (Morrow,
1981, p. 26). However, the
MAAA
assumeda position of national sport leadership out of all proportion to its stated purpose. By the 1890s, the
MAAA
membership numbered some 2,500 men with the three
founding clubs plus football, toboggan, and skating clubs; departments in billiards, shooting, gymnastics, and bowling; and connected clubs in drama, chess, hockey, fencing, and boxing.
What was uniquely important
about the
MAAA
wasthat, for the
most part, its
members(including its club executives) were middle-class businessmen with considerable professional and managerial skills.
With the financial
and membership stability
association itself, these businessmen usedtheir administrative in sport (the
of the
acumen to foster excellence
MAAA hockey team, to provide only one example, wonthe first two Stanley
Cupchampionships in the early 1890s) and to found and promote noless than 11 national sport governing bodies such asthe
Canadian
Wheelmens Association (for cycling), the
National Lacrosse Association, and the Canadian Amateur Hockey Federation. In short, executives within the ment of organized sport in
MAAA
Canada.
wielded tremendous power in the develop-
Nowhere was this
more pronounced
profoundly felt than in fostering and normalizing the ideological
or
more
code of amateurism as
the guiding principle for Canadiansporting development until late in the 20th century.
amatEur
iDEalism
It is clearthat organizedsport, historically, has beenthe preserveof elite malesand that sporting
practices usually carried a gentlemanly
code of conduct and proper
way of
playingat least properto those menofthe middleclasseswho madethe rulesfor sport.In Canada,as we have noted, the earliest organizedsporting clubs weresocial first and athletic
54Chapter
3
second in their raison de^tre and it the
main participants.
wasthe upper class,like the garrison officers, who were
With the stark and rapid changes accompanying industrialization,
sport had the potential to become more democratized, providing opportunities for women and moresocial classesto participate. Amateurism hasto be one of the mostunique tenets in governing any human behaviour; as a principle, it is a concept cemented to exclusionwho
will not be allowed to compete in
whatsports. For example,in the mid-1830sin Canada,athriving horseracing club in Newark, Ontario, published a rule
that no
whatsoever (Cosentino,
1975); we can only speculate about the reasons for this rule.
black manshall be allowed to compete under any pretext
However,in another sport, snowshoeing, there werestandardized lists of race cards enumerating the eventsfrom shorter to longer distances. Forthese prestigious racesin
Montreal,it was
common to include an event for First Nations athletes. The prestige event wasthe open two-mile race that wasunderstood to be closed to Indians.
In the early 1870s, two Aborigi-
nal menlined upfor the start of an open event. Considerable controversy ensued,the result of which wasthereafter to list the open event asOpen
(Indians barred).
Clearly, there wasa
strong element of racism just asthere had beenin the late 1860s when a black rower,
William
Berry, wasexcluded from the Toronto Bay Rowing Regatta. The real issue wascontrol, or control over the perceived proper which wasestablished by the
sporting participants. Canadasfirst amateur definition,
Montreal Pedestrian Clubin 1873, encapsulatesthis issue:
An amateuris one who has nevercompetedin any opencompetition orfor public money,or for admission money,or with professionalsfor a prize, public moneyor admission money, nor hasever, at any period of hislife taught or assistedin the pursuit of Athletic exercises as a means of livelihood
or is alabourer or an Indian. (Morrow,
1986, p. 174[emphasis added])
Part of the issue of amateurism was discrimination;
not just negatively, in the sense of
racial discrimination, but alsoin the notion of equality of competition. In some sports, such
asrowing,lacrosse,andtrack andfield, the quality ofthe sport wasso high andthe emphasis on winning so dominant that some competitors did compete for
money or they competed
underaliasesto get a valuable prize.Someathletes wereableto acquirefame and monetary gain, then spend moretime training in the questfor victory, prestige, and material reward.
Forthose competitorsunable or unwilling to follow suit,it meantinequality of competition, somewhat akin to the whole issue of steroid usein contemporary sport, if steroids are exam-
ined solely from the issue of equality of competition. Until wellinto the 20th century,for the most part, to belabelled a professional
in sport wasto be tarnished assomeone who
wouldlie, cheat, orfix outcomesin short, do anythingfor victory. Thisis whysport governing bodieslike the Canadian Amateur Association of Oarsmenand the teur
Athletic
Montreal Ama-
Association took it upon themselves to usethe notion of amateurism as a
methodto police their perceptions of inequality,
be they social, racial, or pecuniary.
Forthe middle-classbusinessmen of the esteemed and influential
MAAA, amateurism
became and waspromoted asthe common sense guiding value system in competitive organized sport. So adamant werethese menabout the significance of this principle that they created the Canadian Amateur Athletic
Association (CAAA)
in 1884 to be the national
custodian of the amateur code. In some iteration or another, the CAAA stayed in continuous existence until the mid-1970s, heavily bolstered bythe international
prestige attached
to the modern Olympic Games whoseadministrators revered the same amateur ideal.
Canadian
Sport
in
Historical
Perspective55
Transitions to Commercial MassSport In almost every respect, the whole concept of amateurism is very much an elitist, socially exclusionary
mechanisminstituted to preserve the status quo of the maleupper and upper-
middle classesin sport. Policing the ideal waslike trying to herd cats or grasp mercuryin ones hand. Nevertheless, this fossil-like principle became the dominant ethos of sport in Canada. By the turn of the 20th century, in popular team sports alone, multiple levels of sporting competition existed in baseball,lacrosse, and ice hockey.
Winning majortrophies
in these sports became the central focus of sport, larger and morespectator-friendly facilities werebuilt, the athletic quality of competition improved, and so forth. At the same time, the government initiatives
Canadian economy and landscape
were changing. Federal
translated into 2.5 million new immigrants
coming into
Canada
between 1900 and 1920, many of them to the newly opened and established provinces in
the
West. Wheatbecameone of our central exports,the softwood forests of northern
Ontario supplied
major European markets, and mining of precious mineralsin that same
region meantboomtimes for small communitiesin the north.In the latter regard,it was the smaller communities of Kirkland Lake, Timmins, Renfrew, Sault Ste. Marie,and so on
that first promoted a commercial, professionalbasisfor ice hockey by using mining money to pay the best players to live in these communities and play hockey for the local teams.
Newspapers cateredto and promotedthe proliferation andinterest in sports with the creation of sport pages. Railway connections expanded to cater to the wheat, wood, and min-
eral markets. Moviehousesopened, womenssuffrage wasgranted (1918) after a long struggle by suffragettes, and labour unions wereformed out of the impetus of the violent 1919 Winnipeg General Strike.
World WarI further solidified
British loyalties (and in so
doing created an even deeperrift between French and English Canadians with the issue of military conscription), and alsostimulated the economy. All these changes underscore the prevailing current of commercial growth and prosperity in Canadian society. The same was true in sport; however, although the iron-clad rule of amateurism reigned supreme among sport governing bodies, this ideal wassoon contested.
Entrepreneurial Interests By 1905, high-level team sports received the most notoriety in the pressand in public perception. Concomitant with the commercial trends in society, in lacrosse, ice hockey, track and field, and football there wasan outbreak
of professionals (the equivalent of paid or
nonamateur-abiding practitioners) and unsavoury professional
behaviours (such as play-
ing under an alias to get around amateur regulations). So great wasthe professional stigma that even to play against a professional athlete on another team could result in the amateur
athletes suspensionfrom competitive sport. For so-called majorteams in lacrosse and hockey, whole teams wereoften suspended. At the same time, to winleague championships
teamsand clubs proclaimingtheir amateuraffiliation usedjob offersandsecret paymentsto recruit the best players.Ironically, it wasthe
MAAA organization that
madea bold sugges-
tion to permit amateursto play with and against professionalsaslong as everyone knew whothe actual professional players were. Whatresulted wasan almost three-year protracted
waramongthosefactions who wantedto remain purely amateurandthe MAAA-induced group who wanted more open competition (Morrow,
56Chapter
3
1986). In the end, amateurism asan
ideological ideal prevailed while growing interests and parallel value systems embedded in the 1908 London Olympic Gamesaided this resolution of the conflict in Canada. And yet the preservation of the ideal
wasoften nominal even by amateur moguls.For
example, consider the case of one consummate amateur athlete, race-walker Goulding.
George
Hisracing career spanned some 10 years beginning in 1906. By the time he
retired from racing, he held world records in almost every distance from 1 to 10 miles. His technique
wasflawless; not once was he even accused of lifting
would lie on the ground to inspect race-walkers walking.
in a sport wherejudges
who technically
While Goulding never accepted anything
might be running,
more than travel
events, his magnetic attraction for spectators wassuch that holding
matchedraces featur-
ing his name would attract thousands of paying fans, even to the point of filling Square Gardensin
Madison
New York City. Clearly, sport venue operators made moneyfrom his
prowess, and amateur officials often went to great lengths to equalize the competition handicapping
not
expenses for his
Gouldings starting time to let his competitors
by
gain an advantage or by
holding races that had only Goulding and one other majorrival, even though the latter wasclearly contrary to the rules and ideals of amateurism since it isolated the top athletes only for a competition (Morrow Whatthe
& Leyshon, 1987).
Goulding case and many other examples from individual
and team sports
show is that the quest for excellence in organized sport almost demanded some other method of promotion than the restrictive
blanket of amateurism.
that entrepreneurs envisioned a commercial
Whattranspired
was
basisfor high-quality sport, especially for
team sports. Thus,for example, hockey was developed at every level of amateur play in strictly amateur leagues. And, at the same time, openly professional hockey leagues developedin southern and northern tion (the forerunner to the
Ontario such that by 1910, the National Hockey Associa-
NHL) wasformed with contractual
obligations that carried
rules about how long a player was bound by the contract to play with one team. Lacrosse and baseball did the same thing, although the permanency of the success of these two professional sports in Canada wasnot the same as hockey. Goulding had no choice or opportunity to later Lionel
Conacher, a Toronto-born
athlete of the first half-century,
who wasvoted Canadas best all-round
wasable to capitalize on his athletic abilities.
excelled in baseball, lacrosse, football,
George
make moneyfrom his talent, some 10 years
athlete
wrestling, boxing, and hockey. It
sional opportunity in hockey that enabled him to turn earning
Whereasan athlete like
Conacher
wasthe profes-
pro and make hislivelihood from
moneyin sport. In fact, up until 1937 when he retired from pro hockey, he wasa
semi-professional or professional in all six of his chosen sports (Morrow,
1979).
The Hero/Star in Sport One of the important
byproducts of the burgeoning development of and interest in high-
level sporting competition
wasthe notion of Canadian stars or heroesathletic
luminaries
in sport. Both Goulding and Conacher were well known in their sporting times. Sport heroes provide windows or texts through
which we can see how communities eulogize and
celebrate their stars. Individual sport stories, like
myths, provide basicimages and metaphors
that inform the perceptions, memories,and even aspirations of a society. And wecan never minimize the impact one individual
can have on the rate,
change in sport. A casein point is Dr. Geroge W.Beers,the
Canadian
magnitude, and direction of Montreal dentist and flaming
Sport
in
Historical
Perspective57
lacrosseevangelist. Beerscodifiedthe first set of rulesfor hissport andset upa convention to establishits national sport governing body, bothin 1867. Healsoshowcasedlacrosseto England,the birthplace of modernorganizedsport, byleading two successfulinternational tours in 1876 and 1883,the latter sponsoredin part by the federal Departmentof Agriculture as animmigration-promoting initiative (Morrow, 1982). Becauseof Beerssincredible lacrossesalesmanship,for morethan a centurylacrosse wasthought to havebeenformally declaredour national sport (it never wasduring hislifetime, but both hockey,asour winter sport, andlacrosse,as oursummersport, weregiven that sanction in the mid-1990s).Certainly, there wereotherfactorsin the developmentand dispersionoflacrosse,but Beersis a striking exampleof a visionary whoprovidedsingleleadershipin sport (Lindsay, 1972). Although Beersplayedlacrosse asa goaltender, he wasnot the kind of classicsport hero who dominated his sport as an athlete. It is interesting that perhapsthe first such heroin Canadiansport wasworking class, of Irish descent,and an avowed professional oarsman, Ned Hanlan. Worldchampion from 18801884, Hanlanabsolutely captivated the sporting public during his era. Althoughsmallerin stature than manyof his competitors, Hanlan mastered the useof the sliding seatin rowing to the extent that he virtually controlled the pace of his events. Hisexploits are too numerousto mention here, but whatis important is that it was Hanlansskill combined with his businessacumenthat workedto solidify his heroicstatusto a public that wasclearly awed by him. Evenin the United States,for one single event on the Potomac River, both Housesof Congress adjournedto join some 100,000spectatorsfor just one of hisraces, and that wasprior to his worldchampion achievement. He wasan anomalyin terms of his professionalstatus; however, hisskill and domination ofthe sport, abetted bythe proclivity toward gambling on his events,elevated him above normalstandardsand conventions (Cosentino, 1974). Moreover,even when he went on tour and competedin Australiaafter losing his world title he wasstill so widelyacclaimedthat ontwo separatetrips he wasthe majordrawing card(Brown, 1980). Hanlan wasthe consummate hero: male,highly skilled, charismatic, and unabashedlyadoredinternationally. Culturally,sport starsare products oftheir times and environments. In French Canada,Louis Cyr, hailedduringthe late 19th to early 20th centuriesasthe worlds strongest man, embodiedthe revered physical prowessennobled by French Canadians(Weider, 1976).
Women sports
HeroesWhat
alsointersects heroic status is gender. Wehave learned how muchsport is a male preserve. Socially, for most of the period under historical examination, women were marginalizedsocially, politically, and physically. To a considerable extent, womens bodies were under the rule of medical men who somehow understood the apparent fragility of the female body and the attendant tendencies toward hysteria of the mind.It wasindeed the adoption and adaptation of the bicycle during the 1890sthat almostliterally emancipated womento become more active physically. Drop-framesafety bicyclesled to the invention of bloomersand split skirts, thereby greatlyfacilitating movementfor women. There aresporadic records of women participating in all mannerof sports,from pedestrianismto ice hockey, by the start of World WarI. Perhapsthe mostfamous and significant influence on Canadianwomens participation in sport wasthe Edmonton Commercial Graduatesbasketballteam, dubbedsimply the Edmonton Grads.From 19151940 this team excelled at their sport. Coachedthe entire
58Chapter
3
The Edmonton Dr. Don
Grads, 1922.
Morrow
time by high school teacher J. Percy Page(who eventually became Albertaslieutenant governor), the Gradswonsome 93% of over 400 highly competitive gamesagainstlocal, provincial, national, international, and Olympic (exhibition) teams. With afarm team feedersystem,tremendouscivic boosterism,andthe managerial skills of Page,the team was amateurin practice but hadall the hallmarksof askilled, professionalteam. However,the genderedorder of society dictatedthat they hadto beladies first and athletessecond. For example, Pageinsisted that all playershadto remain single, nosmoking or drinking was permitted, chaperoneswererequired for all team events, playershadto dressoffthe court asproper young women,andfair play wasboth valuedand mandated(Macdonald, 1976). In short, womenathletes,if judged bythis remarkably successfulteam, hadto live a genderedstandard of behaviourthat wasnot expectedof menin sport. Individual womenathletes hadsimilar expectationsand assumptionsplaceduponthem bysociety. WhenEthel Catherwood,a memberof Canadastrack andfield teamin the 1928 Olympic Games, competedin and wonagold medalin the highjump, it washer beautythat captured mediaattention, not herathletic prowess.Catherwood,a native of Saskatchewan, wasproclaimedthe Saskatoon Lily owingto her perceivedgoodlooks. Similarly, Barbara Ann Scott, worldand Olympicchampionfigure skater ofthe late 1940s,wasreveredfor her goodlooksher athletic talent wasa distantsecond. Althoughvoted Canadasbestathlete and therefore winner of our prestigiousLou Marsh Awardin three separateyears,Scott receivedthe greatestshare of her mediacoveragein Canada in the womenssection of the press,not on the sport pages.Instead of her athletic skill, reportersfocused on herskating outfits.In manyways,Barbara Ann Scott wascreatedby the mediato be petite,feminine, blonde, pretty,a darling onskates,the valentine of Canada(she wonone worldchampionship in Februarynear Valentines Day),and Canadasfairy princess(Morrow, 1987). And perhapsowingto the post-warconservatismof her era,it wasanimage that worked. Handcraftedtoy BarbaraAnn Scott dolls weretreasuredby girlsand womenduringthe 1950sand are prizedartifactsthat sellfor $350to $500today on eBayand craigslist.
Canadian
Sport
in
Historical
Perspective59
The Matchless Dr. Don
Six,
Canadian
womens
Olympic track
and field team
arriving in Toronto,
1928.
Morrow
State Sport If one wereto chooseasymbol to representthe dominant trend in Canadiansport between 1900 and 1960, it wouldlikely be the dollar sign. Entrepreneurial, commercial, and professionalinterests and opportunities in sport wererampant. Thisis not to say that theseinterests and opportunities werenot contested. The WorkersSports Associationof Canada(WSA), for example, wasformed as a national federation in the mid-1920s.The WSAencouragedall mannerofsportsfor the workingclassand advocatedagainst megasport entities such asthe International Olympic Committee. Moreover,the WSAcalled for the abolition of amateurismand a unionization of professionaland Olympicathletesin an open effort to bring social classequalityto sport. Another important thread in Canadiansport development during the 20th century wasgovernmentinvolvement in sport, recreation, andfitness. Understandably,the 1867 British North America Act wassilent onsport. Thefederal governments earliestinvolvementin sport wasits immigration-directed investment in the 1883lacrossetour to Great Britain (mentioned earlier) andits sponsorshipof Canadianinvolvement in international rifle competitions such as The Bisley,alsoin Great Britain. Directfederal intervention camefirst in the form of the 1911 Strathcona Trust, an act to encouragephysical and militarytraining in the Canadianpublic educationsystem. Thetrust wasoperatedby the Departmentof Militia in the schools and hadthe decided effect of embedding military drill and physicaltraining in the curriculum, thereby leaving sport as an extracurricular event for morethan halfa century. During the Great Depression,provincial governments in the Westernprovinces reached a cost-sharing agreement with the federal government to support recreation and sports programsfor the public. Thisimportant dual-funding precedent (known as the Sport-Rec Movement)lead to asimilar arrangementfor the passageofthe National Physical Fitness Act (NPFA) in 1943. The NPFA wasthe direct result of warrejection figures dueto alack of physicalfitness. In objectives,the act wasambitiousin that one of its fourfold goals wasto encourage physical activity among all Canadians via a $250,000 per capita cost-sharing scheme with the provincial governments. The most significant results of the NPFA werethe establishment of physical education degree training programsin three different provinces and the establishment of a National Advisory Council on Physical Fitness. In 1954, the NPFA wasrepealed without one dissenting vote in the Houseof Commons. However,the die of state intervention was cast by these early acts.
60Chapter
3
During the Olympic
Cold
War of the 1950s, sporting success, particularly in the
Games, became a symbol for
national
powers. Canadian Olympic achievements century of the
political
wererelatively
modern
prowess among world super abundant during the first half-
Games.For example, the Canadian womens track and field team outper-
formed all other womens teams in the 1928 Amsterdam Games. At the same Olympiad, Vancouvers
Percy
Williams won the coveted 100- and 200-metre sprinting
However, it was Canadas sheer dominance in 1948 that
events.
Winter Olympic ice hockey from 1920 to
was our countrys trademark. In the three quadrennial festivals beginning in
1952, Canada failed
to win its coveted first place in the international
arena. These
events and others inspired the federal government to passthe 1961 Fitness and Amateur Sport Act (FASA). This significant elite-level
piece of legislation
cemented state-supported
sport through to the end of the 20th century.
of National
Health and
and -administered
Managed within the
Ministry
Welfare,the FASA was aimed directly at improvements
victories in national and international
sporting
competitions.
and
Experts from diverse
fields advised the government through a national advisory council.
The FASA had con-
siderable impact. Its agents established the Canada Games,set up coaching leadership and training
programs, initiated
facilities, founded
provincial cost-sharing programs to set up elite sporting
bursary programs for athletes, and poured
moneyinto
team developments and competitions.
Clearly, the governments
production in important
competitions
international
the various Canada versus the Soviet component intensive
target wasgold medal
such as the
Olympic
of the FASA seemed hollow by comparison.
However, in 1971, after an created Particip-
national-level fitness campaign aimed at improving
sonal fitness levels of every Canadian. Still, that propelled
Gamesand
Union hockey series of the 1970s. The fitness
study of Canadian fitness levels, the federal government
ACTION, a not-for-profit,
world hockey
the per-
world-class sport prestige wasthe vision
massivegovernment support for the 1976 Montreal Olympic Gamesand
the 1988 Calgary
Winter Olympic Games. The much-touted 1998 federal
(regarding the state of sports in
Canadajust before the turn of the century) underscored
the economic, social, and cultural impact that international our nation (Morrow
Mills Report
sporting prowess brings to
& Wamsley, 2013).
Conclusions Whole histories have been written on the evolution
of single sports, individual
teams, particular events, sporting clubs, and so forth. In this chapter,
athletes,
we have merely
touched on some of the stories, events, trends, issues,themes, and processesof sports contested development.
Theideological
connections between values held in the context of
sport from ancient to moderntimes are quite stark. Fair play, maledominance, social class control,
amateurism,
technology,
professionalism,
urbanization,
policies
of social
exclusion,
spectatorship,
and gender orders have all shaped the form and function
sport over time.
Canadian
Sport
in
Historical
Perspective61
of
Critical thinking
Questions
1.
Whatare some of the important
considerations historical researchers must consider?
2.
Whatother policies of exclusion, other than amateurism, are there in sport?
3. How did social class and social stratification 4.
impact sport in
Canada over time?
What weresome of the gender issues prevalent in Canadian sport evolution?
5. How did technological
changestransform sport in
Canada?
6. How and why did Montreal become such a pervasive force in organized sport? 7. How do heroesimpact sport and sport behaviours? 8.
WhatexamplesdowehaveofagenderorderinCanadiansport,andinwhatwaysdid that order manifestitself?
suggested
readings
Cosentino,F.(1978). Ned Hanlan(The CanadiansSeries). Toronto, ON: Fitzhenryand Whiteside. Hall, M. A.(2002). Thegirl andthe game: Ahistoryof womenssportin Canada.Peterborough, ON: BroadviewPress. Melancon,B.(2009). TheRocket: Acultural historyof MauriceRichard.Vancouver, BC: Greystone Press. Morrow, D., & Wamsley,K. G.(2013). Sportin Canada:A History(3rd ed.). Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press.(This work contains a complete, extensive bibliography of Canadiansports history.) Weider,B.(1976). Thestrongest man in history: Louis Cyr. Toronto, ON: Mitchell Press.
references Becket, H. W.(1882). The Montrealsnow shoeclub: Its history andrecord. Montreal, QC: Becket Brothers. Brown, A.(1980). Edward Hanlan: The worldsculling champion visits Australia. CanadianJournal of Historyof Sportand PhysicalEducation,11, 144. Cosentino,F.(1974). Ned HanlanCanadas premier oarsman: Acasestudy of nineteenth-century professionalism. Ontario History,66, 241250. Cosentino, F. (1975). A history of the concept of professionalismin Canadiansport. Canadian Journal of History of Sport and Physical Education, 6, 7581. Durant,
W.(1926).
Gillespie,
G. (2002).
Thestory of philosophy. New York, NY: Simon and Schuster. Theimperial embrace: British sportsmen and the appropriation of landscape in
nineteenth-century Canada. Unpublished doctoral dissertation, London,
University of
Western Ontario,
ON.
Hall, M. A.(2002). Thegirl andthe game: Ahistoryof womenssportin Canada.Peterborough, ON: BroadviewPress. Hughes,T.(1904). Tom Brownsschooldaysby an oldboy. New York, NY: Hurstand Company. Jobling, I. (1970). Sportin nineteenth-centuryCanada: Theeffectsof technologicalchangesonits development.Unpublisheddoctoral dissertation, Universityof Alberta,Edmonton, AB. Lindsay, P. L. (1969). A historyof sportin Canada,18071867. Unpublisheddoctoral dissertation, University of Alberta,Edmonton, AB.
62Chapter
3
Lindsay, P. L. (1970).
Theimpact of military garrisons on the development ofsport in British North
America. CanadianJournal of Historyof Sportand PhysicalEducation,1, 3344. Lindsay, P. L. (1972). GeorgeBeersand the national gameconcept: A behavioural approach.In Proceedingsof the Second CanadianSymposiumon the Historyof Sportand PhysicalEducation (pp. 2744). Edmonton, AB. Macdonald,C.(1976). TheEdmonton Grads,Canadas mostsuccessfulteam: Ahistory and analysis of their success. Unpublished mastersthesis, Universityof Windsor, Windsor,ON. Metcalfe, A. (1970). The form and function of physical activity in New France, 15341759. Canadian Journal of Historyof Sportand PhysicalEducation,1, 4564. Metcalfe, A.(1987). Canadalearnsto play: Theemergence of organizedsport, 18071914. Toronto, ON: McClelland & Stewart. Morrow, D.(1979). Lionel Pretoria Conacher. Journal of Sport History, 6, 537. Morrow,
D. (1981).
The powerhouse
of
Canadian sport:
The
Montreal
Amateur
Athletic
Association, inception to 1909. Journal of Sport History, 8, 2039. Morrow, D. (1982).
The Canadian image abroad: The great lacrosse tours of 1876 and 1883. In
Proceedings of the Fifth Canadian Symposium on the
History of Sport and Physical Education
(pp. 1123). London, ON. Morrow, D.(1986). A casestudy in amateur conflict: The athletic warin Canada,19061908. BritishJournalof Sports History,3, 183190. Morrow, D.(1987). Sweetheartsport: Barbara Ann Scott and the postWorld WarTwoimage of the female athlete in Canada. CanadianJournal of Historyof Sportand PhysicalEducation,18, 3654. Morrow,D., & Leyshon, G.(1987). GeorgeGoulding: Acasestudyin sporting excellence. Canadian Journalof Historyof Sportand PhysicalEducation,18, 2651. Morrow,D., & Wamsley,K. G.(2005). Sportin Canada:Ahistory. Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press. Morrow, D., & Wamsley, K. G.(2013). Sportin Canada: A history (3rd ed.). Toronto,
ON: Oxford
University Press. Weider, B. (1976).
Thestrongest manin history: Louis Cyr. Toronto,
Canadian
ON: Mitchell Press.
Sport
in
Historical
Perspective63
Chapter 4 SportandSocialStratification Rob Beamish
Levels of economic inequality
Unable to split the defence, Sidney Crosbys long shot wassteered into the corner by US
have
expanded across the country.
goalie Ryan Miller. Beating defenceman Brian Rafalski to the puck, Crosbystarted up
Dosfotos/PYMCA/Alamy
the boards before cycling it down to Jarome Iginla Suter moved on Iginla,
who had gone to the corner. As Ryan
Crosbysaw an opening to the net. Iggy,
second the puck was on and off Crosbys stick going 5-hole
he called, andin asplit through
Millergold
medal Canada! In an instant,
Crosbys 2010 golden
goal replaced Paul Hendersons 1972 Canada
Soviet hockey series goal of the century ment. And for good reasonthe their
asthe pinnacle of Canadian sporting achieve-
goal not only gave an overtime victory to Canada against
American rivals in the final event of the 2010
Winter Olympic Games wherefeel-
ings of nationalist pride were higher than ever, it also established a new Olympic record for gold medals at the
Winter Games. Still, other feats compete to rank asthe greatest
moment in Canadian sport: n
Donovan Baileys 1996 Atlanta
Olympic
Games gold-medal victory in the 100
metres, which also set a world record, put Canada at the top of the sprinting
64Chapter
4
world,a
position consolidated by the Canadian mens 4 the highly favoured nBetween
USrelay team right in their own backyard.
1915 and 1940, the Edmonton
nationally.
l00-metre relay victory, defeating
Gradsdominated womens basketball inter-
A sporting dynasty without equal, the
Grads won 502 of the 522 games
they played during their 25-year reign; they won 17 consecutive world championships and four n
Olympic gold medals.
The Canadian womens hockey team has demonstrated a similar dominance. first-ever
The
Womens World Championship was held in 1990, and since then the team
has won 10 world titles,
3 Olympic gold
medals, 1 Olympic silver
medal, and 12
3 Nations/4 Nations Cups. nFinally,
as victory
wasstolen from the Canadian womens soccer team in the semifi-
nal match at the 2012 London Olympic Gamesby a questionable call, another heroic
legend was woveninto the fabric of Canadianhistory, culture, and sport. Like the Edmonton
Gradsand the womens hockey team, the national soccer teams successes
serve as an inspiration to millions of Canadiansyoung and old, maleandfemale, and people of all abilities and racialized or ethnic backgrounds. Greatnessin sport centres on victorious struggle becausethe fundamental to formalized competitive sport in the modern erais to placefirst.
petitive forms of sport exist that are not committed to differentiation, unequal allocation
objective
And although less comranking, and the
of rewards, the essence of almost all high-profile sportsthe
Olympics is an exceptionis
fied system of reward and prestige. At the same time, however, fairnessequality petitive conditions,
which is ensured by the specific rules of the sportis
The co-presence of those oppositesequality comeseems stratification,
contradictory,
Special
the pursuit of victory and the associated creation of a strati-
in competition
of com-
alsosacrosanct.
and inequality
of out-
but in sport as well as in all other discussions of social
the presence of those two conditions is of pivotal importance.
Furthermore,
grasping the full extent of their complex interrelationship is central to a sociological understanding of sport and social stratification.
Sport
and Social Stratification:
Some preliminary
termS
Conceptually and ideally, the stratification systemfound in sport is a particular type: Sportis viewed as a meritocracy. A meritocracyis a hierarchical ranking and reward system in which an individuals
demonstrated performance determines whereshe or he will besituated in the
existing hierarchy. Sport is often viewed as the mostgenuine of meritocracies becauseall competitors face the same rules and compete on a level those who makethe mostof their abilitythrough
playing field.
It truly appearsthat
personal dedication to long-term
ration, sacrifice, and concerted, concentrated effort during the eventare
prepa-
the victors. The
winnersjustifiably receive the greatestrewards in a meritocratic system. In fact, sport advocates maintain that among sports
mostoutstanding and socially significant qualities areits
meritocratic structure and the modelit holds out for other social institutions to emulate. However, beforesport or a specific competitive sport system can be genuinely
merito-
cratic, it mustpossesstwo fundamental equalities: equality of opportunity and equality of condition. Equality of opportunity is the
morestraightforward
of the two and is self-explanatory.
Sport
and
Social
Stratification65
To ensurethat asport systemis truly meritocraticandthat the very bestriseto the top based ontheir demonstrated merit,every potential participant musthavethe opportunityto take part;that is, this chanceto take part mustbeequally availableto everyone.If barriersimpede anyindividuals opportunity to try to take partin the competitionwhether it is dueto ones class,sex (with the exception of sex-specificcompetitions), gender,sexuality, race, ethnicity, physicalor cognitive ability, or geographicallocation, for examplethen the system cannot and will not begenuinely meritocratic. Denyingan opportunity to any person means that the full talent pool hasnot beenassessed andthat the personor personsexcluded maywellbebetterthan whoeverplacesfirst in the limited pool of contestants.Theimmediate assumptionof many Canadians is that everyonehasthe opportunity to competein any and all sportsin Canada. However,uponreflection mostrealizethat this is simply not the case. A numberof variables,such asthe availability ofteams,clubs,orleagues;the necessary facilities; accessto the properequipment;andthe ability to getto the locale wherethe sport is played,prevent manyCanadians from having an equal opportunityto playall sports. Equality of condition is a morecomplex concept and also harderto ensure.In its simplestterms, equality of condition means that everypersontaking partin acompetitive event doesso under the same conditions. Layingthe foundation for Canadashigh-performance sport systemin A Proposed SportsPolicyfor Canadians, the late John Munro,then Ministerof Healthand Welfare, recognizedthe importance of equality of condition: We mustface the fact that its only fair, just as a dashin a track and field
meetis only
fair, that everyone hasthe same starting line, and the same distance to run. nately, in terms of facilities,
coaching, promotion
Unfortu-
and programming, the sports scene
today resembles a track on which some people have twenty-five
yards to run, some
fifty, some one-hundred, and some as muchas a mile or more.(Munro,
1970, pp. 45)
The unequal conditions Munro noted are among the easiestto eliminate eventhough, despite Sport Canadasefforts over almost half a century, significant inequities in facilities, qualified coaches, promotion, and athlete development programsstill plaguethe meritocratic ambitions of sports leaders in Canada(see Chapter 12). Sadly,far more entrenchedinequalities of condition alsoendure,and they are becomingincreasingly prohibitive barriersto all attempts to create a truly meritocratic sport systemin Canada. Theselatter factors, along with those Munroidentified, remain problematic becauseof the existing system ofstructural inequality in Canadaasa whole. To properlyaddress the relationship betweensport andstratificationin Canada,one must examineorganizedcompetitivesport within the larger context ofthe prevailingconditions of Canadiansocialinequality and drawuponthe majortheoreticalinsightsthat sociologistshave developedregardingsocialinequality. BecauseChapters5, 6, and 10presentdetailedaccounts of howrace,ethnicity, sex,gender,andeducationinfluence equalityof opportunityand condition, this chapter willfocus on howthe economyandsocial classstructure Canadasstratification system,in general,and within sportin particular.In addition, beginning with afocus on the economyand classis appropriatefrom a chronological perspectivebecausethe earliest sociologicalstudies ofsocialinequality emphasizedclassand economicchangefar morethan race, ethnicity, sex, gender,or education. Oncethe classicalposition on classis understood andthe developmentsintroduced by morecontemporarytheorists arealsoincorporatedinto the discussion,one canthen weavein factors otherthan classthat influence anindividuals life chances.To begin, whatis the current profile of economicstratificationin Canada?
66Chapter
4
Social inequality:
the canadian
Profile
The Occupy Movementof 20112012 turned the profile of socialinequality in the United Statesand Canada into aprime-time media issuefor goodreason.Patternsofsocialinequality in both countriesshow agrowing divergencebetweenthe rich andthe poorstrikingly capturedin the top 1% epithet. Allrhetoric aside,overthe past 30years,the richest group of Canadianshasincreasedtheir share ofthe total nationalincome while middle-incomeand the poorestgroupshavelost some oftheirs. Thisis true eventhough the incomes ofthe poorest Canadianshaverisen marginally(see ConferenceBoardof Canada,2012;Fortin, Green, Lemieux, Milligan, & Riddell,2012; Hunter,Sanchez,& Douglas,2012; Yalnizyan,2010). Thestandard measureofincome inequality is the Giniindex. Theindex rangesfrom 0to 1; a Giniindex of 0 meansthat every person hasexactly the sameincome, and an index of 1 means that one person hasall of the income. The higherthe Giniindex number,the greaterthe level ofinequality. Figure4.1showsthe Giniindex for marketincome (earningsfrom employment or self-employment,investment income, and private retirementincome) and the index for disposableincome (after-tax income plusthe governmenttransfersto lower-income Canadians). The graphsillustrate two notable points. First, the Giniindex for marketincome is higherthan it is for disposableincome. The marketincome index risesfrom 0.37in 1980 to 0.44in 2007,showing atrend toward greaterinequality in Canada(both of those years werethe peak of economic booms; Fortin et al., 2012). Second,the graph showsthat despiteprogressivetaxes andtransfersto poorer Canadians,the Giniindex hasrisen over the past20 years.In the late 1970sandthroughout mostofthe 1980s,inequality in disposableincome fell from 0.3in 1976to alow of 0.281in 1989(Conference Boardof Canada, 2012). However,duringthe 1990sthe Giniindex for disposableincome grewto morethan 0.3 andremainedrelatively constant at 0.32 duringthe first decadeofthe 21st century. The growing disparity in income between the top 1% and the rest of Canadian income earners hascoincided with a significant changein economic policies within Canadaand the rest of the Westernworld. Theshift from Keynesian-inspiredeconomic figure 4.1 Canadian Inequality
Trends
0.5
0.45
0.4
Coefficient
0.35 Gini
0.3
0.25
1976
198119861991
1996
200120062011
Year
Market IncomeDisposable
Income
Source: Fortin, N., Green, D., Lemieux, T., Milligan, K., & Riddell, C. 2012. Canadian inequality: options. Canadian Public Policy, 38, 12145.,
Recent developments and policy
(fig1, p123). Reprinted by permission.
Sport
and
Social
Stratification67
policies, which supported governmentinvolvement in the economyand the provision of numeroussocial services,to monetarist-inspiredpoliciesin which the governmentis less involved in regulating the economyand moreand moresocial servicesareremovedfrom public sector responsibility and put in the hands of private sector, profit-driven corporations (Harvey, 2007; Keynes,1936; Von Mises,1934; Whitson,2011). The withdrawal ofthe governmentfrom its regulatory andservicerolesis often called neoliberalisma newliberalism that Harvey(2007) describesasfollows: Neoliberalism is in the first instance a theory of political economic practices that proposesthat human well-being can best be advanced by liberating individual neurial freedoms and skills
within an institutional
entrepre-
framework characterized by strong
private property rights, free
markets, and free trade. The role of the state is to create
and preserve an institutional
framework appropriate to such practices. . . . State inter-
ventions in
markets(once created) must be kept to a bare minimum because, accord-
ing to the theory, the state cannot possibly possessenough information
to second-guess
marketsignals (prices) and because powerful interest groups will inevitably bias state intervention
distort and
(particularly in democracies) for their own benefit. (p. 2)
Whileneoliberal policies createthe overall context for the growing disparity ofincome and wealthin Canada,there are other particular factors stemming from neoliberalisms impact aroundthe globe and the increasing interdependency of various marketsglobally (i.e., the processof globalizationdiscussed in Chapter14). Alongsidethe Giniindex, another wayto expressincome inequality is to divide all income earnersinto five groupings of equal size(or quintiles) and see what proportion of the nations total income falls to each (if all incomes wereequal, 20% of the national income wouldfall to eachquintile). In 1980,the top quintile of Canadianincome earners received 45% of the nations total income. In 2007, Canadiansin the upper quintile received morethan half of the total income (52%) (Fortin et al., 2012). No matter what technique is usedto measureincome inequality, there is clearly a growing disparity betweenthe rich andthe poorin Canada.
The Top 1% Becauseofthe Occupy Movementsactions, mediaattention wasdrawnto the top 1%. There area numberof pointsto noteaboutthis elite 1% within Canada.First, whoconstitutesthis group?In 2007,the yearfor whichthe mostrecent dataareavailable,the richest 1% of Canadiansconsistedof about 246,000individuals with a minimumincome of $169,000and an averageincome of $404,000(Yalnizyn, 2010). Thetop 1%is predominantly male(82.7%) and betweenthe agesof 35 and 64(79% ofthe upper1% versus54.5%ofthe populationasa whole). Thisgroupis better educatedthan mostCanadians (58.1% havea bachelorsdegree or higher versus19% of all Canadians).Theyalso worklong hours(52% work morethan 50 hoursa weekversus18.6% of all Canadians);they hold positionsin senior management (14.1% versus0.9%),in management(19.1% versus6.1%), as health care professionals (11.6% versus2.0%), orin businessandfinance (7.1% versus1.8%)(seeFortin et al., 2012). Howthe top 1% becomeswealthy hasalsochanged.Priorto the 1930s,highlevels of wealthstemmedfrom assets such asstocks,bonds,and property,but the ConferenceBoardof Canada(2012) indicatesthat [t]he phenomenalgrowthin incomes ofthe super-richis not
68Chapter
4
Figure 4.2 Share of Total Income in Canada, Richest 1% 20%
18%
16%
14%
12%
10%
8%
6% 1920
193019401950196019701980199020002010 Year
Source: Fortin, N., Green, D., Lemieux, T., Milligan, K., & Riddell, C. 2012. Canadian inequality: options. Canadian Public Policy, 38, 12145.
Recent developments and policy
(fig4, p127). Reprinted by permission.
dueto the assets they own. Krugman(2009) agrees; the majorityof multi-millionairesincomes is salaryand bonuses:Even at the verytop, the highest0.01 percentofthe populationthe richest onein ten thousandalmost halfoftheir income comesin the form of compensation (p. 130). Thesametrend existsin the UnitedStatesand Western Europe. Figure4.2 showsthe share of allincomes that the top 1%s earningsrepresent. Among the graphs moststriking featuresis the growingshareoftotal income that the top 1%accrues beginningin 1980.In the late 1970s,the top 1% hadincomes that wereabout eight times larger than all other Canadians;by 2010that share hadalmostdoubledto 14timesthat of all other Canadians.Thislevel ofincome disparity hasnot existedsincethe GreatDepressionof 1929 whenthe top 1% captured18% of total income. Theparallel betweenthe economic downfall of 1929 andthe present,along with the economic crisesof recent years,indicates whyeconomistsandsociologistsareso concerned with growingincome disparityin the West.
Factors Contributing
to Economic Inequality
Mostof the wage-gapdisparity occurredduringthe economicrecessionsin the 1980sand 1990s,but the effects differedamong workersyounger workerssuffered morethan established ones(Boudarbat, Lemieux, & Riddell,2010). Duringthe two recessions,entrantsto the labour marketcould notfind jobs orthey securedpositionsatlow entrance-levelsalaries. In the intervening years,those young workers wereunableto achievethe incomes they would havereached with higherstarting salaries. Theselower salariesexplain some of the growing disparityin incomes, and the future is not promising. Asolder workersretire from the workforceand younger workerssalarieslag behindtraditional income trajectories,the wagegap betweenthe top 1% andthe rest of Canadasworkforce will widenfurther. Technology hasalsoplayedarole in the gaps growth. Theincreasing useof computers andspecializedknowledgeskills pushedupthe wagesfor high-demand, well-educated
Sport
and
Social
Stratification69
workers, but it also allowed firms to outsource production to low-wage countries. This may have benefited consumers through lower demand for low and unskilled labour in
prices in some instances, but it reduced the Canada, allowing their
wagesto fall (see Fortin
et al., 2012; Goldin & Katz, 2008). The use of outsourced labour anyone interested in sport or the sporting goodsindustry. focus, the use of sweatshops and the exploitation
is afamiliar scenario to
While Nike has been the
of child labour in the
produce sporting goods at lower costs and higher profit
main
Global South to
margins has been a prominent
mediatheme since the 1990s (see Greenberg & Knight, 2004; Kaufman & Wolff, 2010). For many Canadians, the impact
ofthe exploitation
South is morethan a moralissueit lapse of the garment industry in
of inexpensive labour in the
Global
represents the loss of not just jobs but the virtual col-
North America (see Brooks, 2007).
Theincreasing use of computers in all areasof the economy eliminates middle-income jobs as technology reduces them to routine tasks that do not require sophisticated skills. Thisscenario occursto different degreesthroughout
Canada,the United States,the United
Kingdom, and Germany(Fortin et al., 2012; Goos & Manning, 2007; Green & Sand, 2011). Theimpact has not been asextreme in
Canadaasit has beenin the United States because
there is a higher participation rate in postsecondary education, creating a pool of highly skilled knowledge
workers, a group Florida (2002) hasreferred to asthe creative class.
Three other factors affecting economic inequality are the minimum wage,the declining unionization of the workforce, and the increasingly
widespread use of temporary work-
ers. The minimum wagetends to set the floor for incomes in a country. Asaresult, European countries with higher minimum wagesrelative to the average wagedo not show the same income disparities as Canada and the United States. Autor,
Manning, and Smith (2010)
show that there has been a sizable decline in the real value of the
minimum wagein the
United Statessince the 1980s, which contributed significantly to the growing inequality identified
bythe Occupy Movement.In contrast, Fortin and colleagues (2012) indicate that
increases in the minimum wagein virtually every Canadian province collectively
prevented
the great wagedisparity that is found in the United Statesfrom occurring in Canada. The impact of unions on wagesis somewhat are higher than those of nonunionized the
Canadian income structure.
wagesof the lowest-paid in
At the same time,
Canada, the
analysis of the relationship
United States, and the
1980s, and 1990s show that unionization the least in Canada. Wageinequality
in
Card,
between unions and wage
United Kingdom during the 1970s,
declined the
mostin the United Kingdom and
grew in all three countries, with the largest growth
occurring in the United Kingdom and the smallest in about 15% of the growth in
wages
however, unions tend to raise the
unionized workers,thus creating greater income equality.
Lemieux, and Riddells (2004) inequality
mixed. Onthe one hand, union
workers. This reinforces a growing inequality
Canadian inequality
Canada. Theseresearchers attribute
to declining unionization rates.
More
than 20% of the rising inequality in the United Statesand the United Kingdomis attributable to the greater lossesin union membershipin those countries.
Sincethe recessionof 2008,temporary workhasgrownat morethan three timesthe rate of permanent work (14.2% versus 3.8%) (Statistics Canada, 2013a). Between May2008 and
2012, ofthe 354,000 newpositionscreatedin the Canadianeconomy79% weretemporary jobs. Temporary workersreceive, on average, 46% less paythan those in permanent positions.
Whilethe natureandscopeoftemporary workvariesconsiderably,it seemsthat temporary, precarious employment is becoming a permanent feature of the Canadian economy. Without
70Chapter
4
the benefit of secure, year-round employment andincome, this change has also contributed to Canadas wideningincome gap (Grabell, 2013; Statistics Canada, 2009). Theimpact this has on young Canadians opportunities to take part in sport is quite obviousfamilies
faced
with precarious employment have to conserve resources wherever possible, and this turns activities and purchasessuch asschool and community sport registrations and equipment into fringe luxuries that arereplaced by cheaperforms of passive, home entertainment. Theimpact of technological change, outsourcing of production, declining unionization, and the growing use of temporary workers have all contributed to, and will continue to exacerbate, the divide between the rich and the poor in
Canada,the United States,the United
Kingdom, and WesternEurope. Young workers with little education andfew marketableskills are mostaffected by these factors. Atthe same time, however,those in
middle orlower-mid-
dle occupational categories have also experienced a decline in income, which hascontributed to the increasing polarization of rich and poor in Canadaand other developed nations. Onthe basis ofthe above, it is clear that although one might maintain that the principles of classical liberalism should lead to a genuine meritocracy and that this is the best way to allocate resources and rewards in a society, the stratification
system in
Canadais
not a pure meritocracy and it is not a continuous, hierarchical system. In reality, there is a growing divergence between those at the top of the economic structure and those at the bottom, with the
middlelayers shrinking in size.
Stratification
early
in canadian
Sport:
StudieS
Surprisingly, the patterns of sport participation among Canadians have not received as much empirical analysis as one might assumegiven the importance of sport participation for young Canadiansin particular. Nevertheless,several studies have examined the relationship between athletes socioeconomic status (SESa
composite indicator offamily income, education, and
occupation in the paidlabour force) and the types and level ofsport participation. Eachstudy hasshown the same pattern ofinequitable involvement
despitefederal and provincial govern-
ments attempts to eliminate economic inequality asa majorfactor that excludes manyyoung Canadiansfrom participating in sport and rising within the sport pyramid. Gruneaus (1972) groundbreaking study of Canada Gamesathletes showed that the competitors level
were drawn heavily from families
white-collar positions, while those whose parents wereinvolved in blue-collar and
primary industrial
occupations weresignificantly
athletes werealso disproportionately tional
where parents held professional and high-
achievement.
under-represented. The Canada Games
drawn from families
with higher incomes and educa-
Using Blishen scores that indicated
a composite
SES ranking,
Gruneaufound that 37% of the athletes came from the top three Blishen categories, while
only 17% ofthe Canadianlabour force ranked there (Blishen scores wereone of the most widely used and generally accepted composite rankings of socioeconomic status that soci-
ologistsemployedin their studies of stratification patternsin Canadaduring the 1960s through to the 1980s). Only 29% of the athletes came from the two lowest categories,
although 63% ofthe Canadianlabour force ranked in those categories. Kenyons (1977) study of elite track and field athletes and McPhersons (1977) study
of hockey playersfound similar patterns. Kenyonfound that, with 63% of the track and field athletes coming from families ranking in the top three Blishen categories and only
Sport
and
Social
Stratification71
29% coming from families in the bottom two, track andfield
was more exclusive than the
sport system as a whole. McPhersons data on elite hockey players were comparable to Gruneaus22%
of the players parents werelocated in the top three Blishen categories.
Beamishs(1990) study focused on national team athletesin 1986. He demonstrated that despite morethan 15 years of federal government support for high-performance sport and a number of strategiesto reduce the impact of family background on athletic participation, patterns of significant
exclusion still existed among Canadas top athletes. Close to half of
Canadas national team athletes (44%) came from families in the top 20% of Canadian income earners; only 10% camefrom the bottom 20% of income earners. Canadas best athletes were drawn from families with fathers in
managerial positions at almost two and a half
times the expectedrate, andthose whosefathers wereemployedin the professionaland technical sectors of the economy were morethan double their proportional representation. other end of the workforce, athletes with parentsin farming, logging,
At the
mining, crafts, produc-
tion, and unskilled labour weresignificantly under-represented. The data on Blishen scores showedthat since Gruneausstudy, Canadas national teams had become moreexclusive68% of the athletes camefrom families in the top three Blishen categories. Whiteand Curtis(1990), using a completely different dataset,found similar patterns of representation. On behalf of Sport Canada, EKOS Research Associates(1992) performed a comprehensive study of Canadas high-performance athletes. One of the key areas of concern wasthe sociodemographic profile of Canadas national team athletes. Sport Canada wanted to know whether factors such assex, language, education, and economic status affected accessibility to the sport system. The results of this exhaustive study werethe same asthose
mentioned by
earlier researchers. EKOSfound that there wasan over-representation of Anglophones among Canadas best athletes. Canadas athletes did not come from average Forty-one percent of the athletes fathers and 30% of their
Canadian families.
mothers had university-level edu-
cations (compared to 14% in the Canadian population asa whole). Like Beamish (1990), EKOS found that athletes came disproportionately from families with parents employed in professional, managerial, or administrative
positions.
that the various funding and support programs in
Mostimportantly,
EKOS concluded
Canadas high-performance sport system
had not reduced or eliminated inequalities of socioeconomic condition as a majorfactor in determining who would rise to the top of the Canadian high-performance sport pyramid. None of these results were or are particularly surprising.
All of the empirical studies
before, during, and after these early studies have shown that ones position
within the
overall social structure significantly
influences the extent and nature of sport involve-
ment. Drawing his conclusion from
morethan a dozen studies between 1973 and his own,
Wilson(2002) noted that research has repeatedly shown that indicators are positive predictors of sport involvement review article of sport study,
of social class
(p. 5). Similarly, in their comprehensive
Washington and Karen (2001) emphasized that From
our
perspective,social classis a key component of our understandingof sports (p. 190). Theimpact of classseems atfirst glance to be minimal, but the overall result is significant.
Partofthe reasonfor the shift to neoliberalpolicies wasthe apparentoverextensionof public servicesleading to crisesat almost everylevel of government (see Whitson,2011). Asaresult,
whetherit wasatthe federal, provincial, orlocal level, publicserviceagencieshadto reduce their costs. Onesolution wasthe reduction of services andthe other wasto introduce userfees.
Oncethose fees aresetin place, however,they arerarely removed;instead they increase, creating a growing barrier to lower SESfamilies participation in sport andrecreation.
72Chapter
4
Not every Paul
Canadian
Kitagaki
has access to long-track
Jr./ZUMA
speed
skating
training
facilities.
Press, Inc./Alamy
School boards,faced with some of the samefiscal constraints in addition to increased demands to
meet provincially
established standards on standardized academic perfor-
mancetests, reduced time for physical education to spend moretime on the core academic subjects. Those small changes not only reduced (and sometimes eliminated) the amount of time that children spend in sport and physical activity on a daily basis,they also limited the opportunities for some children to discover different sports and activitiesactivity forms where they might thrive. For some lower SES Canadians, school sport and community recreation programs are often the only physical activity opportunities in which they can take part.
Whenthose options are reduced or eliminated,
children from lower
SES
groups are denied the opportunity to discover their physical skills and athletic talents. Health, recreation, and welfare wereonce at the centre offederal, provincial, and municipal governments
mandatesas public goods.In the neoliberal era,sport and recreation are no
longer viewed as essentialservicesfor all Canadians;they have become individuals
pursuits
that consumers are expected to initiate and fund themselves and, although some sports seem to cost verylittle, even the smallest cost can be prohibitive to many Canadianfamilies.
claSS
and Social
inequality:
early
theorieS
Thestudiesthat havefocused onsport and social inequality basedon data exploring the relationship
between sport participation
and income, or the morecomplex cluster of fac-
tors represented by SES, have drawn their inspiration from a rich scholarly tradition where classpeoples
relationship
to
what Karl Marx ([1859] 1911) called the social
Sport
and
Social
Stratification73
relations of productionis an individuals
viewed asthe mostsignificant structural factor determining
life chances. Although the study of class began with early political econo-
mists, and Marx([1852] 1934) indicated that he did not discover the in
modernsociety nor yet the struggle between them
existence of classes
(p. 56), the idea of class and class
analysis is mostclosely associated with his name.
Karl Marx In a section that Friedrich Engels placed at the end of Capital, Volume 3 (a workleft unfinished by Marx at his death),
Marx ([1894] 1909) began to answer the questions, What
constitutes a class? What makes wagelabourers, capitalists, and landlords constitute the three great social classes[of
modern society, resting upon the capitalist
mode of produc-
tion]? (p. 1031). Unfortunately, the fragment breaks off before Marx develops the answer fully.
However, Marx wrote enough about classesin other pieces to
the fundamental
aspects of class clear and give insight into
have remained so influential
make his position on
why class and class analysis
in the study of social stratification.
For Marx,there werethree fundamental
aspectsto class. Thefirst is the objective
or
structural aspect of class, which determines whereindividuals stand within the economic structure of society and, moreimportantly, tion.
within the power structure of a social forma-
Analyzing the dynamics of class conflict in France in the 1840s and 1850s, Marx
([1852] 1935) noted that millions
of families live under economic conditions
tence that separate and distinguish them fromoften withother individuals
classes(p. 109). Theidentification
placing them in hostile
of exiscontrast
of a class basedon the role that a
massof
performs within the social division of labour is referred to as a class in itself
(Marx, [1852] 1935; see also Cohen, 1980; Dos Santos, 1970; Draper, 1978). Thesecond aspect of classconcernsits subjective playsin the constitution
aspectthe
role classconsciousness
of a class.In The Poverty of Philosophy, Marx([1847] 1936) noted
that in the transition from feudalism to capitalism, economic circumstances had transformed the massof the people of the country into capital has created for this This
massis thus already a class as against capital, but not yet for itself.
struggle against capital that this itself.
workers (p. 145). The
massa common situation, common interests,
domination
of
he continued. It is only in the
massbecomes united, and constitutes itself as a classfor
Through the realization of their common circumstances and the presence of a class
opposingtheir intereststhe
formation
of common interestsand
by engaging in astruggle
against the opposing class, a classin itself becomes a class for itselfthat
is, a class that
recognizes and struggles for its own interests (see also Marx & Engels,[1845] 1939). Oncethe separate individuals
become part of a class for itself, then
([1845] 1939) emphasized, the class in its turn achieves an independent
Marxand Engels existence over
againstthe individuals sothat the individuals nowseetheir interestsin classterms rather than individualistic
ones (p. 49). This represents the third aspect of classfor
Marxthe
idea of classsolidarity. Marx maintainedthat the massofindividuals within a classthat is in and for itself no longer think and act autonomously of one anotherthey
act as mem-
bers of their class (e.g., as membersof the working class). Classes,not autonomous individuals,
now become the majoragentsin the drama of history, andit is classesthat are
stratified and conflict with each other. There were very sound reasons why people like Mill, and John Stuart
74Chapter
4
Adam Smith, David Ricardo, James
Mill, as well as Marxand Engels, identified the three great classes
(wage labourers, capitalists, and landlords) asthe major elements in the social stratification of Europe asfeudalism gave wayto industrial capitalism. All of the majorsocial changesthey witnessed appeared to beshaped by the spread and growing power of industrial capitalism. Classvisibly shaped an individuals
life chances, and the working and living
conditions of
the working classled to the formation of an identifiable class consciousness and the struggles of the working class against the capitalist class (see Engels[1845] 1950; Thompson, 1963). Nevertheless, by the end of the 19th and beginning of the 20th centuries, ascapitalist economies became morestable, it became obvious to ensuing sociologists that class position alone did not completely determine an individuals life chances. Theformation of a classfor itself,
with alargely unified conception of its needs, wasa phenomenon of the past and not
the present orforeseeable future (see Dahrendorf, 1959; Giddens,1973).
Max Weber Max Weberis regarded asthe theorist who did the mostto develop class analysis at the turn of the 20th century in view of the changesthat had become institutionalized ist societies (Dahrendorf, 1959; Giddens, 1973).
within capital-
Weber(1968) introduced four
majorcon-
ceptual developments that furthered the study of class and class-basedsocieties: a) the use of the term community to locate the basesand exercise of power, b) the view that classes were morefragmented than
Marx had suggested, c) the impact of status groups (Stande) and
how they incompletely
overlapped with class, and d) the emphasis of the role of political
parties and how they influenced class power. Each of these changes meritssome elaboration. Like
Marx, Webersinterest in class stemmed from questions of power, which he
defined asthe ability of anindividual
or a group to achieve his, her, ortheir objectives even
when resisted by others. To identify
where power wasexercised,
development
was his notion of community, although the term
the nation, a province, a city, or what weconventionally included in
wasquite encompassing of asa community
group of people.
Weber,there werethree fundamental
basesof power within a community: class,
status, and political party. Theseare the first complexities that
Weberintroduced into the
notion of class and class analysis. Poweris exercised in an identifiable which
Weberdesignated as a community,
related to the interaction
basesfor social action
is
not communities;
they
merely represent possible, and
(1968, p. 927). He argued that class exists when a num-
ber of people share the same life chances because of the particular livelihoodseffectively
sphere of action,
and power is not related simply to classit
of class,status, and the formal political process.
Classes, Weber wrote, are frequent,
were
Weberssense of the term. The key point is that power is exercised within and
among an identifiable For
think
Webersfirst conceptual
as employers or employees. As a result,
with atwofold conception of class:Property basic categories of all class situations
waythey gain their
Weber,like
Marx, began
andlack of property are,therefore, the
(p. 927).
Marx,it should be noted, was well aware of dividedinterests within classes(see,for example,
Marx,[1852]
1934). It
waslater
Marxists who often reduced his ideas to the
provocative phrasingof The CommunistManifesto and presentedhistheory of classstruggle as a dualistic opposition. In response to those interpretations,
Weberrecaptured the
complexity of Marxs actual position on classanalysis. But Weberalso movedbeyond Marx. Webers second conceptual development more manifold conception of class than
was his explicit identification
of a far
Marx.
Sport
and
Social
Stratification75
Within the categories of employers and employees, Webernotedthat ones classposition also depended on the type of property the employer had and wasusingto advance his or her capital and the type of work that the employee undertook. Onthe employers side,
Weber
indicated some of the differences that existed within their class position. The ownership of dwellings;
workshops; warehouses;stores; agriculturally usableland in large orsmall-holdings
would produce different classpositions. Similarly, the ownership of mines; cattle; men(slaves) or the control of mobile instruments of production, or capital goods of all sorts, especially money or objects that can easily beexchangedfor money all created distinctions that differentiated the classsituation of employers (Weber, 1968, p. 928). Employees, Webernoted, are also highly differentiated on the basis of the skills and services they bring to the market. Basedon his conception of greater diversity in the objective dimensions of class, Weberregarded the development of ashared classconsciousness with muchgreaterskepticism than The third change
Marxdid.
Weber(1968) introduced is the concept and significance of status
groups (Stande) within a community.
Webernoted that groups of individuals
within a com-
munity come together or form associations based on shared lifestyles or views of life. Even though there wassome overlap between classsituations and status groups,it plete. In addition,
wasnot com-
Weberindicated that groups enjoying high status could exercise elements
of power that were not necessarilyequivalent to their actual economic or class position. Weber was well aware of the significance of how political parties could wield power in the modern period, and this washisfourth conceptual development in the analysis of class and class-basedsocieties. Although he was unaware of Antonio Gramscis use of the term hegemony(see Chapters 1 and 2) to describe the same process Weber hadin
mind, Weber
also believed that individuals and groups could exercise considerable political power without necessarily holding high status positions or inordinate
economic power. By situating
themselves in positions where they could shape peoples perceptions of what is fair and justby
projecting their
particular ideas as a form of common sensepolitical
parties,
drawing upon the massiveresources of the state, could quietly and unobtrusively present a particular worldview as normal, natural, and inevitable. In short, sional than
Webers conception
of social stratification
Marxs and significantly
at the turn of the 20th century offered.
positions many Marxists
Webers multidimensional conception
cation wasalso a majorsource of inspiration of sport and social stratification.
was much more multidimen-
moreso than the simplified
of stratifi-
and theoretical guidance for the early studies
Nevertheless, contemporary sociologists have continued
to refine the theory of classin response to the further consolidation and growing complexity of a capitalist society as well as a growing awareness of how factors other than class influence individuals
life chances and positions within the social structure.
claSS and Social inequality: contemporary
theorieS
Although a number of sociologists have developed theories of social inequality that ana-
lysts have employedin recent studies of sport and social stratification, two of the most significant and influential
are those of Anthony Giddens and Pierre Bourdieu.
While dif-
fering in severalrespects, Giddensand Bourdieusideas complementeach other in important ways.
76Chapter
4
Giddens and Bourdieu draw generously from social inequality.
Marxand
Weberin their conceptions of
As a result, class remains central to their understanding of inequality,
but their conceptions of class are also part of systematically developed sociological theories. One of the mainfeatures of their
work, which shapes their analyses of social stratifi-
cation, is an integrated conception of human (1979; 1984), or subjectivism
agency and social structure
and objectivism
for
Giddens
for Bourdieu (1973; 1989).
Anthony Giddens Onsocial action, Giddens(1984) arguesthat [t]he ences, is neither the experiences of the individual
basic domain of study of the social sciactor, nor the existence of any form of
social totality, but social practices ordered acrossspace and time
(p. 2). Social action
must
beseen asa continuousflow of conduct,rather than treating purposes,reasons, etc., assomehow aggregated together
(Giddens, 1979, p. 2, emphasis added). Asa result, Giddens does
not start with either the social structure or the human agent. Histheory of structuration centres on the recursive nature of human activitiesthat ring) nature of human action.
is, the recurring (or reoccur-
Mostsocial action is repetitive and it is through these recur-
ring activities that we produce and largely reproduce social action (see Giddens, 1984). Turning to the notion of social structure, theory to reconceptualize
one of sociologys
key termsstructure.
that structures in social action are not things, lungs,
Giddens (1976; 1979; 1984) useslanguage Giddens emphasizes
like the girders of a building or the heart,
muscles, and so on of an organism (as structuralfunctionalist
analogies suggest).
Instead, structures are resources (just like the English langugage is a resource that people useto communicate)
and rules (to communicate
meaningfully, people mustfollow the
rules of the English language) that are drawn upon and simultaneously
created and re-
created asindividuals carry out their recursive social practices. Like language, structures or resources and rulessimultaneously its various rules enable communication, municated and how it is communicated.
enable and constrain. The English language and but these rules also constrain Giddensterms this the
Giddens idea is actually quite familiar participate in sport. rules that they
duality of structure.
who study sport and those who
A game of hockey cannot take place until the players agree on the
will followare
perhaps even raises
to students
what can be com-
we playing real
hockey rules,
or are slap shots and
not allowed? Rulesgive the game structurethey
let us know what
is expected and allow usto participate and predict what others will do. Therules adopted for a game enable it to take place, but they also constrain what is and is not permitted. The recursive nature of social action is also clearly evident in sport. NHL games across North America are virtually the same although, depending on the particular skills and strengths of the teams playing and the officials enforcing the rules, each gameis notidentical.
Similarly, outdoorshinny gamesacrossCanadaareequallyasrecursivethey the same with slight variations in local rules even though the rules of shinny
areall virtually are not writ-
ten anywhereand aresimply passedonfrom playerto playerand generationto generation. Giddens(1984) draws attention to an important
contrast between the rules that funda-
mentally, orintensively, influence our actions versusthose that are moresuperficial. He notes that the former are informal rules that are tacitly (almost unconsciously) understood
by humanagents and are not associatedwith any formal punishmentsif they are broken. Giddenscontrasts these unwritten rules with the clearly formalized rules that have explicitly
Sport
and
Social
Stratification77
stated punishments if they are broken. Thetacit, informal rules arethe onesthat teammates, for example, follow in the flow of a game or in their interactions
within the locker room,
while the formal rules are the actual, written, and enforced rules of the game or specified team regulations. Surprisingly perhaps, the tacit, informal,
and weakly sanctioned rules predominate in
the recursive nature of all types of social action, including sport, rather than the clearly formalized,articulated rules and their sanctions (the relationship is the opposite of what one expects). One only hasto think about the unwritten
codes that predominate in sports
how some plays orinfractions are accepted assimply
part of the game while others cross an
unofficial line and are deplored by everyone (e.g., running up the score on a much weaker opponent, continuing to celebrate goals whenthe score becomeslopsided, or intentionally injuring an opposing player). Giddens(1973) usesall of the ideas noted above to develop his own theory in
his book The ClassStructure of the Advanced Societies. Before examining
Giddens theory of class and how it applies to sport, Bourdieus work meritsattention.
Pierre Bourdieu Characterizing his work asa constructivist ism,
structuralism
Bourdieus (1989) two key concepts integrating
social structure (objectivism)
are habitus and field.
stems from two completely interrelated
and a structuralist
constructiv-
human agency (subjectivism)
and
Bourdieu argues that social action
points of origin: the subjective side, consisting of
schemes of perception, thought, and action,
which constitute
what Bourdieu calls habi-
tus, and the objective side, which are the social structures/spaces Bourdieu calls fields within which groups (which, he notes, are ordinarily
call[ed] classes) act (p. 14).
The idea of afield is a metaphor that students of sport can relate to instantly. is a hierarchically
arranged, delimited space
and skills (different forms of capitaleconomic,
where individuals
Afield
with different abilities
social, and cultural)
compete for posi-
tions within the hierarchy (Bourdieu [1983] 1986; 1993; Bourdieu & Wacquant, 1992). The network or configuration
of positions define the field and distribute different types of
power (or capital), the profits at stake, and the demands madeupon the players/actors in the field.
All one hasto do is think
of a football
or soccer field and the players spread out
on it with each one using his or her distinct skills, fulfilling
specific assignments based on
their particular position, to outperform their counterparts so that their team triumphs in the end. Social fields, like the fields of sport, are delimited, structured spaces where players, occupying particular positions, compete to gain personal distinction
and to distin-
guish themselves from others (see Bourdieu, 2000). Habitusis one of Bourdieus
mostcomplex terms. It refers to a system of dispositions
representing a practical sense of how to conduct ones actionshow
one is disposed
(inclined, influenced, predisposed,prompted,settled) to act. Like athletes,individuals, based on years of experience, develop an automatic, unconscious knowledge of how to play
the game(carry onin any givensocialsituation). Thatsenseis durablebecauseit is deeply embodied in each social agent becoming part of whothey are and maybe transposed to a
variety of situations (Bourdieu, ([1972] 1977;[1980] 1990). For Bourdieu([1980] 1990), habitusis structured structures predisposed to function asstructuring structures (p. 53). In
other words,habitusis ones learned, embodied (automatic) responseto the actions of another person in the field.
78Chapter
4
A persons response, like that of a competitive athlete, is not
normally thought throughit
is drawn from an unconscious, automatic reservoir of knowl-
edge that has been learned and acquired in the past (one simply knows what to doit recipe knowledge).
is
Following that tacit knowledge of what to do, individuals also repro-
ducethe structured nature of social action. Thus, becausesocial action occurs in afield of actions, habitus and the field tend to orchestrate, coordinate, and guide peoples actions as they unfold, allowing each person to anticipate others actions, predict potential outcomes, and largely reproduce social action (what
Giddens calls recursive practices).
Think for a moment of Sidney Crosbys 2010 golden
goal
described at the begin-
ning of this chapter. Every player involved in that play executed, automatically, coaches had taught and what they had practised innumerable livesfrom
times in their
novice players all the way to their professional careers.
could tell you after the fact conscious calculationit
what hockey
While each player
what he did and why, the whole play unfolded without any
all seemedinstinctual.
But Bourdieu would say it wasa perfect
example of embodied knowledge, or habitus, enacted within a particular social field as required by the playersin each position in that field. and not others, is becausethrough capitaltheir
competition
Thereason those players werethere,
and the development
of their cultural
particular skills, reaction time, and knowledge of the gamethose
werethe
best players competing for the top spot on the Olympic podium just as other players competefor the top spot in industry, the educational system, the world of art, and so on.
Class Analysis under Giddens and Bourdieu Both Giddens and Bourdieu recognize the importance
of power in social action, and they
explicitly addressits multifaceted character. They both emphasize that the marketis intrinsically a structure of power, but rather than viewing class position solely through the ownership of property, capital, or certain commodities, they conceptualize power asthe ability to accessand employ various capacities (see Bourdieu [1980] 1990; Bourdieu & Wacquant, 1992; Giddens, 1973). This allows each of them to weavea morecomplex notion of power through their theories ofsocial inequality, social dynamics, and social change. Giddens overall theory of structuration provides the basisfor him to maintainthe importance of classanalysisin sociology while also accounting for other factors in the overall stratification of advanced societies. Like Marxand
Weber, Giddens(1973) regards class asa basis
for social power and an outcome of the ownership or nonownership of productive resources. In and through their economic, political, and social activities, individuals in capitalist societies recursively reproduce a classstructure. Furthermore, in terms of the distribution of power, property
ownership remains of primary importance
1973, pp. 271272).
within the economic order (Giddens,
Moreover, the real ability to own the types of property that generate
profit and drive the economy is limitedthere
are boundaries that, although not impossible
in allinstancesto surmount,tend to recursively(re)producethe classstructure. Second, Giddens (1973) agrees with
Weberthat divisions within classescan be quite
numerousand complex: Class divisions cannot be drawnlike lines on a map,and the extent to which class structuration
occurs depends upon the interaction
of various sets of
factors (Giddens, 1973, p. 273). But, Giddensemphasizes,this is notthe same assaying that classis amultidimensional
phenomenon
which can be analysed as an aggregate of
several hierarchicaldimensions, asis sometimesclaimed by certain of those (mis)interpreters of
Weber who identify class
and stratification
(p. 273). Classstructuration,
Sport
and
Social
Stratification79
Giddens notes is
moststrongly developed at three levels, separating the upper, middle
and working classes (p. 273). Finally, and of mostsignificance, the
mannerin
Giddens notions of the duality of structure and
which formal and informal rules both enable and constrain the recursive
social actions that constitute
peoples daily lives allow
into the analysis of social inequality class in (re)producing
Giddens to draw nonclass factors
while keeping them distinct from the impact
systems of stratification.
and sexuality, for example, are intertwined
Gender, racialization,
(dis)ability,
of age,
with class in the social practices ordered
across space and time that constitute social action as a whole. Gender, racialization, (dis)ability,
and sexuality
must be taken into account in analyzing social action, but not
in the same manner that class factors
must be accounted for.
these nonclass factors should be distinguished from the impact integration
The unique impact
of
of class because their
in recursive social practices is different than the rules and resources perti-
nent to class. Bourdieus theory of class builds almost directly from work. Like field
Weberand Marx, a class structure exists for
within which an individuals
Webersenhancement of Marxs Bourdieuthat
is, a hierarchical
habitusis formed and simultaneously
operateseven
though individuals in the contemporary period maynot all feel that they are embedded in a class structure and sociologists
mustidentify it.
One mustconstruct the objectiveclass,the set of agents whoare placedin homogeneousconditions of existenceimposing homogenousconditionings and producing homogeneoussystemsof dispositionscapable of generatingsimilar practices;and who possessa set of common properties, objectified properties,sometimeslegally guaranteed (as possessionof goods and power) or properties embodied asclass habitus. (Bourdieu, [1979] 1984, p. 101) Bourdieu identifies capitalthe
the objective position of classes on the basis of the volume of
set of actually usable resourcesa
Heidentifies three
group possesses([1979] 1984, p. 114).
major forms of capital: economic (money and productive property),
social (social and institutionalized
networks, group memberships, etc.), and cultural (types
of knowledge, cultural goods such as books, orin an institutionalized qualifications,
form as educational
etc.) (Bourdieu, [1979] 1984; [1983] 1986). Theselatter two, but social
capital in particular, allow Bourdieu to usethe notion of class habitusto draw together, in a manner that goes beyond
Weber,the (inter)relationship
of class and status groups
(Stande) (see Bourdieu, 1966). Social networks, knowledge, and tastes create communities in the
Weberiansense of the term, and they also create and stem from class habituses
that will overlap significantly
but not necessarilyfully
with economic capital. The volume
of capital possessedand the ability to transpose it from one form to another as neededin different situations creates identifiable
class groupings in the contemporary
these particular class groupings, as the next section nature and extent to which particular individuals
will indicate, that
world. It is
determine the
will engagein sport and physical activ-
ity as well asthe types of sport and activities they will choose. Two main points are clear from the above discussion. First, class sounds like and seemsto be asimple concept but it proves to be extremely complex, and to understand the impact
of class on sport and recreational
opportunities
and participation,
the full com-
plexity of the concept needs to be used. Second, whether one uses Marxs,
80Chapter
4
Webers,
Giddens, Bourdieus, or ones own integrated
conception
drawing upon two or more of
these theorists, there arethree key elements that one mustkeepin 1. Classinvolves an objective groupings of individuals
dimensionone
mind:
that takes into account where different
are located within an increasingly complex social structure.
Thoseobjective conditions play asignificant role in determining those individuals
oppor-
tunities to take partin social life and the conditions under which they will beinvolved. 2. Classinvolves a subjective
dimension that takes into account that individuals living
under similar conditions within the social structure will share a particular, general understanding of whothey are and what their life chances arelike.
Their worldview will not
beidentical, but it will be close enough that their actions will tend to be verysimilar. 3. Finally, it is the integration
of those objective and subjective dimensions of classthat
is crucial for understanding how ones social location impacts his or her behavior as a member of a class. This is why sociologists today tend to draw morefrom Bourdieu than they do from
Marx or
Giddens or
Weber. Giddens and Bourdieu, each in his own
way, hastried to explain the nature of the objective dimensions of classin the complex, advanced societies of today; the
mannerin
which those objective conditions
create subjective understandings of the social world and the potential opportunity structure; and how the objective and subjective dimensions of classimpact each other.
claSS and Sport: of engagement
current
patternS
The mostrecent comprehensive reports on class and sport participation
are from an anal-
ysis done by the Conference Board of Canada of Statistics Canadas 2004 National Household Survey on Participation in Sport (Bloom,
Grant, & Watt, 2005); Ifedis (2008) study
of Statistics Canada data on sport participation;
Hernandez, Berger, Brissette, OReilly,
Parent,and Seguins (2008) longitudinal analysis ofsport participation in Canadausing Statistics Canadas General Social Survey data from 1992 to 2005; and a report released
by Canadian Heritage(2013) that also drawsfrom Statistics Canadas General Social Survey datafor 2010.
Whenthe results of all these studies and reports are combined
with
the mostrecent information availablethrough Statistics Canada(2013b), the impact of class on sport participation is clearly evident.
The Bloom, Grant,and Watt(2005) report beginsin an upbeat manner,notingthat morethan 8 million Canadianstook part in sport in 2004about
half the entire population
of Canada. . . including 55 percent of adults (p. 1). But afew paragraphs later, the study notes that between 1992 and 2004, the percentage of Canadians aged 16 or older actively involved in sport fell from 45% to 31%. Ifedis (2008) report indicates that a year later the participation rate had dropped to 28%, and the Canadian Heritage(2013) report shows that in 2010 only 7.2 million, or 26%, of Canadiansaged 15 yearsand older wereinvolved in sport. Hernandez and colleagues (2008) also document, in detail, the declining involvement of Canadians in sport. For example, they indicate that the rate of participation Canadiansaged 15 to 19fell from 75% in 1992 to 58% in 2005. The decreasefor
among
Canadians
aged 20to 24fell from 62% to 42%, and for Canadians aged 25to 29 the decrease wasfrom 55% to 35%. The mostrecent data show further
declines in participation.
Canadian
Heritage (2013) reports that in 2005, 58% of Canadians aged 15 to 19 wereinvolved in
Sport
and
Social
Stratification81
sport, but that fell to 54% in 2010. There was a similar decline (from 42% to 37%) for Canadians aged 20 to 24, a 2% drop to 29% and 23%, respectively, for Canadians aged 25 to 34 and 35to 54, and a 1% drop to 17% for the 55 and older age group. Examining the data on sport involvement
in 2005 and 2010 more closely reveals a
further concern. If the total time spent in sport is averaged across all Canadians, then in 2005, on average, Canadians spent 30 minutes a day playing sports (Statistics 2013b).
Canada,
When one focuses solely on those who actually took part in sport and average
their time across all active participants, then those hours a dayinvolved
Canadians spent, on average, two
with sport. By 2010, however, although the time spent on sport aver-
aged across all Canadians had not changed, the time spent averaged across the actual sport participants
had dropped to under an hour a day (Canadian
Heritage, 2013). In
other words, even those taking part in sport werespending less time on sporting activities per dayin 2010 than wasthe casein 2005. Probing further, all of the studies show a direct relationship participation.
Consistent with Bourdieus idea of economic
ception of allocative
resources,
Bloom, Grant, and
between class and sport
capital
and Giddenss con-
Watt (2005) indicate the extent to
which sport participation is tied to class. They point out that 55% of Canadians in households with annual incomes above $100,000 are involved in sport, with participation rates of 46% and 42%, respectively, for families $80,000$99,999
and $60,000$79,999.
with annual income
with annual household income
The participation rate drops to 36% for families
between $40,000$59,999
between $20,000$39,999.
between
and another
10% where incomes are
Lessthan 22% of Canadians in families
with incomes less
than $20,000 participate in sport. The participation rates shown in the Canadian Heritage (2013) report are even more striking. In 2010, only 7% of individuals living in families $20,000 per year participated
in sport. In the $20,000$29,999
Canadians are involved in sport. incomes of $30,000$49,999
with household incomes below
Under onein five
range, only 15% of
Canadians living in households with
take part in sport, rising to onein four in families with house-
hold incomes of $50,000$79,999.
One-third of individuals in households with incomes
higher than $80,000 engage regularly in sport. All of these rates of participation
are lower
than just five years earlier.
The vast majorityof Canadians involved in sport today beganthat associationin childhood. Sport participation among youths and adults requires particular types of cultural capital
and embodiedknowledge,to useBourdieusterms,so earlychildhoodinvolvement in sportis critical to an ongoing involvement
through the life cycle. The Canadian Heritage (2013)
report demonstratesthe impact of classon childrens involvement in sport: The lower the household income, the less likely it is that children will participate in sport and the higher the household income the
more likely it is that
(p. 38). In 2010, less than two-thirds
children
will participate in sport
(58%) of the children in families
with household
incomes under $40,000 took part in sport, while almost three in four (72%) children in households with incomes between $40,000$79,999
played sports and 85% of children in
families earning $80,000 or moretook part in organizedsport. From Giddens perspective, the class basis of early childhood sport participation allows children from upper-income homes to develop the tacit knowledge necessaryto easily participate in a variety of physical activities, whereaschildren from lower-income
homes do not have the opportunity to internalize the
informal rules and resources neededto engage, unobtrusively, in variousforms of sport.
82Chapter
4
Mostelite athletes come from affluent families. Monkey Business/Fotolia
The Escalating Cost of Sport While Canadians are becoming less involved in sport and active forms of leisure, they are spending
moreto participate.
$2,000 in
2004 on sport,
The average, active
which wasone-third
Canadian family spent just under
more than eight years earlier (Bloom,
Grant, & Watt, 2005). Thisrepresents asignificant increase since 1996 when the money spent on sport participation
amounted to 0.9% of Canadas gross domestic product com-
paredto 1.22% in 2004 (Bloom,
Grant & Watt, 2005). Although there are no systematic,
scholarly studies documenting the rising cost of sport involvement,
journalists in various
mediacontinually lament the problem. Hockey, Canadas national winter sport, is growing in popularity
among girls and is the
most high-profile instance
of the impact
of
increased costs, class position, and rates of participation. Equipment costs for hockey can be prohibitiveespecially formative
years of athletic participation
grow equipment
quickly (sometimes
what is thought
of as top-of-the-line
in the important,
early,
where children are also growing rapidly and outwithin a single season)especially equipment.
if parents buy
Even a parent who follows the sage
advice of investing in a good, well-fitted helmet and good-quality skates while saving on shin, shoulder, and elbow pads, pants, mouth and neck guards, gloves,socks, sweaters, and sticks will still incur startup
costs between $300 and $600 in mostinstances.
for the forwards and defencementhe
And this is
costsfor goalies are even higher. In the youngest
age groups, associations or teams supply goalie equipment for houseleague players, but the
road to rep hockey becomesincreasingly expensive as players haveto purchasetheir own pads, mask,stick, gloves, and chest and arm pads. To get a sense of the cost, ajunior goalie combo setleg
padsand gloveswill
cost almost $400 new.
Butit is not equipment costsalone that makehockey an increasingly class-basedsport; it is the hockey system (the field in Bourdieus terms), which consists of hockey leagues and players from houseleague (the lowest level) up through select,
A,
AA,
and AAA
in
the minor hockey system. The field sorts and filters out players asthey movefrom initiation to novice, minor and majoratom, minorand majorpee wee, minor and majorbantam, minor
Sport
and
Social
Stratification83
The cost of sport is prohibitive for
many Canadian families.
SHAUN BISSON/THE OBSERVER/QMI AGENCY
midget,and then junior (or major midgetfor those not good enoughto makethe jump to
junior). Costs thatincludeequipment,teamregistrationfees,travel,accommodation, hockey schools,specifictraining programs,and off-seasonhockeyprogramsthat is, the costsofsuc-
cessfullymakingones waytowardthetop ofthefieldcan
beconsiderable withthe oddsof
a financial return veryslim. Parcelss(2002) study of the cohort of boysbornin 1975 and
playinghockeyin Ontarioshowedthat of 22,000registeredplayers,only 132 made it to leaguesthat feedthe NHL and a mereseven madeit to The Showthat
is, 0.03% of the
cohort made it to the NHL(seealsoTotalSportsManagement, 2013).Thesorting/competitive process is partlyaboutskills butit is alsocentresonresources(allocative and distributive
resources in Giddens terms,economic,symbolic,andculturalcapitalin Bourdieus terms). Feesfor houseleague hockeytend to rangefrom $350 to $700 per player; playing a
step higherin an A or AArep programwill costbetween$1,000and $2,000;AAA team feesrangefrom $2,500to $5,000perseason(Rutherford, 2009). Noneofthesefeesinclude
transportationcosts,snacks, meals,hotel accommodationfor tournaments,and extra tournament entry feesor,
asis the casein somejurisdictions, the admissionfee a parent
mustpayto watchhisor herchilds games($6in the GreaterToronto HockeyLeague see Gillmor, 2013). A Royal Bank of Canada(2011) survey found that, on average,
Canadian families pay$1,500peryearper childto play hockey.Forthose whohad not kepttheir child in hockey, cost wascited asthe majorreason.
Gillmor(2013) writesthat althoughhockeyis still thought of asa blue-collarsport, that is nolonger true. Even the middleclasshastrouble keeping up withthe costs. Atthe
highestlevel,it hasbecomearich mansgame. Thebestplayers,one AAA coachin the GreaterToronto HockeyLeaguepoints out, arefrom high SESfamilies. They dont neces-
sarily havealot of drive,theyre just incrediblyskilled. Andtheyre affordedthe opportunity to havethe bestinstructors, and that is their advantage. Their advantageis that they
have money(citedin Gillmor,2013). Thatsentimentis sharedbyleagueadministrators across Canada.The one-incomefamily kid is not playing hockey, generally speaking,
accordingto Jack Casey, the presidentof St.Johns MinorHockeyAssociation. They cant affordit. Thats the bottom line (cited in Rutherford,2009).Most of the parentsof kids
whoplay hockey,and particularlythe kid whoplaysall-star hockey, hecontinues,the parentsare all professionalpeople,theyre doing very well. They haveto bedoing well.
84Chapter
4
Murray Costello,the retired president of Hockey Canada, hasechoed the point that cost is aleading factor in declining hockeyregistrations. Hockey is becoming an opportunity only for the people whocan paytheir wayin (cited in
MacGregor,2012). Bloom, Grant,and Watt
(2005) are equally blunt about the role ofincome and costin sports participation: People with higherincomes are much morelikely to participate in sport than people who earn less (p. 4). Sports like soccer and basketball are less expensive, although depending on the brand, shoes can cost a considerable amount and all the extras from transportation,
snacks, and
tournament costs quickly add up even for houseleague players. These costs provide some insight into
why economic circumstances influence the conditions
under which a child
competes with others for the prized spots at the top of the sport pyramid. Canadian participation
Heritage (2013)
underscores the intersection
when it identifies
age 15 and older. Golf is first, followed ball, downhill downhill
skiing,
skiing,
of class, cost, and sport
the 10 most popular sports in
cycling,
Canada for
by hockey, soccer, baseball, volleyball,
swimming,
and badminton.
and cycling carry significant
other than income lead to inequitable
Of these, golf, hockey,
physical ability,
people will become involved, goals they
rates of participation
and the impact
how intensively
in sport among different
of racialization
the duality of structure, impact the high-performance
but gender, eth-
also influence
where
they will participate, and the long-term
will establish for that particular activity.
thinks in terms of habitus and field
a
and how factors
groupings of Canadians. Clearly money is a majorfactor,
nic background,
basket-
economic costs. They also lead into
discussion of Giddens and Bourdieus theories of social stratification identifiable
Canadians
All of these factors,
whether one
or the recursive practices that are associated with
who takes part in sport and who strives for the top of
pyramid.
Conclusions Prior to Alexandre Bilodeaus emotional gold-medal performance in the mogulsat the 2010 Vancouver
Winter Olympics, Canada wasthe only country that hadfailed to win a gold
medal while hosting the Olympics. Whenthe IOC granted the 2010 Gamesto Vancouver, the Canadian Olympic Committee (COC),
Sport Canada, and some select commercial
sponsors committed themselves to improving
Canadas performances at the
Games. The
third-place finish at the 2006 Torino Olympics(24 medals,7 gold) wasan improvement over the last three
winter
Olympiadsfifth
in 2002 (17
medals, 6 gold), fourth in 1998
(15 medals, 6 gold), and sixth in 1994 (13 medals,3 gold). Andit mentover recent summer Olympicrankings21st (14
medals,3 gold), and 11th in 1996 (22
wasa dramatic improve-
in 2004 (12 medals,3 gold), 21stin 2000
medals,3 gold). To establish Canadaas a world
leader in high-performance sport, the COC launched
Own the Podium, a program that
explicitly committed the COC and Canadas athletes to the pursuit of gold. Ownthe Podium, the COC emphasized,is a technical
program designedto help Canada become the number
one nation in terms of medals won at the 2010 Olympic top three countries overall at the 2010 Paralympic
Winter Games,and to place in the
Winter Games (Vancouver 2010, 2006).
A great deal of Canadassuccessat the 2010 Games, where Canadaset a Winter Games record of 14 gold medalsalong with 7silver and 5 bronze, wasattributed to Ownthe Podium. The program wasa dramatic change in philosophy within the Canadian Olympic movement
Sport
and
Social
Stratification85
becausethe pursuit of gold became an overt objectivereaching
the top of the sport
meritocracy wasastated goal. The new approach would generate a newlevel of accountability for the funds Sport Canadaandthe COCinvested in high-performance sport. Own the Podium targeted particular sports where Canada had been successful, providing financial support for athletes who had demonstrated podium potential.
That hot
house approach did not, however, produce the same level of successin London two years later.
Rosannagh MacLennans trampoline
victory was Canadas only gold, and the over-
all medaltotal of 18 placed Canada 13thbelow To enjoy long-term
success in international
the COCs objective of 12th. sport, the base of the Canadian sport
pyramid mustbe broadened. But aslevels of sport involvement rather than expand. grams like out
Moreover, declining sport involvement
Own the Podium or Sport Canadafunding
or shrinking
of the
middle class in
Canadian institutions, including lar.
Rebuilding the
is not a problem that pro-
could ever solve. The hollowing
Canada changes the profile of a number of
sport in general and high-performance sport in particu-
middle of the
about through arevitalization
drop, the base will shrink
Canadian income and class structure can only come
of the Canadian economy asa whole, although even arevi-
talized economy will not eliminate the problematic realities of inequality aspiring athletes in the bottom of the Canadian class structure. lematic relationship
between sport participation
of condition for
The intimate
and prob-
and social class may meanthat golden
momentslike Sidney Crosbys gold-winning goal will become increasingly rare.
critical
thinking
1. Do you think that
questions Canadais a class-basedsociety?
Why or why not?
2. Howmuchmoneyhaveyouspenttakingpartinsportingactivitiesinthepast12months? 3. Hasthe cost of sport or sporting equipment ever affected your participation in sport? 4.
Whatis a meritocracy?Is the Canadian sport system a meritocracy?
5.
Whatismeantbythetermequalityofopportunity,andwhatfactorsinCanadaprevent a true equality of opportunity in sport?
6.
Whatis meant by the term equality of condition, and whatfactors in
Canada prevent a
true equality of condition in sport? 7.
Whatare the mainfeatures of Canadas current income structure?
8.
Whatare the mainfeatures of Karl Marxs theory of class?
9. How did Max Weberstheory of class build on Marxs theory, and what arethe
main
differences between the two theories? 10.
Whatare the mainfeatures of Anthony Giddens theory of class?
11.
Whatare the mainfeatures of Pierre Bourdieus theory of class?
12.
Whattypes of cultural and economic capital do you haveto draw upon that influence your participation in sport?
13. How doesclassinfluence rates of sport participation in Canada? 14. How might Canadas current class structure prevent
Canadafrom fielding the best
Olympic teams possible despite government programs like
Own the Podium, which
are designed to enhance Canadian performances in international
86Chapter
4
events?
Suggested readings Gruneau,R.(1999). Class,sports, andsocialdevelopment.Champaign,IL: Human Kinetics. Lemel, Y., & Noll, H.(Eds.). (2002). Changingstructuresof inequality: Acomparativeperspective. Montreal, QC: McGillQueens University Press. Osmani,S.(2001). Oninequality. In J. Blau(Ed.), TheBlackwellcompanionto sociology(pp. 143160). Oxford, UK: Blackwell.
references Autor, D., Manning, A., & Smith, C. L. (2010). Thecontribution of the minimum wageto U.S. wageinequality overthree decades: Areassessment.Financeand EconomicsDiscussionSeries. Washington,DC: Federal ReserveBoard. Retrievedfrom http://www.federalreserve.gov/pubs/ feds/2010/201060/201060pap.pdf. Beamish, R.(1990). The persistenceof inequality: An analysis of participation among Canadas high-performance athletes. International Bloom,
Reviewfor the Sociology of Sport, 25, 143155.
M., Grant, M., & Watt, D.(2005). Strengthening Canada: Thesocio-economic benefitsof sport
participation in
Canada. Conference Board of Canada. Retrieved from
http://www.conference-
board.ca/e-library/abstract.aspx?did=1340. Boudarbat, B., Lemieux, T., & Riddell,
W.(2010). The evolution
ofthe returns to human capital in
Canada,19802005. CanadianPublicPolicy,36, 6389. Bourdieu,P.(1966). Condition declasseet position de classe.ArchivesEuropeennes deSociologie,7, 201223. Bourdieu,P.([1972] 1977). Outlineof atheoryof practice.Cambridge,UK: CambridgeUniversityPress. Bourdieu,P.(1973). Thethreeforms oftheoretical knowledge.SocialScience Information, 12, 5380. Bourdieu, P. ([1979] 1984). Distinction: Asocialcritique of thejudgementof taste. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Bourdieu,P.([1980] 1990). Thelogic of practice.Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press. Bourdieu, P. ([1983] 1986). Theforms of capital. In J. Richardson(Ed.), Handbookof theory and researchfor the sociology of education, (pp. 241258).
New York, NY: Greenwood Press.
Bourdieu, P. (1989). Social space and symbolic power. Sociological Theory, 7, 1425. Bourdieu, P. (1993). Sociologyin question. London, Bourdieu, P. (2000)
UK: Sage Publications.
Pascalian meditations. Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press.
Bourdieu, P., & Wacquant, L. (1992).
Aninvitation to reflexive sociology. Chicago, IL:
University of
ChicagoPress. Brooks, E. (2007). Unravelingthe garmentindustry: Transnationalorganizing and womens work. Minneapolis, MN: University of MinnesotaPress. Canadian Heritage.(2013). Sportparticipation2010: Research paper. Retrievedfrom http://publications.gc.ca/pub?id=434212&sl=0 Card, D.,Lemieux, T., & Riddell, C.(2004). Unionization and wageinequality: A comparative study of the US, UKand Canada.Journal of Labor Research, 25, 519559. Cohen, G.(1980). Karl Marxstheoryof history: A defence.Oxford, UK: ClarendonPress. incomeinequality: Is Canadabecomingmoreunequal? ConferenceBoardof Canada.(2012). Canadian Retrieved from http://www.conferenceboard.ca/hcp/hot-topics/caninequality.aspx. Dahrendorf, R.(1959). Classandclassconflict in industrial society. Stanford CA: Stanford University Press. Dos Santos, T. (1970). Draper, H. (1978).
The concept of social classes. Scienceand Society, 34, 166193.
Karl
Marxs theory of revolution:
The politics of social classes. New York,
NY:
Monthly Review Press.
EKOS ResearchAssociates.(1992). Thestatusofthe high-performance athletein Canada:Finalreport. Ottawa, ON: Sport Canada Directorate,Fitnessand AmateurSport.
Sport
and
Social
Stratification87
Engels, F. ([1845] 1950). Condition of the workingclassin Englandin 1844. London,
UK: G. Allen and
Unwin. Florida, R.(2002). Therise ofthe creativeclass: Andhowits transforming work,leisure, community,and everydaylife. New York, NY: BasicBooks. Fortin, N., Green,D., Lemieux, T., Milligan, K., & Riddell, C.(2012). Canadianinequality: Recent developmentsand policy options. CanadianPublicPolicy,38, 121145. Giddens, A.(1973). Theclassstructureof the advancedsocieties.London, UK: Hutchinson. Giddens, A.(1976). Functionalism: Apre`s la lutte. SocialResearch, 43, 325366. Giddens, A.(1979). Centralproblems in socialtheory. London, UK: The MacmillanPress. Giddens, A.(1984). Theconstitutionofsociety.Berkeley, CA: Universityof California Press. Gillmor, D.(2013). Is minor hockey worthit? TorontoStar. Retrievedfrom http://www.thestar.com/ news/insight/2013/01/11/is_minor_hockey_worth_it.html. Goldin, C., & Katz, L. (2008).
Therace between education and technology. Cambridge, MA: Harvard
University Press. Goos, M., & Manning, A. (2007). Lousy and lovely jobs: The rising polarization of work in Britain. Reviewof Economicsand Statistics, 89, 118133.
Grabell, M.(2013). Howthe temp workers who power Americas corporate giants are getting crushed. Financial Post. Retrievedfrom http://business.financialpost.com/2013/07/05/how-thetemp-workers-who-power-americas-corporate-giants-are-getting-crushed. Green, D., & Sand, B. (2011). Hasthe Canadianlabour marketpolarized? Ottawa, ON: Human Resources and Skills Development Canada. Greenberg,J. & Knight, G.(2004). Framingsweatshops:Nike,global production, andthe American news media.Communication and Critical/CulturalStudies,1, 151175. Gruneau, R.(1972). Ananalysisof Canada Games Athletes,1971. Unpublished mastersthesis, University of Calgary, Calgary, AB. Harvey, D.(2007).
Abrief history of neoliberalism. Oxford, UK: Oxford University Press.
Hernandez, T., Berger, I., Brissette, C., OReilly, ticipation
in
Canada: Alongitudinal
N., Parent, M., & Seguin, B. (2008). Sport par-
cohort analysis. Presented at the Administrative
Sciences
Association of Canada Annual Conference, Halifax. Retrieved from http://ojs.acadiau.ca/index. php/ASAC/article/view/919/802.
Hunter, G.,Sanchez, M., & Douglas,F.(2012). Incomes of the onepercent (and everyoneelse)in Canada.PovertyPapers5. Regina,SK: Social Policy ResearchUnit, University of Regina. Ifedi, F. (2008). Sport participationin Canada,2005. Ottawa, ON: Statistics Canada, Culture, Tourismand the Centrefor Educational Statistics. Kaufman,P. & Wolff,E.(2010). Playingand protesting: Sportasa vehiclefor social change.Journal of Sportand SocialIssues,34, 154175. Kenyon, G.(1977). Factorsinfluencing the attainment of elite track statusin track andfield. PostOlympicConferenceProceedings.Ottawa, ON: Coaching Associationof Canada. Keynes, J.(1936). Thegeneral theoryofemployment,interestand money.NewYork, NY: Harcourt,Brace. Krugman, P. (2009).
Theconscienceof aliberal.
MacGregor, R.(2012). Increasingly and
Mail. Retrieved from
New York, NY: W. W. Norton & Company.
high cost of hockey is making the game an elitist sport.
Globe
http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/hockey/increasingly-high-
cost-of-hockey-is-making-the-game-an-elitist-sport/article5864491/. Marx, K. ([1847] 1936). The poverty of philosophy. London,
UK: Martin Lawrence Limited.
Marx, K.([1852]) 1934). Marxto Weydemeyer. In Karl Marxand Friedrich Engelscorrespondence 18461895, Marx-Engels-LeninInstitute (Ed.), (pp. 5558). London, UK: MartinLawrenceLtd. Marx,K. ([1852] 1935). Theeighteenthbrumaire of Louis Bonaparte.New York, NY:International Publishers. Marx,K. ([1859] 1911). Acontributionto the critique of politicaleconomy. Chicago,IL: Charles H. Kerr & Company Co-operative.
88Chapter
4
Marx, K.([1894] 1909). Capital, vol. 3. Chicago, IL:
Charles H. Kerr & Company Co-operative.
Marx,K. & Engels,F.([1845] 1939). The Germanideology. New York, NY:International Publishers. McPherson,B.(1977). Factorsinfluencing the attainment of elite hockeystatus. Post-OlympicConferenceProceedings.Ottawa, ON: Coaching Associationof Canada. Munro,J. (1970). Aproposedsportspolicyfor Canadians.Ottawa: Ministryof Health and Welfare. Parcels,J. (2002). Chancesof makingit in pro hockey. Retrievedfrom http://www.cumberlandminorhockey.ca/to_the_nhl/chances.htm. Royal Bank of Canada.(2011). RBCsurvey: 82 per cent of Canadianhockey householdsbelieve moresupport neededfrom corporate Canada.Pressrelease. Retrievedfrom http://www.rbc.com/ newsroom/2011/1206-grant-hockey.html. Rutherford, K.(2009). Is the cost keeping kids out of minor hockey? Absolutely,playersand parents say. CBC Sports. Retrieved from
http://www.cbc.ca/sports/hockey/ourgame/story/2009/01/16/
hockey-costs-too-much.html. Statistics
Canada. (2009).
The Canadian labour
market at a glance. Retrieved from
http://www.
statcan.gc.ca/pub/71-222-x/71-222-x2008001-eng.pdf. Statistics Canada. (2013a). Labour force survey estimates. Retrieved from
http://www5.statcan.gc.
ca/cansim/pick-choisir?lang=eng&p2=33&id=2820080. Statistics Canada.(2013b). Timespent on various activities. Retrievedfrom http://www.statcan. gc.ca/tables-tableaux/sum-som/l01/cst01/famil36a-eng.htm. Thompson, E.P.(1963). The makingofthe Englishworkingclass.London, UK: V. Gollancz. Total Sports Management.(2013). So,you wantto play pro hockey! Retrievedfrom http://www. totalsportsmgmt.com/pro-hockey. Vancouver2010. (2006). Ownthe Podium2010. Retrievedfrom http://www.vancouver2010.com/ en/WinterGames/OwnPodium. Von Mises,L. (1934). Thetheory of moneyand credit. London, UK:J. Cape. Washington, R. & Karen, D.(2001). Sport and society.
Annual Reviewof Sociology, 27, 187212.
Weber, M.(1968). Economy and society. New York, NY: Bedminster Press. White, P., & Curtis, J. (1990). Participation in competitive sport among Anglophones and Francophones in Canada: Testing competing hypotheses. International
Reviewfor the Sociology of Sport,
25, 125143.
Whitson, D.(2011). Changing notions of public goods: Payingfor public recreation. Paperpresented at the 2011 National Recreation Summit, October2326, Lake Louise, AB. Retrieved from http://lin.ca/sites/default/files/attachments/Whitson_Dave%5B1%5D.pdf. Wilson,T.(2002). The paradoxof social classandsportsinvolvement. International Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport,37, 516. Yalnizyan, A.(2010). Therise of Canadasrichest 1%. Ottawa, ON: Canadian Centrefor Policy Alternatives. Retrievedfrom http://www.policyalternatives.ca/publications/reports/risecanadasrichest-1.
Sport
and
Social
Stratification89
Chapter 5 Ethnicityand Racein CanadianSport Victoria Paraschakand Susan Tirone
Daniel Igali
Weall haveindividual
waves our national
flag at the 2000 Sydney Olympic Games after
Hair colour, gender, height, skin colour, ethnicity,
winning Canadas first-
ever gold medal in freestyle
characteristics that differentiate usfrom or connect usto others.
such characteristics.
wrestling.
and eye colour are a few examples of
Think of how you would describe yourself for a minute.
When we
thought about this question, Vicky described herself asfemale, brown haired, hazel eyed,
Reuters
54,
urban Canadian, and white. Susan described her physical attributes in a similar
but she lives in arural community.
Yet aseach of uslive out or do
vidual characteristics are continually
reshaped by our experiences. For example,
recollects how some children have considered her tall,
way,
ourlives, those indiVicky
while adults often claim that she is
short. Hereye colour varies with whatshe wears,and her ethnicity has beenshaped by yearsin the Canadian north and the specific cultural practices she learned there and con-
tinues to do. Sheis also often quizzedabout herrace, becauseof herresearchinto First Nations peoples. Susan notes that
her studies of Canadian immigrants
and children in
thoseimmigrant families help herto reflect on whatis meaningfulin her ownlife, having been raised within a large extended Italian
Canadian family.
So while, when asked, we
can each describeourindividual characteristics,that description changesover time and from the perspectives of others.
90
Chapter
5
Wecontinuously construct the ways wesee ourselves, and
that involves the social world in which welive.
Ourindividual
characteristics are much
less definitive than we might at first think. Some of these characteristics ety.
While eye colour remains
ethnicity
and skin colouror
ference.
Persistent patterns
North
take on a particular social significance in our sociunimportant
racehave
at a social level, characteristics
become socially constructed
of unequal treatment
markers of dif-
have developed around them, in
American society and in sport. Individuals
identified
such as
assigned those characteristics
as part of a group that shares traits differentiating
get
it from others. Our sense
of ourselves is thus constructed in relation to groups we believe aresimilar to or different from us. Weknow ourselves and our culture in part through our bodies. For example, as we do ing
physical activities, such assports, weshape, reinforce, or challenge the understandweand
othershold
about our racial and ethnic identities.
education class learning
Students in a physical
basketball all perform the same activities,
movements reinforce or challenge eachindividuals
but the waysthose
sense of his or her own race and eth-
nicity influences the meaning assigned to those movements and the enjoyment felt or not felt
within the class. After school, an Asian youth
ticipates
mayhead to a program where she par-
with others from her ethnic background in activities tied to her cultural roots.
Through this process, she reinforces the importance that ing
of her ethnic identity in a manner
wasnot possible in her earlier gym class on basketball. A black malestudent practiswith the school basketball team at the end of the day feels confirmed as a talented
athlete as he emulates the playing styles of his favourite
NBA players. Another student
heads home to spend time with her family, having no interest in afterschool athletics.
Day
after day,these students continue to know themselves and to represent themselves to others through their involvement
or noninvolvement
This chapter explores the relationships
in physical activities.
among
movement, race, and ethnicity
Canada. It builds on two assumptions. First, we believe that in
Canada, such as sport, potentially
generate a feeling
provide the opportunity
of pride in their cultural
heritage.
in
movement opportunities for all individuals
to
However, the sport system has
been structured so that some individualsspecifically
white Canadians of European
descentare
more so than others, although
privileged to feel racial and ethnic pride
these hegemonic patterns (like
all social relations)
encourage our readers to enter into a reflective understand
how ethnicity
and race are constructed
doing so, they can more knowledgeably the individual
identities
monic, unequal ethnic sport system in
are slowly changing.
process through
shape their
in our society and in sport. own identities
desired by othersprerequisites and racial relations
Second, we
which they can better By
while honouring
for shifting
and creating an inclusive,
existing
hege-
multicultural
Canada.
Ethnicity
and Sport in canada
The Concept of Ethnicity Sport is one of the
most popular leisure activities
Canadians enjoy.
Whether we enjoy
sport as spectators, as recreational participants, or as elite athletes, Canadians are extremely interested and invested in sports. Our ethnic identity
Ethnicity
and
shapes and is shaped by
Race
in
Canadian
Sport91
our sport participation. common
Ethnicity refers to the values, beliefs, and behaviours weshare in
with a subcultural group to
which we most closely identify
country of origin, language, religion, or cultural traditions
based on common
(Hutchison,
1988). Ethnicity
takes into account our religious practices, our clothing, our accents and language, the food we eat, and what we value as a result of our cultural social significance in our society.
heritage. Ethnicity, like race, has
To understand ethnicity
about ethnicity in general and how ones ethnic identity preferences around sport participation.
and sport we need to know mayinfluence
decisions and
Wealso benefit from knowing about past trends
and theory developed to explain trends or beliefs about ethnicity. Everyone can be linked to at least one ethnic group, whether it is one of the dominant European, white, English- or French-speaking groups, or one of the morethan 200 other ethnic
groups known to exist in this country (Statistics
scope of Canadas extraordinary Household Survey (NHS)
national diversity
Canada, 2013c).
Canadian arrival markin
was evident in the 2011 National
themselves as visible
Thanks to unprecedented
cities
Canada, 2011).
minorities (Statis-
levels of immigration,
(Saunders, 2010), 13 ethnic
Canada (Statistics
non-Western
The
when more than 20% of the population reported being for-
eign born and 19.1% of Canadians identified tics
Canada, 2011).
especially in
groups surpassed the 1 million
As new immigrants
arrive in
countries and asthe number of people who identify
and ethnic groups grows, ethnic diversity in sport is one of the
Canadafrom
with diverse racial
many parts of social life
that is changing.
Diversity Theories Withthe passing of the
Multiculturalism
Act of 1988, Canada officially declared its sup-
port for cultural freedom of minority peoples. The term cultural pluralism, first introduced in 1915 by Horace Kallen, refers to the approach our country takes with regard to receiving and welcoming immigrants. It
meansthat in
Canada, wesupport newcomers in pre-
serving their cultural identity if they choose to do so (Glazer, 1970). Our approach differs from that of our neighbours to the south. In the United States,immigrants are expected to shed their unique cultural practices, adopt new ones based on the values and beliefs of the host country, and as a result of this process of assimilation contribute toward building a better nation. Thissecond approach is commonly referred to asthe meltingpot perspective (Glazer, 1970). Cultural pluralism, on the other hand, recognizes that for ers meaningful experience incorporates stubborn ence, and is
morelike
many newcom-
chunks of cultural practice and prefer-
a chowder than a melting pot (Bhabha,
1994, p. 219). Some
aspects of life, of course, do change with immersion in the host culture. But other cultural chunks
remain intact and provide the basis on which some minority people create cul-
tures in between that ofthe dominant majorityandthe cultures known to the migrants in their homeland (Bhabha, 1994; Hollingshead, 1998).
Asa result of our legislation, Canadiansofficially support physical cultural practices like sport, dance, music, and religious expressions that are meaningful to people of all
minority cultural groupsand are meaningfulto the experienceofleisure. However,Claude Denis (1997) challenges this description of Canada,instead labelling it a whitestream
society becauseit hasbeen primarilystructured onthe basisof Europeanwhite experiences. In keeping with Deniss hegemonic framing of the nature of ethnic and race relations in
92Chapter
5
Canada,academics and practitioners have only recently begun to explore the meaning of leisure from the perspective of immigrant
groups, as well asethnic
minority physical activ-
ity practices and the challenges they face related to discrimination, encefrom dominant group Canadiansin
mainstreamsport.
In spite of Canadas policy of multiculturalism, tify asracial and ethnic
manyimmigrants
and those whoiden-
minority people strive to take on characteristics of their host cul-
ture to improve the likelihood immigrants
racism, and indiffer-
that they will fit in.
Assimilationis the term used when
adopt the culture of the dominant group (Li, 1990). The underlying assump-
tion of assimilation theory is that ethnically
distinct cultural traditions are detrimental to
ones ability to fit in and that it is not desirable to be different.
This assimilationist
approach, which reproduces existing hegemonic social relations, is problematic becauseit normalizes mainstream cultural practices asthe appropriate new immigrant
groups arrive in placeslike
behaviour for all. As well, as
Canada,looking and sounding different from
dominant groups, it is not always possible to fit in and become like the majority since race, culture, and behavioural diversity sets newcomers apart. In our discussion, dominant refers to those people in Canada who hold the power to make decisions and to exert control over others. Terminology usedin this discussion is worth explanation. when referring to people whoidentify
Weusethe word minority
with non-European-white
groups and individuals.
Werealize the problematic nature of this term, since mostthe worlds population is nonEuropean-white. terms like
However, in Canada mostpeople identify
as European-white, and since
minority racial and ethnic groups tend to be commonly usedin Canada we con-
tinue to usethese terms. In trying to understand the behaviour of ethnic relied primarily
on two theoretical
minority people, researchers have
perspectives: marginality theory and ethnicity theory.
Marginality theory suggests that the differences in participation
in dominant cultural
activities are due to the poverty experienced by many minority racial and ethnic people, which is a function
of the discrimination
they face in accessing training and education as
well asjobs. Therefore, under-participation their
in activities like sport is thought to be due to
marginalization in society. This perspective helps explain why some minority group
Canadians do not choose the same sports asthe dominant it falls short
when applied to those immigrants
and ethnic
poor and who have somewhat different sport participation Canadians who play field
majority population.
However,
minority people who are not patterns, such as South Asian
hockey, cricket, and other sports that are not popular among
dominant group Canadians but are growing in popularity among people whoidentify Canadas ethnic
populations (Tirone
with
& Pedlar, 2000). For example, the popularity of
cricket is on the rise across Canada,and in 2012 Cricket Canadais reported to have proposedthat a cricket stadium be built in Toronto (Macleans, 2012).
Ethnicity theory is basedon Washburnes(1978) thesis that differencesin leisure between dominant and minority populations arethe result of variations in the valuesystems
andsocial normsofthe minoritygroups.Thisapproachsuggests that ethnic subgroupsinteract with dominant cultural groups for school, jobs, commerce, and when needs cannot be
met within the subgroup. However, manyethnic minority people maintaintheir distinct cultural traditions and passthem along to their children and subsequent generations. Using
this approach,researcherscomparebehaviourssuch assport participation patternsofethnic minority people to the leisure experience of dominant group members.Problematic hereis
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport93
that the leisure of the white, Eurocentric majority is held asthe norm and minority people are considered as others
for the sake of comparisons, similar to the whitestream,
hege-
monic approach mentioned earlier. This approach fails to explore the unique opportunities for leisure evident in
minority cultural groups asa result of their cultural heritage.
Wehavefound that whitestream sport is a useful concept for analyzing race and ethnic relations in Canadiansport becauseit emphasizesthat the existing hegemonic sport systemis primarily structured by and mosteffective for individuals values. Additionally, to
who align with white, European
marginality theory identifies that poverty plays a role in limiting
access
mainstreamsport for some minority ethnic groups. Finally, ethnicity theory emphasizes
that the differing value systems of immigrant
Canadians can lead to different preferencesfor
sport or different waysof organizing and playing mainstreamsports. The pattern of immigration trends in Canada helps to explain how whitestream Canadiansociety hasbeen created, and also how it is challenged byincreasingly diverse minority group Canadians.
Immigration
Trends
In the early part of the 20th century, commercial growth and development better life than
Canadas economic, industrial,
what wasavailable in their countries of origin.
large wave of immigrants from changes to immigration
to the
Canadarecruited its first
Great Britain, Europe, and the
United States. However,
to west
New waves of immigrants tended
(i.e., from former Soviet Union and Eastern bloc countries
United States, Canada, and Israel), and from countries of the south
of the north immigrants
and
patterns occurred in the last decades of the 20th century and first
years of the 21st century when migration flows shifted. to movefrom east
agricultural,
wasfuelled by many wavesof immigrants seeking a
(such asfrom South Asia to
Canada) (Chiswick
to countries
& Miller, 2002). The
of the new millennium often look and sound different from the dominant
groups, and their distinctiveness in terms of skin colour, language, clothing, religion, and other cultural practices has often resulted in their
marginalization.
To learn the language skills necessaryfor job attainment belonging, immigrant
groups mayinitially
and to achieve a sense of
cluster into concentrated areas of similar immi-
grants or ethnic enclaves. Herethey find important sources of social support, whether that bein employment opportunities, leisure such assport participation, (Chiswick
education, or shelter
& Miller, 2002; Rosenberg, 2003). Ethnic enclaves and institutionally
plete ethnic communities have been well established in ity group settlers arrived here (Breton, levels of institutional
1964).
com-
Canadasince the earliest minor-
Communities considered to have high
completeness are those in which a range of social supports and rel-
evant services are available to minority people, and often these are delivered within wellestablished ethnic enclaves. This is what happened in the case of early Jewish, Italian, and
Germanimmigrants whoformed small communities or enclavesin some ofthe major Canadian cities.
Within the enclaves, people wereable to accessculturally and ethnically
relevant social services,familiar food, and familiar religious and cultural traditions, all delivered in the language of their homeland and by people with common ethnic roots. For
example,late 19th- and early 20th-century Jewishimmigrants to Torontosettled primarily in the district known as St. Johns
Ward, where they experienced abysmal housing
conditions but hadthe benefit ofsocial supportssuch aslanguage,religion, food, music, and other cultural goodsthat werefamiliar to them and which facilitated their settlement
94Chapter
5
(Rosenberg, 2003). Sport organizations operated by ethnic community vided youth important
opportunities for affirming
associations pro-
membership within their own ethnic
group and for drawing together people from diverse ethnic groups around common sport interests (Rosenberg, 2003). friends and family
Those who enter a host community
membersfrom their country of origin
without the help of
mayfind they have no alternative
but to try to assimilate quickly into the dominant society, although that processis likely to be extraordinarily
challenging (Chiswick
& Miller, 2002).
Wenote that among second- and third-generation bethe same degree of interest in living
immigrants there does not seem to
within an enclave. This may be attributed to the
high level of educational accomplishments of the children of manygroups ofimmigrants, which is particularly evident in studies of children of immigrants from
China, South Asia,
and other Asian groups. However, difficulties in achieving job mobility are evident among Afro-Caribbean blacks and some other minorities relative to their educational achievements(Reitz, Zhang, & Hawkins, 2011). The available information who report a single ethnicity
from the 2011 census does not distinguish between those and those
who report
multiple ethnic identities,
which
masksour ability to clearly understand the complexity of ethnic identity in Canada. This identification
with morethan one ethnic
ity or part cultures (Bhabha, participation
minority group, sometimes referred to ashybrid-
1994), is a growing trend that
will undoubtedly affect the
of Canadiansin cultural activities and sporting events in yearsto come. For
example, Dallaires studies of youth participants in the Francophone
Gamesin
Alberta,
Ontario, and New Brunswick found that the youth tended to identify themselves as having hybrid identities
or a melange
of francophoneness and anglophoneness (Dallaire
Denis, 2005, p. 143). These youth, like the South Asian youth in study (2000), construct and reconstruct their identities,
&
Tirone and Pedlars
drawing upon their inherited tra-
ditions and upon the cultural traditions of the dominant group in which they are immersed for
much of their school and social lives.
Whilefrancophone
youth in
Dallaires studies
participated in the same sports as are offered at the Olympics, other minority youth drew upon the traditional youth do
sports they learned from their
minority community.
As minority
sports such asfield hockey and cricket, common among youth in South Asia,
and sports like dragonboat racing and martial arts that originated
within
munities, dominant group youth are also ableto accessthese nontraditional
minority comsports, thereby
changing the nature of some sport participation in Canada. Not all immigrants and ethnic minoritieslike themselves alsolive.
minority people choose to live in places where other Chiswick and Miller (2002) explain the value of immer-
sion into the dominant society whereethnic
minority people gain exposure andsocial capital
necessaryfor career development and economic success. Young immigrants and children of ethnic
minority families are often immersed in or at least familiarized with dominant cultural
practicesbecause they usuallyattendschools with peersfrom a vastrange of ethnic andracial backgrounds. Schools therefore provide opportunities for learning the values and beliefs of
diversepeersandfor learning the priorities ofthe institutions with which minoritiesare expected to conform. Sportis very mucha part of the Canadianschool system;for manyeth-
nic minorityyouth,schoolis oftenthe place wherethey first encountersport participation. Immigration
trends in recent decades are quite different from those of the past 150
years. This changeis evident in datacollectedfor the 2011 census,in which 6.2 million people, or 19.1% of the national population, identified themselves as membersof a visible
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport95
minority group. This represents an increase from the 2006 census and is attributed to the large numbers of new immigrants from non-European countries. The three largest visible minority groups in Latin tics
Canada are South Asians, Chinese, and blacks, followed
by Filipinos,
Americans, Arabs, South East Asians, West Asians, Koreans, and Japanese (StatisCanada, 2013c).
immersed in
As more and
more newcomers and visible
Canadian society, their sport traditions
minorities become
and preferences will likely continue
to have an impact on how sport is experienced in this country.
Ethnic Minority People and Sport in Canada Since many of the early 20th-century
white settler groups were not British or French, they
brought with them a number of sports that were not familiar to dominant group Canadians as part of their distinct traditional and people from the former to Canada after
cultural practices. For example, Estonians, Finlanders,
Czechoslovakiaintroduced
modern and rhythmic
gymnastics
World WarII, and Southeast Asians have madepopular a number of their
traditional sports such astai chi and karate (Burnet
& Palmer, 1988). In those early days,
sports clubs and teams weresponsored bysome ethnic communities and churches to engage the youth of the community in
meaningful activity and to shelter participants from dis-
criminatory practices of dominant sport andrecreation associations (Kidd, 1996b; McBride, 1975). Exclusionary practices of dominant group sports associations gave rise to sports teams and clubs sponsored by workers movements and political organizations whose membership wascomposed of minority ethnic
workers. Theseincluded sports teams supported
by Canadian communists in the 1920s and 1930s (Kidd, 1996b). Ethnic sport associations remain a valued part of institutionally ethnic communities.
These associations provide important
complete
opportunities
Canadian
for youth to
experience sport and leisure activities similar to those of dominant group peers within organizations that their parents support. In a study of children of immigrants from South Asia, Tirone and Pedlar (2000) learned that during school years prior to university, South Asian clubs and associations were an important
venue for sport and physical activity for
many of the youth. Several participants in that longitudinal
study, which beganin 1996,
described how they and their families participated in sports such as badminton and volleyball
with other South Asianfamilies
use by their group (Tirone
who rented public gymnasia space exclusively for
& Pedlar, 2000). Stodolska and Jackson (1998) describe a
similar pattern of sports provision and participation in Polish Canadian ethnic clubs. Sport and recreation participation is beneficial for new immigrant opportunities for social integration
youth, providing
with other youth in their neighbourhoods. It is the
source of both embedded and autonomous social capital. Embeddedsocial capital refers to the connection between people based on trust and common values, which serves to unite
people within an enclave or ethnic group. Autonomoussocialcapitalis the trust andrespect that can develop between people of diverse backgrounds and that leads to opportunities
for peoplefrom an enclave to interact outside oftheir homogeneousgroup(Woolcock, 1998).
While high levels of embedded social capital
meanpeople within a homogeneous
group are well connectedto one another, those connections maynot provide group members with information
and connections they desireto be recognized and to prosper outside
of the enclave. Autonomoussocial capital is useful whenpeople wantto interact and be recognized for their skills and potential outside of an enclave.
96Chapter
5
There are several reasons why ethnic sport associations have continued to exist. Sports teams, music,cuisine, language, and other cultural traditions are an expression of group identity (Burnet
& Palmer, 1988). These ethnic sport organizations also provide a supportive
environment.
For example, worker sport associations and ethnic clubs provided sport and
physical activities for early immigrants
who wereridiculed and excluded from
mainstream
sport associations (Kidd, 1996b). Morerecently, sport associationslike those sponsored by Canadian South Asian cultural associations provide youth with the benefits of sport participation as well as opportunities to
meetother South Asian youth their own agein competi-
tive environments their parents support (Tirone, 2000). Ethnic sport associations thus serve to protect participants from the harassmentsome people experience in mainstreamsport. The popularity of ethnic sports is no moreevident than in the sport of soccer. Harney (cited in Burnet & Palmer, 1988) describes participation of ethnic groupsin soccer in Toronto in the 1970s. His account describesthe 78 teams in the Toronto District Soccer Leagueat that time,
morethan three-quarters of which displayed ethnic emblems orthe names of vari-
ous countries asteam names,such as First Portuguese, Croatia, Serbia White Eagle, Hungaria, and Heidelberg.In the winter of 20052006, this multicultural approach waslinked to hockey for the first time.
An inaugural
Canadian Multicultural
Hockey Championship washeld,
where 16 teams of Toronto-area players competed for their home country, such as Russia, Finland, Serbia, Japan, China, Korea, Native Canadians, Poland, Greece, and Italy.
This
tournament launched the new Toronto-based Canadian Multicultural Hockey League(Lewi, 2006). Participation hasgrown overthe yearsto the point wherethere werethree divisions in the 20132014 championship tournament:
Culture Cup(women),
Heritage,and Premier.
Early ethnic sport associations have, historically, valued competitive successas well as positive groupidentity. Ethnic sports teams that displayed ethnic insignia often recruited players basedon ability and not ethnicity. Seekingthe mostskilled players,ethnic sports clubs often accepted players of diverse ethnic backgroundsas
wasthe case when Finnish Canadians,
recognizedfor their skills, wereencouraged to take up Canadiansports (Kidd, 1996b). Ethnic minority athletes have been and continue to be a source of pride for their ethnic group. Participation in sports by ethnic minority athletes providesthem with opportunities to engage in and experiencethe values of other cultures,including those of dominant group members.
Ethnicity, Poverty, and Accessto Sport Whilefew Canadians would argue against the health and social benefits of mostsport participation, especially for children, we have not been ableto ensure the participation of all children in healthy physical activity and sport. Poverty haslong been known to prevent many Canadian youth from participating in organized sports, and often children in poor families havelittle
or no accessto unorganized sports and recreation (Frisby et al., 2005;
White &
McTeer,2012). Recentimmigrants experiencepoverty at higherratesthan Canadian-born workers, and the wagegap between these two groups in the years between 1980 and 2005
increasedsteadily(Statistics Canada,2009).In 2003,80% of newimmigrants reported that they found
workin
Canada during the first two years of residency in this country, but only
42% ofthem found workin the fields in whichthey hadtrained, and manyofthese people work at jobs that provide little
morethan subsistence wages(Statistics
Canada, 2003). A
studyof povertyamong Torontoniansindicatesone-thirdoftheimmigrantfamiliesin Toronto in 2001 lived in higher-poverty neighbourhoods, and that number represents an increase of
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport97
400% between 1981 and 2001 (United
Wayof Greater Toronto, 2004). The same study
reports that visible minorities wereeight times morelikely to live in poverty than they werein 1981. Farfewer children in low-income families participate in sport compared with children in high-income families (Frisby et al., 2005). Ethnic minority youth in low-income families can also face additional limitations
because of parental priorities that emphasize academic
pursuits and discourage participation in sports (Rosenberg, 2003; Tirone & Pedlar, 2000).
Discrimination Another barrier to sport participation that affects some ethnic crimination,
minority Canadiansis dis-
both situational and systemic. In a study of leisure and recreation of teenagers
who werethe children of South Asianimmigrants, racism and indifference
were noted as
reasons whysome youth stopped participating in sports (Tirone, 2000). That group explained how, when faced with overt racism or situations in which they were criticized or ridiculed because of skin colour, clothing,
or religious practices, no one in a position of authority
attempted to intervene in the situation. In another study of new immigrants to the Halifax area, a young university student who emigrated from the
Middle East explained that hefelt
discrimination played a part in why he wasnot able to play soccer for his high school team. He had been an accomplished soccer player in his homeland prior to emigration, and when he arrived in
Halifax as a high school student he attempted to try out for the school soccer
team but wastold that all positions werefilled and he wasnot given a chance to demonstrate
Box 5.1
immigrants New immigrants diverse
and other
ethnic,
involvement
racial,
sport
arrived
engage
active
in
and healthy lifestyles.
grants
and their
children
unique
patterns
of sport
example,
in
Livingston
a study in
2007,
as part
of their
and a sense
some
cases as a source
to
be professional
Smith,
2008;
sport
leisure,
studies
of immi-
interesting
about
as a
For Lori immi-
for those
(Livingston,
Livingston,
98Chapter
gain
communities,
Miller,
5
& Smith,
Miller, 2010).
youth
in
for
others,
to explore
groups
that to
facilitate source
workillustrates
inclusion
in this
races
are
chapter.
cultural
develop
an understanding
diversity
(Tirone,
2010;
dis-
Sport for
practices
with and to introduce
of
these
that young people who develop where they interact
well positioned
which they
Sport is an ideal
some
and
Asian friends.
in situations
civic roles in
for
that
opportunity
people of many different cultures, religions,
other
and
was evident
of exclusion
the traditional
South
recreation,
be a tremendous
nonSouth
of comfort
it
reveals
young
sport,
study,
they identify
to their
Tirones
advantages
as we explain
young
people
and Bangladesh
pursued
while it is the
may also
cultures. &
as they
and leisure
the ethnic
Pakistan,
potential
people
ple of varying
and in
who immigrate Tirone,
has the
a level
accep-
India,
and tremendous
For the
traditions
groups engage in
means to
difficulties
crimination
and
study of leisure in the lives of children
from
Asians encountered
young
and elite-level sports
in their
of income
coaches
physically
was evident that immigrants
of belonging
Tirone,
and
or French, their
learned
diverse ethnic, racial, and religious
tance
leisure.
with co-researcher
they
and coaching. In that study it
sports
and
of immigrants.
grants who are involved in recreation from
neighbours
some
she conducted
Halifax in
for
to
involvement
the
ways.
Susan Tirones illustrate
of immigrants
many
English
contributes
Tirones longitudinal
from
opportunities
meet their
and practise that
with
benefit in
provide
to
to learn activity
who identify
groups
and recreation
and recreation
immigrants
peers at school, to
Canadians
and religious
in sport, leisure,
For example, newly
and Sport
for
which young
of and appreciation Tirone
careers
will need to interact
venue in
& Pedlar,
with
and with peo-
2000).
and across
people for
can
cultural
his skills. Hesatisfied hislove for the game by volunteering asa coach for youth soccer, and upon entering university wasrecruited to play varsity soccer (Tirone, 2005). Ethnic identity
hasthus shaped and been shaped by sport participation in
Canada.
While participants from diverse ethnic and racial backgrounds can benefit from their involvement
in sport, leisure, and recreation (see Box 5.1), barriers to sport participation
based on ethnic identity
are often compounded byracism. The next section explores ways
that racial identity shapes and has beenshaped bysport participation.
racE and Sport in canada The Concept of Race Unlike the concept of ethnicity, raceis a term usedto establish socially constructed distinctions between groups of people based on their genetic heritage. These distinctions, by skin colour, take on social significance
because of differences assigned to
marked
members of
these groups. For example, we could look at a group of people and assumethat some are white, black, Aboriginal, or Asian. It is, however, the belief that the colour of their skin indicates immutable differences between them that in our society.
makesrace a socially significant category
We mightlook to white people for leadership, black peoplefor athletic talent,
Aboriginal peoplesfor environmental guidance, and Asian Canadiansfor academic excellence.
By assuming that race automatically gives individuals
an advantage in some areas
moreso than others, weare reproducing race-based understandings of human behaviour. Skin colour hastaken on social meaningsin ilege white people over others. createdcommonly
North America that hegemonically priv-
A hierarchy of privilege/discrimination
has thus been
referred to asracism. CarlJames explains it this way:
Racism.. . is an uncritical acceptanceof a negativesocial definition of a groupidentified by physicalfeatures such asskin colour. Peoplejustify their racist attitudes and perceptionsby associatingperceiveddifferencesbetweengroups with the presence(or absence)of certain biological characteristicsandsocial abilities. (James,1996,p. 26) Racial classification systems and ideas about race emerged in the 16th and 17th centuries while Europeans wereexploring and claiming imperial dominion over different parts of the world. Asthey encountered people who appeared and acted differently, these strangers were placedin an evolutionary werejudged to be the
hierarchy. Those mostsimilar to the European explorers
most evolved and civilized, and whiteness became the norm by
which others werejudged.
The exploitation
of people from other races
hegemonically justified on the basis of their presumedinferiority
thus became
relative to Europeans.
Social Darwinism extended Charles Darwins theory of natural selection into the social
realm. Thistheory provided Britishand Americansocialtheorists with ascientific tool for determining the superiority ofsome races over others, and thus with ajustification for endors-
ing racialinequality (Booth & Tatz,2000). The presenceofslaveryin Canada,beginningin 1628 (Spence, 1999), and the colonization andlegislative regulation of First Nations within
North Americareinforcedthe subservientposition of blacksand Aboriginalpeoplesrelative to Canadians of European descentin similar ways. This race logic eventually becameinstitu-
tionalized as aracialideologyinvolving skin colour with othertraits including intelligence, character, and physical characteristics and skills (Coakley
Ethnicity
& Donnelly, 2009, p. 262).
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport99
Identification
by race is not, however, a straightforward
process. What did it take,
for example, for someone to be considered white, black, Aboriginal, or Asian, and what were the consequences? The social constructedness
of this process can be seen in the
waysthat race was defined for and applied to different groups in historically, just one they
drop of black blood identified
Canada. For example,
individuals
as black, even though
may have had white ancestors. This waseven put into legislation in some cases. For
example, in
Virginia in 1924 the
Racial Integrity
of negro blood . . . it cannot be counted as white.
Act said that if a child has one drop (Trembanis,
2008, note 7, p. 283)
In contrast to this, the British North America Act, which constituted Canadaasa country in 1867,identified Indians eral jurisdiction.
TheIndian
as arace apart from other Canadiansand placed them underfedAct of 1876, which controlled almost everyfeature of Aboriginal
social life, served to separatethem further from other Canadianson the basis of race. Treaties werethe third factor regulating
Aboriginal life.
Aboriginal peoples hadan uncivilized
Hereagain, the underlying premise wasthat
nature that mustbe altered beforethey could enjoyfull
civil rights. Everyday practices,like performing traditional
dances, wereoutlawed. It
wasnot
until 1960 that First Nations, asarace, could votefederally in Canada(Paraschak, 1997). Chinese migrants weretreated differently yet again. They wereforced to pay a head tax to enter Canada beginning in 1885, and in 1902 a Royal Commission on Chinese and JapaneseImmigration
concluded that
Asians wereunfit
for full citizenship . . . obnoxious
to a free community and dangerous to the state (Wickberg, EastIndian
In contrast to these examples, being white in relatively
1988, p. 416). Chinese and
Canadians were not given the right to vote until 1947. unmarked.
North American society hasremained
White people rarely have to think
of themselves in racial terms
they are privileged by race. They have accessto opportunities in society without having to worry that their race will be a barrier. However, they
maybe treated differently because of
their ethnic background. For example, on Hockey Nightin Canada Don Cherry often comments on the differences amongand Francophone, ered white Tiger
suitability
ofprofessional
hockey players who are
Anglophone, or European, even though all these athletes would be consid-
by race (Langford, 2004). Woods,a prominent professional golfer of mixed black, Asian, Aboriginal, and
white heritage, brought the complexity of defining individuals
by race to public notice in
1997. After hissuccessfulfirst year on the tour, and his win at the
Masters Tournament spe-
cifically, the pressheralded him asasuccessful black golfer. Tiger, however, eventually clarified publicly that he had developed a different racial description for himself asa youth, basedon his actual background. Hecalled himself a Cablinasian,to reflect his CAucasian, BLack, INdian, and ASIAN genetic heritage. In this way, he highlighted two important points: Raciallabels can be assignedto people without those labels being accurate, and the wayindividuals view themselves maybe quite different from the racial category assignedto them by others.
Racial Patterns in Canadian Sport Canada has an early history of discrimination
by race in amateur sport. Cosentino (1998)
arguesthat while classformed the basis of amateurismin England,in
Canadarace also
became a powerful definer of who could compete. This wasevident asearly as 1835, when
blackjockeys werebannedfrom competing atthe NiagaraTurf Club. Thefirst bigregattain Nova Scotia, in 1826, offered prizes for first and second class boats and a canoe race for
100Chapter
5
Indians . . . which wasconsidered the mostentertaining . . . [and] remained part of the Nova Scotian scene until at least 1896 (Young, 1988, pp. 8788). In 1880, Aboriginal players wereexcluded from competing in amateur competitions for lacrossea natedin
Aboriginal culture!
gamethat had origi-
Aspecial league for black hockey playerstitled The
Hockey League wasformed in
Colored
Halifaxin 1900, becoming the seventh league in that city
and the first one overtly defined by race (Young, 1988, p. 31). Aslate as 1913,the Amateur Athletic
Association of Canada opted to ban blacksfrom competing in Canadian amateur
boxing championships, since Competition
of whites and coloured menis not working out
to the increased growth of sport (Amateur
Athletic Union of Canada, quoted in Cosentino,
1998, p. 13). Even the first definition of an amateur in
Canada,created by the
Pedestrian Clubin 1873, noted that no labourer or Indian
Montreal
could be given that designation.
This pattern of exclusion by race is discussed by Robert Pitter (2006) in relation to hockey, which he sees as part of broader systemic racism in Canadian sport. He details the long history of both Aboriginal and black participants in hockey, along with the delay of their entrance into the National Hockey League(NHL)
until 1953 for Aboriginals, when
player Fred Sasakamoosejoined the league, and 1958 for black players, when Willie ORee joined.
Racisttreatment followed these athletes into the NHL as well. Aboriginal
players
depict a Canadian hockey subculture in which racist behaviours are endemic, ranging from routine use of the nickname Chief
to pointedly demeaning and hostile treatment
(Pitter,
2006, p. 130). Black players also faced racial taunts and actions within hockey. For example, P. K. Subban of the
Montreal Canadiens, whois black, wasthe target of racist tweets
on social mediaafter hescored the winning overtime goal against the Boston Bruins in the 2014 playoffs (Associated
Press,2014). Other players, like
Herb Carnegie (19192012),
weresimply banned from playing in the NHL because of the colour of their skin. The racist
mistreatment and exclusion of people of colour from sport can be under-
stood, in part, as ethnocentric monic expectations within are naturalized asthe norm,
distortion (Paraschak, 1989), which further extends hege-
Canadian sport by race.
When whitestream cultural practices
select sporting practices of individuals
become reframed by
those in positions of power as different, less desired, and thus not worthy of support. Aboriginal athlete Tom Longboat, for example, wasone of Canadas mostsuccessful marathoners in the decade prior to
World WarI.
Despite his manysuccesses, he wasaccused
by his managersand in the
mediaof not training consistently or rigorously enough. Bruce
Kidd (1983) ably identifies
and debunks the ethnocentric
bias embedded in those com-
ments. Heanalyzes Longboats training regimen and shows that it not inferior to, common training In a similar
practices of that time period.
manner, a government review of the Native Sport and Recreation Pro-
gram in 1977, five years after its inception, including
wasdifferent from, but
inappropriate
cultural
criticized
activities.
Aboriginal recreation organizersfor
While occasional nonsport activities such
as pow wows, musicfestivals and native cultural traditions workshops (Paraschak, 1995, p. 4) occurred, the vast majority of activities
were Euro-Canadian in orientation
but
offered within an all-Aboriginal context. Thus,it is likely that the concerns of government wereprimarily based on the structure adopted for sport competitions rather than the
activities played (Paraschak,1995, p. 5). The non-whitestreamstructuring of such activities, along with the refusal by the National Indian Sports Council to assimilate
into the
National Sportand Recreation Centre,undercutthis programslegitimacy within whitestream Sport Canada expectations becausethese actions did not align with Eurocentric
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport101
expectations tied to sport. In effect, the actions of Aboriginal organizers weredistorted by Euro-Canadian bureaucrats whosuggested that their activities they did not fit
were not legitimate
because
within whitestream, Eurocentric understandings of sport.
Despitethe presenceof these racist underpinnings in sport, Canada hasalso been a country where black athletes have, at times, found acceptance morereadily than in the States.Jackie Robinson broke the longstanding colour barrier in
United
Major League Baseball by
playing for the Brooklyn Dodgersin 1947. However, the president of the Dodgers, Branch Rickey, actually signed Robinsonin
October 1945 to play professionallyfor the minorleague
Montreal Royals. While Robinson playedfor racism during gamesin the United States.In
Montrealthat first year, he experienced intense Montreal, however, he had great fan support:
Robinsons play made him a beloved sports figure in
Montreal. Children hounded him
for autographs, while adults poured into the ballpark to see him steal bases and score runs. Asa Montreal sportswriter it waslove at first sight.
Three decadeslater, quarterback in this point in
noted, For Jackie Robinson and the city of Montreal,
(Scott, 1987, p. 37)
Warren Moon wasable to play professional football
Canada when that opportunity National Football
League (NFL)
as a black
was not available in the United States. At history, there had only been three black
quarterbacks in the starting role: Fritz Pollard (1920), James Harris(19691977), Gilliam (1974) (Burnaby
Now, 2013). Researchers(e.g., Best, 1987; Leonard, 1987) have
demonstrated in a number of sports, including
professional football, that during this time
decision makersappeared, in accordance with racist ideological segregating or stacking supposedly natural
and Joe
blacks in the athletic running
positions because they
athletes, while only whites werestacked
tions, such as quarterback,
beliefs, to be positionally
centre, and middle linebacker,
were
in central, leadership posisimply
because they
were
assumedto have the ability andintellect to fill such positions. Warren Moons treatment
by the
NFL aligned with this racist belief.
After being
selectedasthe 1978 RoseBowl MostValuablePlayerin hisrole asquarterback, Moon was completely overlooked by the
NFLin its 1978 US college draft. As a result, he came to
play with the Edmonton Eskimosin the CanadianFootball Leagueand wonfive Grey Cups with them. In 1984 he became the highest-paid player in football
the Houston Oilersof the National Football League(Mullick, became the first black quarterback inducted into the Pro Football
when hejoined
2002), and in 2006 he Hall of Fame.
Theseexamplesdemonstratedifferent waysthat race has been givensocial meaning in Canadian sport. Such meaningsare indicative
of broader societal race relations. Frideres
(1988), writing on racismin Canadiansociety, notedthat Racism in Canadafrom 1800 to 1945 wasreflected in restrictive immigration immigrants,
particularly the
policies and practices regarding non-white
Chinese, Blacks and Jews, and by the treatment
of native
peoples (p. 1816). Racist sport practices during this time period would thus have reinforced and been shaped by broader understandings of race. Canadian attempts to address racial inequity through legislation coalesced in the 1982 Canadian Charter of Rights and Freedoms, where equality rights in the public domain wereentrenched in Section 15: Equality Rights 15.(1) Everyindividual is equal beforeand underthe law and hasthe right to the equal protection and equal benefit of the law without discrimination and, in particular,
102Chapter
5
without discrimination
based on race, national or ethnic origin, colour, religion, sex,
ageor mentalor physicaldisability. (2) Subsection(1) doesnot precludeanylaw, program or activity that hasasits objectthe amelioration of conditions of disadvantaged individuals or groupsincluding those that are disadvantagedbecauseof race, national or ethnic origin, colour, religion,sex, age or mentalor physical disability. Human rights commissions have also provided a legal avenue for addressing racial inequities in
Canada. Participants and administrators
welcomingand
legislatively
social construction
alignedplace
who wish to
makesport a more
for all can benefit by understanding the
of race and racism in sport.
Race and Ethnic Relations In society, individuals
always act in relation to others. The possibilities within which we
live are thus formed through the social relations
that exist between individuals
groups. Through social relations, rules are (re)produced concerning how things how resources can be distributed.
Theythus become power relations,
and
work and
becausethose rules
always provide for or privilege some people over others. Race and ethnic relations are a particular type of power relationthey ity.
As noted in
privilege individuals
Chapter 1, power is the
on the basis of race or ethnic-
capacity of a person or group of persons to
employ resources of different types in order to secure outcomes (Gruneau, 1988, p. 22).
RayaneBenattiis a 9-year-old Quebec girl sent off the pitchin Gatineaufor wearing a hijab in July 2012. She wastold that she could not playin the tournament at alocal park because her headscarf wasa safety hazard. Bruno
Schlumberger/Ottawa
Citizen.
Reprinted
by permission.
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport103
It wasalso noted that there are three
measuresof power in sport: the ability to structure
sport, to establish sport traditions, and to define legitimate
meaningsand practices associ-
ated with dominant sport practices. These measuresof power, differently shaped byrace and at times by ethnicity,
can be seen when looking
structured sporting opportunities such asall-Aboriginal
at mainstream sport and at racesport competitions.
Whitestream Sport As was mentioned earlier, Claude Denis(1997) usesthe term whitestreamsocietyto indicate that Canadiansociety, while principally structured on the basisof the European,white, rience, is far from being simply white
expe-
in socio-demographic, economic and cultural terms
(p. 13). Extending his term, the rules of mainstream,or whitestream,
sport have been pri-
marilyshaped byindividuals of white European heritagein waysthat privilege their traditions, practices, meanings,and sport structures. This is an example of institutionalized racism, since the structure of the system,if followed, those who are not whiteit Differential treatment
will always produce outcomes that discriminate against
will privilege white people of European heritage over others. ofindividuals
by race has occurred in whitestream sport in vari-
ous ways.For example, the ability of George Beersin 1860 to create and then institutionalize lacrosse rules in a mannerthat he found
meaningful, as opposedto the waysthe game
wasplayed by Aboriginal Canadians, demonstrates his privilege by race over the originators of the game of lacrosse (Cosentino, 1998, p. 15). As well, during this time period black and Aboriginal athletes werebanned from competing against white Canadiansin a wide variety of sports. If they did compete, descriptors such asIndian
or coloured
wereadded after
their nameto indicate that they weredifferent from, and subservient to, white competitors. Whenovert discrimination
waseliminated in sport, other moresubtle forms of racism
remained. The organization of sport privileged those activities that national competitions, including
the
were played in inter-
Olympics and world championships.
The federal
government criteria for funding sports reflected this; physical activities that fell outside the whitestream model were not seen aslegitimate example, the
and were denied federal funding.
tional gamesfestivals in the Northwest Territories since 1970, wasinformed 1977 that their federal sport funding Games activities, legitimate
For
Northern Games Society, which has organized yearly Inuit and Denetradi-
sport
pointed out that the
Aboriginal cultures, were not deemed to be
according to the parameters of the funding agency. Aboriginal organiz-
ers argued that their traditional defining legitimate
would be stopped. The letter
which had their origin in
byletter in
activities
werealso sports, but they hadless power over
sports, and thus lost their funding (Paraschak, 1997).
Another drawback to whitestream sport in Canadais the sense of discomfort that is experienced by many marginalized peoples in
mainstream sport experiences. Both indi-
vidual andinstitutionalized racismin hockey weredetailedin a 1991 TSN documentary, Hockey: A White Mans Game?Ted Nolan, an Aboriginal NHL player, spoke of the racism
hefaced from his teammates as a teenager and the isolation hefelt as a result. Other Aboriginal players spoke about the racial slurs they endured while playing. Andthey spoke
aboutthe structure of hockeyin Canada,whichtook them far awayfrom their families and support systems, and how that structure
madeit more difficult for them to succeed in light
oftheir own cultural practices.Since Aboriginal players werenot ableto structuresport in preferred ways,they found it difficult to feel part of or to succeed in professional hockey.
104Chapter
5
Robidoux (2012) extends and updates this analysis through his examination
of First
Nations mens hockey in Canada. He explores disruptions in hockey practices that point to border thinking,
which entails the perceptions formed byindividuals
ders between mainstream and culturally waysthat
distinct local
along the bor-
practices. Robidoux documents
Aboriginal cultural values are being proactively expressed through
First Nations settings under Aboriginal control, rather than
hockey in
merely reproducing
Euro-
Canadian understandings of the sport, supporting his argument that hockey is a key site for cultural enunciation,
not cultural capitulation.
(p. 5) Pitter (2006), in his discussion
of Aboriginal and black hockey playersin and outside of the NHL, affirms that we need to reassert the accomplishments of non-whites in hockey, as well asthe obstaclesthey have had to struggle against (p. 135) to address the current distortion in our knowledge about the history of hockey in
Canada. This includes
who are one of the largest visible minorities in NHL. He does mention the few
non-white groups such asthe
Chinese,
Canada yet are largely absent from the
Asian players who have played in the
Larry Kwong, who played one game in 1948 for the
NHL, including
New York Rangers, as well as more
recent athletes such as Paul Kariya, Jamie Storr, and Manny Malhotra. MaryLouise Adams(2006) points out one waythat successful black hockey players are madeinvisible in terms of race. She writes about how, in the 2004 Stanley Cupfinals, Jarome Iginla, the black team captain of the Calgary Flames, wasprofiled in the Mail with a photo headlined Canadas here was an opportunity to shift
Captain, Canadas Team.
Globeand
Adams points out that
hockeys limited racial narratives and, by association,
maybeshift notions of Canadiannessalittle bit too (p. 75) by acknowledging the waysthat Canadas
Captain, being black, represents the changing face of an increasingly
multicul-
tural country. Yetthe newspaper article madeno reference to race, except for a comment in the sidebar by Iginla about having grown up asthe only black hockey player on histeam. This newspaperarticle thus reinforced, she argued, that hockey contributes to whitenessin the Canadianimaginary: [T]he
neglect of race seems naively hopeful, reflecting the beliefs
that race doesnt matterin sports meritocracy, that race is not an important (Adams, 2006, p. 75). This approach to erasing visible
Canadianissue
minorities contributions,
which
could otherwise generate a more multicultural understanding of the sporting landscape in Canada,aligns uncomfortably with the waythat BenJohnson wasportrayed in the mediaas an outstanding Canadian athlete when he won gold atthe 1984 Olympics, yet wasreframed as aJamaican Canadian once he wasfound to havetaken steroids and stripped of his medal. Another reason sport is the tradition
why some
Aboriginal people feel uncomfortable in
of using Indian
mascotsfor sports teams. Thisissue is laid out clearly
in a 1997 documentary on American Indian
mascotsin sport titled In
(Rosenstein, 1997). Through looking at one casestudyChief the
University of Illinoisthe
reotypic Indian
whitestream
Illiniwek,
Whose Honor? the mascotfor
documentary points out the devastating impact this ste-
mascothad on Aboriginal children and the efforts required to try to
eliminate it. Relevant to our discussion on whitestream sport are the accounts of how the
Indian mascotwascreated by whitestudents atthe university, howthe actions of Chief Illiniwek
are portrayed asauthentic
even though they are constructed bythe performer
and often degrade Nativetraditions, andthe comments by white alumni and administrators about the importance
of the Chief as part of their
traditions.
ing legal efforts by anti-mascot protestersto have the trademark protection
were bolstered by a letter
Morerecently, ongo-
Washington Redskinslose its
from 10 membersof [the
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
United States]
Canadian
Sport105
Congresswho wantthe namechangedbecauseit is offensiveto many Native Americans (Canadian Press,2013). However,this letter wasunable to sway NFL Commissioner Roger Goodell, whofeels the teams nameis a unifying force that standsfor strength, courage, pride and respect. . . [fostering] fan pride in the teams heritage (Canadian Press,2013). Asubsequentletter, signed by 49 USsenators, wassent in May2014 urging Goodellto changethe WashingtonRedskinssname becauseit is aracist slur and the time is ripe to replaceit, thereby sending a clear message that racism and bigotry have no placein professionalsports (Windsor Star,2014, p. B5). Patternsof differentialtreatment basedonrace havebeen documentedin variousprofessionalsports. The Centrefor the Study of Sportin Societyat NortheasternUniversity (now called the Institute for Diversityand Ethicsin Sport),for example, hasprovided a Racialand GenderReport Cardsince 2001that reports on progressin the elimination of discrimination, both amongthe playersandin the administration ofsport withinthe various professionaland university mensand womenssportsleaguesoperatingin North America: The Racial and Gender Report Card (RGRC) is the definitive assessment of hiring practices of women and people of color in sports and sporting organizations in the positionassessed
mostofthe leading professional and amateur United States. The report considers the com-
by racial and gender makeupof
players, coaches and front
office/
athletic department employees in our countrys leading sports organizations, including the
National Basketball Association (NBA),
League Baseball (MLB), ball Association (WNBA),
National Football League (NFL),
Major League Soccer (MLS)
and
Major
Womens National Basket-
as well asin collegiate athletic departments. (Institute for
Diversity and Ethics in Sport, n.d.)
On occasion,efforts havebeentaken directly by professionalsportsleaguesto address the under-representationof minoritiesin administrative positionsin professionalsport. This under-representationis onelegacy of the racial ideology that saw peopleof colour as unfit for leadership andthinking positions. Forexample,the RooneyRule,implemented by the NFLin 2003, wasoneattempt to addressthe lack of visible minoritycoachesin the league. At that time, about 65% of players wereblack, but only about 6% of teams had minority coaches. The controversial rule stipulated that NFLteams mustinterview at least one minoritycandidatefor headcoachingandsenior managementpositions. Whilethis rule led to anincreasein minoritycoachesin the NFL,it onlyrequiredthat a minoritycandidatebe interviewed, which made it asuperficiallysymbolic action at times whenthe team managementalready knew whothey wouldbe hiring astheir next coach.In 2012,for example, no minorities werehiredto fill eight coachingandsevengeneral managerpositions. In 2014, NBA Commissioner Adam Silver wasapplaudedfor taking astrong public stance againstthe racist behaviours of Donald Sterling, owner of the Los Angeles Clippers.Sterling wasrecorded on April 25, 2014,scold[ing] his mistress for bringing AfricanAmericansto games,namely[Magic] Johnson (Jenkins, 2014, pp. 7071). NBA players, the generalpublic, andsponsorswereall outragedat hisracist comments. Silverannounced on April 29that Donald Sterling wasbannedfor life from associating with the Clippers organizationor any NBA activities. He wasalsofined $2.5 million,the maximumamount allowed underthe NBAconstitution, with thosefunds going to organizationsdedicatedto anti-discrimination and tolerance efforts. Silver addedthat he wouldalso encouragethe board of governorsto force Sterling to sell the team. Hefinished by saying, We stand
106Chapter
5
together in condemning Mr. Sterlings views. Theysimply have no placein the NBA (TMZ Sports,2014). Silversrapid and punitive actions against Sterlings racist comments and previousbehaviours werepraised widelyin the mediaasan appropriate wayto address racismin professionalsport (Jenkins, 2014). In Canadianamateursoccer,there hasrecently been controversyoverthe banning by the QuebecSoccerFederation of youth wearingturbans becausethey are unsafe. The director generalofthe provincial organization, whenaskedaboutits decision,commented that if Sikh kids wantto playsoccer while wearinga turban theres an easysolution: they can playin their own yard. . . the reasonto maintainthe banis for playersafetyreasons.. . . Whenaskedhow manyinjuries havebeenlinked to turbans[the director general] saidthere are none (Associated Press,2013). Outrage wasexpressedacrossthe country, including protests by soccer playerson oneteam whose membersall donned turbans to play. The CanadianSoccer Associationsuspendedthe QuebecFederationfor refusing to overturn this decision. The FederationInternationale de Football Association(FIFA) then addressedthe issue.In its ruling, FIFA specifically addressedCanadaand saidthat mens headcoverings werepermitted aslong asthey metsafety standardsand complied with rulessuch asbeingthe same colour as uniforms. Therule appliedin all areasand on alllevels ofthe Canadianfootball community, FIFAsaid(Peritz, 2013). The QuebecSoccer Federationsubsequentlyrevokedits decisionto align with the FIFA rule clarification. Whitestream sport,then, providesvaryingopportunitiesfor athletes dependingontheir race. This differentialtreatment can be overt, such asracial slurs that makeparticipation uncomfortablefor those groups.But discriminatorytreatment is also,at times, built into the existing system of sport. In Canada,for example,the discriminatory treatment of French Canadians in the NHL hasbeenexploredin terms ofsalary discrimination, entry discrimination, under-representationat certain positions(or stacking), and under-representationon certain teams. For example, Longley(2000) completed a study that looked at all French Canadiansplayingin English Canadaorthe United Stateson NHL teamsfrom 1943to 1998. Hisanalysisidentified an under-representationof French Canadianplayerson English Canadianversus USteams. After discounting manyother explanations, Longley provides supportfor the thesis that FrenchEnglish tensions maylead English Canadianteamsto discriminateagainstFrench Canadianplayers.Thisexplanation wasstrengthened whenthe degreeof under-representationon English Canadianteams wasshown to be greaterduring seasonswhensovereignistpolitical threatsin Quebecwerehighest. Thisresearch demonstratesthat ethnicity, as wellasrace, affectssporting opportunities. Marginalized groupshave thus hadto look elsewherefor alternativesport opportunitiesor to createsomethemselves.
Doing Race, Doing Racism Raceasasocially constructedidea becomesnaturalized(i.e., acceptedastruth) asindividuals, on a daily basis,behaveasif it weretrue. Westand Zimmerman(1991), in their discussionondoing gender, point out that this processinvolves individuals behavingin appropriately masculineor feminine ways,but it is asituated doing, carried out in the virtual or real presenceof others who are presumedto be oriented to its production (p. 14). Applyingthis concept to race, doing race means that individuals actin relation to each other in waysthat confirm their socially constructed beliefs about race. It is through the acting out,the doing ofrace on a day-by-daybasis,bothin terms of our own
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport107
race and the race we assignto others,that we maintain asociety whererace hassocial meaningand consequences. Stereotypesrigid beliefsabout the characteristics of aracial grouptake onimportance as welive or do them into existence by operating asif they weretrue. Spence (1999), in his study of black maleathletesin a Canadianhigh school, heardfrom these youth that their teachers encouragedthem athletically but not academically. Thistreatmentfits with the stereotypethat blacksas arace are athletically moreand academically less gifted than whites. Asthese athletes workedhard on athletic competenceand gained statusthrough their success,they hadlesstime to giveto academics,andthus their actions reinforced the stereotype. Allthe while,they andtheir teachers weredoing racism. This pattern wasfurthered asblack youthidentified other black youth whofocused onacademics asacting white or selling out (Spence, 1999, p. 92) Throughsuchlabelling, the youth wereundercuttingtheir peerseffortsat academicsuccess,thus further reproducingthe stereotypethat they wereinnately racially giftedin athletics and unsuitedfor academics. Doing race can alsobe carried out in waysthat offer positiverace-connected meanings to membersof a group, providing them with aform of cultural expressionthat is uniquely their own. Majors(1990), for example,identified cool pose as a creative way that black menexpresstheir masculinityin asociety whereopportunities arelimited and racismis institutionalized. Wilson(1999) describesthe expressionof cool posein sport: Sport, particularly the dominant
basketball, are sites where young Black malessymbolically
White group and create [a positive race-connected] identity
ing both a flamboyant
on-court language (now popularly known as trash
and a repertoire of spectacular playground
movesand high-flying
oppose
by developtalking)
dunks. (p. 232)
Whilethis wayof doing race wasinitially generatedby black maleyouth, Wilson alsodiscusseswaysthat this style hasbeenincorporated bysport marketers to sellto a mass audience,andin particular to sellthe Toronto Raptorsbasketballteam. Theseadvertising messages, heargues,undercutthe resistantsymbolic message that cool poseprovidesblack males,while potentially reinforcing stereotypic black maleimagesto Canadianaudiences. In this instance, sport marketersweredoing racism.
Race-Structured Sport Systems Opportunitiesfor sport createdby andfor racial groupsoutside mainstreamsociety havea long historyin Canada. WhenAboriginal or black athletes werebannedfrom whitestream sports,they often countered withthe creation oftheir ownleaguesand competitions,limited to participantsfrom aspecifiedracial background.This provided organizerswiththe opportunity to assigntheir own meaning to sport andto developtraditionsin keeping with Aboriginal, black, or Asiancultural understandings.Andit createdopportunitiesfor marginalized groupsto playsports whenthey did not havethat chancein the mainstream sport system. An example of arace-structuredsporting event wouldbethe North AmericanIndigenous Games, first heldin 1990in Edmonton. Theseinternational Games,restricted to those of verifiable Aboriginal ancestry,stress fun and participation while encouraging our youth to strive for excellence (Aboriginal Sports/Recreation Association of BC, 1995). The Gamesinclude only mainstreamsports, becausethe intent is to providea
108Chapter
5
stepping-stone to national- and international-level cultural program showcases various traditional in
sport competitions;
however, the
games and dances as well. The 2002 Games
Winnipeg had morethan 6,000 participants celebrating
Aboriginal culture as well as
competing in sporting events organized by Aboriginal sports organizations. have been held at sites in
Canada (five times) and the
The Games
United States (two times); the
summer 2014 Gamesare scheduled for Regina, Saskatchewan. Through this event, Aboriginal sportspeople experience morepower found in the whitestream systemthey
in sport than is
are in charge of its structure, its practices and
meanings,and the traditions they will continue into the future.
Unfortunately, these race-
structured opportunities rarely qualify for the kinds offinancial and material rewards given to legitimate
whitestream sport, although the Canadian government has acknowledged
Box 5.2
a Strengths-Based Examination of aboriginal peoples physical activity practicesin canada Examinationsof Aboriginalpeoples practicesrelated to physical activityin Canada often begin by talking aboutthe problems or barriersthey face. This approachis called the deficit perspectivebecauseit keepsthe focus on whatis not working well andlooks to expertsto fix the problems. Thestrengthsbased perspective, whichcomes out of social work, counters the deficit perspectivebecauseall analysesstart bylooking at whatis being done wellthe strengths of the groupin question.
In terms
become
upon to further
only one resource
group so that their
findings,
analysis,
government identified
nal cultural
many who
hopes for the future
One strengths-based data,
those strengths.
among
policies
four
of physical
practices.
(Paraschak
tied to
& Thompson,
sport
A holistic
orientation
is carried mental,
out, stressing emotional,
examination
the
spiritual
This holistic
activity
orientation
as one concept,
out sport, recreation,
2. The strong
medicine
active living,
emphasis on family
to
physical
Aboriginal
activity,
strength,
cept from recommends
two-eyed
creator sur-
tation
Canadian drawing
Mikmaq
before the
activity physical,
wheel and
physi-
than
all types
of
separating education.
and community
Elder
is originally Albert
traditional
mainstream
(Aboriginal
and (Euro-
based) forms
to the
North
such
start
of an event, as explained
which is a unit
of all-
Indigenous practices
as prayers
coaching,
Certification
creation
American
of Aboriginal
events,
Manual,
Coaching
as part
Aboriginal
in the of the
into
to
or a holistic
the
orien-
Aboriginal 3M
National
Program.
a con-
Marshall, and
who
Western
Ethnicity
for
a two-eyed peoples
into
provide
a strong
foundation
can
build to
produce
organizers
opportunities
their
seeing
can look
participants. approach,
at these
mainstream sporting
well. Incorporating sport
culture
system Policy that
excellence value
and
would
in sport
Race
in
and
and
Sport109
to
participants the
the
as
mainstream
2012
Canadian
and innovative participation
help to further
Heritage,
them
where appropriate
dynamic
celebrates
would
(Canadian
Canadian
toward A
with
non-Aboriginal
of non-Aboriginal
which is
which
keeping
and incorporate
practices
contribute
promotes
of inclusion
perhaps
these strengths into
vision,
upon
more effective
And in
strengths
enhance the experience
Sport
on both
and in
has led
the
sporting
toward
Coaching
Aborigi-
2007
and physical
seeing,
which
events like
mainstream
of physical activity practices. 3. The third
enga-
mainstream
4. Thecommitmenttoself-determinationintheirapproach
Games and to the insertion
Lavallees
also views rather
in
2013):
of the
(see
any issue.
activity.
Experts
way physical
an integration
and
of the traditional
cal activity). physical
toward
systems,
to
can be seen in the
participants
and traditional
These strengths 1.
best solutions
activity, this
Aboriginal
Canadian-based)
and research
strengths
by
the
with the
on national
and reports,
provide
of physical
all-Aboriginal
may be realized.
drawing
potential
work
to
gement
Resources are then identified in their environment that
can be drawn
vey
knowledge
2012,
the p. 5).
and policys
the presence of the all-Aboriginal
sport system in Canadathrough federal policy and fund-
ing, as outlined in the 2002 (but not the 2012) Canadian Sport Policy and Sport Canadas Policy on Aboriginal Peoples Participation in Sport from 2005. Peoplesometimes attach the term reverseracism to describe situations privileged individualsusually
white peopleare
basis ofrace. For example, non-Aboriginal Indigenous
Games,even though
excluded from opportunities
stream sporting events. As directed by Section 15(2) of the including
on the
people cannot compete in the North American
Aboriginal athletes can theoretically
doms, however, efforts to address the
where normally
conditions
compete in
Charter of Rights and Free-
of disadvantaged individuals
those that are disadvantaged because of race
main-
or groups
are seen as a necessary part of
providing equality rights, becausesuch efforts are required to help correct the imbalance created by unequal privilege in the first place. This section on racism in sport has documented the individual racism present in whitestream sport in or marker
and institutionalized
Canada. Race has been, and remains, an indicator
that provides meaningin our everyday sporting practices. In order to ensure
that all Canadians, regardless of race, have opportunities to find in sport, race-structured sporting sport systemin
opportunities
are currently
meaningful participation needed to ensure that the
Canada provides broadly for the needs of all Canadians. Until whitestream
sport broadens even further
and becomes truly inclusive,
alternative
race-structured
opportunities should be celebrated and supported aspart of the Canadian sport system. In this
way,the institution
cultural
of sport becomes a more welcoming practice reflective
of the
meanings and traditions of all Canadians, regardless of race.
conclusions Race and ethnicity society.
are aspects of our heritage that take on social meaningin
These constructed
meanings become naturalized each time
we do
Canadian them in
accordance with the dominant beliefs around us. White people of European descent in Canada have been the mostprivileged in sport, with those from other racial backgrounds often discriminated against both overtly and through systemic racism.
Whitestream hege-
monic sport has emerged, legitimizing select activities such as Olympic sports and marginalizing other activities that do not fit opportunities
within such understandings. Segregated sporting
havelikewise emerged, enabling organizers and participants from
marginal-
ized groups to structure their own experiences in sport in waysthat foster pride in their cultural
heritage, while giving the athletes opportunities to play that are not available
otherwise. Legitimizing these sporting opportunities, and the alternative ethnic practices preferred by immigrants and their descendants, takes us one step further toward creating a
sport systemthat is representative ofall individuals in Canada. Aracial incident in hockey in 2011 reminds usthat racism is still present in Canadian
sport. In September,a banana peel wasthrown onto the ice by a spectator during the shootout
after a tied preseason NHL game in
London,
Ontario,
which landed
near
WayneSimmonds,a black hockey player originallyfrom Toronto. Simmonds wasableto score after the incident,
110Chapter
5
but said that he wasshocked: I
dont know if it had anything to do
withthe fact Im black. . . I certainly hope not. Whenyoure black you kind of expect[racist] things. Youlearn to deal with it (Canadian Press,2011). Thespectator eventually pleadedguilty and wasfined $200, but [p]olice said there wasnt enough evidence to charge him with a hatecrime, and his attorney told the court his client wasnt awarethat tossing a bananaat a black athlete could beseenasracist and hateful (Weir, 2012). In this case,one of our mostsuccessfulCanadianathletes wasinhibited from enjoying pridein his black heritageand skills becauseof racist behaviours by othersin sport. We needto reflect onincidents such asthis that still happenin Canada.To begin to resolve the issue, weneeda clear definition ofracism and discrimination that everyoneassociated withsport can understand,along with clearly articulatedideas about how everyoneshould respond whenthese things happen. Ouroutrageat such occurrenceshelpsto ensurethat weare promoting an inclusive sport systemthat enablesall individuals to foster pridein their ethnic and racial identity. Oursilence, onthe other hand,reproducesasport system where particular individualsthose who are privileged by white skin and European heritagetoo often benefit whilethe rest of Canadiansdo not. Thesocial construction of raceand ethnicity asintegral aspectsofsport, and ofleisure morebroadly, needsto berecognized if we areto find waysto decreasediscrimination basedon thesefactors. Atthe sametime, the positive waysthat our culturalidentities can beshaped by movementneedto befacilitated equallyfor all, regardlessofrace or ethnicity. As welook to othersfrom different cultural backgroundsto seehowthey know themselves through movement,we will expandthe waysthat wecan potentially know ourselves.In this way,wecan helpto shapeas wellas beshaped bythe social meaningsassignedto race and ethnicity in Canadiansport. And we will be moreready to help create equitable opportunities for all peopletrying to access meaningfulsport in Canadaby providing activities that honour the racial and ethnic differencesbetween participants rather than erasingthem.
critical thinking
Questions
1. Explore the sporting interests of minority group residents, including Aboriginal, Inuit, Metis,black,and other minority ethnic groups,in the communityin which you live orstudy. Prepareatable that outlinesthe varioussports,the groupsinterestedin eachsport, and the valuesconnectedto eachsport. 2. If you encounter children from a minority ethnic familyidentifiable from their distinct clothing and accentswhat aresome of the questionsyou mightaskthem to determineif there arefactors that mayprevent orrestrict their participation in sport or physical activity? If you determine that they doindeed havespecial needs,how mightyoufacilitate their involvement in sport or physical activity? 3.
Whataretwo waysthat a coach,teacher, orsportsadministrator mightrespondto an incident of overt racism,such as namecalling directed at ateenagerin a basketball program?
4. How do youdo race in yourlife? In sport? 5.
Writeabout anincident wherethe social meaningsattachedto raceinfluenced your life by either privileging you or providing a barrier to opportunities you wishedto experience.
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport111
6.
Writea code of conduct for sport that would align with the Canadian Charter of Rightsand Freedoms.
7. How dorace-structuredsporting eventsaddressdiscrimination in mainstreamsport? 8. Outline examples of how sporting performances can provide opportunities for decreasingracial distinctions andfor increasing racial distinctions. 9. Howdo weaccountfor the ethnic diversity evidentin the LPGA (Ladies Professional Golf Association)tour, whereseven out of the ten top womengolfersare Asian?
Suggested readings Forsyth, J., & Giles, A. R.(Eds.) (2013).
Aboriginal peoplesandsport in Canada: Historicalfoundations
and contemporary issues. Vancouver, BC: UBC Press. Joseph,J., Darnell, S., & Nakamura, Y.(Eds.). (2012). Raceandsportin Canada:Intersectinginequalities. Toronto, ON: Canadian Scholars Press. Paraschak, V., & Thompson, K.(2013). Finding strength(s): Insights on Aboriginal physical cultural practices in Robidoux,
Canada. Sportin Society: Cultures, Commerce, Media, Politics, 17(8), 10461060.
M.(2012). Stickhandling through the margins: First Nations hockey in
Canada. Toronto,
ON: University of Toronto Press. Tirone, S. (2010).
Multiculturalism
and supports for immigrants
and leisure policy: Enhancing the delivery of leisure services
and minority
Canadians. In S. Arai, D. Reid, & H. Mair (Eds.),
Decentring work: Critical perspectives on leisure, development and social change (pp. 149174). Calgary, AB: University of Calgary Press.
references Aboriginal
Sports/Recreation
North American Indigenous Adams,
M. L. (2006).
national
game. In
(pp. 7184).
Association of BC. (1995,
October).
Media release on the 1997
Games planned for Victoria, BC.
The game of whose lives?
Gender, race, and entitlement
in
Canadas
D. Whitson & R. Gruneau (Eds.), Artificial ice: Hockey,culture and commerce
Peterborough, ON: Broadview Press.
Associated Press. (2013, June 3). Quebec soccer leaders cite safety on turban Times. Accessed from
bans.
Washington
http://www.washingtontimes.com/news/2013/jun/3/quebec-soccer-
leaders-cite-safety-on-turban-bans. Associated Press. (2014, Retrieved from
May 2). Canadiens P. K. Subban target of racist tweets.
CBC Sports.
http://www.cbc.ca/sports/hockey/nhl/canadiens-p-k-subban-target-of-racist-
tweets-1.2629997. Best, C. (1987).
Experience and career length in professional football:
The effect of positional
segregation. Sociologyof Sport Journal, 4(4), 410420. Bhabha, H. K. (1994).
Thelocation of culture. London,
Booth, D., & Tatz, C.(2000).
UK: Routledge.
One-eyed: A view of Australiansport. New South
Wales, AU: Allen&
Unwin. Breton,
R. (1964). Institutional
immigrants.
and personal relations
of
AmericanJournal of Sociology, 70, 193205.
Burnaby Now. (2013, from
completeness of ethnic communities
November 20). STM grad named just third
CFL Canadian
MVP. Accessed
http://www.burnabynow.com/sports/photo-galleries/stm-grad-named-just-third-cfl-
canadian-mvp-1.708508. Burnet, J. R., & Palmer, H. (1988). Coming people. Toronto,
112Chapter
5
ON: McLelland
Canadians:
An introduction to a history of Canadas
& Stewart in association with the
Multiculturalism
Program,
Department of the Secretary of State and the
Canadian Government Publishing Centre, Supply
and Services, Canada. Canadian
Heritage. (2012).
Canadian
Sport
Policy
2012.
Retrieved
from
http://sirc.ca/
CSPRenewal/documents/CSP2012_EN.pdf. Canadian Press.(2011, September 23). NHL says banana-throwing incident in pre-seasongameis stupid andignorant.
The Hockey News. Retrievedfrom http://www.thehockeynews.com/articles/41885-
NHL-says-bananathrowing-incident-in-preseason-game-is-stupid-and-ignorant.html. Canadian Press.(2013, June 13). NFL commissioner letter from
Goodell defends Redskins nickname, answers
members of Congress. Huffington Post. Accessedfrom
http://www.huffingtonpost.
ca/2013/06/12/nfl-commissioner-goodell-_n_3430152.html. Chiswick, B. R., & Miller, P. W.(2002).
Do enclaves matterin immigrant
adjustment? Discussion
paper 449. Bonn, Germany: Institute for the Study of Labor. Coakley, J., & Donnelly, P. (2009). Toronto,
ON: McGraw-Hill
Cosentino, F. (1998).
Sportsin society: Issues and controversies (2nd
Canadian ed.).
Ryerson.
Afros, Aboriginals and amateur sport in pre-World
WarI Canada. Canadas
Ethnic Group Series, Booklet No. 26. Ottawa, ON: The Canadian Historical Society. Dallaire,
C., & Denis, C. (2005).
Asymmetric
hybridities:
Youths at Francophone
Games in
Canada. CanadianJournal of Sociology, 30(2), 143169. Denis, C. (1997).
Weare not you: First Nations and Canadian modernity. Peterborough,
ON:
Broadview Press. Frideres, J. S. (1988).
Racism. In
The Canadian Encyclopedia(2nd ed., Vol III, p. 1816). Edmonton,
AB: Hurtig Publishers. Frisby,
W., Alexander, T., Taylor, J., Tirone, S., Watson, C., Harvey, J., & Laplante. (2005). Bridg-
ing the recreation divide: Listening to youth and parents from low income families across Canada. Ottawa, ON: Canadian Parks and Recreation Association. Glazer, N. (1970). Ethnic groups in (Ed.),
America: From national culture to ideology. In
Minorityresponses(pp. 7486).
Gruneau, R. (1988).
M. Kurokawa
New York, NY: Random House.
Modernization or hegemony: Two views on sport and social development. In
J. Harvey & H. Cantelon (Eds.),
Notjust a game: Essaysin
Canadiansport sociology (pp. 932)
Ottawa, ON: University of Ottawa Press. Hollingshead,
K. (1998).
Tourism, hybridity,
and ambiguity:
The relevance
of Bhabhas third
space cultures. Journal of Leisure Research,30(1), 121156. Hutchison, R.(1988).
A critique ofrace, ethnicity, and social classin recent leisure-related research.
Journal of Leisure Research,20(1), 1030. Institute for Diversity and Ethics in Sport. (n.d.).
The Racial and Gender Report Card. Retrieved
from http://www.tidesport.org/racialgenderreportcard.html. James, C. (Ed.). (1996). Toronto,
Perspectives on racism and the human services sector: A casefor change.
ON: University of Toronto Press.
Jenkins, L. (2014,
May 26). All of us, not least Donald Sterling, now know this: Adam Silver, Com-
missioner,is his own man. SportsIllustrated, 120(2). Kidd, B. (1983). In defence of Tom Longboat. CanadianJournal of History of Sport, 14(1), 3463. Kidd, B. (1996b).
Worker sport in the new world: The Canadian story. In
(Eds.), Thestory of workersport (pp. 143156).
Champaign, IL:
Human Kinetics.
Langford, I. (2004, February 10). Cherrys comments: Racially insensitive Observer. Retrieved from
A. Kuger & J. Riordan
and nonsensical. Toronto
http://observer.thecentre.centennialcollege.ca/opinion/cherry_
ian021004.htm. Lavallee, L. (2007). Physical activity and healing through the
medicine wheel. Social Work Publica-
tions and Research,Paper 2. Retrieved from http://digitalcommons.ryerson.ca/socialwork/2. Leonard II,
W. M.(1987). Stacking in college basketball:
A neglected analysis. Sociology of Sport
Journal, 4(4), 403409.
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport113
Lewi, D.(2006, January 31). Canadas first
multicultural hockey league. Toronto Observer. Retrieved
from http://tobserver.thecentre.centennialcollege.ca/read_articles.asp?article_id=681. Li, P. S.(1990). Raceand ethnicity. In P. S. Li (Ed.), Raceandethnicrelationsin Canada(pp. 317). Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press. Livingston, L. A., Tirone, S. C., Miller, A.J., & Smith, E. L. (2008). Participationin coaching by Canadianimmigrants: Individual accommodations andsport systemreceptivity. International Journalof SportsScience & Coaching,3, 403415. Longley, N.(2000). The underrepresentation of French Canadianson English Canadian NHL teams: Evidencefrom 1943to 1998.Journalof SportsEconomics1(3): 236256. Macleans. (2012, August14). Fieldof dreams: Cricketstadium proposedfor Toronto. Retrievedfrom http://www2.macleans.ca/2012/08/14/field-of-dreams-cricket-stadium-proposed-for-toronto/. Majors, R.(1990).
Cool pose: Black masculinity and sports. In
M. Messner & D. Sabo (Eds.), Sport,
men, and the gender order: Critical feminist perspectives (pp. 109114).
Champaign, IL:
Human
Kinetics Press. McBride, P. (1975).
Culture clash: Immigrants and reformers, 18801920.
San Francisco, CA: R & E
Associates.
Mullick, R.(2002, February). Warren Moon. CFL Legends.The Official Site of the Canadian Football League.Retrievedfrom http://www.cfl.ca/CFLLegends/moon.html. Paraschak,V.(1989). Nativesport history: Pitfalls and promise. CanadianJournalof Historyof Sport, 20(1), 5768. Paraschak,V.(1995). The NativeSportand RecreationProgram,19721981: Patternsofresistance, patterns of reproduction. CanadianJournalof Historyof Sport,26(2), 118. Paraschak,V.(1997). Variationsin race relations: Sporting eventsfor Native peoplesin Canada. Sociologyof SportJournal, 14(1), 121. Paraschak,V., & Thompson, K.(2013). Findingstrength(s): Insights on Aboriginalphysicalcultural practices in
Canada. Sportin Society: Cultures, Commerce, Media,Politics, 17(8), 10461060.
Pitter, R.(2006). lenge. In
Racialization and hockey in Canada: From personal troubles to a Canadian chal-
D. Whitson
(pp. 123139).
& R. Gruneau (Eds.),
Peterborough,
Artificial ice:
Hockey, culture and commerce
ON: Broadview Press.
Peritz, I. (2013, June 14). FIFA authorizes wearing ofturbans at all levels of Canadian soccer. Globe
and Mail. Accessed from http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/soccer/fifa-authorizes-wearingof-turbans-at-all-levels-of-canadian-soccer/article12550476/. Reitz,J., Zhang, H., & Hawkins, N.(2011). Comparisonsof the successofracial minority immigrant offspringsuccesses in the United States, Canadaand Australia.SocialScienceResearch, 40, 10511066. Robidoux, M.(2012). Stickhandlingthroughthe margins:First Nationshockeyin Canada.Toronto, ON; University of Toronto Press. Rosenberg, D.(2003). Athletics in the Wardand beyond: Neighborhoods,Jews, and sport in Toronto, 19001939. In R. C. Wilcox, D. L. Andrews, R.Pitter, & R. L. Irwin, (Eds.), Sporting dystopias: The making and meaningsof urban sport cultures (pp. 137152).
Albany,
NY: State
University of New York Press. Rosenstein, J. (Producer). (1997). In whosehonor? AmericaIndian
mascots in sports. NewJersey: New
Day Films. Saunders, D.(2010).
Arrival city: Thefinal migrationand out next world. Toronto, ON: Alfred A Knopf.
Scott, R.(1987). JackieRobinson:Baseball great. New York, NY: ChelseaHousePublishers. Spence, C.(1999). Theskin Im in: Racism,sportsandeducation. Halifax, NS:Fernwood. Statistics Canada.(2003). 2001 Census, Analysisseries: Canadasethnocultural portrait: The changing mosaic.Retrievedfrom http://www12.statcan.ca/english/census01/products/analytic/ companion/etoimm/canada.cfm.
114Chapter
5
Statistics Canada. (2009).
Earnings and incomes of Canadians over the past quarter century, 2006
Censushighlights. Retrievedfrom http://www12.statcan.gc.ca/census-recensement. Statistics Canada.(2011). Analytical document: Immigration and ethnocultural diversity in Canada. National HouseholdSurvey, 2011. Retrievedfrom http://www12.statcan.gc.ca/nhsenm/2011/as-sa/99-010-x/99-010-x2011001-eng.cfm. Statistics Canada.(2013c). 2011 National HouseholdSurvey:Immigration, place of birth, citizenship, ethnic origin, visible minorities,languageandreligion. The Daily, May8, 2013. Stodolska, M., &Jackson,E. L. (1998). Discriminationin leisure and workexperiencedby a white ethnic minority group.Journalof LeisureResearch,30(1), 2346. Tirone, S.(2000). Racism,indifference and the leisure experiencesof South Asian Canadianteens. Leisure:TheJournalof the CanadianAssociation of LeisureStudies,24(1), 89114. Tirone, S. (2005). leisure:
The challenges and opportunities
An international
Conference, Toronto, Tirone, S. (2010).
faced by migrants and
minorities in their
perspective. Paper presented at the 10th International
Metropolis
ON.
Multiculturalism
and supports for immigrants
and leisure policy: Enhancing the delivery of leisure services
and minority
Canadians. In S. Arai, D. Reid, & H. Mair (Eds.),
Decentringwork: Critical perspectivesonleisure, developmentandsocial change(pp. 149174). Calgary, AB: University of CalgaryPress. Tirone, S., Livingston, L. A., Miller, A.J., & Smith, E. L. (2010).Including immigrants in elite and recreational sports: The experiencesof athletes,sport providersandimmigrants. Leisure,34(4), 403420. Tirone, S., & Pedlar, A. (2000). Understandingthe leisure experienceof a minority ethnic group: South Asianteens and young adultsin Canada.Societyand Leisure,23(1), 145169. TMZ Sports.(2014, April 29). Donald Sterling bannedfor life. Retrievedfrom http://www.tmz. com/2014/04/29/nba-commish-adam-silver-deciding-donald-sterling-fate-livestream-l-a-clippers/. Trembanis, S.(2008).
Research note: Defining Aboriginal
in a historical and sporting context.
Journal of Sport History, 35(2), 279283. United Wayof Greater Toronto. (2004). Poverty by postal code: Thegeographyof neighbourhoodpoverty 19812001.
Preparedjointly
Washburne, R. F. (1978).
bythe
United
Wayand Canadian Council on Social Development.
Black underparticipation
in
wildland recreation:
Alternative
explana-
tions. LeisureSciences,1, 175189. Weir,T.(2012,January 9). Hockeyfan fined $200for throwing bananaat black player. USA Today. Retrievedfrom http://content.usatoday.com/communities/gameon/post/2012/01/hockey-fanfined-200-for-throwing-banana-at-black-player/1#.UpaN6OKMmHs. West,C., & Zimmerman, D.(1991). Doing gender.In J. Lorber & S. Farrell (Eds), Thesocial constructionof gender(pp. 1337). London, UK: SagePublications. White,P., & McTeer, W.(2012) Socioeconomicstatus andsport participation at different developmentalstagesduring childhood and youth: Multivariateanalysesusing Canadiannational survey data. Sociologyof SportJournal, 29(2), 186209. Wickberg, E. B. (1988). Edmonton,
Chinese. In
The Canadian Encyclopedia (2nd ed., Vol. I, pp. 415417).
AB: Hurtig Publishers.
Wilson, B. (1999). Cool
pose incorporated:
The marketing of black masculinity in Canadian NBA
coverage. In P. White & K. Young (Eds.), Sport and genderin
Canada(pp. 232253).
Toronto,
ON: Oxford University Press.
WindsorStar.(2014, May23). Senate wants Redskinsrenamed, p. B5. Woolcock, M.(1998). Socialcapital and economic development: Toward a theoretical synthesis and policyframework. Theoryand Society27, 151208. Young, A.J. (1988). Beyondheroes:Asporthistoryof NovaScotia:Vol.2. Hantsport, NS:LancelotPress.
Ethnicity
and
Race
in
Canadian
Sport115
Chapter 6 Sex, Gender,andSexuality MaryLouise Adams
For people interested in sex, gender, and sexuality, sport provides seemingly endless
In the 1970s and 1980s feminists worked hard to encourage gover-
opportunities to think
nment agencies, schools, and sport
about norms and stereotypes, equality and discrimination.
From
ongoing debates over fighting in the NHL to the launch of the Lingerie Football League
organizations to expand opportunities
in
for girls and women to play sports.
Hamilton,
Ontario, issues related to gender and sexuality seem to be unavoidable fea-
Overthe past several decades the
tures of contemporary sports. Sport haslong beenlauded as afine vehicle for turning boys
numbers of girls and women partici-
into
pating in a whole range
for
of sports has
grown exponentially and now, for
for women and, indeed,
many boys and men. Sport has also been derided for celebrating
behaviours that lead to excessive and violent aggression, risk-taking,
many Canadian girls, sport is a takenfor-granted
men, which can sometimes makeit an awkward institution
hypermasculine and the develop-
ment of sexist and homophobic attitudes. It has been promoted asa source of empower-
part oftheir childhoods,
asit has been for
mentfor
many boys
women and girls and criticized
as an inequitable
institution
in
which female
athletes dont get their fair share of resources or respect.
for generations.
In sport sociology, a widely shared view is that there is nothing inherently
bikeriderlondon/Shutterstock
good or
bad about sports themselves, and this is certainly the case with respect to gender and sexuality.
As an institution,
sport can reinforce the existing organization of gender and
sexuality in our culture or it can challenge it.
116
Chapter
6
Historically, in
Canada and elsewhere, it
has done both, nationalities,
with different
effects for
people of differing
physical abilities,
ages,
or racial, ethnic, or class backgrounds. In this chapter I will introduce the
main theoretical
concepts and frames that sociologists
have used to examine issues
related to gender and sexuality in sport. I will question the popular assumption that sport is (really!)
a malesphere before looking
at womens participation
and how it is that sport has come to be a relatively
in sport in
Canada
commonplace experience for some
Canadian girls and women. The chapter also examines issues related to sexuality and issues of concern to transgendered, transsexual, lesbian, and gay athletes.
The purpose
of the chapter is not to provide a survey of current issues but to offer conceptual tools that
will help you makesense of the issues you encounter in other texts or in your own
experiences of sport.
Clarifying
Our Terms
Sexand gender are the key concepts in this chapter. interchangeably
Whilethese two terms are often used
in everyday speech, sociologists find it useful to distinguish
between
them. Sexis a classificatory scheme that is intended to divide humans into groups on the basis of their reproductive capacities. For the mostpart, people are assignedto one of two groups according to the shape of their genitals or to the presence or absence of certain secondary sex characteristics like beards or breasts. In our culture there are two generally recognized sexes: female and male.
While anthropological
research suggests that all
human societies have classified people by sex, not all societies have classified them into the simple two-category
binary system that is the dominant system in mostcontemporary
Westernindustrial societies (Nanda, 2000). What makessex important
sociologically is its centrality to the way we understand
other people. Sexis one of the first things that registers for us when weencounter someone new.
Was that person whojust walked by a woman or a man? When weare unable to
classify a persons sexit can feel unsettling.
How,for instance, should werefer to someone
when we do not know their sex? English, like
many(but not all) languages, has no room
for ambiguity around sex; it is impolite to refer to another human as it. or even think
of someone, weneed to choose the correct pronounshe
To speak about or heaccording
to the binary classification of sex. The assumption that the worldis divided into two distinct kinds of people is built directly into the rules of the language and is, therefore, fundamental to the way wesee and think about the people around us. Sport is one of many institutions
that contribute to the
maintenance of this binary system.
Of course, as anyone reading this book will know, not simply divide bodies into
mainstream Westerncultures do
male and female categories, they also saddle the different
categories of bodies with different expectations regarding appearance and behaviour. These
expectations reflect a belief that notjust maleand female bodies but maleandfemale people are essentially different from each otherphysically,
psychologically, and socially.
Sexrefersto bodies;genderrefersto the cultural expectations about behaviour, attitudes, and appearance that are imposed on people.
Male bodies are supposed to demonstrate
masculinetraits; female bodiesaresupposedto befeminine. Stereotypednotions of what counts as appropriately
masculine or appropriately feminine
often serve as the basisfor
normsagainst which peoples behaviouris judged and regulated. Wesee evidence ofsuch judgment
when a boyis teased or ridiculed by hisfriends or hisfamily for wanting to pursue
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality117
so-called girls activities like ballet.
Wesee the effects of the judgment
when boys keep
their desirefor such activities to themselves. Increasingly, it is becoming clear that the expected tidy equation between bodies and genders does not work for everyone. The term transsexual refers to people whofeel that their sex and their gender do not correspond associal conventions dictate. Soa child with a male body might grow up with a very strong sense of being a girl.
Or a child
with a
female body might grow up hoping to become a manand not a woman. Some transsexual people choose to take hormones and have surgery to change their physical sex to align with their own knowledge of their gender identity. ical intervention
Othertranssexual people eschew med-
to set their own path through the expectations and attitudes of a culture
that is heavily invested in having bodies and genders properly lined up. Athird group of people describe themselves astransgendered. This could specifically
with masculinity or femininity,
meanthat they do not identify
or that they understand their
gender to be
fluid rather than fixed in one category. Some transgender people try to develop a range of masculine and feminine styles of behaviour,
while others try to live outside standard gen-
der categories altogether. Later in this chapter, I will addressthe issues faced by transgender and transsexual people in sport. The assumedtight links between sex and gender haveimplications life, but they are particularly strong in the areas of sexual identity, and sexual behaviour. person
5
The conventional
equations are that
attraction to women, and that female body
men. And so people who express non-normative
5
feminine
in all aspects of sexual attraction,
male body person
5 5
masculine
attraction to
versions of gender, like
malefigure
skaters or ice dancers, are often assumedto be gay. And while there are many gay people who reject conventional
gender norms, not all gay people do. Similarly,
heterosexual people accept them. we will see, has contributed behaviour in some
The conflation
to the acceptance
mens sporting
shown to participate
in so-called
gender and sexual orientation
not all
of gender and sexual orientation, and celebration
of hypermasculine
cultures and to the reluctance some masculine sports.
has also had an impact
Historically,
as
women have
the conflation
of
on womens sport participation,
as
we will see below. Overthe past three decades, Canadians have been witness to significant the relationship important
between lesbian and gay communities and mainstream culture.
changesin The most
of these werethe major victories in the 1980s when courts and human rights
commissions extended human rights protection to prohibit discrimination of sexual orientation.
on the grounds
The 2005 Supreme Court decision that opened the door to lesbian
and gay marriagealso marks a hugeshift in public attitudes to lesbian and gay people and the willingness of government agencies to reflect it. Despitethese achievements,
Canadian cultures are still largely organized around the
assumptionthat everyoneis heterosexualuntil proven otherwise. Heteronormativity is an awkward but useful term that
marksthe fact that social institutionslike
media,popular music,or sportprivilege forms of sexual identity
education, law,
and value heterosexuality morethan other
or expression. The term captures the keyfact that heterosexuality
is morevalued notjust becauseit seemsto be morecommon, but becauseit is considered more normal. By corollary, other sexual orientations or identities
are seen, at best, as not
quite normal and, at worst,as deviant. Homophobia is a morefrequently usedterm that means,quite literally, the fear of homosexuals;it is a product of a heteronormative culture.
118Chapter
6
sOCial COnsTruCTiOn: a framewOrk Thinking abOuT gender nOrms
fOr
Wheredo gender norms comefrom? Some might arguethat their roots lie in biology. The notion that menplay morecontact sports than women do because mens bodies produce moretestosterone is an example of this kind of argument. Whilesociologists do not discount the fact that there are differences between maleand female bodies, they do question the extent to which these physical differences arethe groundsfor cultural and social behaviours. Sociologists would call the testosterone-leads-to-contactsports argument a kind of biologicaldeterminism.In other words,it is an argument that explains human social behaviour as a product of human biology. Becausesuch argumentsreduce complex phenomena (the fact that more menthan women play tackle football) to the effects of a single biological cause,sociologists consider them to be reductionist. The preferredsocial science perspectiveis a theoretical framework called social constructionism. In studies of gender,social constructionism cameto prominence as a critique of biological determinism. It emergedas a meansof explaining the tremendous cross-cultural and historical variations in what counts as normal masculineor normal feminine behaviour. If gendered behaviours wereprimarily determined by biology, would we not expect that masculinityandfemininity wouldlook fairly similar acrosstime and place? The history ofsport providesvery good evidencefor the fact that they do not. Acentury ago,in the expandingindustrial societies of North Americaand Europe,it was widely believedthat womens biology madethem incapable of participating in vigoroussports. This position wasdevelopedby white, middle-and upper-classprofessionalssuch as physicians, teachers, and ministersand wasdirected toward womenof similar background and social position. It is not, therefore, surprising that white, middle- and upper-class womendid not,for the mostpart, engagein vigoroussport at that time. Giventheir lack of experience with hardlabour or other physically demanding activities, they maynot have believed that they werecapable of doing so. And yet clear evidence of womens strength and physical competence waseasily availableto those same womenand to the professionals who advisedthem in the hard physical work done by their own female domesticservants.In short, what wasconsiderednatural for womenin the 19th century varied between classesand racial groups,asit varies with whatis seen as natural for womentoday. Canadiangirls and women now play a broadrange of sportsin numbers that would have been unimaginable to earlier generations. Didfemale biology change overthe pastcentury to makethis possible? Ofcoursenot. Whatchanged werethe dominant social and cultural norms around how physical womenand girls should be, what their bodiesshould look like, the kinds of clothes they should wear,and howthey should move. Dominant normsreflect the valuesand interests of powerful groupsin society. Here,the white, middle-classnormthat suggestedwomenshould not be physicallystrong or competent would have positioned working-classwomen who werestrong and competent as unnatural andinferior. Asatheoretical perspective,social constructionismreminds usthat whatis considered natural and normalin one placeor time mightbe viewedand experiencedasabnormalin another. It keepsus mindfulthat human behaviouris variable, andit also providesassurancethat the waygenderis arranged now doesnot haveto beforever setin stone. Things
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality119
can and will change.Forpeople whoareconcerned aboutgender-basedand otherinequalities, the possibilityof change can motivateeffortsto makechange. Manysport scholars whostudy genderdoso with the goal of promoting changesin sport that will feed gender equalityin the broadersociety.
is spOrT really
a male Thing?
Sport is a malepreserveis one of the mostoften-repeatedstatementsin sport sociology. Asyou sawin Chapter 3, the history of sport hasindeed been a history that highlights menand masculinity. Areport publishedbythe International Olympic Committee(IOC) describedthe ancient Olympicsin Greeceas a male-only extravaganza (International Olympic Committee, 2009, p. 3). When modernsporting institutions weredevelopedin Europeand North Americain the 19th century, thesetoo weredesignedby andfor men. There wereno eventsfor womenin the first modern Olympic Games in 1896. Pierre de Coubertin,the founder of the modern Olympics,saw womensroles asspectatorsand not ascompetitors. Coubertin,a Frencharistocrat,imported hisideas aboutsport from England. According to historian James Walvin,the type of 19th-centurysportsthat Coubertinso admired had emergedas part of the cult of manlinessthat pervadedboys privateschoolsin the mid-1800s(Walvin, 1987).In the Victorian era, manlinessstood for neo-Spartanvirility as exemplified by stoicism, hardiness,and endurance (Mangan & Walvin, 1987, p. 1). Educatorspromoted athletic competition to foster these qualitiesin boys.In this sense, sport developed as a moraland pedagogicaltool of imperialism. Upper-classboys were being educatedso that they could govern colonies throughout the British Empire, and sport wasmeantto teach them aboutleadership,team play, and courage.Forthe workingclassboys who wouldone dayhaveto follow their orders,sport was meantto promotethe discipline, obedience,and deferenceto authority that wasrequired by expandingcapitalist economiesand militaryservice.In both cases,sport wascalled upon to help turn particular kinds of boysinto particular kinds of menin other words,to prepareboysfor the station determined bytheir class. This wasthe modelofsport that wasexportedto Canada and other British colonies aroundthe world. Overthe pastcentury and a half, manypeoplehavecontinued to understandsport asa deviceto toughen up young menandto seeathleticism asa central component of virility. Somesociologistsofsport arguethat sport playsa keyrole in the construction of hegemonic masculinity,whichis aterm that was introduced and developedbysociologist R. W.Connell. Hegemonic masculinityis one of the manypossibleimages or modelsof masculinitythat circulate in aspecific historical or cultural context. It is a dominant and idealized form of masculinity (Connell, 1990, p. 83) that hasachieved broad public acceptanceand operates as common sense, serving to define what menshould belike. In the processof becomingthe dominantideal, hegemonic masculinitysidelines other waysof being a man; it sits at the top of the hierarchy of genderidentities availableto peoplein malebodies. Connell saysthat the ideal helpsto secure patriarchal power and, morespecifically, to perpetuatethe subordination of womenand the marginalizationof gay men. The particular features ofthe ideal can and do changeto maintainacceptance.In todays capitalist consumereconomythe ideal emphasizesphysicalstrength, toughness, occupational success,and competitiveness.Sport offersa vehiclethrough whichthe ideal is both produced
120Chapter
6
and promoted, with maleathletesservingto embodyand displaythe ideal in practice. As Connell writes,To be culturally exalted,the pattern of masculinity musthaveexemplars whoare celebratedas heroes (Connell, 1990,p. 94). Men whoplay on professionalsport teams haveboththe cultural visibility and personalattributesto fulfill this role. Thestatus that accruesto maleprofessionalathletesin North Americanculturesis a product of the hegemonic masculine ideal and helpsto legitimize it. Connell hasarguedthat sport hascometo bethe leading definer of masculinityin mass culture (1995, p. 54). Menand boys whoare unableor unwilling to developtheir athleticism lose access to a key markerof masculinity(Gill, Henwood,& Maclean,2005). Researchers in the sociologyof education haveshownthat elementaryand highschoolstudentsunderstand this, andthey useathleticism as protection againstgender-basedand homophobicbullying. In astudy with Britishelementaryschoolchildren, EmmaRenoldfound that some boys who werehigh-achievingstudents,andthus at risk of beingseenasfeminine bytheir peers,used sportstrategicallyasa wayto protecttheir masculine reputations(Renold, 2001).In herethnographicstudy of masculinityin two Californiahighschools,sociologist C.J. Pascoe referred to whatshecallsjock insurance. Pascoe found that athleticismallowedsome boysto expose more feminine partsoftheir identities withoutbeinglabeledafag. Boystold herthat their status was,in part, determinedby howthey wereableto positionthemselvesrelative to the jocks whooccupiedthe top rungs oftheir schools social hierarchy(Pascoe,2003). And what about boys who dont like to or who are unableto play sports or who chooseto playsports that are consideredto befeminine? Too often they are at risk of
Canada
has produced
Chan, pictured role
here.
models, figure
Aleksander
a long Yet strict
skating
line
of
gender
is not
V. Chernykh/PhotoXpress/ZUMA
Mens
World Figure
norms in
a popular
sport
Skating
our culture for
young
Champions,
mean that Canadian
despite
like
Patrick
such
excellent
boys.
Press, Inc./Alamy
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality121
being marginalizedaswimps or sissies. It is not a coincidence that girls outnumber boysat mylocal skating club by aratio of about 10:1. Thereis both misogyny(hatred of women) and homophobia at work here, asthere is when old-school coaches admonish their maleathletes not to playlike girls (Daniels, 2005). Similar attitudes emergein the ongoing debatesoverfighting in hockey.In 2009, HockeyNightin Canadacommentator Mike Milbury usedthe term pansification to describe what would happento hockey should fighting be banned. Hiscommentled to complaints that the CanadianBroadcasting Corporation waspermitting homophobicspeech. Helen Kennedy,executive director of the lesbian and gayadvocacygroup EGALE, arguedthat the term pansy is generally usedin a derogatoryfashion to bully young,effeminate, gay men (CBC Sports,2002). Sportresearchershaveshown that the particular tough-guy (hegemonic) masculinity that is prizedby sports personalitieslike Don Cherryand that is producedin high-profile menscontact team sports has hadtroubling consequencesfor the menand boys who aspireto it for themselves. Thefear of being called out asa wuss is one of the reasons some maleathletes play whileinjured, engagein violence onthe field, take drugsto bulk up, and go along with offensive and sometimes abusive, misogynous,and homophobic hazingrituals (Johnson & Holman, 2004; White & Young,2007). Thereare manyother versionsof masculinityavailablein sport, for examplein cross-countryskiing or diving or triathlon, but these do not receive the recognition orthe rewardsthat accrueto athletes in the hypermasculineprofessionalsportssuch asfootball and hockeythat garnerthe most attention in the media,and therefore havea biginfluence in popular culture.
Female Athletes in Sport
Media
To considerthe malenessof present-daysport from a different direction, one canlook to see howfemale athletes arerepresentedin sport media. Many mornings,asI flip through the Globeand Mail,I canfind no coverageof womenssports at all. Thesportssections of daily newspapersare dominated bystories aboutthe bigfour North Americanprofessional malesportsleagues, which arethe exclusive preserveof men. Television hassimilar abysmallylow rates of coverageof womenssport (see Chapter 11). Whileverylittle recent research hasbeen done onsport mediain Canada,areport from alongitudinal studythat hasbeentracking the coverageof womenssport onlocal television newsprogramsin Los Angelesand on the ESPN highlights show SportsCenterdemonstratesthat coverage of womens sport (in non-Olympic periods) hasactually declined over the past 20 years, despitethe expansion of womens professionalleagues and womens participation in a widerrange ofsports. Onthe television newsprogramsthat werepart ofthe study, and on SportsCenter, coverageof womenssport now accountsfor just 1.3 to 1.6% of the total content (Cooky, Messner,& Hextrum,2013). Associologist MargaretCarlisle Duncan has written, the treatment of womenathletes in the mediais bothambivalent and derogatory (Duncan, 2006, p. 247). Sheargues that studiesin variouscountries show that female athletes aresexualizedin images and text, that their accomplishments are trivialized and obscured,and that they are often framed by storylines having little to do with their athletic skills (Duncan, 2006). In a study of Canadianand USnewspapercoverageofthe womensand mensgold medalcontendersin hockeyat the 2010 Olympic Games,John Vincent andJane Crossmanpresent an example of such findings. Theyfound that the coverageinfantalized and trivialized
122Chapter
6
women players, undermined their athleticism, and conveyed the impression that the mensgame wasthe onethat really counted (Vincent & Crossman,2012). Sportsreportersroutinely mention womens appearanceandtheir romantic andfamily lives asa meansofimposing a heteronormativeframe over narrativesthat might otherwisethreaten conventional assumptionsaboutsex and gender. So,for instance, it hasnot been uncommonfor newsstories about Canadianhockey player Hayley Wickenheiser, arguablythe bestfemale playerin history,to makefrequent referencesto heradopted son Noah andto herresponsibilities as a mother. Certainlyit is important to recognizethat athletes havelives that extend beyondtheir sports. However,it would be a rare story about a malehockey playerthat wouldspend any time at all wonderingabout how he juggles hissport and his parenting. Theassumptionthat sport is, atits core, a malepreservehas meantthat womenhave long hadto strugglefor resources,recognition, and respect as athletes andfor their participation in sport to beseen as ordinary. Historically, the equation that conflates sex, gender,andsexual orientation has madesport a difficult choicefor many women.Popular assumptionsthat sport is (really) a masculinepursuit have meantthat female athletes have often beenseen as mannishand,therefore, aslesbians (Cahn, 1994; Lenskyj,1986). Thefear of being perceivedastoo masculineor asalesbian haskept many womenboth lesbians and heterosexualsfrom choosingto playsportstraditionally defined as male.In earliertime periodsthis fear kept some womenand girls out of sport entirely. Whilethe worsteffects of this kind of homophobia and genderpolicing have diminishedin recent decades,womenssport is still not completely clear of anxiety aroundthe relationship of athleticism and gender.It is nocoincidencethat entire teams of womenall keeptheir hair long enoughto wearin ponytails. Whilethere is nothing wrong with ponytails, the fact that almost allfemale athletesseemto bechoosing them, suggeststhat homophobiaand heteronormativity maywellbe at work.
sex and gender
differenCes
in spOrT
One of the manyreasons whysport is such aninteresting topic of study for those of us interested in genderrelations is becauseit is a highly valuedand pervasivecultural institution in whichsex and genderdifferencesare,especiallyat the highestlevels, fundamental. Indeed, sport withoutsex differenceis almostinconceivable. The mostpowerful meansoffostering and maintainingsexand genderdifferencein sport is the routine segregationofthe sexes.Sexsegregationoperatesin sportin two primary ways. First, withexceptionsfor youngchildren andsomeintramural orfun leagues,almostallsports haveseparateeventsfor womenand men;female and maleathletesalmost nevercompete againsteach other. Second,there arestill some sportsthat are popularly understoodto be moreappropriatefor onesexthan for the other. Thesociologicalterm for this is sporttyping. The CFLorthe NFLaregoodexampleshere,asarethe aestheticsports(rhythmic gymnastics, synchronizedswimming,figure skating,artistic gymnastics,and diving). Genderdistinctions arealsofosteredin sport bythe fact that manyeventshavedifferentrulesfor menand women. In this section I discussthe two different waysof maintainingsexsegregationin sport and two issuesthat are directly related to sexsegregation:sextesting andthe inclusion of transgenderandtranssexualathletes.I will then moveonto talk about gender-basedrules in sport andlesbian and gayissuesin sport.
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality123
Separate Events for
Men and Women
So whydosport organizationsorganizeseparateeventsfor maleandfemale athletes? Most wouldsaythat they do so becauseit ensuresfairnessfor women,given the fact that, on average, menare physically biggerandstrongerthan women.Butif the issueis primarily a matterof size and strength, why doesone seesex segregationin sports where menssize and strength give them no advantage?Lets take the shooting event of Olympicskeet (trap shooting) asan example.Introduced in 1968,it wasa mixed-sexcompetition at the Olympics.In 1992, a woman, Zhang Shan of China, wonthe gold medal. Atthe Games that followed, in 1996, women werenot permittedto compete. Aseparate womensevent wasestablishedin 2000. Thesenewsex-segregatedevents have different rules. Menget five rounds of 25targets while womenget three. In asport wherestrength and size make no difference to performance, what wasthe reason for separating the menfrom the women? And what wasthe reasonfor giving womenfewer rounds? Skijumping raisessimilar questions. The preferredbodyshapefor ski jumpersis small andlight. Maleski jumpers often weighlessthan 130 pounds;there is certainly no argument in favour of menssizein this sport. Andyet, not onlyare maleandfemale athletesseparated in ski jumping, womenhave hadto fight to get to compete at all. TheInternational Ski Federationdid notrecognize womenseventsuntil 1998. While mencompetedin skijumping atthe first WinterOlympicsin 1924, womensfirst Olympicappearancewas in Sochi, Russia, in 2014. Thefact that womensevents havefinally madeit on to the Olympicscheduleis a result of court challengesand extensivelobbying byfemaleski jumpersandtheir advocates. Theski jumping example allows usto seethe exclusionaryideological processes that have constrained womens participation in sport. In the yearsleading up to the 2010 Vancouver Olympic Games, the record holderonthe 95-metrejump at Whistler Olympic Park wasan American womannamedLindsey Van. Andyet, becausethere wasno womens competition in ski jumping at the Games,Van did not get to defend herrecord.If sporting competitions are supposedto be about extending the limits of human performance, shouldnt the record holder have beenableto compete at the Olympics?Should Van not have hada chanceto compete againstthe two menwho wereherrivals for the record? In an article on womens ski jumping, sport scholars Jason Laurendeauand Carly Adamsput the Olympic controversy into historical context. They noted that in 19thcentury Scandinavia, womenand menboth participatedin ski jumping at alocal level, often in the same competitions (Laurendeau & Adams,2010). But asthe sport became morestructured, with governing bodiesand codified rules, officials beganto promoteski jumping asnatural for menbut too dangerousfor women.(Would a mansbonesbeless likely to break during afall?) Onthe advice of medicalexperts, officials banned women from competition, and thus ski jumping becameaso-called masculinesporta turn of eventsthat precludedthe possibility of a manhaving to lose to a womanin competition. At the start of the 20th century, the best wayto ski jump wasin a malebody. Andsoit remained until recently when womenjumpers finally exerted enough pressureon the International Ski Federationandthe IOC to be ableto compete at the samelevel as men (Womens Ski Jumping USA, n.d.). So,in asociety wheregenderrights advocateshave been workingfor yearsto eliminategendersegregationin the professions,in education, andin politics, sport presentsus with high-profile eventsthat havestrict divisions between womenand men. The point
124Chapter
6
hereis notthat there are no physical differencesbetween womenand menthat might need to be accommodatedto makesome sportsfair (although some sociologists(Kane, 1995) havesuggestedthat we would do better to organizeeventsin terms of weight or other sport-specific markersrather than sex, as they doin wrestling). The point is that the continual referencing of genderdifferencesgivesthem alot moreweightthan they would have had otherwise, or than they needto havein a society in which womenand men participate equally in the domestic and private spheresin physical, intellectual, and emotional work.
Sex Testing in Sport Oneof the striking consequencesofthe segregationof the sexesin sport is the practicein majorcompetitionslike the Olympicsoftestingfemale athletesto verifytheir sex. Thisis not a practiceto which maleathletesaresubject. Theostensiblepointis to keep menfrom competing unfairly againstreal women,although nosextest hasevercaughta man masquerading asafemale athlete.In the 1960s,the International Associationof AthleticsFederations (IAAF), whichgovernstrack andfield, required womencompetitorsto undergoa visual physical inspection bythree gynecologists,a practicethat athletesfound humiliating and degrading (Donnelly & Donnelly,2013).In 1968,the IAAF andthe IOC introduced chromosometests. The problem with anysex test is that there is no exact standard by which one can determine exactly whois and whois not a woman. Humansdo not divide neatlyinto the subclassesof maleandfemale. Upon which criteria would one determine whobelongsin which category? Genitalia? Therate of sexualindeterminacy hasbeen estimated to be between 1in 1,500 and 1in 2,000 births (Intersex Society of North America, n.d.). Hormones?Both maleandfemale bodiesproduceso-called maleand female hormones, and there is no absolutelevel or ratio that separatesone sex from the other. Chromosomes?Eventhe IOC eventually admitted that these are unreliable. After considerable public outcry, the IOC and other majorsports organizations abandonedthe practice of across-the-boardgender verification (their term) (Genel, 2001). Yetthey continue to test particular athletes, as wasthe casein 2008 at the Beijing Olympic Gamesand in 2009 withthe horrific treatment ofthe South African worldchampion 800-metrerunner CasterSemenya,who wassubjectedto extensivetesting bythe IAAF andto humiliating treatment in the mediaafter officials and other competitors accused her of not being a real woman. Many womensorganizationsandsports organizations,including the Canadian Centre for Ethicsin Sport (CCES), arguestrongly that sex verification testing should be abolished. Whilethe tests mayoriginally have been designedto search out men,they now serve primarily to identify athletes who areintersex,that is, who have congenital variations that lead to nontypical physical characteristicsrelated to sex. At the 2006 Asian Games,Indian runner Santhi Soundarajan wasstripped of asilver medaland pushedout ofsport after atest showedthat she had atypical chromosomesfor a woman. Areport put out by the CCESarguesthat the overall evidencefrom genetics and sciencesupport[s] dismantling the structures of suspiciontowards athletes with variations of sex development. Even as our knowledge continuesto grow, the pivotal point is to transition sport policiesand attitudesfrom gender verification to genderinclusion (Canadian Centrefor Ethicsin Sport, 2012, p. 8).
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality125
Transgender and Transsexual Athletes in Sex-Segregated Sport Genderinclusion is another important issuethat pertains directly to the segregation of the sexesin sport. Misunderstandingand discriminatory attitudes around gendervariation have madesport a difficult spacefor manytransgenderand transsexual people.In sport, the almost universal categorization of participants by sex hasled to constraintsfor transgender people who mayresist being categorized,andfor transsexual people who maycategorizethemselves differently than sport officials do. The mainissuefrom the perspective of transgenderand transsexual athletesis to ensurethat they can participatein sport in the sex category with which they identify. The mainissue for sport organizations is whether male-to-femaletranssexuals who have hadsex reassignmentsurgery and who take female hormones havean unfair advantagein womens competitions; medicalevidence makes it clearthat they do not (Canadian Centrefor Sport Ethics,2012). In 2004,the IOC adoptedrules, referred to asthe Stockholm Consensus, that permit the participation of fully transitioned transsexual athletes (athletes who havechanged sex legally and surgically and who have beentaking hormonesfor at least two years). Thisis afairly narrow medicalapproachto gender diversity, which privileges athletes from countries wherethe surgeryis both available andrecognized and doeslittle for trans people whoare not ableto accessor whoare notinterested in medicalinterventions. Very few Canadiansport organizations haveadopted policiesto addressthe inclusion of trans athletes. The Canadian Collegiate Athletic Association(CCAA) is an exception. The CCAA policy requires transsexuals to show documentation of one year of hormone therapy; it does not require trans athletes to have hadsurgery. Other organizations at community andintramural levels havebeentrying to determine open policiesthat do not
Trans woman
Michelle Dumaresq is a competitive
past decade some sport organizations transsexual Marina
126Chapter
Dodis
6
athletes.
downhill
mountain bike racer. In the
have begun to develop
policies to accommodate
assume that all transsexual people should have medical intervention transgender and transsexual people to
and that permit
maintain their privacy (Travers
& Deri, 2010).
Particularly atlower levels of sport, policies are needed to makesure that no oneis denied an opportunity
to participate
because they do not identify
with binary sex categories.
Even small steps can demonstrate the intent to beinclusive. Parks and Recreation, for instance, event that can attract
morethan 100 swimmers (McKinnon,
As moretrans people come a rethinking
The Vancouver Board of
holds a regular trans-friendly
All-Bodies Swim, an
2013).
out at younger ages,their inclusion in sport
mayforce
of the current default organization of sport along lines of sex. Do all sports
at all levels really needto separate male and female bodies?If sex segregation is intended to promote fairness in sport, how must our notions of fairness change when wethink about the accessibility of sport to people who do not conform to normative categories of sex or gender? The other issue for transgender and transsexual athletes is safety. As numerous studies have shown, trans people experience high levels of harassment and violence on the street, in their families, at school, and at work. Sport organizations need to makesure that policies related to locker-room
behaviour, travel arrangements, and uniforms provide a com-
fortable environment for all players regardless of gender identity Ontario, the prohibited
(Taylor et al., 2011). In
Human Rights Code wasamended in 2012 to include gender identity
ground for discrimination.
as a
Should sport organizations fail to address trans
issues, it is only a matter of time beforesomeone lodges aformal complaint.
Sport Typing Sport typing is the notion that some sports are better suited for girls and women and others are better suited for boys and men.It is a particularly powerful means of communicating ideas about sex differences (Kane
& Snyder, 1989). Given the history of sport as a
sphere of activity dominated by men,it is not surprising that the list ofsports traditionally considered appropriate for
menis much longer than the list considered appropriate for
women, or that included on the malelist are those sports mostvalued in the culture.
Not
only doesthis lopsided categorization of sport by sex support a particular understanding of womens (lesser) place in the broader society, it tremendously
has, historically,
effective practical barrier to the sport participation
also constituted
a
of women and girls.
Thus, womens sport advocates have been especially concerned with expanding womens accessto the
malelist.
Muchless energy has been spent trying to get mento play those
sports on the female list. Ideas about which sports are appropriate for which sex are historically and culturally specific. In its early days,for instance, figure skating, which is now seen bysome people as
a so-calledfeminine sport, wasalmost exclusively an activity of upper-classmen(Adams, 2011). Synchronized swimming is another feminine
sport that originally included
men
(Bean, 2005).In the presentday,field hockeyis seenprimarilyasa womenssportin Canada, while it is popular for both sexes in
Asia and Europe. Such differences
make clear that
sports aresocially constructed activities that are given meaningby peoplein accordance with their social and cultural contexts.
As we have seen previously, these contexts are
shaped notjust byideas about sex and gender,but alsoideas about classand race. Dominant norms of middle-class, white, masculinity, which are based on control and power, do
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality127
not really include space for
mento wearsequined costumes or to
movetheir bodies to
musicin public. Such behaviour would not reflect the status or power of this group. People who pursue inappropriate gender identities
sports often face obstacles: questions about their
and sexual orientation;
ments. Yet, while increasing
harassment; and belittlement
of their achieve-
numbers of girls and women participate in so-called
mens
sports, there has been no comparable change in the numbers of menand boys who take up so-called
womens sports. In a study of elementary and high school students,
Riemer and
Michelle Visio found that the list
of sports commonly
Brenda
played by girls is
expanding to include so-called masculinesports, but the researchers saw no parallel effort to get boys to participate in feminine
sports (Riemer
& Visio, 2003). Simply put, boys
and menface higher gender barriers around their sport choices than do girls and women, and they suffer considerable consequences whenthey transgress them. Thetyping ofsport bysex hashelped to obscurethe fact that all athletes, maleorfemale, in masculine
or feminine
ity, speed, and intelligence.
sports, require a complex set of skillspower,
strength, flexibil-
The segregation of womens athletic aspirations and their alleg-
edly sex-specific athletic skills, along with the fact that women werekeptfrom playing mens games, has meantthat
male athletes have been able to compete free of challenges to their
own claims of athletic superiority. Physical activities, as we know, do not fall from the sky fully formed assportsneither
dothey emergefully formed as menssports or womens sports.
There is nothing inherent in forms of movement that
makesthem
masculine or feminine.
Gendered adjectives are applied to sports and to other aspects of human behaviour in accordance with the culturally specific definitions of masculinity and femininity that circulate at particular times. And, mostimportant, these definitions change. simple point, werisk naturalizing the categories andlimiting
When wefail to makethis
peoples ability to see pastthem.
Gender-BasedRulesin Sport Genderis a system of differences. If
masculinity and femininity
wereto overlap too much,
gender would ceaseto makesense as a way of classifying people. Sport helpsto construct the space that holds masculinity and femininity
apart. First, as we have seen, maleand
female athletes rarely compete against each other. Second, they
may well compete in
sports that are sex-typed. Finally, female and maleathletes are often required to play by sex-specific rules. In gymnastics, women and men perform on different women perform their floor exercises to
apparatus and
music while men do not. In golf, mens tees are
further from the green. In hockey, women are not allowed to body check, nor are they allowed to fight; they
mustalso wearfull visors at all levels. Physiological explanations are
almost always given asjustifications for such gender-specific rules. But physiology cannot explain whysome physical differences are emphasized and not others, or why these differ-
encesare assumedto be worth promotingin the first place. They also cant explain the different uniform requirements for women and men,as wesee,for instance, in beach vol-
leyball. Sociologistsarguethat the practice oftreating maleandfemale athletes differently and drawing strict and visible boundaries between them helps to prop upideologies
that constitute womenand menas notjust different but as unequal. Whatare the specific
messages in these gender-specific rules? Often they tell usthat
womenare weakerthan men: Womenhockey playerscant take hits, womencross-country skiers cant ski asfar as men.Judith Lorber (1994)
128Chapter
6
writesthat when we believe there are big
differences between women and men,then that is what we will see.In sport, gender-specific rules reflect such beliefs. And then, in the performance of the sports, the beliefs are put into practice. So gender differences are what weseewomen
dont run asfar as mendo!
And once having seen them, they come to be what welook for. Sports could be organized differently. Indeed, sport could be an excellent vehicle for demonstrating the similarities betweenfemale and malebodies and the overlapping feminine and masculinetraits that all people are capable of expressing. Its the potential of sport to challenge dominant understandings of sex and gender that has madesport an issue of concern for feminists and their supporters in the general effort to achieve greater gender equity in society.
Lesbian and GayIssues It is an understatement to say that sport has not always provided the
most welcoming
environment for lesbian and gay athletes. As we have already seen, given hetero-norms of femininity,
women who excel at sport, especially in events that
men, have often been presumed to be gay. The assumption that
were once reserved for womens teams are full of
lesbians hasled to parents keeping their daughters from certain sports, to a heavy emphasis on visible markers of femininity
(e.g., hair ribbons and makeup) among some women
athletes, and to a reluctance on the part of some lesbian players and coaches to come out (Demers, 2006). In 2007, Rene Portland, the womens basketball coach at Pennsylvania State University resigned after many complaints and alawsuit about her open refusal to allow lesbians on her team. Portlands homophobia is among the mostfamous and blatant examples of the kind of attitude that (Mosbacher
has clouded womens sport over the past century
& Yacker, 2008).
The influence
of homophobia
on mens sport is different than it is on womens
sport. The homophobia that is part and parcel of the hypermasculinity
that some male
athletes aspire to hasled to a lot of pain in all-male sport spaces, from the casual but pernicious homophobia
of the locker room to the sexual violence that is part of some
hazing rituals. In 2005, the
McGill University football season wascancelled after veteran
players subjected rookies to humiliating
and sexually abusive acts (CBC Sports, 2005). In
what kind of world does one foster team spirit
bysexually assaulting a teammate
with
a broomstick? In the mainstream sport media,lesbian and gay issues are largely reduced to the question of who is going to come out next, particularly in the context of professional sport.
mens
Whileit is true that a high-profile gay player could perhaps shift attitudes among
sport fans and other players, the real work in addressing homophobia has to happen at every level of sport, and it hasto focus on creating a climate in which athletes of all sexual orientations can feel comfortable.
Such efforts are alreadyunderway with straightgay alliancesin some community and university sport programs,including those at Memorial University and McMaster University,
andin well-publicized organizationslike the You Can Play Project that has closeties to the
NHL. These anti-homophobia
initiatives
are about eliminating
discriminatory
atti-
tudesfrom sport and about makingarenasand playingfields safe placesfor lesbian and gay players. You Can Play is very muchfocused on teams and athletesits
slogan is If
you
can play,you can play. In other words,if you are goingto help us win, wedont careif you are gay or straight.
Whilethis is not the
mostinclusive
position that the organization
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality129
could have taken, it is definitely a start in terms of shifting the dialogue in environments like the hockey team dressing room.
The messageneeds to be that
men can be good,
tough, competent athletes while at the same time rejecting the kind of ideas that homophobic insults,
misogynous treatment
of women, or violent hazing of teammates
seem okay. That said, the end point of anti-homophobia sport needs to extend well beyond the playing field.
and gender inclusive
sport to interrupt
effects outside of sport.
the conflation
of athleticism
completely unremarkable that alittle
feminism
and
work in
The effects of hypermasculinity and
homophobia in sport are not just a problem for gay athletesthey that have far-reaching
make
also shape attitudes
What kind of work needs to be done in and hypermasculinity,
to
makeit seem
boy might want to take ballet?
wOmens spOrT
Few readers of this book wouldsee anything unusualin women or girls playing soccer. Indeed, one might expect that
many ofthe women reading this book have playedsoccer themselves,
given that soccer hasone ofthe highestfemale participation rates ofany sportin Canada42% of registered soccer players are female (Canadian Soccer Association, 2012). The fact that womens soccer is now unremarkable reflects huge changesin the gendering of sport over the pastfew decades. Thesechanges would not have been possible without feminism. In the 1970s, 1980s, and 1990s, the number of girls and women involved
in sport
grew very quickly, as did the number of sports they played. In the mid-1980s, fewer than
Canadian wrestlerCarol Huynh won a gold medalat the Beijing Olympic Gamesin 2008 and a bronze medalat the London Olympic Games in 2012. Thefact that girlsand women now have accessto sportslike wrestling, which wereonceseen asonlysuitablefor men,is to a great extent a product of the widespreadsocial change brought about byfeminism overthe past half century. Daiju
130Chapter
Kitamura/AFLO
6
SPORT/Mark
Eite/Aflo
Co. Ltd/Alamy
6,000 women and girls wereregistered to play hockey in there were morethan 87,000 (Hockey
Canada, 2013).
Canada (Hall,
2002); by 2012,
Girls and women now routinely
compete in arange of sports, including those that wereonce thought to be appropriate only for
men:rugby, wrestling, boxing, water polo, long distance running, and others. The pres-
ence of significant numbers of girls and womenin
mainstreamsporting venuesis one of the
mostvisible results of the womens rights movementsthat emergedin
Canadain the 1960s.
Feminism, also known as the womens movement or the womens liberation ment,is an international
move-
social, political, and cultural movement that hasasa primary goal
the resolution of inequities related to sex and gender and the elimination
of discrimination
against women and girls. Feminist theorist bell hooks has a clear and simple definition feminism: Feminism
is a movement to end sexism, sexist exploitation,
of
and oppression
(hooks, 2000, p. viii). hooks makesthe point that the feminist project is much bigger than simply working for equality between the sexes, because women are not just oppressed dueto their gender. Thusfeminism is a movement that
mustaddress oppression on manylevels.
hooks writes that the aim of feminism is not to benefit solely any specific group of women, any particular race or class of women. It does not privilege women over men.It has the power to transform in a meaningful way all our lives
(hooks, 1984, p. 26). For hooks, the
goal of feminist activism and feminist thought is a world without oppression and domination. In this sense wecan think of feminism as a broad-based movementfor social justice. The term sexismrefers to discrimination sion refers more generally to a condition dom and prevent equality.
or prejudice based on sex. The term oppres-
of injustice and to uses of power that limit free-
Oppression is an effect of dominancethat
is, of one group
trying to establish supremacy and privilege over another. To be oppressed, writes philosopher Marilyn Frye (1983), is to be subject to a network of restrictive forces and barriers that exist at micro- and macroscopic levels. freely in all kinds of physical activity
Restrictions on womens ability to engage
have impeded womens equitable participation in
sport and are part of the kind of network that Frye is talking about. One key aspect of feminist thought and politics is the understanding that the privileges and oppressions related to sex and gender do not work independently
of other sys-
tems of oppression and inequality such as,for instance, race and class. Womenand men from different ethnic, racial, and class backgrounds, indigenous live
peoples, or people who
with a disability are all positioned differently in relation to gender.
Women with a
disability experience different gendered constraints in terms of their accessto sports and other athletic resources than do women who do not live with a disability. Feminist theorists arguefor the importance of what is called an intersectional analysisor approach to understanding oppression and privilegeto in peoples lives (Birrell
understanding the effects of power
& McDonald, 2000). Anintersectional analysis tries to understand
how different categories of identity and different structures of power, such asableism (the
privileging of bodiesthat have not beenlabelled as disabled),racism,sexism, and class,are intertwined.
None of us, for instance,
whether we are members of racialized groups or
whether weare white,experiencesour genderseparatelyfrom ourrace. Thetwo categories combine to shape who we are and how weare seen and treated in the world. By using an
intersectional analysisto look at an institution like sport, for example, one would not assumethat
working-class and middle-class women wouldface similar constraints in terms
of opportunitiesto play, orthat a predominantly whiteteam environment would necessarily
have the same meaning for a woman of colour asit doesfor her white teammates.
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality131
To adopt an intersectional
approach in research or in advocacy work is to acknowledge
that our own experiences are not universal and that our society produces morethan one form of inequality. It also helps usto be mindful not to obscure the experiences of marginalized groups with the perspectives of those groups that are more dominant.
The Transformation
of Womens Sport
American historian Susan Cahn hasarguedthat two mainfactors shifted understandings of womens sport and helped to open up athletic opportunities for women and girls. Thefirst wasthe feminist
movement of the 1960s and 1970s, and the second wasthe fitness boom of
the 1970s and 1980s (Cahn, 1995), which continues to this day asevidenced bythe proliferation of Zumba classesand lululemon stores. Thefitness boom wasboth a popular health movement and a commercialized effort to construct
women as a new marketfor running
shoes, sports apparel, exercise videos, and the increasing emerged over the last decades of the 20th century. In
number of private gyms that
many waysthe fitness boom wasa
capitalist appropriation offeminist ideas about empowerment and womens bodily integrity. Whilefeminists hoped that
women would get active so they could benefit from feelings of
confidence and physical competence, the womento buythings.
marketers who drove the fitness boom wanted
Nevertheless,corporate efforts put images of active womeninto circu-
lation and also helpedto normalize the idea that women could bestrong and competitive. Feminists have addressed sport from several perspectives. At the risk of making an overly simple distinction, some feminists have been primarily concerned with the obvious gender inequities in sport and the fact that play (Hall
women did not have equal opportunities to
& Richardson, 1982). Their goal wasto expand
womens accessto existing
sport structures. Other feminists have been more concerned with the ideological effects of sport and the waythat an inequitable
sport system perpetuated notions about womens
frailty (Theberge, 1987). They hoped to shift
womens consciousness of their own physi-
cal capabilities and also shift broader social views of womens roles in society.
Of course
many women have been concerned with both sets of issues and have worked hard to demonstrate the links between gender ideologies and participation rates for women in sport. Over the pastthree decades,feminists programs and materialsto promote sport for
have engaged in research and have designed women and girls, to influence
policy, and to
get women into coaching and other leadership positions in sports organizations. Feminist organizations like the Canadian Association for the
Advancement of
Womenand Sport
lobbied Sport Canada to produce a formal policy on womens sport, which it did for the first time in 1986 (Sport
Canada, 1986). Feminists launched court cases (so girls could
play on boys teams) and took complaints to human rights commissions (so they could get accessto facilities and resources). They arguedfor changesto physical education curricula
and challenged mediarepresentations of female athletes. Thefact that womens sport looks different today than it did whenI wasgrowing upin the early 1970sis a direct result
ofthe effortsthat feminists andtheir supportersputinto makingsport moreequitable. But even in terms of participation,
we have not yet achieved gender equity in sport.
Astudy ofinteruniversity sport in Canadahasshown that in 20122013 the numbers of female and malevarsity teams acrossthe country wasalmost equal (482 for women and
483for men). There were8,034roster positionsfor womenand 10,577for men. Thus, 43% of university
132Chapter
6
athletes
were women. But women make up 56% of all university
students, and so women remain disadvantaged by the current varsity sport system. For every 100 malestudents in Canadathere were2.8 chances to be on a varsity team; for every 100 female students there were 1.7 chances. The inequities are even more pronounced in terms of coaching opportunities. In the past two yearsthe number of female coachesin the CIS has dropped from 19% to 17% of the total (Donnelly,
Norman, & Kidd, 2013).
At the Olympic level, a gender equality audit of the 2012 London Games noted lingering inequalities in terms of sex and gender, despite the fact that it wasthe first
Games
in which there were women competing in every sport. There were 6,068 mencompetitors and 4,835 women, men wereable to compete in 30 more medalevents than 48% of events had different
maximum numbers of competitors in
events or different
male and female athletes.
rules for
women, and
womens and mens
Authors Peter Donnelly and
Michelle Donnelly note that there have been significant improvements at the over the pasttwo decades,and yet they argue that there is still even before considering other important
Olympics
muchto be doneand
this
questions about funding, sponsorship, and repre-
sentations of athletes in the media(Donnelly
& Donnelly, 2013).
And what of sport at the nonelite levels? Despite significant increases in the participation of women and girls over the past 40 years,it is still the casethat regularly in sport at about twice the rate that
men participate
women do. Figures taken from Statistics
Canadas General Social Surveyshow that in 2010, only about 35% of menand about 16% of women 15 years of age or older participated regularly in sport (Canadian The gap between mens participation
rates and womens participation
Heritage, 2013). rates has actually
been growing wider since 1992, when it was14%; in 2010 it was19%. Mens participation rate in 2010 was muchthe same asit had been at the time of the previous survey in 2005; womens participation rate, by contrast, had decreased by 4%, primarily because of a 13% drop for young women between the ages of 15 and 19 and a 14% drop for women between 20 and 24 years of age (Canadian Whatthese figures tell
Heritage, 2013).
us is that sport is a regular leisure-time
activity for only a
minority of Canadians, that women participate at significantly lower rates than
men,and
that those rates are dropping. Statistics Canadafigures also show that participation rates decrease steadily
with age and that people with higher levels of education and higher
incomes participate
more. People with household incomes of morethan $80,000 had a
rate of sport participation that
wasapproximately five times higher than the participation
rates for people with household incomes of less than $20,000 (Canadian
Heritage, 2013).
Menin both the highest and the lowest income categories had participation rates twice as high asthe womenin the same categories, but the rates for women in the highest category (20.7%) weretwice as high asfor the menin the lowest (10.1%). The statistics related to income and education, which can be a wayof marking socioeconomic class, makealot of sense. Sport is a leisure-time activity that requires time and
money,andthese are not available equally to all peoplein Canadiansociety. Thestatistics related to sex are more difficult to explain. Statistics Canada notes that people say
they do not participate in sport for reasonsof time andinterest. For women,sport hasto compete with childcare and domestic responsibilities,
which, research shows, are still not
evenly divided between menand womenin heterosexualnuclearfamilies (Lindsay, 2008). With the lingering
effects of the economic recession, womens time
may actually be in
shorter supply than it waseven 10 yearsago. Thereport alsosuggeststhat the declinein womens interest in sport
might reflect
womens commitment
to fitness activities like
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality133
walking and yoga and the growth in leisure-time fitness activity for both menand women, with 52% of the population engaging regularly in such activities, and participation rates for
menand women being fairly similar (Canadian
Heritage, 2013).
Whilefitness activities are definitely beneficial, there is something particular about sport that the feminist advocates of the 1970s and 1980s had wanted women and girls to experience: the challenge of competition, the drive to set records, the experience of being on a team, the intensity
of focus, the chance to perform publicly.
None of these is exclu-
sive to sport, and each of them can be problematic, but when these factors come together in the right way,they can bring a pleasure and satisfaction that is unique to sport as aform of cultural expression. Feminists promoted sport asa way of giving women accessto its joys and pleasures. They also wanted to circumvent
some of the body image issues that are
related to the commercialization of fitness practices. Its not that sport is free of body image problems but, unlike manyfitness endeavours, body image is not the point of the exercise.
Conclusions This chapter hasoutlined a conceptualframe for doing your own analysesof genderissues in sport. The concepts that I haveintroduced in the chapter can help usto see how notions
of genderand sexuality are actually playing outin sport. Sportsociologistsusethese concepts to
makesense of a whole range of issues, including
representations
of gender and
sexuality in sport media,fan cultures and spectatorship, sexual harassment and violence in sport, cross-cultural
differences in gendered sporting experiences, fundraising
calendars
that feature photos of nude athletes, the special relationship between gender and nationalism that emerges during the letes, and the impact
Olympics, racialized stereotypes of both maleand female ath-
of motherhood on women in sport.
Many sport scholars also
investigate and promote activism and other work to eliminate discrimination in sport and to produce sporting experiences that promote social justice. of activity
Arecent example of this kind
would be the efforts to support a young soccer playerin
ited from playing becauseshe was wearing a hijab (Muslim
Quebec who wasprohib-
Womenin Sports, 2013).
AsI said at the beginning of this chapter, gender is fundamental of contemporary sport at all but the least competitive levels.
to the organization
And sport presentsseemingly
endless opportunities for usto reflect on how gender works in contemporary
Canadian
society. The analytic tools presented here will allow you to analyze the issuesthat you find important
and to do your own assessment of the construction
sportat
both the broad social level and in relation
think of waysto
to
makeit moreinclusive and moreequitable.
Critical Thinking 1.
of gender and sexuality in
to your own experienceand
Questions
Arethere gender-specific rules in the sports you play? How does the presence or absence of such rules affect the gender reputation of the sport?
2.
Whydo you think womenand girls participate in a broaderrange of sportsthan men and boys do? Whyare there so few malesin, for instance, figure skating?
134Chapter
6
3.
What do you think
of the no-checking rule in
womens hockey? Do you feel it is
related to gender stereotypes? Is this rule simply an interesting Or doesit say something important
variation in hockey?
about larger cultural views of menand women?
4. In what ways hasyour own athletic history been shaped by gender norms? How have race, class, and ability been relevant to this process? 5. StatisticsCanadafiguresshowasharpdeclineinsportparticipationforyoungwomen. Whatkind of research project could you design to learn why young womens levels of participation
are falling?
What assumptions would ground your study?
What data
would you need to collect? 6. How could sport be made moreinclusive for transgender and transsexual athletes? Are you aware of any such efforts in your own community?
How would such efforts
change sport generally? 7. This chapter has argued that to understand gender in sport we need to consider the relationship
between gender and other categories like race and class. Find an example
of a sport story in the
media that demonstrates how this kind of analysis could be
more helpful than an analysis of gender alone. 8. Recently,manysportorganizationshaveinitiatedeffortstochallengehomophobiain
sport. Haveany such efforts beenlaunched at your school?If so, what do you think the outcome will be?If not, do you think
one could be started?
What do you think
would helpsuchinitiatives besuccessful?
suggested
readings
Adams, M. L. (2011). Artisticimpressions:Figureskating, masculinityandthelimits of sport. Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press. Bridel, W., & Martyn C.(2011). If Canadais a team, do weall get playing time? Considering sport, sporting masculinity and Canadian national identity. In J. A. Laker (Ed.), Canadian perspectives on men and masculinities: An interdisciplinary reader (pp. 184200).
Toronto,
ON:
Canada. Peterborough,
ON:
Oxford University Press. Hall, M. A. (2002).
The girl in the game: A history of womens sport in
Broadview Press. Kidd, B. (2013). Sport and masculinity. Sportin Society, 16, 553564.
references Adams, M. L. (2011).
Artisticimpressions: Figureskating, masculinity, and the limits of sport. Toronto,
ON: University of Toronto Press. Bean, D. P. (2005). Synchronizedswimming:
An American history. Jefferson, NC: McFarland.
Birrell, S., & McDonald, M. G.(Eds.). (2000). Reading sport: Criticalessayson powerandrepresentation. Richmond, VA: Northeastern University Press. Canadian Centrefor Ethicsin Sport.(2012). Sportin transition: Making sportin Canadamoreresponsiblefor gender inclusivity. Ottawa, ON: Author. Canadian Heritage.(2013). Sportparticipation2010: Research paper. Retrievedfrom http://publications.gc.ca/collections/collection_2014/pc-ch/CH24-1-2014-eng.pdf. Canadian Soccer Association.(2012). CanadianSoccer Associationsannualreport: Capturingthe moment.Ottawa, ON: Author.
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality135
Cahn, S. K. (1995).
Coming on strong:
Gender and sexuality in twentieth-century
womens sport.
Boston, MA: Harvard UniversityPress. CBC Sports.(2005, October18). McGillscrapsfootball seasonover hazing. Retrievedfrom http:// www.cbc.ca/sports/football/mcgill-scraps-football-season-over-hazing-1.553792. CBC Sports.(2009, January 31). Ron MacLean,gay-rightsadvocatedebatethe P-word. Retrieved from http://www.cbc.ca/sports/hockey/ron-maclean-gay-rights-advocate-debate-the-pword-1.853760. Connell, R. W.(1990). Aniron man: Thebodyandsomecontradictions of hegemonic masculinity. In M. A. Messner& D.F. Sabo(Eds.), Sport, menandthe genderorder: Criticalfeministperspectives (pp. 8395). Champaign,IL: Human Kinetics. Connell, R. W.(1995). Masculinities. Berkley, CA: Universityof California Press. Cooky, C., Messner, M. A., & Hextrum, R. H.(2013). tudinal study oftelevised Daniels, D. B.(2005). tory:
Women play sport, but not on TV: Alongi-
news media. Communication & Sport, 1(3), 128
You throw like a girl: Sport and misogyny on the silver screen. Film & His-
AnInterdisciplinary Journal of Film and Television Studies, 35(1), 2938.
Demers, G.(2006).
Homophobia in sportFact
of life, taboo subject.
CanadianJournal for
Women
in Coaching,6(2). Retrievedfrom http://www.coach.ca/april-2006-vol-6-no-2-p132855. Donnelly, P., & Donnelly, M. K. (2013). The London2012 Olympics: A genderequality audit. Toronto, ON: Centrefor Sport Policy Studies. Donnelly, P., Norman, M., & Kidd, B.(2013). Gender equityin Canadian interuniversitysport: Abiennialreport (No. 2). Toronto, ON: Centrefor Sport Policy Studies. Duncan, M. C.(2006). Gender warriorsin sports: Womenin the media.In A. A. Raneyand J. Bryant(Eds.), Handbookof Sportsand Media(pp. 231252). New York, NY: Routledge. Frye, M.(1983). Thepoliticsofreality. Trumansburg, NY: The CrossingPress. Genel, M.(2000). Genderverification no more? MedscapeWomens Health,5(3), E2. Retrieved from http://ai.eecs.umich.edu/people/conway/TS/OlympicGenderTesting.html. Gill, R., Henwood, K., & McLean, C.(2005). culinity.
Body projects and the regulation
of normative
mas-
Body &society, 11(1), 3762.
Hall, A.(2002).
Thegirl andthe game: A history of womenssports in Canada. Toronto, ON: University
of Toronto Press.
Hall, A. & Richardson, D. A.(1982). Fairball: Towardssexequalityin Canadiansport. Ottawa, ON: Canadian Advisory Council onthe Statusof Women. Hockey Canada.(2013). 2013 Annual Report. Ottawa, ON: Author. Retrievedfrom http://www. hockeycanada.ca/en-ca/Corporate/About/Basics/Downloads. hooks,b. (1984) Feministtheory: Fromthe marginto the center. Boston, MA: South End Press. hooks,b. (2000). Feminism is for everybody:Passionate politics. Boston, MA: South EndPress. International Olympic Committee.(2009). Womenandsport: Thecurrentsituation. Retrievedfrom http://www.wcse2011.qa/wp-content/uploads/2011/05/Women-and-Sport-The-CurrentSituation-2009-10-eng-.pdf. Intersex Society of North America. (n.d.).
How commonis intersex? Retrieved from http://www.isna.
org/faq/frequency. Johnson, J., & Holman, Toronto,
M.J. (2004).
Makingthe team: Insidethe world of sport initiations and hazing.
ON: Canadian Scholars Press.
Kane, M.J. (1995).
Resistance/transformation
of the oppositional
binary: Exposing sport as a con-
tinuum. Journalof Sportand SocialIssues,19(2), 191218. Kane, M.J., & Snyder,E.(1989). Sporttyping: Thesocial containment of womenin sport. Arena Review,13(2), 7796. Laurendeau,J., & Adams,C.(2010). Jumping like agirl: Discursivesilences,exclusionary practices andthe controversy over womensski jumping. Sportin Society,13(3), 431447.
136Chapter
6
Lenskyj, H.(1986).
Out of bounds: Women,sport and sexuality. Toronto,
ON: Womens Press.
Lindsay, C.(2008). Are womenspendingmoretime on unpaiddomesticworkthan men in Canada?Statistics Canada Catalogueno. 89-630-X. Ottawa, ON: Statistics Canada. Lorber,J. (1994). Paradoxesof gender. New Haven, MA: Yale University Press. Mangan,J. A., & Walvin,J. (1987). Introduction. In J. A. Mangan &J. Walvin(Eds.), Manliness and morality: Middleclass masculinity in Britain and America,18001940 (pp. 17). Manchester, UK: ManchesterUniversity Press. McKinnon, A. (2013, May14). Vancouver Parks Board wantsto makeits spaces moretransfriendly. Xtra. Retrievedfrom http://dailyxtra.com/vancouver/news/vancouver-parks-boardwants-make-spaces-trans-friendly. Mosbacher, D., & Yacker, F (Producers/Directors). (2008). Training Rules[Documentary film]. United States: WomenVision. Muslim Womenin Sports. (2013, pitch. [Weblog
March 10). Quebec Soccer Federation finally
post]. Muslim Womenin Sports. Retrieved from
allowing
hijab on
http://muslimwomeninsports.
blogspot.ca/2013/03/quebec-soccer-federation-finally.html. Nanda, S. (2000).
Genderdiversity: Crosscultural variations. Long Grove,IL:
Waveland Press.
Pascoe,C.J. (2003). Multiple masculinities?Teenageboystalk aboutjocks and gender. American BehavioralScientist,46(10), 14231438. Renold, E.(2001). Learning the hard way: Boys,hegemonic masculinityandthe negotiation of learner identities in the primary school. BritishJournalof Sociologyof Education,22(3), 369385. Riemer,B. A., & Visio, M.E.(2003). Gendertyping of sports: Aninvestigation of Methenysclassification. ResearchQuarterlyfor Exerciseand Sport,74(2), 193204. Sport Canada.(1986). Women in sport: A Sport Canadapolicy. Ottawa, ON: Author. Taylor, C., & Tracey,P., with McMinn, T. L., Elliott, T., Beldom, S.,Ferry, A., Gross,Z., Paquin, S., & Schachter, K.(2011). Everyclass,in everyschool:Thefinal report onthefirst nationalclimate survey on homophobia, biphobia, and transphobia in
Canadian schools. Toronto,
ON: EGALE
Canada Human Rights Trust. Travers, A., & Deri, J. (2010). leagues. International Theberge,
N. (1987).
Transgender inclusion
and the changing face of lesbian softball
Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport, 48(6), 120. Sport and womens empowerment.
Womens Studies International
Forum,
10(4), 387393. Vincent, J., & Crossman,J. (2012). Patriots at play: Analysisof newspapercoverageof the gold medalcontendersin mensand womensice hockeyat the 2010 Winter Olympic Games.InternationalJournal of Sport Communication,5, 87108. Walvin,J. (1987). Symbols of moralsuperiority: Slavery, sport and the changing world order, 18001950. In J. A. Mangan&J. Walvin(Eds.), Manliness and morality: Middle class masculinity in Britainand America,18001940 (pp. 242260). Manchester,UK: ManchesterUniversity Press. White,P., & Young, K.(2007). Gender,sport and the injury process.In K. Young & P. White (Eds.), Sportandgenderin Canada(pp. 259278). Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press. Womens Ski Jumping
USA. (n.d.),
Our Olympic story. Retrieved from http://www.wsjusa.com/
olympic-inclusion/.
Sex,
Gender,
and
Sexuality137
Chapter 7 Children,Youth,and Parental Involvementin OrganizedSport Ralph E. Wheeler,Jay Scherer, and Jane Crossman
The popularity of organized sports programs for children in
Organizedsport provides socialization experiencesfor
North America is a relatively
recent phenomenon, the product of postwar prosperity and the development of new ideas
children and youth.
and ideologies about both parenthood and childhood.
Stockbyte/GettyImages
The expansion of formalized sport-
ing opportunities for Canadian children in the postwar era wasthe result of the growth in investment in various public recreational facilities
across the nation (in urban and rural
areas), including the construction of new schools with not only gyms and fields but also
pools and tracks (Hall, Slack, Smith, & Whitson,1991). Parentsof this generation of young Canadians who had themselves never experienced similar
opportunities
or had
accessto suchfacilities in their own childhoodsthus becamecommittedto beinginvolved in the lives of their children and providing their children
with unprecedented sport and lei-
sure opportunities. Theincreasing visibility ofthe professional majorleaguesand,indeed, high-performance
sport also reaffirmed the popularity
of sport for both parents and
children and nurturedthe realization that sport could be aninstitution for instilling not only athletic skills in children but important, taken-for-granted social values and customs.
138
Chapter
7
In the decadesthat followed,
minor sports programs, or youth sport as they are often
referred to, have grown at a phenomenal rate, and in Canadian society today participation in sport is a normal part of the everyday lives of many boys and girls acrossthe country. In fact, nearly 3 million Canadian children and youth between the ages of 5 and 18 participate regularly in a wide range of organized sport programs that provide experiences of fun and community for participants, parents, and organizers. For example, areport released by the Canadian Fitness and Lifestyle Research Institute (CFLRI) sport participation
(2010),
which examined
rates, revealed that upwards of 75% of children and youth participate
in some kind of sport activity. In addition, according to parents surveyed, 46% of these children participate in sport activities all year round. Interestingly, soccer, the mostpopular sport for
Canadian children (42% of all children), is one of the mostinexpensive.
Youth sports programs in
Canada are provided by a number of local, regional, and
national organizations that oversee and administer these activities and a range of other resources. These organizations have a mandateto provide children
with optimal develop-
mental benefits from their experiences. Onthis note, Canadian Sport for Life, an initiative of Canadian Sport Centres and Sport Canada,suggeststhat children commonly play sports for a number of intrinsic
and extrinsic reasons:
nto
have fun
nto
experience thrills
nto
be with friends or make newfriends
nto
do something they are good at
nto
feel good aboutthemselves
nto
feel accepted
nto
improve and learn new skills (Canadian Beyond providing children
Sport Centres, 2007, p. 5)
with valuable and fun experiences, proponents of early
and continued participation in sport activities point to the significant health and social Table
7.1
Sport
participation
children
for
the
top
10
most
practised
Sport
Percentage
of Children
Soccer
42%
Swimming
24%
Hockey(all types) and Ringette
22%
Basketball
16%
Baseball/Softball
14%
Martial Arts
8%
Gymnastics
8%
Skating
6%
Skiing
5% Canadian
Active in the
Sport
6%
Karate
Source:
among
8%
Volleyball
Figure
sports
participants
Heritage,
2013.
Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport139
benefits that can be gained through sport participation
and physical activity for young
Canadians. For example, Lumpkin (2005) suggeststhat peopleof all agesenjoy playing games,engagingin recreational activities and exercising to maintaingood health. Competitive,rule-bound sports provide opportunitiesto test ones skills against opponents. Through these programs, the all-around development of the individual
is enhanced during activity.
The purpose of these programs is to optimize
quality oflife through enjoyable physical activity and sport experiences. (p. 30)
The Canadian Centre for Ethics in Sport (2008),
meanwhile, notes that community-
basedsports promote a number of social values in children and youth: Thereis strong agreementacrossthe country that community sportis amongthe most positiveforcesin the lives of young peopletoday, even morethan school, friends and peers,religion andthe music/entertainmentindustry. In addition to crediting communitysport with being a constructiveforcein the lives of children and youth, morethan 80 percent of Canadiansbelievethat promoting positive valuesin youth should be a priority for sport in Canada,underliningthe importance of getting sportright. (p. 19) However, despite the evidence supporting the benefits of sport and physical activity for youths and the optimistic statistics cited above, numerous studies have also demonstrated alarmingly low fitness levels among young people in Canada. The report card published by Active
Healthy Kids Canada (2013), for example, tracked
physical activity
levels for 5 years and found that only 13% of Canadian children and youth are meeting daily guidelines. In relation to these low levels of physical activity, (2008), former
Michelle Brownrigg
CEO of Active Healthy Kids Canada and director of physical activity and
equity at the University of Toronto, noted that [a]t a younger and younger age, children are becoming dependent on electronic devices astheir sources of entertainment be a collaborative
effort.
and activity. . . . Getting our children active needsto
Governments, industry, communities, schools and parents all
needto sharethe responsibility of replacingsedentarytime with active play. (p. 1) Indeed, for
many physical educators weare at a tipping point with respect to the question
of the health and well-being of young Canadians, and strategies must beimplemented
at
all levels of government and between all agencies to provide well-funded, inclusive, fun, and safe sporting
opportunities
that are aimed at getting children
Despitethe vast body of knowledge that demonstrates the importance for
physically
active.
of physical activity
Canadians of all ages, the actual percentages of Canadian children and youth who
report being involved
once a week or morein sports has decreasedsince 1992 (Gruneau, in
press). Moreover,while sport participation rates decline as Canadiansget older, the participation
rates of young Canadians is declining faster than that
of older Canadians
(Canadian Heritage,2013). Accordingto information provided by the 1992 and 2005 General Social Surveys, 64% of Canadian children between the agesof 11 and 14reported
participatingin someform ofsport atleast oncea weekin the previouscalendaryear, and the
mostrecent data for participation
rates for 1519
years olds are at 54% (Canadian
Heritage, 2013). Importantly, children from less-affluent families areincreasingly dropping out of sport. Several critics of youth sport have argued that organized sport hassimply
140Chapter
7
become too expensive for ordinary and less-affluent
Canadian families, especially aschil-
dren advance through the sport system. Other critics,
meanwhile, suggest that the struc-
ture of organized sport is too competitive and has beeninstitutionalized values and a power
and performance
model that
according to adult
maynot provide the types of positive,
empowering, and enjoyable experiences young Canadians need to keep them physically active and engagedin long-term sport participation
and physical activity.
This chapter will review the organizational structure of childrens sport in
Canadain
addition to exploring a number of critical issues and concerns related to contemporary organized sports programs, including some of the factors that structure sport participation for young Canadians.In so doing, we will connect the personal issues of children and their families (e.g., the inability
of many Canadian families to afford the increasing costs associ-
ated with youth sport) to broader issues ofsocial structure. of areas relevant to childrens sport participation examination
that
Wewill also consider a number
will serve as a framework for our
and discussion. Theseinclude
in youth sport and the overemphasis on winning,
nethics
specialization limiting
nsport
childrens choices in organized sport,
withdrawal from sport,
nchildrens
ofinjury,
nrisk
nparental
involvement
in childrens sports, and
ncoaches
influence in childrens sport.
Webegin, however, with a discussion of processesof socialization.
SoCiAlizATion For Canadian children and youth, being involved in sport creates ample opportunities for socialization experiences to occur. In fact,
many parents enroll their children in various
sports activities so that their children learn appropriate
social values,skills, and accom-
panying feelings and attitudes that go beyond the benefits of participation activities (Kremer-Sadlik
& Kim, 2007). Socializationis the
in athletic
process oflearning and adapt-
ing to a given social system . . . and is the meansby which a society preservesits norms and perpetuates itself and reciprocally
(Sage & Eitzen, 2013, p. 66). Importantly, interactive
process through
socialization is an ongoing
which children learn and at times resist
socially constructed attitudes, knowledge(s), and dominant values of the society in which they are membersand the sports that they play. In other words, scholars interested in processesof socialization and youth sport generally focus on how children are socialized both into and through sport as an active and ongoing process.
The earliestsocialization theories had a distinctly socialpsychological flavour that emphasized individual
situationsa
characteristics
(physical
and psychological)
and socializing
childs unique blend of opportunities and life experiences (Bryant
McElroy, 1997, p. 33), including
&
keyinfluences and agentssuch as parents, siblings, peers,
coaches,and teachers workingin institutions such asschools, churches,and the broader community
who exert varying degrees of influence
over the childs
sport experience
(Smith, 2003). Certainly, parentsare the predominantsocializing agents whenit comes to sport involvement
(LaVoi
& Stellino, 2008; Pugliese & Tinsley, 2007). For example,
Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport141
if parents include their children in their own sporting ventures, they learn not only how to play a particular sport, but they will often develop alifelong same time (Fraser-Thomas
appreciation for it at the
& Cote, 2009). Thus,these early positive experiences in sport
can be critical in shaping future attitudes and behaviours. However, these early theories placed significant emphasis on individuals historical and structural issues. much more complicated than just agents and institutions;
with influential
social
nor is socialization simply a one-way transmission through
which
children come to uncritically
making a positive connection
embrace various cultural identities
ties that their parents believe are important.
make decisions about sport
and, in turn, how they produce social meanings and cultural identities
ongoing basis. In so doing, sociologists are interested in those personal experiences and individual including
or the values and activi-
The mostrecent sociological researchers have
attempted to understand how children (and parents) actively participation
rather than
Moreover, the process of being socialized into sport is
making connections
between
decisions in a much broader cultural context,
various social structures and all of the ideological
standings of class, race, gender, age, and ability/disability. later in this chapter, a decisive relationship
on an
meanings attached to underFor example, as we will discuss
exists between social class and sport, includ-
ing household income and sport participation: the higher the income, the higher the sport participation.
But financial resources are only one factor that plays into sport participa-
tion; others include education (the higher the education, the higher the probability sport participation),
of
time, cultural tastes, and various body orientations that areinformed
by class status and other social determinants such asgender. Finally, it
haslong been the
mantra of sport enthusiasts that sport provides a forum
through which weare socialized andlearn lifes lessons and develop character,
particularly
for children and youth. Yet what kind of character is valued and socially constructed bythe lessons and values of contemporary, competitive Canadiansport? In whoseinterest doesthis definition of character serve, especially whenthose understandings of character are lauded and held upfor emulation? Discipline, hard work, teamwork, dedication to a common cause, and other laudable personal qualities are supposedto bethe natural
outcome of having been
involved in competitive sport for young Canadians(historically, of course,these values were distinctly gendered and reserved for boys). Still, sport does not inherently
teach children
whatis good or bad, and wecan certainly point to innumerable examples whererole models havetaught and coached illegal field tactics or have modelled unsportsmanlike conduct. Nonetheless, what is important
to note is that through socialization
welearn a wide
range of values and historical beliefs to function in various social worlds.Conversely,
it is
in societys interests to bring up young menand women to be able and willing to fulfill the demands that
will be madeon them as adults: as workers, asfamily
members,ascitizens
(Hall et al., 1991, p. 189). Yet, as has been noted throughout this text, Canadian sport and
society aresocial constructions,and the reproduction of a particular social order. . . has to be seen in terms the reproduction
of ideas and norms and values that
makethese rela-
tions seem natural and right (Hall et al., 1991, p. 189).It is in this sense,then, that we need to understand that youth sportand
physicalactivity for Canadianyouthhave
all of the meanings associated with sport and
alwaysbeensites ofstruggle between various
interest groups who makecompeting claims about how sports should be organized and run.
Beforetackling some of theseissuesand debates,though, webriefly outline some of the maininstitutions
142Chapter
7
that govern and organize sport for young Canadians across the country.
Youth
sport
emotional Dusan
provides skills
opportunities
for children
to learn
not just
physical
skills
but social
and
as well.
Kostic/Fotolia
The orgAnizATion
of
Minor SPorT
In the ensuing discussion of sport for children, it should be noted that sport in this chapter will be discussedin the context of those activities that are organized around a structured, competitively
based model of sport, such as the type of institutionalized
minor hockey and gymnastics or age-group swimming.
programs seen in
These programs are competitive in
nature, have defined rules, and require specific skills and resources; they are also primarily organized and overseen by adults. Other popular recreational-based activities such as bicycling, skateboarding, or street hockeywhile nized sportwill the competitive
having some of the characteristics of orga-
not be considered becausethe primary distinction for our discussion is model of organized sport.
In Canada, organizedsport for
manychildren and youth often begins in the preschool
years and is managed and delivered through four
main agencies or institutions:
publicly
funded community sport and recreation organizations, local sports clubs, service agencies and special-interest groups, and school-based sports. These groups offer a wide variety of sport programs and provide diverse experiences through various levels oftraining petitive activities.
and com-
While many of these programs have different rules for participation than
adult programs, they typically reflect the characteristics of adult-based sport, including regular training schedules, increasingly professionalized coaching and managerial environments,and lengthy competitive seasonsthat include playoffs and championships.
Publicly Funded Community Sport and Recreation Organizations Community-based sport and recreation programs have become extremely popular activi-
tiesfor children in all parts of Canadafor a numberof reasons.In particular, some activities, such assoccer, are relatively inexpensive,
Children,
Youth,
while others are conveniently located and
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport143
accommodate a widerange of skill levels. It is not unusual,for example, to find both boys and girls playing a variety of sports such as hockey, soccer, baseball, basketball, and tennis as part of community-organized leagues acrossthe country.
Coaches, officials, and league
organizers, who are responsible for setting up and running all aspects of the program, often include
volunteers and, increasingly,
house leagues,
paid staff. Programs are typically
which mayloosely represent local
organized around
neighbourhood boundaries. Because
these programs are publicly supported, registration fees are usually modestand children who register are assigned to teams on a more orless random basis. The emphasis at this level is on skill development, enjoyment, fun, and participation. Houseleague participants
may practise and play one or two times per week. In addition,
many programs support all-star a particular age group or division.
teams selected from among a pool of talented players in At this level, competition takes on a moreserious focus,
with teams conducting tryouts, running regular training sessions, and competing in both league and tournament
competitions.
Teamsfrom a community all-star league
mayalso
compete for the right to represent their respective communities in regional, provincial, and interprovincial
championships.
Unlike house leagues, which usually play on week-
days, all-star teams attend practices during the week with competitions
generally held on
weekends.In this organizational structure, it is not unusual to find children participating simultaneously on both houseleague and all-star teams.
Local Sports Clubs Whilecommunity-based sports programs encourage wide participation inexpensive,
vate associations. higher level
and are relatively
more and more children are opting to take part in local sports clubs or priOne reason for the emergence of local sports clubs is to provide a
of professional training
school and community-based sport.
and competition
not usually available through
While these two programs mayserve to identify tal-
ented youngsters, many parents understand that privately run clubs havethe potential to develop young, talented athletes to an elite level. Sports programs operating under this model tend to focus on a specific sport and require a far greater time commitment from the participant; these programs are also more costly and, hence, are often the preserve of affluent families. Many of these programs, for example, are highly structured with scheduled daily training sessions. Becauseemphasisis on the development of athletic talent and the promotion of competitive prowess,children are often carefully groomed for successat each of the variouslevels or stages of competition
by professional coaches. Private sport clubs operate in
both public and privately owned facilities and offer training and competition in such popular individual
sports asswimming, gymnastics, figure skating, martial arts, tennis, track and
field, cycling, wrestling,and rowing. Theseclubs alsorun programsfor team sportssuch as hockey, basketball, and soccer. Operating costs to run these programs mayrange from sev-
eral thousand dollars to hundredsof thousands and employfull- and part-time coaches, instructors,
and administrators.
Club membership fees can range from a modestseveral
hundred dollars annually to registration fees of over $1,000;in addition, participants are often expected to cover their own travel coststo competitions. Examples of young athletes
who haverecently come through this system and risen to stardom in sport abound notable are Canadian professional tennis players Milos Raonic and Eugenie Bouchard.
144Chapter
7
Service Agencies and Special-Interest Groups Coexisting and often sharing the same facilities
with local sports clubs and publicly funded
organizations are a number of other nonprofit groupsthat promote sport activities for children. Theseinclude YM/YWCAs, religious organizations, Boys and Girls Clubs of Canada,Scouts Canadaand Girl Guides,and privately funded sports groups. Asin other organizations that offer sport programs,a widevariety of activities and competitive opportunities exist for participants. A mainfocus ofsport programsamong these groupsis to usesport as a vehicle to promote their particular set of valuesand beliefs. For example, children who participate in a church-run program mayalso beintroduced to the underlying valuesespousedbythat particular religion.
School-Based Sports Sport at the high school level institutions. relatively
haslong been an integral
part of Canadian educational
Organizedsport at the elementary and junior high school level, however, is a new phenomenon initiated
originally
by physical educators concerned about
the low physical activity and fitness levels among children in this age group. According to a Canadian Fitness and Lifestyle Research Institute
(2004) report, fewer than 10% of
children receive their sport experiences through school-sponsored programs. Historically, school sport programs were an attempt to address this concern and originally involved sport activities on a more or less informal
basis. Today, programs can involve interschool
games on a regional level and may be organized around several weekends or run over a two- to three-month
season. These programs rely on coaches and officials who are usually
volunteers from the school staff or from within the community. Becauseof a number of obstacles,elementary school sport has not achieved the potential outcomes envisioned byits early advocates. The absenceof adequate resourcessuch assuitable facilities and qualified coaches along with increased userfees and insufficient funding have continued to prevent sport at the elementary school level from having any significant impact on increasing overall student activity levels. Coupled with these developments is the fact that manyof the schools that dosponsor sport programstend to mirror a high school model, which traditionally
has catered to only a small percentage of the schools student population.
As
well, even though costs associated with school sport programs are usuallylow compared to community-based programs, student participation is limited
basedon the number of teams
sponsored by a particular school. This latter issue hascaused manyphysical educatorsto consider alternative activities to organizedsport, such asadventure and outdoor experiences, fitness pursuits, and other noncompetitive experiencesincluding
co-ed and cooperative game
activities. An extensive discussion of school-based sports is coveredin
Chapter 10.
Other Youth Sport Organizations In Canada,organizedsport associationsfor children existfor a numberof reasons. Atthe school level, sport is tied to educational objectives and is seen as a wayto
motivate chil-
drento becomeinvolved in an activelifestyle. Community programspromotesport opportunities for children for similar reasons while keeping costs at a reasonable level for the
participant. Increasingly, however,there is a growing trend for children who aspireto become successful athletes to join private clubs that provide opportunities for children to
Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport145
excel at a high level within a particular sport. Because many of these clubs mustoperate on income generated through
membershipfees and corporate sponsors, they regularly resem-
ble the practices and structures found in adult sport organizations.
Clearly, minor sport
organizations have become an integral part of the social fabric of many Canadian communities.
With few exceptions, every province that has a sport association responsible for
governing and promoting sport will likely early as agefive for many children.
have youth programs in place, often starting as
As Sageand Eitzen (2013) note,
Thereis a well-organizedoutlet for almost every child who hasaninterest in being involved in sports. Parents can enroll their children in age-group gymnastics and swimming programsat 3 yearsof age;ice-hockey, soccer, football, t-ball, and a half dozen other sports at agefour. Indeed, an earlystart is consideredessential whenparents or children have professionalor Olympic-levelaspirations.(p. 63) Still, despite the presence of a wide range of programs acrossthe country, lies have uneven accessto organized sport, and participation
Canadianfami-
rates are clearly structured
according to a number of variables, which we discussin the next section.
fACTorS DeTerMining ChilDrenS involveMenT in SPorT Datafrom
Canadian Heritage (2013) noted many of the underlying sociological factors
that structure
participation
rates for children in organized sport in
Canada including
regional differences, gender and age, community size, parental involvement
in sport, and
household income. For example, when both parents areinvolved in sport, there is over a 90% likelihood
that their children
will also participate in some kind of sport activity.
Household income is another determining factor that underscores the class structure of Canadian society and the growing issue of economic inequality. income of $80,000 or higher, 85% of children
In families
with an
wereactive in sport, whereas72% of chil-
dren from households earning between $40,000 and $79,000 wereactive, and only 58% of children from households earning less than $40,000 were active. While household income levels continue to structure participation rates for children in sport, other economic factors decisively limit
participation
the ever-increasing costs associated with minor sport.
opportunities,
most notably
As youth sport has become more
formalized and professionalized, the coststo run these programs have escalated to unprecedented levels.
As Gruneau (in press) notes,
Manyclubs operatein a climate of substantially heightenedexpectationsfrom sports participants and parents,as wellasfrom larger regional, provincial and national associations. Attendant to this, mostof the larger clubs and associationsin Canadanow run programs well beyond their traditional sporting season. Ten and eleven month long programs areincreasingly common. In addition,
manyclubs and associations now
have substantially larger budgets then even the recent past, requiring professionalism and accountability.
higher levels of
Sports clubs and associations are also subject to
growing demands for higher quality coaching and facilities at all times of the year.
Coupled with these issuesis the increased need for volunteers to help run these programs. Consequently, parents with children in these programs find that they are spending more and moretime volunteering in their childrens sport programs. These developments
146Chapter
7
have madeit
moredifficult to entice some parents to register their children in programs that
require them to volunteer hugeamounts of their time. create paid positions to complete activities that including
paid coaching, training,
Asa result, there has been a push to
were once simply handled by volunteers,
and administrative positions. All of these developments,
moreover, have escalated expectations among parents and athletes to havestate-of-the-art facilities and travel opportunities
within the structure of increasingly professionalized clubs.
As Gruneau(in press) notes, Thesethree trends: the hiring of paid coaches,the contracting out offormerly volunteer administrative needs
activities,
and escalating costs necessary to
for training and completion,
meet perceived new
are developing unevenly in different sports and in
different regions across the country, but their impact is subtly reshaping the way many of the larger community sports clubs and associations operate. Along the participation is pushed continually
further away from
way,sports
Canadas lower classes.
Besidesthe escalation of costs and issues of inequality,
Nixon and Frey (1996) suggest
that both social background and status factors such as gender, race, and ethnicity areinfluential in determining sport participation.
For example, household composition,
training and sporting competitions, and the workplaceinvolvement
accessto
of parents areimportant
determinants of sport participation for young Canadians(Gruneau, in press). As noted below, participation levels for young Canadians are higher in two-parent families than in singleparent families, although the gapin participation by children from dual- and single-parent families tends to belessfor boysthan for girls. Regional considerations such as whereonelives (e.g., in an urban orrural area) mayalso affect sportinvolvement
basedon available opportu-
nities and resources. Families living in dense urban areasareless likely to participate in sport than families wholive in lower density suburban areasor smaller towns wherethe needfor a caris muchgreater (Gruneau, in press).Indeed, for manychildren living in small rural communities, programsthat are available maybe moreaccessibleand affordable than for children
in larger urbancentres with moresport opportunitiesbut withgreaterassociatedcostssuchas higher program and coaching fees,transportation costs, andfacility rentals.
In nearly 60% of families whereparentsare sports participants, children are active; meanwhile, in families where parents are active assports administrators or coaches and as
athletes, over 80% of children areregularsports participants (Gruneau, in press). Clearly, there appears to be a strong socialization effect at work where the organized activities of
children mirrorthe priorities of their parents. Beyondthese patterns of socialization, Coakley and Donnelly (2009) suggest that changes associated with family structure and
the perceptionsparentshaveaboutthe role sport can playin their childrens development also have majorimpacts on participation levels in organized sport. Perhaps one of the biggest changes is the increase in the number of families
with both parents working. For
working parents, afterschool and summer sport programs offer a safe, adult-supervised environment
where children
mayacquire valuable social and athletic skills.
note, parenting ideology has also changed in terms of what it parent.
Onthis latter
meanstoday to be a good
In the new millennium, parents are expected to be more accountable for the
behaviour and whereabouts of their children (Coakley
& Donnelly, 2009). For many
middle-class and more affluent parents, then, sport is a highly attractive having their children hang
alternative to
out at the mall or on the street corner.
However, perhapsthe biggest pushfor increasing sport participation for children is the realization that obesity rates among children are at epidemic levels. There is a growing Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport147
awareness that increasing numbers of Canadian children are leading inactive, lifestyles.
The Canadian Community
Health Survey conducted
unhealthy
by Statistics
Canada
reported that the single largest increase in obesity rates wasamong youth aged 12 to 17, where the rate tripled from 3% in 1978 to 8% in 2004 (Statistics
Canada, 2005).
recent research findings are pointing toward a sustained obesity epidemic.
More
According to a
2008 survey by the Centersfor DiseaseControl (2010), the rate of obesity in children aged 6to 11 years was morethan 19%. Of even greater concern is that the present generation of youth will bethe first to have a shorter life expectancy than their parents (Olshansky et al., 2005). As a result, both provincial and federal government agencies are under pressureto addressthe problem of childhood obesity. Yet coupled with this development is the perception that physical education programs acrossthe country are having little
or no influence
on changing the long-term fitness and activity levels of children. Particularly disturbing is the tendency for schools, once widely regarded asthe public focal point for the overall development of the child, to reduce physical education opportunities for students and to impose userfees as cost recovery strategies. Physical and Health Education Canada (2014) reports that once
physical education becomes an optional subject, enrolment in physical
education tends to decreasesignificantly females than
with the decrease more noticeable for adolescent
males. Furthermore, at the secondary level, 20% of parents surveyed across
Canadaindicated that their adolescent child received no physical education at all and this percentageincreases asstudents advance through secondary grades (Physical and Health Education Canada, 2014). A consequence of all of these issuesis that cially from
many parents (espe-
moreaffluent backgrounds) are nowlooking for other opportunitiesincluding
private onesto
enroll their children in organized sport programs.
ConTroverSieS
AnD iSSueS in ChilDrenS
SPorT
Asthe popularity of childrens sport hasgrown, so too havethe scrutiny and the criticism of childrens sports programs. Critics have, for example, questioned the
merits of orga-
nized and highly structured sport participation for children asyoung as 4 or 5 years of age. Moreover, many of the professionals involved in physical education and sport remain convinced of the need for changes in
minor sport if children are to reap the benefits that
sport and physical activity have to offer. This section will review a number of the interrelated issues associated with children and youth in
minorsport. Theseinclude ethics in
youth sport and the overemphasis on winning, sport specialization, the risk of injuries,
parental interference,
withdrawal from sport,
and the role that coaches play in youth sport.
Ethics and Fair Playin Youth Sport: Is Winning Everything? One of the mostcontroversial areas of organizedsport for children is the highly competitive
natureofsome programsandthe overemphasisplacedon performanceand winning.It is not unusual for sport clubs, and in some casescommunity-based sport programs,to promote the
successandtrack recordsoftheir programsasevidenceoftheir single-mindedcommitment to winning to recruit new membersin an effort to boost registration numbers. By highlighting
their dedicationto excellenceand showcasingthe previouscompetitive successesof their athletes and teams, these clubs are able to present a very enticing picture to parents and
148Chapter
7
prospective athletes. Indeed, the emphasis on skill and performancein manyyouth sport organizations, as noted earlier, hasalso been accompanied by a professionalization of attitudes that has prioritized winning over other values such assimply playing well,let alone having fun. After countless hours of practice in preparation for a competition, player to suggest that
for a coach or
winning isnt important is both naive and unrealistic.
Competition
represents a wayto measureathletic skill or prowess and can be usedto express that
mea-
sure of personal achievement in a healthy way. Yet,if excellence in sport is defined solely as winning or owning
the podium,
what lengths
minded focus on winning become moreimportant game or treating your opponents fairly? If
might one go to win? Doesa singlethan acting
winning is important,
within the rules of the how doesthis affect our
definitions of strategy, rule bending, and cheating? Can weremain honest, fair, respectful, and unselfish if the ultimate goal is to win? These and other questions call for usto consider the ethical dimensions of our behaviour.
The erosion of ethical behaviour and high standards of those involved in sport is
perhaps one of the
mostoverarching concerns with respect to many of the current issues
facing youth sport today. Particularly disturbing for some involved in youth sport is the notion that sport mayactually serve to promote moralinsensitivity. sometimes usethe argument that everyone is doing it
Forinstance, coaches
to rationalize their rule breaking
or the use of questionable and unethical tactics. Onthis note, many physical educators have argued that the emphasis in youth sport should not solely be on wining and competition,
but should focus on the enhancement of
physical, cognitive, and affective development of the participants (American Health, Physical Education, Recreation and Dance, 2013). a criticism
Alliance for
Wuestand Bucher (2003), in
of youth sport, note that these issues are particularly critical for younger chil-
dren, and that the fun of playing (rather than dominating an opponent) should be emphasized along with the development of a broad range of skills within the sport. In so doing, participation
opportunities for
many children of all abilities should be provided rather
than limiting
participation to the gifted few in an exclusionary
model of youth sport where
the primary focus is winning. As Tutor Bompa (1995) points out, it is important for usto provide
moreopportunities for children to learn the fundamentals
stress environment
of sports in afun, low-
(p. 26).
Sport organizations throughout the country have, of course,taken a number ofsteps to improve or maintain ethical standards of fair play, sportsmanship, and the conduct of individuals involved in their programs. Codesof conduct, fair play rules, and coaches and players creeds have been developed that attempt to prescribe guidelines to serve asthe basisfor making reasoned judgments related to sport activities.
Most notably, the Canadian Centre for
Ethicsin Sport hasasits missionto promote ethical conduct in all aspectsof sport in Canada, and to build afair and ethical sport system that embodies respect, fair play, safety and non-
violence (Canadian Centrefor Ethicsin Sport,2002, p. 1). In the meantime,a numberof provinces haveinstituted programs aimed atfostering fair play and ethical standardsin sport.
Thefair playprogramsin NovaScotiaand Ontarioare quickly becoming modelsthat other provinces are usingto develop their own programs to addressthe issuesrelated to ethics in
sport. Nevertheless,whiletheseeffortsshould beapplaudedasa positivestepin raising awarenessand addressingthe situation,
westill do not haveto look very hard to find examples of
cheating, abuseof officials, violations of rules, and outrageousbehaviour of parentsand coachesto conclude that these disruptive and unethical practices arestill widespread.
Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport149
Sport Specialization Directly linked to the emphasis on winning and performance for children is the increasing pressureto develop highly skilled and specialized athletes in specific sports. The processfor identifying athletic talent in Canadais typically basedon asport modelthat provides afeeder system designed to progressively target and train athletes for the elite levels. sports such as swimming, gymnastics, and figure skating have traditionally
Whilesome been known
to start training children as early as 5 and 6 years of age, other sports such assoccer, hockey, and basketball are increasingly following suit. Children whoshow promise are systematically movedthrough aseries of skill development stages,introduced to moreintense competitions, and engagedin longer, morefrequent training sessions. Becauseofthe sheer amount of effort, time, and resourcesinvolved in this development phase, promising athletes are inevitably urged by a coach or parent to choose onesport in which to specialize. Some parents are per-
suadedthat their childs progressand chancesfor successat the elitelevel ofthe sport will be enhanced if there is year-round commitment to that sport, whilethe prospect of becoming an
age-groupchampion orthe dreamof makinga nationalteam becomesa powerfulenticement for both parents and their children. Parentscan be easilylured into the Tiger
Woodsphe-
nomenon and cometo believethat an explicit focus on onesport earlysimilar to
Woods
whoreportedly like the worlds best malegolfer, whoreportedly started putting when he was
3yearsoldwill
givetheir son or daughtera betterchanceto make it to the bigleagues.
Still, early specialization in youth sport is a contentious issue. Some suggest that early
specialization of athletic expertiseis mostbeneficial in sports wherepeak performance occursin adolescence, such as womens gymnastics and womens figure skating (Deakin Cobley, 2003; Law, Cote, & Ericsson, 2007).
However, other researchers argue that a
specialized approach to sport can have negative consequences for the participants that specialization
undermines
many of the positive aspects of sport, including
children from other social worlds (Jayanthi, adherence to a long-term
training
&
2012). Strict regimentation,
and
isolating
routine,
and
program increasingly influence and shape the experi-
ences of children in organized sports programs according to the values of professional and high-performance sport. Yet the values that emerge from programs based on specialized, competitive success can bein conflict ideals of childrens sport, including
with, and in some casesact to subvert, the avowed
a movement-education approach that provides oppor-
tunities for children to experience the joy of physical
movement as opposed to objective
and highly skilled performance (Siedentop, 2004). Whilesome parents want to provide their children with the advantage of an early start by supporting a decision to specialize in a particular sport, there is another interrelated dimension to this trend that encourages children (and their parents) to embrace even greater levels of specialization.
Some programs are so highly structured that emphasis is
placed on children to specializein a particular position withinthat sport. For example, it is not unusual for children to refer to themselves by their playing position: asoccer player is now a striker
or a fullback,
and the age-group swimmer is a butterflyer
or a freestyler.
In
so doing, the young athlete comes to view his or herrole in the sport from the perspective of the relative status of the position, thus further limiting
and detracting from the funda-
mental purpose of sport for children. Such a deliberate structured approach to improve a childs sport skills places them under enormous physiological and psychological stress as well as potentially robbing them of opportunities for developing important social skills.
150Chapter
7
Dropout and Withdrawal from Sport In a competitive sporting environment, the mostpromising players are often children who physically matureearlier than their peersand consequently have a greater chance for athletic successin their age group.
Within this system, the so-called late
discouragedsimply becauselimited
bloomers often become
playing time and fewer opportunities are madeavailable
to them, leading them to sometimes drop out of sport. Onthe other hand, it is scarcely surprising that
many boys and girls who have progressedthrough various sport systems and
increasingly find sport to be more work than fun also decide to drop out of sport altogether. The process of dropping out of sport wasexamined asearly as 1976 by Donald Bell, who found that athletes, apart from not getting to play, maybe induced continuing series of degrading or humiliating
to quit because of a
experiences. For example, being
yelled at,
criticized, orridiculed by coaches, parents, or teammates arefrequently reported as negative
experiencesthat serveto drivechildren from a particularsport (cited in Nixon & Frey,1996, p. 91). In a 10-year study on withdrawal from competitive sports, Butcher, Linder and Johns
(2002) concludedthat simple lack of enjoyment wasone of the mainreasonsgiven for transferring to another sport orfor withdrawing from sport altogether. Otherfactors causing
children to leave asport maybe related to performanceanxiety,forming newfriendships outside the sport, new demands at school, embracing other aspects of teen culture, orsimply
losing interest in the sport. In fact, the annual attrition ratein youth sportis 35% and. . . mostyouth wholeave a team do so becausetheir interests shiftto
another sport or to a
non-sportactivity (Fullinwider, 2006,p. 7). Notsurprisingly, pressureon children is asignificant influence
on dropout rates, and a reported 70% of youth athletes quit organized
sport, outside of school programs, by the age of 13 (Engh, 1999; Fullinwider, 2006). As noted above, an exclusionary, high-performance modelservesto weedoutless-talented athletes while also makingsport less attractive to children asthey get older. Minor hockeyin Canadaserves as a prime example of a sport that promotes and caters to the talented asthey
Parentsneedto understandthat pressureto perform earlyin sport may lead to stressand dropout. Bigshots/Getty
Images
Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport151
movethrough various levels of competition.
While minor hockey continues to be a popular
sport for Canadians,declining registration numbers are asignificant concern. An editorial in the Globeand Mailcautioned that kids 8, 9, and 10 years old, kids with no plans of makingthe NHL, areforced to treat hockeyfrom an early agelike ajob. It is estimated that seventy-five percent of those kids whostart playing hockey at age 5 or 6 have dropped out bythe time they hit 15 (cited in Donnelly, 2000, p. 192). Young hockey players whoshow promisein the sport are being selected at an earlier agefor specialized treatment through various talent identification strategies, whilethose whofail to maketravel teams or are not talented enough to playin an all-star league soon find themselves on the sidelines. The same point can be made with respectto talent development in nonteam sports, asevidenced bythe high numbers of children who quit or drop out ofindividual sports such asswimming, gymnastics, andfigure skating. All of these issuesraise questions about the demands that are being placed on young athletes and the possibility of burnout in children who pursue sport at a high level. Burnout is the result of too
much participation, success, and pressure at too early an age. The causes
may be physical, psychological, or a combination p. 122). In a series of interviews
of elements (Figler
& Whitaker, 1991,
with age-group champions, Coakley and Donnelly (2009)
found that burnout occurred when
young athletes felt they no longer
had control over
their lives, and could not explore, develop, and nurture identities apart from sports (p. 87). Children who withdraw from sport at an early age becauseof burnout come to devalue the importance
of sport to their self-identity and perceive that other activities are more attrac-
tive than sport (Raedeke, 1997, p. 413).
Many burnout situations can be avoided; how-
ever, coaches and parents needto recognize burnout symptoms and provide programs that protect young athletes from having excessive demands placed on them at such an early age.
Risk of Injury in Childrens
Organized Sport
Afurther consequence with respect to specialization in organizedsport is that, only limits childrens
while it not
opportunities in other sports and nonsport activities, exclusive par-
ticipation in one sport activity at an early age can havesignificant physical and emotional implications for a child.
One of the
the increased risk of overuseinjuries. orimproper technique or conditioning
mostalarming effects of sport specialization has been Physiologically, injuries associated with overtraining arefar
morefrequent when a child engagesin asin-
gle sport over along period. The American Academy of Pediatricsrecommends that sporting activities for children should belimited to a maximum of 5 days per week.In addition, athletes should have at least 23
months off per yearfrom their particular sport (Brenner,
2007, p. 1243). Repetitive movementsthat causeimpact or strain to the joints can lead to damagein the fragile growth area of the bone and can impair
normal growth patterns or
result in permanent disability. A Canadian Paediatric Society (2006) report advised that predicting sport readinessinvolves the evaluation of anindividual childs cognitive, social and motordevelopmentto determine his or her ability to meetthe demandsof the sport. Sportingactivities should betailored to the developmentallevel ofthe child through simple
modifications, such assmaller equipment, frequent changing of posi-
tions, shorter games and practices, and byfocusing on fun.
Children should be encour-
agedto participate in a variety of activities and avoid early specialization. (pp. 12)
Limiting intensive involvement ing children
reduce the risk of overuse injuries. 152Chapter
7
in sports that are physically demanding and provid-
with a choice of less strenuous or more skill-oriented
activities
may help
Sport medicineprofessionalshavealsostartedto raiseconcernsrelatedto the likelihood of headinjuries occurringin contact sports. Until recently, severe contact resulting in headinjuries duringsporting events wereclassifiedasconcussionsonly whena playerexhibited typical symptoms,such as disorientation orloss of consciousness.Doctorsare nowcautioning that any blow to the head,evenif it doesnot appearsevereenoughto causethe classicsymptoms of a concussion,canstill havelong-term health consequences(Koutures, Gregory, &the Council on Sport Medicineand Fitness,2010). Marchieand Cusimano (2003) concludedfrom their researchon body checking and concussionsin hockeythat repeated mildbraininjuries in youth and adults occurringover monthsor yearscouldresult in cumulative deficits. Theyounger developing brain is at an even higherrisk of injury (p. 3). Youngathletesin sportssuch as hockey,football, rugby, or soccer, wherecontactis permitted, maybe exposedto even greater harmthan waspreviouslythought. Assport beginsto assumea greaterplacein achilds life, there is the dangerthat young athletes will continueto train and compete despiteundergoinganinjury and mayin fact avoidreporting injuries for fear offalling behindin their training and possiblylosing their placeonthe team. Thedecisionto bancheckingin boys hockeyat the peeweelevel by HockeyCanada in 2013 continuesto be debatedby variousinterest groups with directstakesin minorhockey (e.g.,the interests of parentsfor their children, the individuals whorun and organize minor hockeyacrossthe country, and variousphysical educatorsand physicians who wantto see changesin the game). Many menwhoadvocatein favour of checkingclaim that boyslearn important physicalskills whenthey areyoungand,asaresult, mayavoid beinginjured asthey moveupthrough the variouslevels. Yetthereis often a defensiveresistanceevidentin many ofthese claimsto social changesthat areperceivedasthreatsto normal genderrelationsand to traditional understandingsof masculinity.However,detractorssuch asthe CanadianPaediatric Societyapplaudedthe decisionto ban checkingat the peeweelevel, simply notingthat [t]here is evidenceto suggestthat an athlete whohassustainedaconcussionis at anincreased riskfor subsequentheadinjuries andthat suchinjuries maybecumulative (Purcell, Canadian PaediatricSociety, & Healthy Active Living and Sports MedicineCommittee,2012,p. 4).
Parental Interference Forthe majorityof parents whoenroll their children in competitive, organizedsport,their participationis limited to drivingto andfrom practicesorgames.In between,they arecontent to sitin the bleachersoralongthe sidelinesand playthe role offan andsupporter,encouraging and enthusiasticallycheeringtheir children along. Onother occasions,they mayvolunteerin acoaching or officiating capacity. Thissceneis playedoutin hundredsof communitiesacross the country eachday. Theseparentsare moreconcerned withsupportingtheir children and makingthe sport experiencefun than in keepingtrack oftheir childs playingtime orscoring statistics. Mostparentswhoareinvolved at this level areinterestedin the redeemingbenefits sport hasto offertheir children and perhapsan expandedsocial circlethemselves. However,a majorconcernfor both critics andsupportersof minorsport hasemerged in recent years:overzealousparents whoengagein displaysof unacceptableand outrageous behavioursbefore,during, and aftertheir childrens sport events. Thesebehavioursinclude verbal and even physical abuse directed toward opponents and, in some cases,abuse directed at their own children. James Deacon(2001) reported that the bad behaviour of some parentsin hockeyis so commonit even hasits own namerink rage. Headdsthat hostile behavior at youth gamesis far morepervasiveandsometimesviolent than it was a Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport153
generationago (p. 22). Reportedincidents of abusiveparentsthreatening coaches,assaulting opposingplayers,and taunting officials appearto havereached epidemic proportions, and regular coverageof these incidents atteststo the fact that concerns about parental behaviourin competitive sport remains aserious, ongoingsocial issue that mustbe dealt with collectively by all stakeholdersof childrens sport. Whileparentsinvolved in team sports appearto bethe mostculpable, individual sports are not immune to abusive parental behaviour. Incidents of a pushyparent who attemptsto influence judgesin gymnasticsor afather whobecomesenraged whenhis child is disqualifiedat aswim meetarereported morefrequently in the popular media.Regardless ofthe sport, attention to this issuestrongly supportsthe claim that parentsaretaking their childrens sportinvolvement moreseriouslythan ever before. Theinvestigation of parental involvement in their childrens sports is not new. Researchershavefocused on child parent/coachrelationshipsin childrens sport (Weiss &Fretwell, 2004) andthe challenges of being sport parents(Wiersma & Fifer, 2005). Shieldsand colleagues(2005, 2007),for example, haveexaminedthe behaviour of parentsduringsport eventsincluding the presence of derogatoryverbalreactions, physicalaltercations, and poorsport behaviour. For parents with aspirationsor dreamsof their child becominga top-level athlete or makinga national team, sportis not simply about playing gamesor havingfun. Theseparents willingly makesignificant sacrificesto givetheir youngstersevery chanceto succeedin the culture of competitive sport, where winningis often lauded asthe only outcomethat matters.The possibility of havingtheir child make it to the top remains an underlying motivefor manyparentsinvolved in minorsport despiteextremelyslim odds.Forexample, Sageand Eitzen(2013) report that three in 10,000or 0.0003 percentof boysplaying high school basketball will be draftedby a National Basketball Associationteam (p. 285). However, even withthese abysmalodds, manyparentssimply believetheir children are destined for a professionalcareerand are often preparedto do whateverit takesto makeit happen. Thisrangesfrom buyingthe mostexpensiveequipment and paying exorbitant clubfeesto relocating the entirefamily closerto atraining facility orsending a young child to live and train elsewherein the country. Parentsarealsooften expectedto commit agreatdealoftheir owntime to club-sponsoredactivities such asfundraising projectsorserving on committees. It is not unusualto seeparentsspendinglarge amountsoftime with other parents,either during practices,at games,or onroad trips, and developingsocial bonds with each other. Consequently,a greatersenseof prestige maybeassociatedwiththeir childs athletic success.In effect,a parentsbragging rights are heavilyinfluenced bytheir childs successorfailure in sport.It comesas nosurprise,therefore,that parentsfeel they havea personalstakein what happensand attemptto exert undueinfluence overtheir childs sport experience. Asecondreasonfor increasedinterference by parentsin childrens sport maysimply bean implicit desireto experiencesport vicariouslythrough their children. Parents who mayhave had unfulfilled athletic experiencesin their own youth sometimes unwittingly pressuretheir children to succeedin an effort to makeupfor their ownlost opportunities. Eventhe mostrestrained parent canlose perspective whenfaced with the dilemma of giving their child the chanceI never had. Finally, athird reasonfor parentsbecomingoverly involved in their childrens games is the prospect offuture financial rewards. Thetantalizing possibility of a collegescholarship, endorsements,or a professionalcontract can become morethan just wishfulthinking for some parents.Following an Olympic Gameswhena Canadianathletein a certain
154Chapter
7
sport medals, it is not unusualfor registration numbersin that sport to go up. Publicity surrounding these events and the million-dollar endorsementsfor medal winnerscan becomea powerful,if unrealistic, motivatorfor some parents. Yet while muchofthe literature on parentalinvolvement focusesonthe overlyinvolved or pushy parent, there are also a number of dangersassociated with parental underinvolvement. Children maybe morelikely to quit sport whenparentsfail to take an active interest in their childs sportinvolvement. Supportand encouragementare needed mostat the initial stage of participation (Canadian Centrefor Ethicsin Sport, 2008),and children needto feel their effortsare appreciated,whichis implicit through their parentssharingthe sport experience withthem. Alack of parentalsupport andinvolvement mayalsoinadvertently openthe doorfor the developmentof an unhealthy coachathlete relationship: Wherethe athlete is distanced from the parent(s), becauseof a perceived absence of emotional support or becauseoffamily conflict or problems, she mayturn to her coach or other authority figure to take onthe role ofsubstitute or surrogate parent. She mayevenfantasize that this personis, in fact, hersubstitute father or mother.(Brackenbridge, 2001, p. 72)
In spite ofthe negativeconsequencesof parentalinvolvement, parentscan do much to positivelyinfluence childrens sport experience. Parentsneedto providesupportive and stablefamily structures while encouraginginvolvement in sport; they also needto understand and appreciate the childs expectations as opposedto their own or the coachs expectationsfor the child.
The Role Coaches Play in Youth Sport Whileparentalinvolvement in sport hascome under heavycriticism in recent years,it is the coach whohasperhapsthe greatestpotential to influence children in minorsport. The youth sport coachis in a positionto provide an atmospherein which children canrealize the many positive benefits of sport participation. Whetherthese benefits exist for the
Coaches play a pivotal role in childrens kali9/E1/Getty
sport experiences.
Images
Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport155
participant dependsto alarge extent on a coachs understanding of the purposes and goals of youth sport. One program that has played a significant role in providing education for coachesin this areais the National Coaching Certification Program (NCCP).
Since 1975,
coachesin Canada have hadthe opportunity to receive formal training in coaching through the
NCCP. Thisfive-level
program, a collaborative
venture among the provinces, sports
governing associations, and the federal government, is designed to provide fundamental coaching principles and skills in addition to the particular techniques
of each sport. To
date,thousands of volunteer coachesfrom everylevel of sport in Canada havetaken advantage of this program. In fact, manylocal sport organizations now haverequirements in place that specify only certified coaches are permitted to coach in their league or program. However, despite the best efforts of these and other educational programs to ensure qualified coaches, a number of issues and concerns related to coaches continue to plague youth sport.
While children lose interest
and drop out of sport for a number of reasons,
many times their reasons to quit sports wererelated to their coaches behaviour. These were often associated with punitive activities by coaches, unrealistic expectations, and harsh and unfair treatment of players (Canadian
Centre for Ethics in Sport, 2008, p. 56):
Coachingabusecaninflict seriousharm on areliant andimpressionableyouth. Manystudieslink bullyingto a vastarrayofserioussubsequentpsychological issues:addiction,depression and suicide, among others. Child athletesare especiallyvulnerable,since they are looking onlyto the nextlevel in their sport andare unableto understandthe long-term ramifications oftheir experience.Let usall appreciatetheinordinate trustthat ayouth athlete mightplacein the handsof whatcould bea bullying adultcoach.(Steffenhagen,2013) In the pastseveral years,there have been numerousincidents of youth sport coaches who haveresorted to unethical, exploitative, and oppressive practices to produce a winning team or an elite athlete. For example, reports of falsifying birth certificates, usingineligible letes, tampering with equipment, and flirting
ath-
with starvation diets are just some of the dis-
turbing storiesthat have madetheir wayinto the headlinesin Canadaand aroundthe world. Perhaps the
mostfrightening
and repulsive phenomenon related to organized youth
sport to emergein the past decadehasbeenthat ofsexual harassmentand abuseof young athletes. In a 1999 Sports Illustrated special report entitled Whos
Coaching Your Kid?
William Nackand Don Yaegerpointed outthat after decadesof beingignored, minimized, or hidden away, the
molestation of athletes bytheir coachesis nolonger the sporting cul-
tures dirtylittle secret (Nack & Yaeger,1999,p. 43). Theirarticle revealedthat although child
molestation is by no meansconfined to sports, the playing field represents an obvious
opportunityfor sexual predators. Withfew backgroundcheckscarried out andlittle supervision of coaches, youth
sports are a ready-made resource pool for pedophiles
(p. 43).
Kirby and Graves(1996), in the first national level survey of sexual harassment in sport (amongst 1,200 Canadian Olympians), demonstrated that sexual harassment and abuse by authority figures was widespread: 29% of responsesacknowledged distressing comments and advances; 22% acknowledged having sexual intercourse
with an authority figure;
while
nearly 9% reported having been previously subjected to asexual assault by a coach or team authority figure, and most went unreported.
Ofthe athletes who reported assaults, one in
five wereunder 16 of years of age. Nackand Yaeger(1999), in an 18-month review of newspaperstories, found more than thirty cases of coachesin the U.S. who had been arrested or convicted of sexually abusing children engaged in nine sports from baseball to wrestling (p. 43). This abhorrent behaviour continues to exist in youth sport. In 2010, an article in 156Chapter
7
USA Todayreported that
USA Swimming (the governing body for swimming)
had been
charged with five lawsuits alleging sexual abuse byformer swim coaches. Predominately, the perpetrators of these assaults are malecoaches while the victims are girls and women. In
Canada, the 1990s painted a disturbing picture of sexual abuse in the national
sport of hockey. First, it emerged that three employees of Maple Leaf Gardens(the former home ofthe Toronto
Maple Leafs) ran a pedophile ring from 19691988,
young boys weresexually assaulted. In 1997, forward and blew the lid off the
where dozens of
Martin Kruze, one of the survivors, came
Maple Leaf Gardensscandal. Kruze committed suicide
later in 1997, two days after one offender wassentenced to under two years of jail time. That same year, the scandal of hockey coach Graham James rocked not only the hockey world, but youth sport organizations acrossthe country (see Box 7.1). According to Donnelly and Sparks(2000), a number of common circumstances relating to the athletecoach
relationship
exist in all of these sexual abuse cases. Theseinclude
various power relations such as being under isolated, sometimes romantically
the coachs direct control, often lonely and
attached to the coach, threatened and/or bribed with
regard to their future in sport, and generally unable to report what happened to them to their parents, police, or sport administrators
(p. 110).
Athletes often do not feel as
though they can come forward for a number of reasons, including feelings of shame, fear of rocking the boat (upsetting teammates), fear of being cut or not making a team, fear of getting a coach fired, feeling that nobody will believe their allegations, and for boys and men,fear of the stigma of homosexuality.
Box 7.1
Sexual Assault Casesin Sport Recent letes
cases
of sexual
have raised
assault
a distressing
childrens
sports,
and
calling
greater
vigilance
highly
publicized
for
Several 1996,
Graham
issue for
concerned
James,
coach in junior
by coaches
on young
everyone
parents
at all levels
hockey and
involved
in
everywhere
are
of sport.
cases reinforce
a charismatic
ath-
highly
winner of the
testimony
what is likely
In
successful
Man of the Year
at trial.
to
be life
had far-reaching its football
this concern.
and
during
and
Sandusky
behind
bars.
consequences
program,
and
was sentenced The abuse
case
for the reputation
a number
to has
of PSU,
of university
coaches
administrators. Finally,
friends
a former
hockey
with a family
from
coach,
after
becoming
Etobicoke,
Ontario,
close
sexually
award from the Hockey Newsin 1989,
was accused of sex-
abused their two sons and their friends.
Michael Dimmick,
ual assault by two of his players (former
NHL player Sheldon
a retired engineer and coach and referee,
wassentenced in
Kennedy,
and another
pleaded
guilty
players 2010,
and
was revised
another
University guilty
over
a 10-year
homes,
Jamess
case, in
2011
football
45 charges period.
Fleury filed
initial
James
the
years in
Police Service
2013.
of
A year later, involving
only two
Theoren
5 years in
assistant
found
assaults
to
Winnipeg
Crown to appeal to
player).
sexual
NHL player
with the
causing the
taged
unnamed
350
was sentenced
former
complaint
In
to
two
prison.
1960s
In
a criminal
against James, sentence,
2013 to
which
7 years for indecent
and
What is clear about abuse times
was committed years,
reduce
the risk
coach of
Children,
Jerry
molesting
The children,
gave horrifying
Pennsylvania Sandusky
was
10 young
boys
all from
accounts
Youth,
State
disadvan-
of the
and
abuse
Parental
adults
of sexual
checks
are
present
took
place in the
be aware
an environment
cases is that period
in a trusted abuse in
childrens
children
we must take of the
warning
where children
as is are
in
Organized
Sport157
sexual some-
Therefore, sport,
to
rigorous
making
sure two
being
coached.
steps
to educate
signs,
and
our chil-
we must create
are empowered
abuse and, if needed, receive help and support.
Involvement
the
of time,
position.
are imperative, whenever
Most importantly, dren to
all of these over a long
by someone
background former
assaults that
1970s.
to
disclose
In the wake of newrevelations of sexual improprieties involving sport organizations at all levels have come under increasing
minorleague coaches,
pressureto take
measuresto
ensure the safety of young athletes. Consequently, Sport Canada, along with a number of national sport organizations, have developed national guidelines for dealing with sexual assault and harassment incidents.
An immediate response by manysport organizations
across the country to these incidents
has been to implement
policies that require all
coaches to submit to a police background check. Police checks are, for example, mandatory in Britain for every volunteer who works with children (Anderssen, 2010). As well,in an attempt to protect children guards aimed at volunteers,
manysport organizations haveinstituted
a number of safe-
officials, coaches, and the athletes themselves.
These are
sometimes drawn up into a bill of rights for young athletes or are formulated asfair play codes (Sage & Eitzen, 2013). Unfortunately, these measures may not be enough to keep sexual predators out of sport, particularly in the larger urban centres where thousands of volunteer coaches would need to undergo screening. Police departments that
would nor-
mally be responsible for reviewing the backgrounds of these coaches simply do not have the time or the resources to do so. Police checks, moreover, only provide evidence of convictions, not accusations of misconduct, charges, or investigations.
Chillingly, the presi-
dent of Volunteer Canada noted that the notorious murderer Paul Bernardo would have passeda police check to coach young children (Anderssen, 2010). Regardless,several precautions needto be taken on behalf of children in organizedsport programsto help safeguard them against sexual exploitation.
First, wherefeasible, organizers
should insist on a background check by police. Wherethis is not practical, volunteer coaches should, as a condition to coach in aleague, be required to submit to a check of their conduct, either through an employer or from previous coaching positions. Second, parents needto be aware of the danger signs that
might suggest a sexually abusive or harassing relationship,
such as a sudden drop in the childs interest in a particular sport, and take steps to protect their children.
They should also try to be present at their childrens
practices and games
(because unattended children are seen as easytargets) while being wary of coaches wholavish expensive gifts on players or spend an unusual amount of time with a child (Nack
&
Yaeger,1999). Perhaps mostimportantly, though, parents needto talk to and inform their children about whatis considered inappropriate about reporting any improprieties that step can be facilitated
behaviour by a coach and to reassurethem
mayoccur between athletes and coaches. Thislatter
by the establishment of specific policies and a complaint
process
known to all athletes including, if possible, an anonymous tip line (Anderssen, 2010).
Conclusions Throughout this chapter, we have suggestedthat nized sport for children
many of the original objectives of orga-
have become obscured or replaced
with an overemphasis on
elitism, performance, and the pursuit of athletic glory. The current sport system in Canada comprises school, community, mote and
and private agencies, and these organizations often pro-
maintain an exclusionary
model in
which young athletes are pressured to
succeed by overzealous parents and domineering coaches. As a result of this pressure and
158
Chapter
7
interference, funa
more and more children are expressing the view that sports are no longer
trend that is reflected in the fact that nearly 70% of all children in organized sport
drop out before they reach the age of 13 (Sage & Eitzen, 2013). Strategies need to be put in place to addressthe issues and concerns brought forward in this chapter. First, parents must begin to take a more proactive stance toward changing the culture of youth sport. The drive for excellence
mustbe balanced with a greater regard
for the overall development of the child. There should be a focus not just on athletic performance but also on social, emotional, and intellectual
development. Second, organizers
responsible for providing youth sport programs needto meetthe challenges facing sport as a result of these disturbing trends by instituting
sound policies on the ethical conduct of
those in decision-making positions. As well, the codes of conduct of sport governing bodies should carry penalties that are severe enough to bereal deterrents to those who might choose to act in an unethical
manner. Finally, coaches need to be madeaware of the
potential for damage caused by early specialization and overtraining in young athletes and encourage and support involvement
in a variety of sport activities rather than
placing
primary emphasis on exploiting children who show athletic promise. Onthis latter note,it mayalso be usefulto follow the salutary advice of noted environmentalist and activist David Suzuki(2012) whosuggestsareturn to informal, outdoor activities: Weneed to makesure our neighbourhoods have green spaces where people can explore their connections
with nature.
We need to ask teachers and school board representa-
tives to take students outside sothat nature becomes a classroom. And we need to stop making the outdoors seem like a scary place for children by helping parents understand
that the benefitsof playing outside outweighthe risks. The enduring barriers to sport and physical activity in
Canada needto be addressed,
and children need to be provided with inclusive, fun, and safe sporting and leisure opportunities including,
as Suzuki noted, challenging some of the ideologies that parents hold
about their children playing outside. Given that the habits wetake into adulthood are often formed
during our youth,
we have no greater purpose as physical educators in
Canadathan to take seriously the issues facing youth and childrens involvement
Critical Thinking 1.
in sport.
Questions
Whathasled to the increasein popularity of organizedsport for children over the past several decades?
2.
Whatarethedangersassociatedwithearlyspecializationforchildreninorganizedsport?
3. Parents and coaches appearto be mainlyresponsible for putting unrealistic expectations on children who areinvolved in organizedsport. Is this an accurate statement? Arethere other people or other factors involved that contribute to the pressurefelt by these children? 4. Studies have shown that
morethan 70% of all children who participate in organized
sport drop out by the time they reach the age of 13.
Whatsuggestions and changes
would you maketo the way youth sport is currently structured in
Canada to encour-
age children to remain in sport? 5. As a parent of a child involved in organized sport, what precautions would you take
to ensurethat your child remains safefrom unethical coaches who might seek to exploit him or her?
Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport159
6. Assuming that you are in charge of organizing a new sport program for children in your community,
what steps would you take to ensure all children in the program
receive equal participation 7. Discuss what the three
opportunities? major stakeholders (parents, sport governing
bodies, and
coaches) need to do to resolve some of the problems associated with childrens sport.
Suggested
readings
Donnelly, P.(2011). Takingsportseriously:Socialissuesin Canadiansport(3rd ed.). Section 3, Children and Sports, Chapters1016. Toronto, ON: Thompson Educational Press. Gruneau,R.(in press). GoodbyeGordie Howe:Sport participation and classinequality in the pay for play. In D. Taras & C. Wadell(Eds.), How Canadianscommunicate V: Sports. Edmonton, AB: AU Press. Malloy, D. C., Ross,S., & Zakus, D. H.(2000). Sportethics: Concepts andcases in sport andrecreation. Toronto, ON: Thompson Educational Press. Orlick, T. (2006).
Cooperative games and sports: Joyful activities for everyone.
Champaign, Il:
Human Kinetics.
references Active Healthy Kids Canada.(2013). Active Kids Report Card.(2013). Are wedriving our kidsto unhealthyhabits? Reportcard on physicalactivityfor childrenandyouth. RetrievedFeb. 2014from http://www.activehealthykids.ca/2013ReportCard/en/. American Alliancefor Health,PhysicalEducation, Recreationand Dance.(2013). Comprehensive school physical activity programs: Helpingall students achieve 60 minutesof physical activity eachday.Journalof PhysicalEducation,Recreationand Dance,84(9), 915. Anderssen, E. (2010, April 9). Game-changingsex-abuse cases meannew rules for nations coaches. Globeand Mail. Retrievedfrom http://www.theglobeandmail.com/news/national/ game-changing-sex-abuse-cases-mean-new-rules-for-nations-coaches/article4314402/ #dashboard/follows/. Bompa, T. (1995). From childhoodto champion athlete. Toronto,
ON: Veritas.
Brackenbridge, C. H.(2001). Spoilsports: Understanding and preventingsexualexploitationin sport. London, UK: Routledge. Brenner, J. S. (2007).
Overuseinjuries,
Pediatrics,119(6), 12421245.
overtraining,
and burnout in child and adolescent athletes.
doi: 10.1542/peds.2007-0887.
Brownrigg, M.(2008). Canadianchildren and youth receivefailing gradefor physicalactivity levels asscreentime replacesactive play. Active Healthy Kids Canada.Retrievedfrom http://www. newswire.ca/en/story/355749/canadian-children-and-youth-receive-failing-grade-for-physicalactivity-levels-as-screen-time-replaces-active-play. Bryant, J. E., & McElroy, M.(1997). Sociologicaldynamicsof sport andexercise.Englewood, CO: MortonPublishing Company. Butcher,J., Linder, K. L., &Johns, D. P.(2002). Withdrawalfrom competitive youth sport: Aretrospective ten-year study. Journal of Sport Behavior, 25(2), 145163.
Canadian Centrefor Ethicsin Sport.(2002). Publicopinionsurvey on youthandsport. Final Report. Retrievedfrom http://www.cces.ca/files/pdfs/CCES-RPT-2002Survey-E.pdf. Canadian Centrefor Ethicsin Sport. (2008).
Whatsport can do: Thetrue sport report. Ottawa, ON: True
Sport. Retrievedfrom http://www.truesportpur.ca/files/pdfs/TS_report_EN_webdownload.pdf.
CanadianFitnessand Lifestyle ResearchInstitute. (2004). 2004 Physicalactivity monitor. Ottawa, ON: Author.
160Chapter
7
Canadian Fitness and Lifestyle ResearchInstitute.
(2010). 2010 Physical activity monitor: Facts and
figures. Ottawa, ON: Author. Canadian Heritage. (2013). Sport participation 2010: Researchpaper. Retrieved from http:// publications.gc.ca/collections/collection_2014/pc-ch/CH24-1-2014-eng.pdf. CanadianPaediatric Society. (2006). Sport readinessin children and youth sport. Pediatric Child Health,10(6), 343344. CanadianSport Centres.(2007). Canadiansportfor life: Asportparentsguide. Ottawa, ON: Author. Retrieved from http://www.fieldhockey.ca/files/LTHD/parents_guide_eng.pdf.
Centersfor DiseaseControl. (2010). Childhoodobesity.Retrievedfrom http://www.cdc.gov/Healthypeople/hp2010.htm. Coakley, J., & Donnelly, P. (2009). (2nd
Sports and children:
Canadian ed., pp. 110143).
Are organized programs worth the effort?
Boston, MA: McGraw-Hill.
Deacon,J. (2001, March26). Rinkrage. Macleans,pp. 2124. Deakin, J. M., & Cobley, S. (2003).
Asearch for deliberate practice: An examination
of the prac-
tice environments in figure skating and volleyball. In J. Starkes & K. A. Ericsson (Eds.), Expert performancein sport: Recentadvancesin research on sport expertise (pp. 115135).
Champaign, IL:
Human Kinetics. Donnelly, P.(2000). Takingsportseriously:Socialissuesin Canadiansport. Toronto, ON: Thompson Publishing,Inc. Donnelly,P., & Sparks,R.(2000). Childsexual abusein sport.In P. Donnelly(Ed.), Takingsportseriously:Socialissuesin Canadian sport(pp. 108111). Toronto, ON: ThompsonEducationalPress. Engh, F.(1999). WhyJohnnyhatessports. Garden City Park, NY: Avery Pub. Figler, S. K., & Whitaker G.(1991). Sportand playin Americanlife. Dubuque,IA:
Wm. C. Brown.
Fullinwider, R. K.(2006). Sports,youth and character: A critical survey. Circle WorkingPaper44, Institute for Philosophy and Public Policy, University of Maryland. Retrieved from http://www. civicyouth.org/PopUps/WorkingPapers/WP44Fullinwider.pdf. Fraser-Thomas, J., & Cote, J. (2009).
Understanding adolescents positive and negative develop-
mental experiences in sport. Sports Psychologist,23, 323. Gruneau, R.(in press). Goodbye Gordie Howe: Sport participation
and classinequality in the pay
for play. In D. Taras & C. Wadell(Eds.), How Canadianscommunicate V: Sports. Edmonton, AB: AU Press. Hall, A., Slack, T., Smith, G., & Whitson, D.(1991). Sportin Canadiansociety. Toronto, ON: McClelland & Stewart. Jayanthi, N.(2012). Injury risks of sport specialization and training in junior tennis players:A clinical study. Paperpresentedat the Societyfor Tennisand MedicineScience North American Regional Conference,Atlanta, GA. Kirby, S., & Greaves,L. (1996, July 1114). Foulplay: Sexualabuseandharassment in sport. Paper presentedto the Pre-Olympic Scientific Congress,Dallas,TX. Koutures, C. G., Gregory, A. J., &the Council on Sport Medicine and Fitness. (2010). Injuries in youth soccer. American Academy of Pediatrics, 125(2), 410414. Kremer-Sadlik, through
T., & Kim, J. L. (2007).
family
interaction
Lessonsfrom sports:
during sports activities.
doi: 10.1542/peds.2009-3009. Childrens socialization
to values
Discourse and Society, 18(1),
3552.
doi: 10.1177/0957926507069456.
LaVoi, N. M., & Stellino, M. B.(2008). Therelation betweenperceived parent-createdsport climateand competitive maleyouth hockey players good and poor sport behaviours.Journal of Psychology, 142(5), 471495. Law, M., Cote.J., & Ericsson, K. A. (2007). Characteristicsof expert developmentin rhythmic gymnastics: Aretrospective study. InternationalJournal of Exerciseand Sport Psychology,5(1), 82103. doi: 10.1080/1612197X.2008.9671814.
Children,
Youth,
and
Parental
Involvement
in
Organized
Sport161
Lumpkin,
A. (2005).
Physical education, exercise science, and sport studies (5th ed.). Boston,
MA:
McGraw-Hill. Marchie, A., & Cusimano,
M.(2003).
Bodychecking and concussions in ice hockey: Should our
youth pay the price? Canadian Medical AssociationJournal, 169(2), 124128. Nack, W., & Yaeger, D. (1999, September 13). about child
Whos coaching your kid? The frightening
truth
molestation in youth sports. SportsIllustrated, pp. 3953.
Nixon, H. L., & Frey, J. H.(1996).
Asociology of sport. Belmont, CA:
Wadsworth.
Olshansky, J. S., Passaro, D.J., Ronald, C., Hershow, R., Layden, J., Carnes, B., Brody, J., Hayflick, L., Butler, R., Allison, D., & Ludwig, D. (2005). United Statesin the 21st century.
A potential
decline in life expectancy in the
New EnglandJournal of Medicine, 352(11), 11381145.
Pugliese, J., & Tinsley, B. Parental socialization
of child and adolescent physical activity:
analysis. Journal of Family Psychology, 21(3), 331343.
A meta-
doi: 10.1037/0893-3200.21.3.331.
Purcell, L. K., Canadian Paediatric Society, & Healthy Active Living and Sports Medicine Committee. (2012). Evaluation and management of children and adolescents with sport-related concussion. Paediatrics & Child Health, 17(1), 31. Physical and Health and Education Canada.(2014).
QDPEThe
facts. Retrieved from http://www.
phecanada.ca/programs/quality-daily-physical-education/facts. Raedeke, T. D.(1997). Is athlete burnout
morethan just stress? Asport commitment
perspective.
Journal of Sport and Exercise Psychology,19, 396417. Sage, G. H., & Eitzen, D. S. (2013).
Sociology of North American sport.
Madison, WI: Brown and
Benchmark. Shields, D. L., Bredemeier, B. L., LaVoi,
N. M., & Power, C. F. (2005).
The sport behavior of youth,
parents and coaches: The good, the bad, and the ugly. Journal of Researchon Character Education, 3(1), 4359. Shields, D. L., LaVoi,
N. M., Bredemeier, B. L., & Power, C.F. (2007). Predictors of poor sportsper-
sonship in youth sports: An examination
of personal attitudes and social influences. Journal of
Sport and Exercise Psychology,29(6), 747762. Siedentop,
D. (2004). Introduction to physical education, fitness and sport (5th ed.). Boston,
MA:
McGraw-Hill. Smith,
A. L. (2003). Peer relationships in physical activity contexts:
A road less traveled in youth
sport and exercise psychology research. Psychologyof Sport and Exercise, 4(1). 2539.
Statistics
Canada.(2004). Canadian Community Health Survey. Special Surveys Division. Statistics Canada. Statistics Canada. (2005, July 6). Canadian Community and adults.
The Daily. Retrieved from
Health Survey:
Obesity among children
http://www.statcan.gc.ca/daily-quotidien/050706/
dq050706a-eng.htm. Steffenhagen, J. (2013, couver
Sun.
May 21). B.C.s young athletes need protection from abusive coaches. Van-
Retrieved
from
http://blogs.vancouversun.com/2013/05/21/b-c-s-young-
athletes-need-protection-from-abusive-coaches-opinion/. Suzuki, D. (2012,
September 27). Get your kids away from the screen and into the green. David
Suzuki Foundation.
Retrieved from
http://www.davidsuzuki.org/blogs/science-matters/2012/09/
get-your-kids-away-from-the-screen-and-into-the-green/. Weiss, M. R., & Fretwell, S. D.(2004). Cordial, contentious,
The parent-coach/child-athlete
or conundrum?
relationship in youth sport:
Research Quarterly for Exerciseand Sport, 76(3), 286305.
doi: 10.1080/02701367.2005.10599300. Wiersma, L. D., & Fifer, A. M.(2005). Its their turn to speak: The joys, challenges and recommendations of youth sport parents. Paper presented at the
meetingfor the
Advancement of Applied
Sport Psychology, Vancouver, BC. Wuest, D. A., & Bucher, C. A. (2003). St. Louis, MI: McGraw-Hill.
162Chapter
7
Foundations of physical education and sport (42nd ed.)
Chapter 8 Sport Deviance Jason Laurendeau
On August4, 2013,three BASEjumpers1 gainedillegal accessinto andthen parachuted from the top of a 36-storeybuilding under construction on Jasper Avenuein Edmonton, Alberta,landing in the middleof the Victoria Promenade(Klingbeil, 2013). Thejump took place at about 9:15 p.m., waswitnessedby a number of local residents, andin the weeksthat followed becamethe focus of significant mediaattention. Perhapsyou anticipate that this chapter will be about storieslike the one outlined above, considering questionsof whythese BASEjumpers (or other participants in sport andleisure pursuits) engagein deviant activitieswhat makesthem decideto doso, the techniques of rationalization (Sykes & Matza,1957) upon whichthey draw, and so on. Theseareimportant questionsthat will inform this chapter to a certain extent. More centrally, however, we will concern ourselves not with deviance as a thing to be explained or understood, but asthe outcome of a social processand cultural struggle (Deutschmann, 2002). In other words, what manyscholars of (sport and) deviancefind sociologically interesting are the waysin which particularideas about whatconstitutes devianceareproducedandenforced.This approachis rooted in C. Wright Mills touchstone
BenJohnsons victoryin the mens 100-metre sprint in the 1988 Olympic Games,and the drug scandal that followed, remains a touchstone momentin Canadian Olympicand sporting history. AP Photo/Dieter
163
Endlicher
articulation of the sociological imagination, in which hestressesthe importance of understandingpersonal biography (in this case,individual decisionsto conform or to engagein deviance) in relation to the social and historical locations in which those decisionsarise(Mills, 1961). How devianceis socially constructed and howsociety responds to deviance both formally andinformally are part of the deviance dance: the interactions, negotiations, and debatesamonggroups with different perceptionsof whethera behaviour or characteristic is deviant and needsto be socially controlled (Bereska, 2011, p. 23). It is this ideological dance that is of principal interest in this chapter. In whatfollows, I will consider what kinds of people,activities, waysof being, and waysof participating in sport and recreational pursuitscome to be understoodasnormal, and whoand whatcome to beseen(e.g., byformal social control organizations,by the general public, and even by the deviants themselves) as abnormal, pathological,immoral, and so on. This approach reminds usto keepsquarely in focus questions of power andideology as we undertake sociological analysesof sport and physical culture, allowing usto unpack the centre (Brock, Raby, & Thomas,2012) withrespectto questionsof sport and deviance.Indeed, discourses aboutnormal behaviour. . . are connectedto the power relations (Brock et al., 2012, p. 7). It is important, then, to consider not only normal or deviant behaviour, but alsothe powerrelations within whichthese distinctions areembedded. In orderto explorethe topic of sport and deviancein the waysdescribedabove,I first considerhow devianceis conceptualized,exploring questionsof whatkindsof approachesto studying deviance characterizethis body of work. Second,I consider the question of
Celebrating Canadian
their
gold-medal
womens
win at the
hockey team
similar
circumstances.
Robert
Ghement/dpa/STF/picture-alliance/Newscom
164Chapter
8
Vancouver
to a degree
2010
of public
Olympic
scrutiny
Games subjected
not imposed
on
the
men in
deviance and otherness andthe related notion of deviantizedbodiesand embodimentsas centralin framing this chapter. Third, I take upissuesof social control, highlighting the sensein which devianceis not only (and perhapsnot even mostimportantly) about the deviant behaviour oridentity, but about the waysin which othersfrom bothinside and outsideof particularsporting activitiesinterpret, respondto, and attempt to regulatethis conduct. Fourth,I considera number ofspecificexamplesof devianceon and offthe field of play, pointing out howthey help usshedlight onthe idea of devianceas dynamicand subject to contestation (e.g., whendeviantsresist beinglabelled), andthe related notion that the deviancedanceis embeddedwithin particular powerrelations andservesto producepower relations. Finally,I take up questionsof deviantizedsports andsportingidentities and draw togetherthe mostimportant threadsfrom the chapter, pointing out opportunities and challengesfor sociologistsofsport as wecontinue to considerquestionsofsport and deviance.
ConCeptualizing
DevianCe
It is important at the outsetto consider how we might conceptualizedevianceto set the stagefor an exploration of some of the avenuesofinvestigation that sport scholars have consideredas wellasthose that havebeenless well developed. There are various sociological and lay approachesto conceptualizing deviance. Underpinning an objectivist standpoint is the assumption that there is something inherent in a person, behaviour, or characteristicthat is necessarilydeviant (Bereska, 2011, p. 5). Theaimfrom this perspectiveis to explainthe person, behaviour, or characteristicin question (Bereska,2011, p. 22). However,this framework hasbeensubject to considerable criticism, particularly from analysts workingfrom a moresubjectivist position. Subjectivist analysesconceptualizedevianceas asocialconstruction,emphasizingthat there is nothing that is inherently deviant. Fromthis perspective,the focus becomesthe deviance dancethe interactions, negotiations,and debatesamonggroups with different perceptionsof whethera behaviouror characteristicis deviant (Bereska,2011, p. 23).In other words,devianceis understood not as athing to be explained, but asan outcomeof a social process informed bypowerandinvolving negotiationand contestation(Deutschmann, 2002). Even within the broad category of subjectivist approachesto studying deviance, however,there areimportant debatesabout what preciselyshould bethe focus of our research.For example,certain subjectivist approaches,including those aiming to humanize thoselabelled as deviant, mightactually reproducethe idea that deviants are different, even perverted,simply by makingthem the foci oftheir investigations (Liazos, 1972). Critiquessuch asthose outlined above advocate much moresustained attention to the groups,institutions, andregulatory agenciesthat createand applythe labels, and the processes by whichtheselabels cometo beunderstoodascommon sense, and henceplay important rolesin the maintenanceand (re)shaping of hegemony(see Chapters1 and 2). Fromthis perspective,it is important to unpackthe centre, askingcritical questionsabout thosein position to create, modify,and enforcethe rules, whetherformal orinformal, and the particular ideas that are madeto seem normal or common sensein applying these rules. Whatis at stake hereis not simply particular definitions of what constitutes deviance, but alsobroaderideological strugglesaboutsuch topics asgender, nationalism,race, sexuality, (dis)ability, and health. Thisis the critical approachtaken in this chapter, one that lends itself to a number of important questionsabout deviance and sport that shift
Sport
Deviance165
the focusfrom those approachesoutlined above. For example,this approachto studying devianceandsport considersquestionssuch asthe following: 1. Howdo particularactions,identities, and performancescometo beunderstoodasdeviant? 2. Whatformal andinformal mechanismsof social control are employedin attempts to bring or keepthose defined asdeviant in line? 3. In what waysare current definitions of deviance shaped by power relations in a particularsociohistorical context? 4. How might we understand deviance not simply as reflective of particular power relations but as activelyinvolved in (re)producingthose powerrelations? 5. How do particular definitions of devianceserveto produce,reproduce, or transform broadersystemsofsocial organizationsuch asrace, gender,(dis)ability, andsexuality? 6. How are individual subjectivities shaped and constrained by the definitions of deviancethat predominatein particular social contexts? 7. Howcan weunderstandindividual agency(individuals abilities to makechoicesthat might resist dominant understandings) with respect to the rules that govern the particularsporting spacesthey occupy? The notion of tolerable deviance (Stebbins, 1996)is a usefulframework for understanding sport-related deviance. Sportis viewed as aseparatesocial world with its own allowablerule violations, exemplifying the processby which aculturally tolerable deviance violatesa normative codebut is notinterpreted by audiencesasalegitimate threat to the collective (or moral)good (Atkinson & Young,2008, p. 11). Thetolerable deviance framework shedsimportant light on the extent to which sport is constructedas aspacein which devianceis accepted,tolerated, or even celebrated. A number ofthe central argumentscharacterizingthis framework are worth highlighting at this time. Oneapproachsuggeststhat there is a hierarchy of social problems,and agentsofformal social control (e.g.,the police)focus on moreseriouscriminal activities, whichin turn influences moral entrepreneurs (Atkinson & Young,2008). Accordingto the internal policing argument,sporting participants and organizersgovern themselves, drawing on a deep understanding of the normsand rules in effect in particular sporting spacesto doso. Another wayof thinking within this framework is to understandsport as a social theaterin whichspectatorsare deliberatelyarousedbythe tension-balancescreated through athletic contests, thus reducing the predictability of day-to-daylife (Atkinson & Young,2008, p. 15). Fromthis perspective,becauseit functions astheatre, sport is understood asan unusualspacein whicha certain degreeof devianceis tolerated, or evenencouraged.In addition, some suggestthat the indiscretions of athletes, howevercommon and statistically typical, tend to be perceivedas unusualand unrepresentativeof sport culture morebroadly(Atkinson & Young,2008, p. 16). This argument might also be madewith respectto otherforms of deviance,such as white-collar crime (Sutherland, 1945).
DevianCe anD otherness Though numeroussport scholars highlight the importance ofinstitutions and practicesthat serveto privilegesome groupsandindividuals andto marginalizeothers,few conceptualize this as a question of deviance. And yet, dominant groups havethe powerto imposethe
166Chapter
8
Box 8.1
BenJohnson: a Case study The case of Ben Johnson is illustrative points
discussed at the
outset
was one of the best-known sprinter
of Jamaican
sporting
scene,
of this chapter. In
athletes
heritage,
establishing
a force to be reckoned
of a number
on the
Johnson
ofimportant 1988, Johnson
planet.
himself in relatively
individual
A Canadian
exploded
within one of the
p. 87). Second,
very
onto the
short
order as
most prestigious
event at the 1988 Seoul
as the
fastest
The fame however, it
gained
by the fall from
was revealed
that
Johnson
whisked
out
of South
became
the central which
revealed Johnson
Olympic
almost
enhancing
drugs
everyone
Ponic, 2001, pp. 5455).
already
and that the in
knew:
The Dubin Inquiry was
crisis
elite
sport
however,
beyond
responsibility coaches,
the for
trainers,
examination
athletes
Ben Johnsons and
other
p. 55). First, it
of doping in sport attributed
doping
consultants
did the
2001,
other respects.
guilt [and]
&
its sheer size
& Ponic,
offence (Teetzel,
that partial
to
his
2009,
consider
to
the
in the
cess than second
he had previously
Amateur
This particular context
to
of
Johnsons
tions,
career reveals
1998).
and examined process.
1998). that
a
the
As the as he
Press cover-
he was initially
who happened
to
have
underwent a decisive shift and he became, Canadian
of his
almost immediately understand
(Jackson,
was twisted
(Jackson,
runner
positive
ban from
to Canada. As he moved up the ranks, however,
a Jamaican
was stripped
identity
notoriety
athletic
Johnsons identity first,
Later he tested
deviantization
ban
with less suc-
competition
Federation
the
as a Jamaican
immigrated
albeit
case needs to be understood
and later
age of Johnsons
framed
Athletic
sprinting
a competition
field,
enjoyed. alifetime
appreciate
unfolded,
Johnsons
as he served
the competitive
time and received
International
story
news
that this
questions
of
and, later,
medal in
back to
process
was shaped
Canadian
identity,
multicultural
(Bereska,
in both the
mightrefer to the cultural patterns such as heteronormativity, the pat-
sion ofsexual desire), andin the morecontext-specific sense ofthe cultural norms created and sustained in particular times and places(such asthe norms that characterize certain sporting Whatis important to appreciatefor the purposesof this discussion,then, is the
notion of a deviant otherfeared, loathed, or bothas the meansto maintaining an idealized self. An understanding of otherness helpsto explain whyidentities are often characterized by polarization and bythe discursive marking ofinclusion and
Sport
however,
relegated
politics in an ostensibly
and in need of measuresofsocial control
a Canadian.
1988,
tern of social relations that construct heterosexuality asthe dominant and only normal expres-
cultures).
paradigm
discussions
& Whitson, 1990).
months and years that followed,
2011, p. 90). For the purposes of this chapter, we mustunderstand culture broadest sense(e.g., it
their
the inquiry
sport
national
an
blame
indicting
so doing,
performance
dominate
blame
it still located agents,
In
norms that comprise their culture on all other cultural groupsin society, labelling the norms of conflicting cultural groups asdeviant
more than
and collective decisions to use performance-
remained
gained fame
(Jackson
cheating.
continues
and then re-entered
in
Ben
served to institutionalize (Jackson
is notable in two
the first full-scale
looked
million, that
of particular
enhancing substances (MacIntosh
Dubin
use of performance-
The Dubin Inquiry,
the Inquiry
memory of the Johnson
case
The $3.6
more than simply recount the facts: [G]iven and significance,
ana-
medal and
inquiry.
taxpayers
was endemic
critically
did
a doping infraction,
feet for
sider individual
career
when
order, Johnsons
a formal
Canadian
had used steroids
48 hours later
of his gold
Korea. In short in
was surpassed,
positive for a banned
was stripped
cost
what
victory
grace less than
subject
to
In the
with this
he had tested
bolic steroid.
Inquiry,
failed
(one that
man on Earth.
Johnson
for
the inquiry
sport) that creates the backdrop against which we must con-
Games established a new world record and solidified his position
athlete
much at the
moral character
sporting events there is: the mens 100-metre sprint. Johnsons dramatic victory in the
though
Deviance167
When he
Johnson
Jamaican.
We must
by CanadaUS and contested
society (Jackson,
was
relaracial 1998).
exclusion
within oppositional
classificatory systems: insiders
and them, menand women, black and white, normal Jewkes,2005, p. 20)
and outsiders,
and deviant.
us
(Greer &
Thesesystems of classification are produced and reproduced rather than simply reflectedin the mediaand other cultural texts (Hall, 2000). Thesetexts include, for example, the mediation of competitions themselves, but also the rules and codes of conduct in circulation in particular sporting spaces,as well asthe interpretations Consider the institutionalized
and implementations
thereof.
racism in recent codes of conduct and practices in the
NBA and the NHL (Lorenz & Murray,2013).In both cases,weseethe (racialized) production of particular choices of style (e.g., dress, music,adornment of equipment) as deviant and in need of correction.
This operatesto surveil and police and, ultimately, as an endeavour on
the part of these leagues and teams to tame
. . . the threatening
Black bodies under their
control (Lorenz & Murray,2013, p. 3). In the caseof RayEmery,a Black NHL goaltender with the Ottawa Senators,the dominant
discourseframing
media narratives [was] the dis-
courseofotherness (Lorenz & Murray2013,p.13). NBAand NHLofficials,ofcourse,argue that these policies and practices are not aboutrace, andindeed that they are colour-blind.
It
is important to note, however,that colour-blindnessfurnishesacceptableways to reject racesensitive equity politics and do so while sounding principled (Levine-Rasky, 2012, p. 102).
Deviantized Bodies and Embodiments One central line of questioning directly related to the discussion of deviance and otherness is the production of particular bodies and particular embodiments or bodily (in)capacities as normal
or deviant.
These processesserve to remind us who belongs and who does
not in particular sporting spaces. In other words, they construct particular ideas about bodies and bodily (in)actions, ideas that produce and reproduce particular understandings of ourselves and others and legitimize
certain social relations (see Chapter 2). In other
words,from a Foucauldian perspective these processesare an exercise in power. In the early 20th century, for example, the International excluded women from certain their reproductive (Laurendeau
Olympic Committee (IOC)
Olympic events, arguing that their bodies (and in particular
functions)
& Adams, 2010).
would be irreparably
harmed by such vigorous activity
Moreover, when womens participation
wasoften closely observed by officials. Atthe 1928 Gamesin
wassanctioned, it
Amsterdam,for instance, the
IOC sanctioned only five track andfield events for women. Following some concerns about women collapsing on the track in the event (as did a number of menin their event, it should be noted), the IOC argued for complete expulsion of women from the Olympic games (Wamsley
& Pfister, 2005, p. 113). Though this did not come to pass, womens athletics
wereretained in the Olympics in alimited capacity and under closescrutiny Pfister, 2005, p. 113). The IOC
has a long history of deviantizing
(Wamsley
&
women and policing
gender boundaries, perhaps mostnotably in practices of sextesting (see Chapter 6). Another wayin
which wesee the deviantization
of particular bodies and embodied
practices is in the waysthat certain body types are revered (and others deviantized) in particular sporting spaces. Considerthe example of larger-bodied participants in long-distance running, a sport that tends to be dominated byslighter athletes: The large orfat running body presents a site wherethe disciplinary processesare active and where the participants are subjected to extensive surveillance
168Chapter
8
(Chase, 2008, p. 140). Particular examples of this
kind of surveillance and policing
mustbe understood within a broader social and political
landscape in which fatness is deviantized more broadly (McDermott, Disabled
2007).
bodies are also deviantized in numerous ways.For example, the dominant his-
tory of the Paralympic Gamesserves to marginalize, homogenize, and pathologize disability and disabled bodies (Peers, 2009). This history constructs a story of disabled bodies under the care and training of benevolent experts, and in so doing erasesthe agency of the very people with disabilities who contributed to laying the foundations of the modern Paralympic movement. Similarly, contemporary representations of Paralympic athletes often erasethe identities and subjectivities of the athletes themselves, instead fetishizing the technologies (mobility and otherwise) that
makeathletic excellence possible(Peers, 2009). Perhaps moretroubling
still is the extent to which the Olympic Gamesare produced asthe real Olympics, whereas the Paralympic Gamesare constructed as a derivative and, arguably, irrelevant version of the real
event. An advertising slogan atthe 1996 Olympic Games,for example (The
Olympics
is where heroes are made. The Paralympics is where heroes come.) celebrates Paralympic athletes and constructs them as heroic simply for beingthere, while Olympians are made into heroesin and through their training, athletic successes,and personal sacrifices (Peers, 2009). Thisservesto reproduce the idea that disabled bodies are not normal, even asit celebrates them. It is important
to remember that individual
serve to reproduce, challenge, or transform
choices are both situated
broader institutions
within, and
and structures. Former
Paralympian Danielle Peerss own negotiations and performances of disability have sometimes served to reproduce the very conditions that 2012). To the extent that she (ambivalently)
marginalize her as disabled (Peers,
adopted the role of the supercrip
in her
career as a Paralympic basketball player on the Canadian national team, she was complicit in further entrenching
a dangerous narrative about disability, one that constructs a
tremendously narrow range of possible subjectivities for those with disabilities and emphasizesindividual
capacities to overcome disability rather than questioning the ableist narra-
tives in which we understand disability assomething that Alsoimportant
mustbe overcome(Peers, 2012).
are the surveillance practices competitors are subjected to and how
they sometimes take on and reproduce their deviant identities. moving autoethnography,
Peers captures the surveillance
replays itself numerous times throughout
In a provocative
and
dimension in a scene that
her athletic career:
It is dark here.I am alone, or atleast, I feel alone. It feelslike yearssince I have been here:since they have beenasking methe same questions;since they have beentrying to figure out who,exactly, I am. AmI the innocent victim? The hostile witness?The suspect? The criminalcheat? I amfinally broken down. I give up. I am ready to confessthe truth . . . I amjust not sure whichtruth to tell. (Peers, 2012,p. 175)
soCial Control As noted above, it is imperative as fundamentally
that
weconsider social control efforts and mechanisms
related to and even implicated in the production of deviance. In other
words, deviance is not deviant in and of itself; it becomes defined asdeviant by particular people and groups in particular
geographical
and social locations
deviantization process described above. And this process is not politically
as part of the or ideologically
neutral. Rather, what is being contested is nothing less than what we understandand treatas
normal.
Sport
Deviance169
In our consideration of social control, it is important at the outsetto notethat social control efforts might be formal or informal (e.g., codified rules versus commonly understood norms), they might be direct andspecific or moregeneral and diffuse(e.g., penaltiesfor specific rule violations versus broader systems of meaningthat operateto remind us of what weshould be doing and not doing and who weshould want to be), and they might come from within a particular sporting location or beimposed from beyond that location (e.g., doping
rules and
norms withinthe sport of cycling versuspolice actions initiated from outside of the sport). Oneavenue of investigation that shedsimportant light on deviance and social control is the question of informal
mechanismsof social control in operation withinsporting spaces.
Though large-scale examples of deviance tend to come easilyto mind, everyday violations of expectations, and the responses to such forms of deviance, illustrate the notion that deviance is contextual and contested. As Deutschmann (2002, p. 22) points out, in the sense that every social grouping generates deviant designations and rules for their application, the deviance processis universal. [Even deviant] communities such as biker gangsinclude their own deviants, who maybe expelled if their behaviour is insufficiently in tune with what the group requires.
Thisis not, however, to suggest that the codesin operation in particular
sporting spaces are unrelated to broader constructions of deviance. Onthe contrary, these notions of what constitutes deviance and conformity are part of the broader landscape of ideological struggle that servesto reproduce (and sometimes reshape) the processesby which consent about such topics asrisk, gender, and respect for authority is created (see Chapter 2). Within particular sporting inherently
spaces (including
spaces that some
might think
of as
deviant), there are expectations and norms (defined and policed by the group
or subculture itself) as to how one goesabout participating in a sporting activity or whatit meansto be a real
participant.
As part of myresearch into BASE jumping (refer to page
182 for a description), for example, I learned of a phenomenon known as BASE
ethics.
One central component of BASE ethics is the expectation that jumpers visiting an area contact local jumpers prior to jumping off particular objects: The seriousness of the expectation to contact the locals is highlighted by the case of John Vincent, who, manyyears ago, traveled to
Atlanta and, without contacting the
locals, jumped a crane. Previously, a local crew ofjumpers had worked out an agreement with the crane operator that he wouldleave the crane facing afavourable direction for the
jumpers(contrary to companyguidelines)in return for a quantity of beerthat the jumpers wouldleave for him eachtime they jumped it. Thisarrangement had worked wellfor locals as well asjumpers visiting the Atlantaarea, until Vincents[jump]. Not only did Vincentjump the crane,but he[also] proceeded to publicizethe jump. Asaresult of the ensuingpresscoverage,the crane came under muchtighter security,the construction companyinitiated aninvestigation, andthe craneoperator whohadbeenfriendly to local jumperslost hisjob. In breakingthe contact the locals rule, then, Vincent upsetlocal BASEjumpers enough that they were willing to drive several hoursto punish him. (Laurendeau,J. (2012). BASEjumping: The ultimate guide. Santa Barbara,CA: ABCCLIO. , p26. Reprinted by permission of Copyright Clearance Center.)
The punishment to
which I refer here is striking.
Vincents residence, forced their
This crew of jumpers showed up at
wayinside, and literally tarred and feathered
Vincent.
Whats more,they videotaped the events in a recording that hassince become folklore in the BASE jumping community (Laurendeau, 2012). Perhaps a more everyday example, however, will help highlight the importance informal
170Chapter
of
policing that takes place within particular sporting spaces.In an autoethnography
8
interrogating
my own sporting
practices (Laurendeau,
2013), including
those of vio-
lence toward
myselfand others, I describe a high school gridiron football
practice from
myyouth. Mycoach, furious about the moves to actually
hit someone.
ously fearing sions.
we were trying in a particular
drill, yelled at us
Wanting very muchto please mycoach (and simultane-
him), I complied,
nearly causing both a teammate and myself concus-
My coach, pleased at this
display,
celebrated
this act of violence
quite
publicly. This scenarioone that I suspect mirrorsinnumerable practices and gamesin football and elsewherebrings to light the sense in which we must understand both deviance and conformity in relation to agents and practices of social control. In other words,individuals in sporting spaces make particular choices about whether and how to engagein sporting practices but do so within a systemthat setslimits of various kinds on what choices are available andintelligible. In the scenario describedabove, mycoach acted asthe agent of social control, indicting a group of boys and young menfor not adhering to the sport ethic (Hughes & Coakley, 1991) and, implicitly, for not emulating the right kind of masculinity.
This vignetteone
that I suspect mirrorsinnumerable
practices and gamesin football
and elsewherebrings to light the sensein which we mustunderstandboth devianceand conformity in relation to agents and practices of social control. In other words,individuals
in sporting spaces makeparticular choicesabout whetherand howto engagein sporting practices but do so within a system that sets limits of various kinds on what choices are
available and intelligible. In the vignette above, mycoach acts asthe agent of social control, indicting
a group of boys and young menfor
not adhering to the sport
(Hughes & Coakley,1991) and,implicitly, for not emulating the right linity.
I had the choice not to conform, not to practice in a waythat
perhaps even inevitable. rather, it
But at that
was one that I understood
detriment to the team. Mychoice
moment, that
ethic
kind of mascu-
madeinjury likely,
wascertainly not an attractive choice;
well would mark me as weak, indecisive,
and a
And so I conformed.
to conform in the
moment described above constituted an individual
response to the situation and the structural conditions in which it wasembedded. It also, however, served to reproduce those very conditions, challenge the conditions that choice in that hegemonic
made hitting
asI did nothing
to subvert or
myteammate the only culturally intelligible
moment. That is, by capitulating I shored up the (narrow)
masculinity I
definition
of
wasbeing encouraged to embody at the expense of my own
well-being and that of myteammate. The task for scholars of sport and deviance, then, is to explore not only the
waysin
which particular sporting identities
and practices are
normalized, but also the strategies employed to resist those definitions.
DevianCe on the FielD
oF play
Much academic and popular attention is devoted to considering examples of deviance on the field of play (the course, the ice, etc.). Perhaps the best-known explores questions of conformity
to the sport
ethic
(Hughes
work in this area
& Coakley, 1991). The
notion of positive deviance emphasizes the idea that deviance is not always rooted in a failure to observe the normsin operation in a particular sociocultural location.
Sport
Rather, we
Deviance171
might also understand deviance as arising out of an overly enthusiastic adoption of a set of expectations that characterizes particular activities: [A] portion ofthe deviance(i.e., behavior that is morallycondemnedand dangerous) among athletes doesnotinvolve arejection of norms, or conformity to a set of norms not endorsed in the rest of society. Instead,
many problem behaviors are created when
athletes care too muchfor, accept too completely, and overconform to what has become the value system of sport itself, including
both goals and means.(Hughes
& Coakley,
1991, p. 310, emphasis added)
There are four central beliefs that define what
it
meansto identify
athlete and to be treated as an athlete by others in the sport (Hughes
oneself as an
& Coakley, 1991,
p. 309). Based on these beliefs, athletes make sacrifices, strive for distinction, accept risks and refuse limitspractices health (McEwen
that initially
facilitate
success but ultimately
compromise
& Young, 2011, p. 157). From this perspective, we mightthink of exam-
ples such as the widespread use of performance-enhancing sport cultures (e.g., the Festina affair that ous athletes, including
drugsin particular sport and
marredthe 1998 Tour de France, where numer-
all nine membersof the Festina cycling team, confessed to doping)
or the willingness of athletes to neglect their physical well-being in the search for athletic excellence (e.g., Korey Stringer, a Pro Bowl player for the
Minnesota Vikings, who died of
heat stroke after continuing to practise in severe heat on August 1, 2001, even after vomiting several times) not asfailures of athletes to understand and observe the expectations of them in a particular time, place, and space, but asexemplars of that (perhaps uncritical) understanding.
Newspaper coverage of Stringers death, for example, indicted
himself, locating athletes
mentalities asthe problem
Stringer
(Braunsdorf, 2001).
Not all on-field deviance, however, exemplifies the notion of positive deviance. Though not asregular afeature of mediatedsport coverage orsociological investigation asthe examples above, there are also occasional stories about athletes using illegal equipment (e.g., a
hockeystick that does not conform to NHLregulations withrespectto material,dimensions, or curve) or tactics (such as a baseball pitcher whoscuffs the ball in order to artificially
create moreerratic movementon pitches). Andas withall forms of deviance,for everystory we hear about there are undoubtedly
manythat go undetected or are under-reported.
Another important avenue ofinvestigation with respect to on-field devianceis the question of violence (especially, but not exclusively, that which violates the rules of particular
sports). The assaultby Vancouver Canucks Todd Bertuzziagainst Colorado Avalanche rookie Steve Mooreon March 8, 2004,is just one example of this line of inquiry, which the
next chapter will addressin depth. Forour current purposes, though,it is important to highlight that
while we might understand Bertuzzis actions as an individual
deviant act, we
might also conceptualize it as an act of social control, asit wasin response to against Canuck Markus Naslundin a gamein It is important that
Moores hit
mid-February of the same year (Kerr, 2006).
wecritically examine the subjective processesby which individual
deviants come to engage in deviant activities.
However, this kind of analysis might also
produce them as deviant. In other words, when we makenuts, sluts and perverts (Liazos, 1972) the focus of investigation, must,then, critically
wesuggest that they are in need of explanation.
consider the cultures from
within which particular sport ethics arise
and in which they are enacted and reproduced (Young, 1993).
172Chapter
8
We
Drugsin Sport The topic
of drugs in sport has been, and remains,
deeply politicized comes to
and ideological.
one that is hotly contested and
For manystudents, it is one of the first topics that
mind when asked to think
surprising since there is something
about examples of deviance in sport. This is not of a moral
panic
about the use of performance-
enhancing drugs: Societies appear to be subject, every now and then, to periods of moral panic.
A
condition, episode, person or group of persons emergesto become defined as athreat to societal values andinterests; its nature is presented in stylized and stereotypical fashion by the
In
mass media.(Cohen, 1972, p. 9)
manyrespects, this describesthe contemporary
debates around drugs in sport. It is also
important to notethat wecan understand moralpanicsasintimately intertwined questions of ideology (Hall,
with
Critcher, Jefferson, Clarke, & Robert, 1978). In other words,
elites (like the IOC) aresometimescomplicit in the construction of moralpanics aspart of the process of orchestrating
or manufacturing
hegemony. These elites are in a
position to shape media content, and in so doing reproduce particular understandings of competition
and fairness.
Again, these understandings impact
not only our comprehen-
sion of sport, but also the ways we makesense of global labour relations, for instance. Atthe outset of a discussion of this phenomenon, however, it is important a point
to reiterate
madeat the outset of this chapter: The kinds of deviance we hear, talk, and write
about have a lot to tell ussociologically
about why someone
pursuit of athletic excellence. Perhaps nothing could
makethis clearer than a thought
exercise. Take a moment to think about drug usein sport. do so? Perhaps, like
many, you think
might take drug Xin their
Whatcomes to mind when you
of performance-enhancing
drugs such assteroids,
EPO, or HGH. Or perhaps you envision practices such as blood doping, in which an athlete has blood drawn and later replaced to increase their oxygen-carrying capacity.
Or
maybea well-known case of systematic drug usecomes to mind,such asthe state-sponsored administration
of performance-enhancing
drugs in the former East Germany (Dimeo,
Hunt, & Horbury, 2011). Perhapsyou conjure the image of afamous athlete who had afall from grace after being caught cheating.
Some examples include the Lance Armstrong
sagathat played out over several years with Armstrong repeatedly denying accusations of drug useand bullying anyone who accused him of wrongdoing; the case of Jose Canseco, a one-time baseball slugger Alzado, aformer
who admitted to long-term
drug use after retirement;
NFLstar who died in 1992 of a brain tumour, a condition
or Lyle
he alleged was
brought on by years of steroid abuse. The examples cited above exposesome important questions about our understandings of cheating.
Whyis it, for instance, that the use of steroids to enhance performance is consid-
ered cheating, whereasother techniques aimed atimproving athletic performance (e.g., artificial hydration or the useof altitude simulation tents to increase oxygen-carrying capacity) are thought of as good training? Similarly, we might ask whether a practice or product should be considered cheating whenits useis widespread. Or we mightinquire asto whythese particular performance-enhancing drugs are demonized, whereas others (e.g., Cialis or Viagrato treat erectile dysfunction) are acceptablefor performance enhancement in other areas of ourlives.
Sport
Deviance173
Furthermore, the examples that wetend to hear about and around which wetend to see investigations
and government
tabled on the topic of steroid usein
hearings and reports (such as the
Mitchell Report
Major League Baseball) capture a narrow slice of drug
usein and around sport. For example, the mostused and abused drug vis-a`-vissport is not EPO, HGH, or steroids.
Rather, sport and alcohol are closely linked,
and numerous
scholars have considered the complexities of this pairing, including such topics asalcohol use among recreational
and competitive
athletes, the place of alcohol in sport-related
rituals (e.g., hazing), and the sport-alcohol-finance
nexus (Dunning
& Waddington,
2003, p. 355). It is perhaps particularly important to note that there is alengthy history of debate asto the benefits and drawbacks of alcohol consumption
with respect to athletic
performance, and it continues to be touted as a method of reducing anxiety in certain sporting
contexts (Collins
& Vamplew, 2002),
making the point that
performance-
enhancing substances are not only those that heighten physiological capacities. And yet investigations problem in
reveal that
drug use is a much broader,
more insidious
among amateurs and recreational athletes, is culturally revered and encouraged
manysporting spaces, and is tied to broader normalized understandings of healthy
bodies,
masculinity,
and femininity,
to
name but a few systems of stratification
(Safai, 2013). Too often neglected in these discussions are the waysin which other (often over-the-counter)
drugs are used by athletes at many ages and levels of experience and
participation. For example, some athletes trying to make
weight uselaxatives or appetite
suppressants (wrestling, gymnastics), while pain killers are regularly used (and sometimes abused) by athletes in their
push
to perform at the edge in the
name of success
(Safai, 2013, p. 122). As mentioned above, agents and processes of social control are not simply a response to deviance, but are actually constitutive of deviance. In other words, particular acts only become deviant in relation to the rules in place and those charged with policing those rules. For example, the
Agency (WADA),
established in 1999,
plays an active and central role as a moral compass, functioning
to define what consti-
tutes cheating
World Anti-Doping
with respect to performance-enhancing
products and practices and to
surveil and police athletes in an effort to eradicate the use of drugs in sport (or, at the very least, weed out the bad apples
who usethem).
We might understand
the logical outcome of a processthat began in the Cold
Warera, in which international
sporting events became a heated battleground of competing state ideologies, groundwork for the proliferation
of a
number of pharmaceutical
(i.e., blood doping) that could boost athletic performance The 1998 Tour de France served as a flashpoint scandal-plagued tour, almost of the severe doping inspection
half of the participants
WADA as laying the
products and methods
(Park, 2005, p. 177).
of sorts.
Allegedly, during the
withdrew from competition
because
(Park, 2005, p. 178). In response, the IOC organized the
World Conference on Dopingin Sport in early 1999, and with the participation of partners such as the European Union, the
formed the framework for
World Health Organization, and Interpol,
WADA by July ofthat same year(Park, 2005).
Canadianlawyer (and one-time IOC presidential hopeful) Richard Poundis a central
figure in the history of
WADA and has been a staunch advocate for a transnational
anti-doping agency as a mechanismto ensure that all athletes are able to participate on a
level
playing field.
considerable criticism:
174Chapter
8
And yet WADA and similar agencieshave been the subject of
WADA does not simply operate to detect whois doped and whois not by conducting
drug testing and penalizing dopedathletes. Rather, WADA attemptsto governdoping practices throughthe administrationof aseriesof programsandthe deploymentof disciplinary mechanisms . . . seek[ing] to shape athletic conduct by workingthrough [athletes] desires,aspirationsand beliefs.(Park, 2005,p. 179, emphasisadded) Lesssubtle critiques have also been raised, suggesting that
WADAs surveillance and judg-
ment practices, combined with inconsistencies and problems in their testing protocols, violate the basic human rights of all athletes subject to their To the extent that performance-enhancing bodies draw on
mandate(Rushall
&Jones, 2007).
WADA continues to play aleading role in the ideological
war on
drugs, we mustalso appreciate their reach, as other regulatory
WADA policies and procedures. In addition, it is imperative to consider
the wayscompetitors (mis)understand
broader discussions about the use of performance-
enhancing substances (Johnson, Butryn, & Massuci2013). Considerations such as those outlined above are particularly important some of the arguments against drug testing. surveillance both in and out of competition,
These include
in light
of
an oppressive level
of
erosion of trust between various stakeholders,
and perceptions of arbitrary and inconsistent regulations and applications (Waddington, 2010). Perhaps morecentrally, however, sociologists are compelled to look at the various and regimented
waysin which athletes training,
diet, preparation, and physiological
adaptations are managed, measured,and closely monitored in the interests of performance enhancement, (Connor,
and ask Why
are some
methods and drugs banned and not others?
2009, p. 327). In other words,the anti-doping
cally interesting
movement itself is associologi-
as particular instances or systematic programs of doping. For example,
one of the central arguments
madeby proponents of drug testing is that performance-
enhancing drugs are detrimental to athletes health. And yet, if the health of athletes is a concern then drugs are a miniscule part of their
health
problems. Toactually makeelite sport healthy wedo not needanti-doping codes, we needanti-training codeslimiting the type and amount of training an athlete can do. Wealsoneedanti-competition codesrestrictingthe numberof games/meets/competitions in which an athlete can engage.(Connor, 2009,p. 335)
DevianCe oFF the FielD oF play It is imperative that discussions of deviance and deviantization
consider not only those
examples of deviance that occur on or nearsporting spacesthemselves, but alsothose that are directly connected with particular sporting (mega)events, and whatlight these might shed onthe import of these processesto understanding social institutions,
practices, andidentities.
In the first instance, analyses of some casesof off the field
deviance focus on
specific examples of deviance, such as sports crowd disorder. The aim of work like this is
to broadenour understandingsof sporting deviance,shifting the focusfrom participants behaviours in competition
onto those involved in the production
of sporting leagues,
organizations,and practices,as well moreperipheral participants (such asfans). Often, however, the object
of inquiry
is not the deviant behaviour itself but the moral codes at
playin particular contexts. These moralcodesare madevisible by the social control response to the behaviour or circumstances. For example, after the 2011 hockey riots in
Sport
Deviance175
Vancouver, British Columbia, numerous press outlets, as well as police officials, referred to those involved comes from
as anarchists
and troublemakers.
Vancouver. The 2010
incredibly important
Winter Olympic
Another recent example also Games were constructed as being
to Canadas sporting reputation. If Canada could win a gold medal,
this would go some waytoward repairing its international nation to have failed and the
sporting reputation asthe only
to win gold on its own soil (in both the
Montreal Gamesin 1976
Calgary Gamesin 1988). In these pressure-packed circumstances,
Canadian
athletes shone, eventually tallying an impressive haul of 26 medals,14 of them gold. Amidst all of this good news, however, one of the biggest stories of the that our womens hockey team, jubilantly
Games was
celebrating their victory over their long-time
USrivals, took to the ice after the game drinking beer and champagne and smoking cigars (Edwards, Jones, & Weaving, 2013). It is noteworthy that the only people in the stands at this time werea few so forth
Canadian and international
journalists . . . completing reports and
(Edwards et al., 2013, p. 682). The womens team wassaid to have tarnished the
reputation of womens hockey, the IOC promised aninvestigation they later backed away), and Hockey Canadaissued an apology.
(a promise from which Whatis telling about this
example is not that this wasthe response of the press and Olympic officials; what is striking sociologically is that this particular celebratory behaviour wasvilified; only days earlier, Canadian skeleton athlete Jon
Montgomery, after an emotional gold-medal victory, drank
from a pitcher of beer on national television: [Montgomerys
celebratory]
and was considered a pivotal live
on television
moment wasreplayed constantly
on Olympic broadcasts
moment of the Vancouver Gamesfor
during the interview,
Canadians. Even
Montgomery continued to drink from the
pitcher, and becamea Canadianiconic figure. (Edwardset al., 2013, p. 688) It wasnot the case,then, that the drinking behaviour of the womens hockey team wasdeviant in and of itself.
Rather, this example illustrates the notion that deviance is relative
(Deutschmann 2002, p. 23); the behaviour wasconstructed as deviant in relation to particular (gendered) expectations about celebratory behaviours. And, in this case,these expectations reveal as much about gender asasystem of social organization asabout deviance itself. The expectations (made visible through the social control response to the womens celebration) emphasize that there
deviant
are waysof being gendered that arenormal
and waysthat are
(Newman, 2012, p.65) andremind usthat to do genderis not alwaysto live up
to normative conceptions of femininity
and masculinity; it is to engagein behavior at the
riskof genderassessment (West & Zimmerman,1987,p. 136,emphasisin original). Moralcodes are also madevisible bythe waysin which the accused respond, resisting
the spoiled identity (Goffman, 1963)that often accompanies seriousexamplesof deviance. In 1991, for example, NBA star MagicJohnson announced that he had been diagnosed with
the humanimmunodeficiency virus, betterknown as HIV,the precursorto AIDS. Thisnews rocked the
NBA, and Johnsons role in the league wascalled into question. Tellingly, one
important component ofthe fallout ofthis announcement wasJohnsons claim that he had contracted
HIV not through homosexual intercourse, but because he had engagedin numer-
ous extramarital (and, heinsisted, heterosexual) sexual encounters over the years. Hethus disavowed one stigmatizing label (that of being gay)
by adopting another (being virile
and promiscuous), one that comes with a more manageablestigma and serves to reinforce the dominant logic
176Chapter
8
of containment
around HIV and AIDS (Cole
& Denny, 2004).
In the second instance of analyzing off the field
deviance, we might conceptualize
examples of deviance such as protests of Olympic policies, decisions, and practices (any one of which might be understood asan example of deviance) assymptoms of moresystemic social problems (Rowe, 2012). Considerthe deviantization of athletes who usetheir celebrity status to make political statements. Famous examples of this kind of protest include
Muhammad
Alis refusal to report for duty when draftedfor the Vietnam WarandJohn Carlosand Tommie Smiths oft-pictured black (Giardina
power salute at the 1968 Summer Olympics in
Mexico City
& Newman, 2011). These examples alsoillustrate the waysin which notions of
deviance shift over time as social conditions change and historical circumstances shed new light on dynamic social conditions.
Carlosand Smith, for example, wereinitially
vilified over
their protest, accusedof makinga deeply political statement at an ostensibly apolitical Olympic festival (though the IOCs claims that the Olympics are apolitical aretenuous, at best; Smith, 2006). Similarly, Alifaced sanctions for his actions (in the United States,at least) butis now celebrated for hisstand against this unpopular conflict. Perhaps aless well-known example closer to home will serve us well here. In the lead up to the 1988 Olympic
Winter Gamesin
Calgary, there
were a number of protests by
Aboriginal peoples and supporters. For instance, the torch relay wascriticizedfor beingsponsoredby Petro-Canada,asthis conglomerate wasinvading indigenous territories (including Lubiconlands) across Canada. . . Alwyn Morris,gold and bronze kayaking medalistfrom the 1984 Los AngelesSummer Olympic Games and a memberof the Kahnawake,declared hissupportfor the Lubiconin front of the assembled crowd. (OBonsawin,
2013, pp. 4748)
This is by no meansthe only time that the IOC has come under fire for social issues related to the hosting of Olympic specifically in relation to
Games, nor even the only time this has happened
Aboriginal people in
Canada. The 2010 Gamesin
Vancouver,
for example, wereprotested by a number of groups against the hosting of the Olympics on stolen
native land
DeviantizeD
(OBonsawin,
2010).
sports
anD sporting
iDentities
Much of the discussion above has centred on questions of particular waysof participating
in sport and physical activities, waysthat cometo be defined as deviant. At this point, however, a brief consideration of activities constructed asdeviant in and of themselves is
in order. As weshall see,in some casesan activity is thought of as deviant regardlessof who undertakes it. In others, however, only certain individuals
or groups are read as devi-
ant for participating in certain kinds of activities, once againillustrating the extent to which deviantization processesare fluid,
malleable, and interwoven
with power.
Oneparticularfield of activities often constructedas deviant (and yetsimultaneously heralded) is so-called risk sports.
In the late 20th century and into the 21st century,
voluntary risk-taking hascometo beseenas foolhardy, careless,irresponsible, and even deviant,
evidence of an individuals ignorance orlack of ability to regulate the self (Lupton,
1999, p. 148). In their study of newspaper accounts of back-country found themselves in need of rescue assistance, Laurendeau and
adventurers
Moroz(2013)
that participants in these kinds of activities are often thought to have a death
who
highlight wish or
are believed to lack a sense of responsibility toward both themselves and others. These
Sport
Deviance177
newspaper accounts of rescue operations, then, serve both to deviantize the particular participants in question and to remind readers of their own responsibilities managing their risk
profiles (Laurendeau
The point above is also germane to a consideration are deviantized for their
participation
with respect to
& Moroz,2013). of how particular social actors
in sports thought to be characterized
by a high
degree of danger. Asmall number of scholars, for example, have considered the waysin which women are deviantized for their participation
in risk sports
while men are more
often lionized for their bravery and adventurousness (Laurendeau, example, the case of Alison Hargreaves, an elite
mountaineer.
2008). Consider, for When Hargreaves was
killed in 1995, wesaw the
morality of risk taking go into overdrive.
had effectively abandoned her children
Asa mother of two,
by taking such extraordinary
Hargreaves
risks. The par-
ticular cultural definitions and limitations imposed upon Hargreavesensured she would never dramatically,if fatally distinguish herselffrom the crowd asa climber,but rather asan errant, unthinking mother.(Palmer, 2004, p. 66) The following
year, however, when Rob Hall died on Mount Everest, the
criticize him for abandoning The deviantization straightforward
his wife and yet-to-be born child (Donnelly,
media did not 2004).
of such activities and participants therein,
however, is not as
as the examples above might seem to suggest: Sport
continues to cele-
brate risk while it is also troubled
byit!
(Donnelly,
2004, p. 54). This ambivalence is
strikingly evident in the case of risk sport participants in that they are constructed on the one hand as deeply irresponsible, ingness to put themselves in a first
while on the other hand they are lauded for their
harms way for the sake of exploration (consider the idea of
ascent of an elusive peak), spectacular performance (think
Bull Stratosjump, in
will-
here of the recent Red
which Felix Baumgartner set several world records in performing a
parachute jump from an estimated altitude of 39,045 metres), or simply for the sake of entertainment
(such asthe X Games).It is worth reminding
celebration (and commodification)
of particular individuals
necessarilyindicate that they are not deviantized. marking extreme
ourselves, however, that the or sporting activities doesnot
On the contrary, this very process of
athletes asspectacular is, in certain respects, simply another reminder
that they are fundamentally
different from us.
Sothough we celebrate their accomplish-
ments and are often willing to explore the edge vicariously through them, so from the comfort and safety of our living rooms, from you so if and whenthings go wrong (Laurendeau
we often do
where we mightlater say I told
& Moroz, 2013).
Conclusions In this chapter, I have aimed to highlight the mostimportance theoretical and substantive lines of inquiry that
have underpinned some of the work considering questions of sport
and deviance. Perhaps moreimportantly,
though, I have endeavoured to sketch out some
waysin which we might broaden what we meanby deviance and the kinds of questions we ask in this area. This broadening, I suggest, comes from critiques of the field of deviance
178Chapter
8
studies more generally and emphasizes the importance appreciating, engaging with, and thinking
of both students and researchers
critically about a broad array of approaches to
studying sport, physical culture, and deviance. Whatis centrally important
in taking this approach to considering
questions of
deviance, conformity, and social control is that we highlight and interrogate the waysthat deviantization
processes work in tandem
with systems of social organization such as
gender, sexuality, (dis)ability, race, and class,to name but afew. That is, considering deviance asrelational
and as an outcome of a process, rather than a phenomenon to explain,
allows us to delve into constructing
how unequal social relations are produced and maintained by
particular ideas about normality and abnormality.
Underscoring power in
this wayallows usto unpack the centre to reveal as much, and perhaps more,about who and what are constituted as normal
Critical thinking
as about whois deviant
and why.
Questions
1. Howis deviance the outcome
of a social process? In what waysis this connected to
questions of power? 2.
Whyis it important to consider the waysthat deviantization about who and whatis normal
3. In
what ways might particular questions about sporting
asked by sport scholars) be part of the deviance 4.
processesproduce ideas
as well as about who and what is deviant?
What kinds of questions do interpretive
deviance (including
those
dance?
scholars ask about sport and deviance, and
how do they differ from those that someone
working from an objectivist
stance
might ask? 5.
What do welearn by unpacking
the centre in contemporary examples of deviance
and sport?
suggested Atkinson,
readings
M.(2011).
Male athletes and the cult(ure)
of thinness in sport.
Deviant Behavior, 32,
224256. Christiansen, A. (2005). Sportin
The legacy of Festina: Patterns of drug usein European cycling since 1998.
History, 25, 497514.
Davidson, J. (2009). Lesbian erotics at womens hockey: Fans,flashing, and the Booby Orrs.Journal
of LesbianStudies,13, 337348. Fitzclarence, L., & Hickey, C.(2001). Realfootballers dont eat quiche: Old narrativesin new times. Menand Masculinities, 4, 118139. Murray,S.(2008). Pathologizingfatness: Medicalauthority and popularculture. Sociologyof Sport Journal, 25, 721. Rinehart, R.(2008). ESPNs Xgames,contestsof opposition,resistance,co-option, and negotiation. In M. Atkinson & K. Young(Eds.), Tribalplay: Subculturaljourneysthroughsport (pp. 175195). Bingley, UK:JAI Press. Silva, C., & Howe,D.(2012). The(in)validity of Supercriprepresentation of Paralympianathletes. Journal of Sport & SocialIssues, 36, 174194. Young, K. (2002).
Standard deviations:
An update on North American sports crowd disorder.
Sociology of SportJournal, 19, 237275.
Sport
Deviance179
references Atkinson, M., & Young, K.(2008). Devianceandsocialcontrolin sport. Champaign,IL: Human Kinetics. Bereska, T. (2011). Deviance,conformity, andsocial controlin Canada(3rd ed.). Toronto, ON: PearsonCanada. Braunsdorf, D.(2001,
August 4). Heatstroke problem lies
within athletes
mentality. Centre Daily
Times, p. 1B. Brock, D., Raby, R., & Thomas, M.(2012). Power and everyday practices. Toronto, Chase, L. (2008).
Running big: Clydesdale runners and technologies
ON: Nelson.
of the body. Sociology of Sport
Journal, 25, 130147.
Cohen,S.(1972). Folkdevilsand moralpanics:Theconstructionofthe Modsand Rockers.London, UK: MacGibbonand Kee. Cole, C., & Denny, H.(2004). Visualizing deviancein post-Reagan America: MagicJohnson, AIDS, andthe promiscuous worldof professionalsport. CriticalSociology,20, 123147. Collins, T., & Vamplew, W.(2002). Mud,sweat andbeers: Acultural history of sportand alcohol. Oxford, UK: Berg. Connor,J. (2009). Towardsasociology of drugsin sport. Sportin Society,12, 327343. Deutschmann,L. (2002). Devianceandsocialcontrol(3rd ed.). Toronto, ON: NelsonThomson. Dimeo,P., Hunt, T., & Horbury, R.(2012). Theindividual and the state: Asocial historical analysis of the East Germandoping system. Sportin History,31, 218237. Donnelly,
P. (2004).
Sport and risk culture. In
K. Young (Ed.), Sporting bodies, damaged selves:
Sociologicalstudies ofsports-related injuries (pp. 2957). Dunning,
E., &
Waddington, I. (2003).
Oxford, UK: Elsevier.
Sport as a drug and drugs in sport:
Some exploratory
comments. International Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport, 38, 351368. Edwards, L., Jones, C., & Weaving, C.(2013).
Celebration on ice: Double standards following
the
Canadian womens gold medalvictory and the 2010 Winter Olympics. Sportin Society, 16, 682698. Giardina, M., & Newman,J. (2011). The physical and the possible. CulturalStudies Critical Methodologies, 11, 392402. Goffman, E.(1963). Stigma: Notesonthe management of spoiledidentity. Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice-Hall. Greer, C., &Jewkes, Y.(2005). Extremes of otherness: Mediaimages of social exclusion. Social Justice,32, 2031. Hall, S.(2000). Racistideologies and the media.In P. Marris & S. Thornham(Eds.), Media studies: Areader (pp. 271282). Hall, S., Critcher,
New York, NY: New York University Press.
C.,Jefferson, T., Clarke, J., and Robert, B. (1978). Policingthe crisis: Mugging,the
state andlaw and order. London,
UK: Macmillan.
Hughes, R., & Coakley, J. (1991). overconformity
Positive
deviance
among athletes:
The implications
of
to the sport ethic. Sociology of Sport Journal, 8, 307325.
Jackson, S. (1998). Atwist of race: BenJohnson and the Canadiancrisis of racial and national identity. Sociologyof SportJournal, 15, 2140. Jackson,S., & Ponic, P.(2001). Prideand prejudice: Reflecting onsport heroes,nationalidentity, and crisisin Canada.Culture,Sport,Society,4, 4362. Johnson,J., Butryn, T., & Masucci, M.(2013). Afocus group analysis of the USand Canadian female triathletes knowledge of doping. Sportin Society,16, 654671. Kerr,J. (2006). Examining the BertuzziMoore NHL ice hockey incident: Crossingthe line between sanctioned and unsanctioned violence in sport. Aggression and Violent Behavior,11, 315322. Klingbeil, C.(2013,
180Chapter
8
August 6). Pearl divers: Skyline stunt at new tower.
Edmonton Journal, p. A1.
Laurendeau, J. (2008).
Gendered
risk regimes:
A theoretical
consideration
of edgework and
gender.Sociologyof SportJournal, 25, 293309. Laurendeau,J. (2011). If youre readingthis, its becauseIve died: Masculinityandrelational risk in BASEjumping. Sociologyof SportJournal, 28, 404420. Laurendeau,J. (2012). BASEjumping: Theultimateguide. Santa Barbara, CA: ABC-CLIO. Laurendeau,J., (2013). Just tape it up for me,ok?: Masculinities,injury and embodiedemotion. Emotion,Spaceand Society.doi: 10.1016/j.emospa.2013.03.010. Laurendeau,J., & Adams, C. (2010). Jumping like a girl: Discursivesilences, exclusionary practicesand the controversy over womensski jumping. Sportin Society,13, 431447. Laurendeau, J., & Moroz, S. (2013). Morality in the mountains: Risk, responsibility, and neoliberalism in newspaperaccounts of backcountry rescue. Communication & Sport, 1, 382399. Levine-Rasky,
C. (2012).
Whiteness: Normalization
and the everyday practice
of power. In
D. Brock, R. Raby, & M. Thomas (Eds.), Power and everyday practices (pp. 86109).
Toronto,
ON: Nelson. Liazos, A.(1972).
Nuts,sluts, and perverts: The poverty ofthe sociology of deviance. Social Problems,
20, 103120. Lorenz,S., & Murray,R.(2013). Goodbye to the gangstas: The NBA dresscode, Ray Emery,and the policing of blacknessin basketball and hockey. Journal of Sport & SocialIssues. doi: 10.1177/0193723513491750. Lupton, D.(1999). Risk. New York, NY: Routledge. MacIntosh, D., & Whitson, D.(1990). Thegameplanners: Transforming Canadassport system. Montreal, QC: McGill-Queens University Press. McDermott, L.(2007). Governmentalanalysisof children at risk in a world of physical activity and obesityepidemics.Sociologyof SportJournal, 24, 302324. McEwen, K., and Young, K. (2011). Ballet and pain: Reflections on a risk-dance culture.
Qualitative
Researchin Sport, Exerciseand Health, 3, 152173. Mills, C. W.(1961). Newman, Z. (2012).
Thesociologicalimagination.
New York, NY: Grove Press.
Bodies, genders, sexualities:
Counting past two. In
M. Thomas (Eds.), Power and everyday practices (pp. 6185).
Toronto,
D. Brock, R. Raby,& ON: Nelson.
OBonsawin, C.(2010). No Olympicson stolen nativeland: Contesting Olympic narrativesand assertingindigenous rights within the discourseofthe 2010 Vancouver Games.Sportin Society, 13, 143156. OBonsawin, C.(2013). Indigenous peoplesand Canadian-hosted Olympic Games.In J. Forsyth and A. Giles(Eds.), Aboriginalpeoplesandsportin Canada(pp. 3563). Vancouver, BC: UBC Press. Palmer, C.(2004). Death, dangerand the selling of risk in adventuresports.In B. Wheaton(Ed.), Understanding lifestyle sports: Consumption,identity anddifference(pp. 5569). New York, NY: Routledge. Park, J. (2005). lance.
Doped bodies: The
World Anti-Doping
Agency and the global culture of surveil-
Cultural Studies Critical Methodologies,5, 174188.
Peers, D.(2009). (Dis)empowering
Paralympic histories:
Absent athletes and disabling discourses.
Disability & Society, 24, 653665. Peers, D. (2012).
Interrogating
disability:
The (de)composition
of a recovering
Paralympian.
QualitativeResearch in Sportand Exercise,4, 175188. Rowe, D.(2012). The bid, the lead-up, the event and the legacy: Global cultural politics and hostingthe Olympics. BritishJournal of Sociology,63, 285305. Rushall,B., &Jones, M.(2007). Drugsin sport: Acure worsethan the disease? InternationalJournal of SportsScience& Coaching,2, 335361.
Sport
Deviance181
Safai, P. (2013). Sports medicine, health, and the politics of risk. In D. Andrews and B. Carrington
(Eds.), Acompanionto sport(pp. 112128). Oxford, UK: Blackwell. Smith, M.(2006). Revisiting South Africa and the Olympic movement: The correspondenceof Reginald S. Alexander and the International Olympic Committee, 196186. International Journalofthe Historyof Sport,23, 11931216. Stebbins, R.(1996). Tolerabledifferences:Living withdeviance(2nd ed.). Toronto, ON: McGraw-Hill. Sutherland, E.(1945). Is white collar crime crime? AmericanSociologicalReview,10, 132139. Sykes, G., & Matza,D.(1957). Techniquesof neutralization: Atheory of delinquency. American SociologicalReview,22, 664670. Teetzel, S. (2009). Sharingthe blame: Complicity, conspiracy, and collective responsibility in sport. Acta UniversitatisPalackianaeOlomucensis.Gymnica,36, 8593. Waddington, I. (2010).
Surveillance
and control in sport:
A sociologist looks at the
WADA
whereaboutssystem. International Journal of Sport Policy, 2, 255274. Wamsley K., and Pfister, modern Games.In
G. (2005).
Olympic
men and women: The politics
K. Young & K. Wamsley(Eds.),
of gender in the
Global Olympics(pp. 103125).
New York,
NY: Elsevier.
West,C., & Zimmerman, D.(1987). Doinggender. Gender &Society,1, 125151. Young, K.(1993). Violence,risk, andliability in malesports culture. Sociologyof SportJournal, 10, 373396.
endnotes 1.
BASE jumping,
considered by some to be a moreextreme
version of skydiving, involves
parachuting from fixed objects such as buildings (B), antennae (A), spans (such as bridges; S), and earth (such as cliffs; E). Otherfixed objects, such assilos or cranes, fall into a broad other
category(Laurendeau, 2011).
182Chapter
8
Chapter 9 Violence StacyL. Lorenz
Sincethe development of the first organized athletic spectaclesin the ancient world, violence
Violent sports have long
has been a key part of the attraction of sport. Donald Kyle (2007) describesancient
object of public fascination
Greek
and Roman sport asvisceral, visual, and vulgar (p. 22). For example, at the ancient Olympic Gamesand on elaborate tracks throughout the Roman Empire, chariot races could endin dangerous collisions and lethal crashes. The poet Statius observedthat one
Cliff Welch/IconSMI 357/Cliff Welch/Icon SMI/Newscom
would think the
drivers werepitted in savage war,so furious is their will to win, so ever-present the threat of a gory death (quoted in Perrottet, 2004, p. 92). The Greek Olympic program featured wrestling, boxing, and a form of no-holds-barred fighting called the pankration. Participants in these combat sports expected broken bones,scarred and disfigured faces, and battered heads. Strangling was a legitimate strategy used by pankratiasts; one athlete
been the
managedto win an
Olympic title despite being choked to death becausehis opponent wasin so muchpain from a dislocated ankle that he conceded victory first (Kyle, 2007; Perrottet, 2004). Hugecrowds gathered at the Colosseumin ancient Rometo watch animal fights and gladiator combats, where death waspart of the entertainment package. Acrossthe Roman Empire, exotic beasts were killed in large-scale hunts and public shows. Animals wereusedto execute deserters,
183
runaway slaves, or criminals.
And gladiators duelledand
tacles sponsored bythe state andimportant In
often diedin
violent
massspec-
political leaders (Kyle, 2007).
modernsociety, violent sports still command the attention of manyfans and spec-
tators.
Michael Messner(2002) argues that the centre of sportthe
renowned part of the world of sport todayis sion, and violence
(p. xviii).
defined
mostrewarded and
largely by physical power, aggres-
The NFLis the mostsuccessful sports league in the United
States, and it sells a combination
of high-speed collisions and hard hits to massivestadium
and television audiences. In Canada, the NHL is the dominant sports businessand only
the
majorsports league that does not punish fist fights between players with ejection
from the game. Fighting,
body checking, and manly displays of toughness are widely
regarded as crucial elements of hockeys spectator appeal. Boxing was perhaps the
most
widely followed sport of the 20th century, although its economic and cultural significance has diminished in recent decades. However, the growth of mixed martial arts (MMA) since the 1990s, particularly
the popularity
of the
(UFC), indicates the ongoing public fascination
Ultimate Fighting
Championship
with combat sports and raises questions
about the place of sporting violence in contemporary culture. In addition, gender identities are closely connected to our understandings of violence in sport, both historically and in the present.
Theories
of Violence
The concept of violence in sport is not easy to define. Discussions of sporting violence are often inconsistent
and contradictory
behaviours from acts that are aggressive,
because it is difficult to distinguish violent rough,
hard,
or physical.
In addition,
violent actions in sport are not only expected and tolerated, they are frequently brated, respected, and admired (Wamsley, 2008).
cele-
Michael Smith (1983) describes aggres-
sion as any behaviour designed to injure another person, psychologically or physically (p. 2). Violence can therefore beseen as a morespecific form of aggressionit iour intended to injure another person physically (Smith, behaviour
will potentially
cause physical harm or injury,
often permitted as an acceptable part
is behav-
1983, p. 2). Although violent violent
actions in sport are
ofthe game (Smith, 1983, p. 9). John Kerr (2005)
notes that in combat sports and contact sports, in particular, violent, forms of physical contact are regarded asintrinsic
highly aggressive, often
and sanctioned
elements of
play (p. 8). Smith (1983) attempts to categorize sports violence on a scale of legitimacy, as perceived by participants in the sport, the general public, and the legal system. Hisanalysis includes two relatively tact
and borderline
legitimate violenceand
types of violencewhich two relatively
he calls brutal
illegitimate
body con-
types of violence
describedasquasi-criminal violence and criminal violence (Smith, 1983,pp. 923; see also Hall, Slack, Smith,
& Whitson, 1991, p. 215; Young, 2002, pp. 209210).
Brutal body
contactis permitted by the official rules of a particular sport, whileborderline violence does not conform to the rules, but nevertheless is widely accepted as alegitimate aspect of
the sport (Smith, 1983, pp. 914). Examplesof brutal bodycontactinclude tacklesin football, punches in boxing or MMA, and the kind of physical play that is permitted in soccer
or basketball. Examplesof borderlineviolenceinclude fistfights in hockey, brushback
184Chapter
9
pitchesaimed neara batters headin baseball,orthe pushesand bumpsthat occurin a pack of distancerunnerspractices that mightbe penalizedor, in some cases,lead to ejections orsuspensions,but which occur routinely and usuallycan bejustified within the context of the sport (Smith, 1983, p. 12).In addition, Kevin Young(2002) notesthat the sanctions imposed bysportsleaguesand administratorsfor borderline violence havebeen notoriouslylight (p. 210). Onthe other hand, quasi-criminalviolenceviolates not only the formal rules of a given sport (and the law of the land), but to a significant degreethe informal norms of player conduct (Smith, 1983, p. 14). In hockey,for instance, cheap shots, sucker punches, and in recent years hitsfrom behindinto the boardsespecially whenthese actions result in seriousinjurywould beregarded as quasi-criminal forms of violence (Young, 2000, 2002). Otherexamplesinclude vicious headbuttsin soccer,bench-clearing brawlsin basketball, or batters charging the pitchers moundto start fights in baseball. Whilesuch acts are morelikely to lead to suspensionsor fines than borderlineviolence, punishment is not always consistentfor those involved in such incidents. In addition, legal authorities maybecomeinvolved in dealing with this type of violence, although criminal chargesfor actions occurring duringthe courseof asporting contest areextremely rare. Civil litigation is morecommonin these cases(Smith, 1983). Finally, there areincidents of criminal violencein whichthe degreeof violenceis so seriousand obviously outsidethe boundariesof what could beconsidered part of the gamethat it is handledfrom the outset by the law (Smith, 1983, p. 21). WhileSmiths categoriesare usefulin attempting to understand sporting violence, the boundaries betweenthese different types of violence are not always clear, and they can change over time. For example, as the long-term consequences of concussions have become moreapparent,the NFLandthe NHL havecome under pressureto make their sports less dangerousfor players. Both leagues have maderule changesthat are intended to reduce the number of headinjuries sustained by participants, makingsome acts that had previously been regarded as allowable forms of body contact into plays that are now considered borderline, or even quasi-criminal, forms of violence. As a result, actions that havelong been considered acceptable within the cultures of football and hockey are increasingly being seen as violations of the written rules and unwritten codesthat operate within these sports. Andif some of these trends continue, perhapsthe standard for what constitutes criminal forms of violence will change as well (Young, 2002). Twoinfluential ideas put forward to explain violencein society (and, by extension, violencein sport) arethe instincttheory andthe frustrationaggression theory (Lorenz, 2002). Theclassicexpressionofinstincttheoryis KonradLorenzs On Aggression, first publishedin 1966, whichexaminesthe fighting instinct in beastand manwhichis directedagainstmembersof the samespecies (Lorenz, 2002, p.ix). In this view, violent behaviouris inevitable because it is rooted in human biology and natural instinct. Proponentsofthis theory also suggestthat such violentimpulsescan bereleasedsafely through catharsisa healthyventing of aggression that reducesthe risk offurther, moredangerousmanifestationsof violence. Sport,for instance, canfunction as a safety valve that providesa controlled outlet for potentially harmful,innate, aggressiveenergies(Gruneau & Whitson,1993; Lorenz,2002; Wamsley, 2008).
Violence
185
Thefrustrationaggressionhypothesisproposesthat individuals act aggressively, and perhapsviolently, whenthey respondto frustration (Dollard, Doob, Millier, Mowrer, & Sears, 1939). Accordingto this model,peoplereleasebuilt-upfrustration through aform of catharsisin waysthat aresimilar to the dissipationof aggressiondescribedbythe instinct theory (Dollard et al., 1939; Wamsley,2008). Sport,for example,is regardedas beingcatharticfor playersand evenspectatorsbecauseit channelsfrustration into acceptableforms of aggression. However,critics of the instinct theory and the frustrationaggression theory have raisedsignificant questionsabout the biological and psychologicalbasesof violence, the degreeto whichfrustration alone can accountfor aggressivebehaviour,and the extent to which catharsispermitsthe safe dischargeof violence. Onthe contrary, there is considerable evidenceto suggestthat violencecan beattributedto sociologicaland culturalfactors, that frustration is only onecontributor to aggression,andthat catharsisdoesnotlead to the harmlessexpressionof violence(Gruneau & Whitson,1993; Wamsley, 2008). A moreconvincing explanation of violenceis the sociallearningtheory(Bandura & Walters,1963). Fromthis perspective,violenceisnt simply natural orinstinctual; it is learnedthrough socialization processesand cultural understandingsof whatis acceptable and unacceptablein particular societies and social contexts. Aggressivebehaviour is a product of observation and interaction with others,including peer groups,role models, and community institutions. In sport, for instance, violent behavioursfrequently become naturalized and normalized over time as acceptable, ordinary parts of the game.In this view, then, violence in sport is produced by sporting environments that put people in situations whereaggressionvisibly works and is rewarded and that sanction and even applaudaggressivebehaviour (Gruneau & Whitson,1993, p. 177). Whenindividuals are placedin positions wherethey can observe violence, wherethey are encouragedto be violent, or wherethey are subjectedto violence themselves,they arelikely to respond aggressivelyor violently to a variety ofsituations (Sage & Eitzen, 2013). Sociallearning theory alsoraises questionsaboutthe validity of the catharsishypothesis.If violenceis alearned response,then violent actsarelikely to trigger moreviolence rather than culminating in a safe,cathartic release of aggression.In contrast to catharsis theory, the violence-begets-violence thesis (Gruneau & Whitson,1993; Smith, 1983) suggeststhat aggressiveenvironments produceaggressiveactions, whichlead to moreviolent outcomes. Asa result, sports violence is a socially constructed and learned behaviour that servesto legitimate andfoster moreviolence (Hall et al., 1991, p. 217). According to this model,sport doesnotreduce violent tendencies by providing a placefor the healthy venting of aggression.For example,former NHL player Ken Dryden(1989) points out that hockeyfights maybetherapeutic by allowing playersto purge violent feelings. However,fights are often inflammatory, as playerscreate new violent feelingsto make further release(more fighting) necessary(p. 232). In this way,violence feeds violence, fighting encouragesmorefighting and asthe culture of hockeytolerates and acceptssuch actsthey are learned andrepeated overtime (Dryden, 1989, p. 233). Sociologists haveidentified a number of external factors that influence aggressive behaviourin sport. Sporting violenceis encouragedby parents,coaches,other players,team ownersandleague officials,fans, andthe massmedia.If parentsreward or approve of their childrens aggression,young playerslearn that such actsare acceptable(Smith, 1983). For example,a Canadianlacrosseofficial reported,I haveseenyoung mothersattyke and novice games(six to ten yearsold) screamingat their sonsto kill the opposingplayer (Smith,
186Chapter
9
1983,p. 84). Playersalso needto impresstheir coachesif they wantto maintaintheir position on ateam. Coachesoften want playersto displaytoughnessand aggression,andthey expect playersto engagein the type of violencethat is necessary to securevictory (Smith, 1983). Asformer NBA coach Pat Rileystated duringalengthy break betweenplayoff contests,Several daysbetweengamesallowsa playerto becomea person. Duringthe playoffs, you dont want playersto be people (Messner,2002, p. 49). Similarly, playersgainrespect from their peersbyshowing courage,demonstratinga willingnessto stand upfor their teammates,and executingthe violent tacticsthat helpthe team win(Smith, 1983). Franchiseownersandleaguecommissionersarereluctant to denounceviolencebecause they areconfidentthat it contributesto spectatorinterest. The NFL,for instance, haspackagedand promoted violencesinceits inception, portraying playersasgladiators,linking the gameto war,and makingaggression into art through its highly successfulNFL Filmsseries (Fainaru-Wada & Fainaru,2013). Although UFCand MMA have modifiedsome of their rulesto make fights safer,the successofthesesportsaslive eventsand pay-per-viewtelevision spectaclesrelies on the promiseof vicious, often bloody, combat (Wertheim, 2007). The sportsindustry marketsviolenceto fans, and peoplerespond by buyingtickets, purchasing merchandise, and watchingviolentsporting eventsontelevision. Smith (1983) explainsthat the popularity of violent sports. . . hasto do withthe tension- and excitement-generating characterof violencenot mindless violence, asthe mediaare wontto putit, but violence involving genuinedrama,oraction (p. 100). Evenpromotersofsoccer,tennis, andsquash notjust hockey,football, andlacrossehave incorporatedviolent and confrontationalimages into their commercialadvertising(Smith, 1983). Finally, the mediapublicizesand exploits violence.Forexample,televisionfrequently emphasizesand dramatizesrough play, devastating hits,fights or brawls,andinjuries from aggressiveacts(Coakley, 2009).In this way,the mediamodels andlegitimizesviolence,conveyingthe idea that violenceis acceptable,even desirable,behaviourandthat violence-doersareto beadmired (Smith, 1983,p. 118).
Violence and MasculiniTy: a hisTorical PersPecTiVe Contemporaryattitudes toward violencein sport arelinked to historical conceptions of violence and masculinity. Duringthe late 19th and early 20th centuries, one of the most influential masculine ideals in North America wasan aggressiveversion of manliness that valued combativeness,competitiveness, and toughness. Forinstance, Duffield Osborn,a defenderof boxing, wrotein the North AmericanReviewin 1888,This vaunted age needs asavingtouch of honest, oldfashioned barbarism,so that when wecometo die, weshall dieleaving menbehind us,and not arace of eminentlyrespectablefemalesaints (Kimmel, 1996, p. 138). Anchoredin concepts of physicality, martialspirit, and primitivism, this newstandard of muscular manhoodplaced a high value on bodily strength and athletic skill (Rotundo, 1993). At the sametime, changesin the middle-classworkplaceraised questionsaboutthe ability of menin clerical, sales,business,and professionalpositionsto fashion a masculineidentity through soft jobs in expanding corporate and government bureaucracies.Thefear that young boys werespendingtoo muchtime withtheir mothers andfemale teachers also producedanxiety about weakened manhood. Capitalist production increasingly took fathers out of their homesandinto factories and offices, whiletheir sons attended elementaryschools and Sundayschools. Thus,through family, educational
Violence
187
institutions, and churches, women werefrequently in charge of the socialization of the next generation of men(Burstyn, 1999; Carnes,1989; Gorn,1986; Howell,1995; Kimmel, 1996; Rotundo,1993). Thisoverpresence of womenin boyslives waswidelyperceived asasignificant problem. MichaelKimmel writes,Men soughtto rescuetheir sonsfrom the feminizing clutches of mothersand teachers and create new waysto manufacture manhood (Kimmel, 1996, p. 157). Asfrustrations withthe new worldof malewhite-collar workand concernsaboutcultural feminization and overcivilization spurred effortsto revitalize manhoodin new ways,sport becameoneofthe mostimportant vehiclesfor counteringeffeminacyandconferring manliness (Burstyn, 1999; Kimmel, 1996; Rotundo,1993). Atthe sametime, sport wasviewedasan instrument of social regenerationthat wouldproduce moralas wellas physical benefitsfor young men(Howell, 1995).In this context, the violenceandroughnessof sportslike boxing, football, hockey,andlacrosse wereseen asacceptableeven necessaryin the building of manlycharacter(Gorn, 1986; Lorenz & Osborne,2009; Oriard,1993; Wamsley& Whitson, 1998; Young,2002). Wheninjuries and even deathsoccurredin ruggedsports,supporters arguedthat the benefitsofsuch activities outweighedthe harmfulconsequences of violence. For example, the first criminal trial involving an on-ice hockey-related death in Canadaoccurredin 1905following the death of Alcide Laurin asaresult ofinjuries sustained during a gamein Maxville, Ontario(Barnes, 1990). Allan Loney,a memberof the Maxvilleteam, wasarrestedfor striking Laurin, a memberof the Alexandria Crescents, in the head with his stick following an altercation between the two players. During Loneys manslaughtertrial, his lawyer claimed that a manly nation requires manly games, andwhen alife waslost by misadventurein manlysportsit wasexcusablehomicide (Lorenz, 2004, p. A16). Similarly, Saturday Night magazinecautioned againstoverreacting to Laurins death by curtailing participation in vigorous pastimes: There is little
doubt that
manyof the qualities that have madethe
Anglo-Saxon race
the world force that it is have been developed on the playground. It would befolly and contrary to the teachings of the past to recommend the abandonment ment of strenuously contested games of athletic sport. It
or discourage-
would be almost a national
calamity if Canadian youth should discard their hockey and lacrosse sticks and puncture their footballs and grow deeply interested in croquet and button, got the button.
button,
whos
(Saturday Night, 1905, p. 1)
In other words,Laurins death wasthe unfortunate price paidfor forging hardy Canadian manhoodthrough the competitive rigours of hockey. And whenthe jury reached a verdict of not guilty, Loney wascarriedthrough the streets of Cornwall by ajubilant group of supporters(Lorenz, 2004). A historical examination of violencein hockeydemonstratesthe long-standing acceptance of a high degreeof roughnessand brutality in the sport. LawrenceScanlan(2002) writes,My overwhelmingimpressionfrom reading the literature, from hearingthe testimonyof playersfrom the earlyto mid-1900s,andfrom poring over newsclippings,is that early hockey wasvery muchlike war. The bloodflowed freely (p. 30). Thejustifications for violencethat werearticulated duringthe first waveof criminal trials involving hockey playersin Canadain the early 1900sarestill prominent in the culture of hockeytoday. In 1905, for instance, during an assault casein Brockville, Ontario, Kingstons GeorgeVanhornstatedthat in knocking an opponent unconscious with hisstick during a brawl, he only acted on the ice as an ordinary hockey player wouldin a strenuous 188Chapter
9
game (Lorenz, 2004). During a particularly Silver Seven and the
Montreal
Wanderers,the
men bleeding and unconscious on the ice. hitting a
vicious 1907 match between the Ottawa butchers
left several
Montreal
Although an Ottawa player wasarrested for
Wanderersplayer in the face with his stick, the judge in the case concluded that
such roughness wasa normal occurrence in hockey, so the attacker the
Ottawa
Montreal Star reported, the incident
happened during
was discharged. As
a game, where all players must
expect to receive their share of hard knocks, there wasa scrimmage and a rough check. In addition, no
witness had shown that the blow had been delivered
purpose of deliberately striking the opponent (Lorenz
maliciously for the
& Osborne, 2006, p. 142).
In 1907, Charles Massonof the Ottawa Victorias wasalso accused of using his stick to kill OwenBud
McCourt of the Cornwall Hockey Club. Massonskated acrossthe ice and,
during a skirmish, struck a deliberate blow to
McCourts head. Asin the 1905 Loney case,
Masson wasarrested but later acquitted in the courts (Lorenz, 2007). Despitethe level of brutality associated with this incident,
McCourts death was widely viewed as a tragic acci-
dent. The Ottawa EveningJournal reported, The
general feeling in
Cornwall is that the
fatality is a mostunfortunate affair and the result of hot-headedness and unpunished rough play rather than viciousness (Lorenz ment of this viewpoint charges against
& Osborne, 2009, p. 187). Perhapsthe clearest state-
was offered by the judge
Massonfrom
who madethe decision to reduce the
murderto manslaughter: Under these circumstances, I can-
not believe that any jury or any court would hold this young man guilty of murder, he concluded. There the usual injury
wascertainly no evidence of any intention
to do anything
that is generally committed in this game (Lorenz
p. 188). Such violent and dangerous acts arestill seen asordinary hockey cultureand
morethan
& Osborne, 2009,
and usual
elements of
that is whyit is so difficult to take violence out of the game.
Proponents of fighting in hockey argue that it decreasesthe level of dangerous violence in the sport. Jay
Gula/Southcreek/ZUMA
Press, Inc/Alamy
Violence
189
conTeMPorary
sPorTing
Violence
One ofthe mostcontentious issuesin modernsport is the role offighting in hockey. Although other sports penalize fighting
with ejection from the game and possible additional punish-
ment, combatants in hockey simply receive afive-minute
major penaltyserved
ously while the teams continue to play with five skaters a sidethen Critics of fighting
simultane-
return to the match.
have become more outspoken in recent years, questioning the purpose of
this practice in the
modern game and calling attention to the injury risks associated with
fighting. Supporters of fighting frequently arguethat it is a natural
part of the sport, emerg-
ing out of the unique mix of speed,sticks, and rugged masculinity that
makeshockey distinct
from other team games. Some fights develop spontaneously during the course of action, when angry or frustrated players drop their gloves and usetheir fists against each other. In addition, playerssometimes attempt to instill a higher level of emotion in their teammates or
alter the momentumof a gamethrough fighting. the workings of an elaborate code
Mosthockeyfights, however,result from
that, according to its defenders, enables the players to
police the gamethemselvesand ultimatelyto reducethe amount of violencein the sport through the strategic useof fighting (Bernstein, 2006; Proteau, 2011).
In hockeyfighting is defendedasa necessary outlet for the frustrations of a highspeed confrontational
game, write Gruneau and
Whitson(1993, p. 177). Underthe NHL
the-
ory of violence (Dryden, 1989, p. 233),fighting functions asa safety valve that releases dangeroustensions among the players relatively harmlessly and prevents moreserious forms
of violence,such asstick attacksand overlyaggressivehits (Bernstein, 2006; Dryden,1989; Gillis, 2009; Gruneau & Whitson, 1993; Whyno, 2013). According to the unwritten code that governs the NHL, a player who crossesthe line with excessive or unacceptable physical play mustpay the price for his actions byfighting one of his opponents or having a teammatefight for him. Thus,fighting acts asa deterrent to potentially
more vicious actions on
the ice. In this way,skilled players are protected, dirty players are punished, and cheap shots are minimized.In particular, fighting is supposed to limit the waysmaller rats
and punks
usetheir sticks as weaponsbecausethey will be held accountable for their choices. However, opponents of fighting
argue that harmful body checks and stick
work could be curtailed
more effectively simply by increasing the penalties for such acts (Gruneau
& Whitson,
1993). Handing out more major penalties, game misconducts,and suspensions would teach players very quickly that engaging in such behaviour will not be tolerated and would deter cheap and dirty play moreeffectively than fighting (Gillis, 2009; Proteau, 2011). The code
that governs fighting is a variation of catharsis theorythe
idea that fight-
ing safely dischargesthe violence inherent in the sport. NHL commissioner
Gary Bettman
recently likened fighting to a thermostat
2013). How-
ever, critics of the code
that regulates the game (Whyno,
note that catharsis theory
has been discredited in
many other
contexts; in fact, violence generally leads to more violence, not less. Instead of preventing spearing, slashing, and dangerous hits, fighting frequently leads to morefighting or escalates into other forms of rough play. Marty McSorleys assault on Donald Brashearin February 2000 could beseen as an example of this. The two players fought earlier in the game, but McSorley was unsatisfied with the outcomeand fightso
he challenged
with Brashears taunting following the
Brashear to another scrap.
When Brashear refused,
McSorley
responded by clubbing him acrossthe head with hisstick. Similarly, Todd Bertuzzis notorious attack on Steve Moorein
March 2004 shows that fighting
does not effectively police
the sport. Three weeksearlier, Moorehad hit Vancouvers Markus Naslund with alegal, but
190Chapter
9
in the Canuckss judgment unacceptable, check. Asa result,
Moorefought
the next meeting between the two teams. According to the code, the issue, but Bertuzzifelt that into yet another fight. him to the ice, giving
Matt Cookein
this should haveresolved
Moore deservedfurther punishment and tried to entice him
When Moorerefused, Bertuzzipunched himfrom behind andslammed Moorea severe concussion and breaking three vertebrae (Wamsley,
2008). Moore never played professional hockey again. Controversy followed this incident when Bertuzzi wasselected to play for Team Canadain the 2006 Winter Olympic Games. Fighting in hockey has also faced growing opposition in recent years asthe long-term consequences of concussions and head injuries (Arthur,
have become more widely understood
2011a). Atthe same time, the NHL hasfaced increased pressureto eliminate hits to
the head,blind-side
hitsthat catch players by surprise, and hitsfrom behind into the boards.
Scientists havefound evidence of significant braininjury in deceasedboxers, professional wrestlers, football players,and hockey players,likely asaresult of repetitive headtrauma. In particular, a condition known as chronic traumatic encephalopathy (CTE) has been detectedin the brains of athletes who engagein these sports (Gladwell, 2009; Hruby, 2013a; King, 2010). Playerssuffering from CTE exhibit symptoms similar to dementia, andtheir brain function and capacity areseverelyimpaired. Thefirst NFLplayer diagnosed with CTE wasformer Pittsburgh Steelerslineman oldhave
Mike Webster,and morethan 40football playersone
been confirmed withthis condition.
as young as18 years
Unfortunately, a majordifficulty with assessing
CTEis that the only wayto detect its presenceis to examine the brain tissue directly following a persons death. However, by the fall of 2012, 33 of the 34 deceased NFL playersstudied by researchersat Boston University had CTE (Fainaru-Wada of several hockey players,including
& Fainaru, 2013, p. 8). The brains
ReggieFleming, Bob Probert, Derek Boogaard,and Richard
Martin, alsotested positive for CTE(Arthur,
2011a; Branch, 2011; Hruby, 2013d). Asaresult,
the NFLand the NHL arefacing difficult questions about the level of brutality in their sports. Is such violence inherent in football and hockey, or are there waysthat violence can belimited in these sports to reduce the risk of headinjuries (Gladwell, 2009; Hruby,2012, 2013a,2013b)?
Canfootball be played safely, or are hitsto the head a risk that players mustaccept as part of the sport? Bill Frakes/Sports
Illustrated/Getty
Images
Violence
191
In
December 2008, Don Sanderson, a 21-year-old university student playing senior
amateur hockey for the during a fight
Whitby Dunlops, hit his head on the ice after losing his balance
with an opposing player. He wasin a coma for three weeksbefore he died in
January 2009. In the aftermath of Sandersons death, hisfather, out against fighting
in hockey.
Michael Sanderson, spoke
Michael Sanderson suggested that fights should lead to
automatic ejections and that players should be required to keep their on during fights (Gillis,
helmets and visors
2009). However, although the death of Don Sanderson triggered
another round of discussion about hockey violence, the NHL made nosubstantial changes to curtail fighting
or prevent similar incidents in the future.
stated in February 2009, I
Commissioner Gary Bettman
dont think there is any appetite to abolish fighting from the
game. I think our fans enjoy this aspect of the game (Gillis,
2009, p. 51).
The league had a similar response to concerns about the possible consequences of violence whenthree
NHL players passed away under troubling circumstances during the
summer of 2011. Derek Boogaard died asaresult of an overdose of painkillers and alcohol, and Rick Rypien and
Wade Belak committed
enforcer, Belak wasa journeyman
suicide.
Boogaard was a classic
NHL
defenceman who fought regularly, and Rypien wasa
tough, hard-working player who was willing to fight
much bigger opponents when called
upon. The deaths of three such players in afour-month
period prompted questions about
the psychological pressuresand health risks of fighting,
particularly the possible connec-
tions to depression, substance abuse, and brain injury (Branch, 2011): We just know that there arent an awfullot of 40-goalscorersor puck-moving defencemendying young, and that the
men whoserole it is to fight in the
vanish like professional wrestlers. This shouldnt
NHL are starting to
be a political issue in the sport; it
should be a human one. And at some point, some deadly serious questions have to be asked about the role of enforcers in hockey, if only to understand whythese gone too soon. (Arthur,
Although sports columnist
men are
2011b, p. A1)
Bruce Arthur (2011c) cautioned that it is also still possible
that this is astring of tragedies strung together by aterrible sort of coincidence, as muchas anything else, he added, none
of this
meansthere isnt alegitimate
debateto be had over
fighting, and the effect it has on some of the people who doit for aliving
(p. S1).
Did the deaths of Sanderson, Boogaard, Rypien, and Belak have an impact on attitudes toward fighting? In October 2013, when Montreal Canadiens enforcer George Parros stumbled awkwardly and hit his face on the ice during an exchange of punches with Toronto
MapleLeafs heavyweight Colton Orr, Arthur (2013) observed,
Nobody questions the courage ofthe
men whofight.
Butit seemssolong agothat we were
all worriedafter the deaths of WadeBelak,of Rick Rypien,of DerekBoogaard.Their deathsraisedcomplexissuesof depression,of whether depressionwaslinked to fighting, of suicide, of the easyaccessto painkillers, of overdoses,of whatthis thing makes some mendo. The discussion flared, and. . . vanished. Nothing wasresolved.(Arthur, 2013) Nevertheless, the Parrosincident
and the continued presence of one-dimensional police-
men in the game spurred discussion about whether or not such designated punchers were needed in the staged
NHL any longerand
the beginning of the 20132014
192Chapter
in particular if the time
fights between enforcers from the league (Duhatschek,
9
season, the
had come to eliminate 2013;
NHL finally introduced
Mirtle, 2013). At a rule requiring
players to keeptheir helmets on during fightsa
change that
would reduce the chance of
a player suffering afatal headinjury from a punch or, morelikely, from falling to the ice. Even though the damaging consequences of punches and checksto the head are becoming
moreapparent, manyof the sports
to glorify rough, old-time
mostoutspoken defenders,like Don Cherry, continue
hockey. Cherrys nostalgic
1996, p. 67) of the games traditional
defence (Gillet,
White, & Young,
character resists any movetoward a less violent and
physical version of hockey. Aslong asfighting and aggressionremain markersof masculinity and hockey continues to be seen as a training
ground for
manhoodit
will be difficult to
remove such forms of violence from the sport. Hockey provides a public platform for celebrating a very traditional whensocietal roles for
masculineideal
(Gruneau
& Whitson, 1993, p. 190) at a time
menand women are changing and opportunities for
mento demon-
strate toughness and physical prowess are diminishing. In the context of an unstable gender order, many menfear that the removal of fighting
would not only jeopardize the masculine
subculture of hockey, but trigger a wider erosion of manhoodin society asa whole. For example, some commentators havesuggestedthat taking fights and hard hits out of hockey wouldlead to the pansification
(Arthur,
2009) or pussification
the sport. Gruneau and Whitson(1993) conclude, The
(Spector, 2013) of
ultimate threat, the threat that pro-
duces a recalcitrance to change, is the perceived threat to the malenessof the game, and beyond this to the place oftraditional
masculinityin a changing economic, cultural, and gen-
der order (p. 192). Forinstance, soon after the tragic deaths of Boogaard, Rypien, and Belak, columnist Jesse Kline (2011) attributed the reduction in on-ice violence in the NHL over the past two decadesto a concerted effort on the part of soccer moms, whose post-Cold agenda wasto turn
War
Westerncivilization into a politically correct snorefest (p. A3). Headded,
There islittle justification for eliminating fighting from hockey, except for those who wishto seethe sport emasculated even further.
Wevealready ceded the ground on mandatory hel-
metsand participation trophies for every kidthat plays. Lets at least let the professionals play the game asit was meantto betough,
a fraMework for Violence in sPorT
passionate and gritty
(Kline, 2011, p. A3).
undersTanding
Michael Messners frameworkfor analyzingviolencerelated to sport is extremely usefulin considering how different manifestations of violence areinterconnected.
Drawing upon what
Michael Kaufman(1987) calls a triad of mensviolence (p. 2), Messner (2002) suggests that
maleathletes commit three
mainforms of violence, both during and outside of their
sport: violence against women,violence againstother men,and violenceagainsttheir own bodies. According to
Messner,Homosocial
sport offers an institutional
context in which
boysand menlearn, largely from each other, to discipline their bodies, attitudes, and feelings within the logic of the triad of mens violence (p. 30). Heargues,Far from being an aberration perpetrated by some marginal deviants, maleathletes off-the-field violence is generated from the normal, everyday dynamics at the center of maleathletic culture (p. 28). Messner(2002) points to the interactions and gender performances of maleathlete peer groups as a crucial dimension ofthe triad of mens violence in sports (see Prettyman, 2006). Hisanalysissuggeststhat two group-based processesunderlie mens violence against women, against other men,and against their own bodies: misogynist and homophobictalk and actions and the suppression of empathy (Messner, 2002, p. 60). First, all-male groups bond through
Violence
193
competitive, sexually aggressivetalk (Curry, 1991, 2000) that serves to forge an aggressive, even violent, hierarchical ordering of bodies, both inside the
malepeer group and between
the malepeer group and any other group (Messner, 2002, p. 38). Misogynist and homophobic insults and banter are usedto punish and police group members,as well asto distinguish the groupfrom outsiders. Group membersare aware of an ever-present threat of demasculinization, humiliation, ostracism, and even violence that man whofails to conform
may be perpetrated against a boy or
with the dominant group values and practices (Messner, 2002,
p. 60). At the same time, within athlete peer groups, boys and menlearn to stifle any empathy they
might havefor women, for other men,and even for themselves. For example, girls
and women are frequently treated as potential objects of sexual conquest and asopportunities to perform heterosexual masculinityfor ones malepeers,rather than asequals(Lefkowitz, 1997; Messner,2002; Pappas, McKenry, & Skilken Catlett, 2004; Robinson, 1998). In the book Our Guys, Bernard Lefkowitz (1997) points to a culture of disrespectfor women as one of the factors that led a group of high school athletes in Jersey,to assault and abusetheir female classmates. Growing up within a
Glen Ridge, New hermetic all-male
world of teams andfriends and brothers andfathers, these privileged young athletes just didnt know girls as equals,astrue friends, as people you cared about (Lefkowitz, 1997, p. 91). After several membersof the Glen Ridge jock
clique
werecharged with sexual assault, afather
whosedaughter wentto the sameschool recalled seeing the boysgetting stronger, closer, every time they got together and humiliated a girl. storiesId
Headded, My daughter would come home with
just shake myhead and wonderif they thought a girl washuman (Lefkowitz, 1997,
p. 160). Onthe whole,there is considerable researchsuggesting that the social worlds created around mens power and performancesportssubvert respect for women and promote the image of women asgame to be pursuedand conquered (Coakley, 2009, p. 213). Messner(2002) suggeststhat alack of empathy for girls and womenis one of the primary reasonsthat
maleathletes, particularly in contact sports, appearto commit acts of sexual vio-
lence against women at a higher rate than nonathletes. For example, a study of reported sexual assaults at a range of institutions
with Division I sports programs indicated that
male
student-athletes weredisproportionately involved in incidents of sexual assault on university campuses.For the years 1991 to 1993, maleathletes madeup 3.3% of the total
malestudent
population at these schools, yetthey represented 19% ofthose reported to judicial affairs offices for sexual assault(Crosset, Benedict, & McDonald, 1995). However,despitethe evidence of the overrepresentation of maleathletes among those who engagein aggressiveand violent sexual behaviour, the precise association betweensports team membershipand sexual assaultremains unclear (Crosset, Benedict, & McDonald, 1995). In addition, disrespectful attitudes toward womenare not uniqueto sport; the issue of mensviolence against womenis a broadsocial problem related to widely held views of womenin society and culture asa whole (Coakley, 2009). In committing
violent acts against other men, male athletes are taught to objectify
opponentsas outsidersand enemiesandto displaytoughnessto their teammates(Messner, 2002). Thefollowing statement from aformer
NFL defensive back reveals how violence is
rewardedand normalizedin football whileopposingplayersareeventually dehumanized: WhenI first started playing, if I would hit a guy hard and he wouldnt get up,it bother me.[But]
would
when I wasa sophomore in high school, first game, I knocked out two
quarterbacks, and people loved it.
The coach loved it. Everybody loved it.
You never
stop feeling sorry for [your injured opponent]. If somebody doesnt get up, you want him to get up. You hope the winds just knocked out of him or something. play, though, the
194Chapter
9
The moreyou
moreyou realize that it is just a part ofthe gamesomebodys
gonna
get hurt. It could be you, it could be himmost
of the time its better if its him. So, you
know, you just go out and play your game.(Messner, M. A.(2002). Taking the field: Women,men,andsports. Minneapolisand London: Universityof MinnesotaPress.) Another ex-NFL player said, Anybody probably lying.
whotells you that they feel bad causing an injury is
How can you feel bad?. . . Youre taught to hurt people (Junod, 2013, p. 4).
Former Dallas CowboyJohn
Niland adds, Were
paid to be violent.
on the guy acrossfrom you (Messner, 2002, p. 49).
Were paid to beat up
Whenthe opposition becomes the
enemy,inflicting pain onthem becomesacceptable. Perhapsthe mostinnovative element of Messnersframework for understanding sporting
violenceis the waythat heconceptualizes injury as aform of violencethat athletescommit against themselves. Injuries are an expected outcome of sport, even among children. Athletes
arejudged on their willingnessand abilityto endurepain andto play hurt, evenat the risk of their long-term health and well-being. Messner(2002) arguesthat
maleathletes become alien-
atedfrom their own bodiesto someextent: Theirsenseoftheir bodiesis basedon a selfknowledge firmly bounded within an instrumental view of ones body asa machine,or atool, to
be built, disciplined,used(and,if necessary, usedup)to getajob done (p. 58). Hecontinues: Boyslearn that to show pain and vulnerability risks their beingseenassoft, andthey knowfrom the media,from coaches,and from their peersthat this is a very badthing. Instead, they learn that they can hopeto gain accessto highstatus, privilege, respect, and connection pain principle,
with others if they conform to
ingness to take pain and take risks. (Messner, men,and sports. Minneapolis and London:
The
what sociologist
Don Sabo calls the
a cultural ideal that demands asuppression of self-empathy and a willM. A. (2002). Taking the field:
Women,
University of Minnesota Press.)
quickest wayto earn the respect of your teammates and coaches is to play through
injuries,
says NFL quarterback
Matt Hasselbeck.The
quickest way to lose respect is to
sayHey, I cant go (Junod, 2013, p. 3). In hockey, for instance, there is a long-standing certain degree of violence, tolerate pain and injury,
belief that players should accept a and persevere through difficulty and
danger. Players are expected to take their taps like squealing
or complaining
men and to refrain from unmanly
about rough play (Lorenz
(2011) writesthat todays NHLers
& Osborne, 2009). Adam Proteau
areinstructed to usethemselves as wrecking ballslaying
wasteto the other side, regardless of the consequencesfor their opponentsor
themselves
and their own bodies (p. 2). Similarly, Ross Bernstein (2006) assertsthat the warrior code demands that adds, If that
players must play through
pain and hardship
meansplaying with a broken arm, so beit. If that
unwritten
(p. 100). He
meansgetting your mouth
quickly stitched up between shifts with no anesthetic, so be it. That is all part of the deal. In fact, it is not rewarded behavior, it is expected behavior (p. 100). Former NHL player and general manager Mike Milbury even responded to the assertion that a player could die on the ice at some point by saying, Some guys going to die every day. It doesnt you dont want to get hurt, dont play the game (Arthur,
matter.If
2009, p. S1).
The expectation of violence committed against a maleathletes own bodyis upheld bythe sporting peer group through the same kind of misogynistand homophobic talk and actions that support other forms of violence. If a member of the group doesnt conform to this masculine standard, he facesthe threat of being labelled a girl, a coward, a queer, or a pussysomething less than a real
man.The
boy who whines about his pain and appears not to be willing to
play hurt risks being positioned bythe group asthe symbolic sissy orfaggot
who wont suck it
Violence
195
up and take it like a manfor the good of the team,
writes Messner(2002, p. 58). Atthe same
time, the ability to absorb pain and punishment without complaint is widelyrespected among players. A veteran NFLplayer provides aninsightful example of this attitude: If you get hurt, you feel like youve done something wrong,especiallyif you go on injured reserve.. . . Your pain threshold is usedto decide what quality of football player you are, and what quality of person.Injuries are usedas a gauge. AndIve done it, too. Manytimes, Ive been battling through injuries, soreness,or pain, and Ive seena young guy come off the field for something minute. And Im thinking, Whata pussylets
get a guyin there whos tougher. (Junod, 2013, p. 3)
Former pro football player Tim Green expressesa similar idea: Doctorsdont coerceplayersinto going out on the field. They dont haveto. Playershave beenconveniently conditionedtheir entirelives to takethe pain and put their bodiesat risk. Playersbegdoctorsfor needles that numbanddrugsthat reduceswelling andpain.. . . Takingthe needleis something NFLplayersareproudto havedone.It is a badgeof honor, not unlike the militarysPurple Heart.It meansyou werein the middleofthe action and youtook a hit. Takingthe needlein the NFLalsolets everyoneknowthat youd do anything to playthe game.It demonstratesa completedisregardfor ones well-beingthat is admired in the NFL between players.(Messner, M. A. (2002). Taking the field:
Women,
men,and sports. Minneapolis and London: University of Minnesota Press.)
Messner(2002) concludes, In
short, in the context of the athletic team, risking ones
health by playing hurt is morethan a wayto avoid misogynist or homophobic ridicule; it is also a way of performing
a highly honored form of masculinity (p. 59).
Although this analysis of the connection between manhoodand attitudes toward painis persuasive,it does not account for female athletes responsesto injury.
Charlesworth and
Young(2004) found that female university athletes were willing to placetheir bodies at risk by accepting injuries and tolerating pain in waysthat wereconsistent sports environments frequently
(pp. 165166).
with studies of male
Similar to maleathletes, these female athletes quite
normalised and rationalised pain and injury as a necessarypart of sport involve-
ment (Charlesworth
& Young, 2004, p. 165). Forinstance, the group bonds and team com-
mitments developed by female athletes, the pressurethey felt from coaches and peers, and their acceptance of routine pain asan ordinary part ofsport werecomparable to the attitudes adopted by male athletes (Charlesworth
& Young, 2004). Likewise, Young and
White
(1995) argue, If there is a difference between the way maleand female athletes in our projects appearto understand pain and injury, it is only a matterof degree (p. 51). Asaresult ofthese similarities in the outlook of maleandfemale athletes, Charlesworth and Young (2004) suggestthat the data invite usto consider the fact that
while pain and
injury arelikely to belinked to gender socialisation processes,they mayalso be a product of
socialisationinto sport culture perse (p. 178). They addthat experiencesand perceptions of sports-related pain and injury may be shaped by a distinct culture that fosters a specific
attitude toward risk; a culture which mayteach athletes,regardlessof their gender,to tolerate pain and accept injuries
(p. 178). If such attitudes are prevalent among both maleand
female athletes, doessport culture encourageall participantsto accept violence against their own bodies as a normal part of sport? And whatrole do gender expectations and perfor-
mancesplayin determiningresponsesto pain andinjury? Is there a wayfor womento challenge orrecast the waysin which sport-related injuries are addressed,or mustfemale athletes
196Chapter
9
contribute to the continuation
of a
male-definedsports processreplete with violent, exces-
sive, and health-compromising characteristics (Young
& White,1995, p. 56)? Finally, more
research is neededto determine the degreeto which female athlete peer groupsinteract in waysthat are similar to
crowd
Messnersdescription of the dynamics of malepeer groups.
Violence
Another dimension of sporting violence occurs off the playing surface, in the stands and in the streets. The mostthoroughly studied aspect of crowd violence is British soccer hooliganism (Young, 2000). Examinations of the forms and causes of British soccer riots have focused on the working-class background of fans, the cathartic release offered by rituals of aggression, the sense of social deprivation and alienation felt bysome groups of men,the role of youth and working-class subcultures in soccer violence, between hooliganism and kinship ties, community
and the connections
bonds, team loyalties,
and aggressive
masculinities (Coakley, 2009; Smith, 1983; Young, 2000). In comparison, there has been relatively little research into sports crowd disorder in
North America (Young, 2000). In
addition, these theories and frameworks for understanding
British and European crowd
violence generally are not applicable to the North American context. Key explanations of spectator violence include the contagion, convergence,and emergent norm theories. In the late 19th century,
Gustave LeBon advanced a view of collective
behaviour rooted in the infectious spread of emotion, whereby crowd membersfall under the influence anonymity
of a collective
mind and individual
responsibility
disappears in a sea of
(Levy, 1989, p. 70). This is the framework for contagion theory,
posesthat people in a crowd act together as one unit and frequently ous,impulsive, and irrational suggeststhat people with
action (Levy, 1989;
which pro-
engagein spontane-
Wamsley,2003). Convergence theory
common interests or goals come together as a crowd and use
the formation for protection to engagein aggressive behaviours
(Wamsley, 2003, p. 98).
According to this view, crowd violence is produced whenindividuals
with similar inclina-
tions converge on the same place (Levy, 1989). Onthe other hand, emergent norm theory questions the idea of crowd uniformity, is uniquely
maintaining instead that collective behaviour
produced through social interactions
placed in particular situations.
between individuals
when they are
New norms for behaviour result from exchanges of mes-
sages or cues between group members when circumstances change and, in turn, people respond to the moodsand actions of those around them (Levy, 1989;
Wamsley,2003).
A morecomprehensive theory of crowd violence is the value-addedtheory put forward by Neil Smelser(1962). In his work on collective behaviour, Smelser draws on the concept of value-added
from the field of economics, noting that afinished product only emerges
out of a particular combination
necessary conditions
of successivestages. For a collective event to occur, several
mustbe present,and these determinants mustcombine. . . in a
definite pattern, from least to mostspecific (Smelser, 1962, p. 14). Thefirst stage is struc-
tural conduciveness. The generalsocial conditions that set the stagefor collective violence needto bein place, although
manypossible outcomesremain. Theseconditions
mayinclude
social divisionsbasedon wealth,power,race, or ethnicity; a cleartargetfor the outburst;an available channel to express hostility; the absence of other avenues of expression; and a
meansof communicating amonggroup members.Thesecondconditionis structuralstrain, a breakdown in the social system. Several sources of strain often act simultaneously to give
Violence
197
rise to collective violence. In sport, this conflict could develop out of pre-existing social divisions or discontents, a majordispute, or a significant defeatfor alocal team. The third stage in the value-added modelis the growth and spreadof a generalizedbelief, which motivates potential actors. This shared belief, story, or rumour identifies
and attri-
butes characteristics to the source(s) of strain andthen determines an appropriate response (Levy, 1989, p. 71). Fourth are precipitatingfactors, which substantiate the shared belief and intensify the determinants that have already emerged. These precipitating factorssuch
as
a perceived bad call by an umpire or referee, or a violent act committed by a playerprovide a specific context for aggression. Such trigger events maybuild upon existing fears, introduce a newstrain to the situation, or close off an opportunity for a nonviolent outcome. The fifth stageis the mobilizationof the participantsfor action, with the emergence of leadership of the group and the determination of the specific type of collective response. Finally, the sixth stage, the operation of social control, arches involves those counter-determinants
over all the others (Smelser, 1962, p. 17). It
which prevent, interrupt,
deflect, orinhibit the accu-
mulation of the determinants just reviewed (Smelser, 1962, p. 17). Thesesocial controls including the police, the courts, the press, and community leadersmay
minimize, reduce,
or direct collective episodesin particular ways. Young (2000) identifies three mainthemes in the study of violent sports crowdsin North America. First, crowd disorder hasbeen explained in terms ofthe social and psychological conflicts taking placein society since the mid-20th century (Young, 2000, p. 383). In an increasingly fractured andimpersonal society, frustrated spectators usesporting eventsto ventfeelings of powerlessness,orto re-establish forms of groupidentification
(Young, 2000, p. 383).
Another dimension of this approach is the idea that fan-related violence is rooted in ethnic, racial, or class conflictwhat
Eric Dunning (1999) calls the
particular countries (p. 158). For example, one of the
NHL President Clarence Campbell is confronted Pictorial
198Chapter
Parade/Hulton
9
Archive/Getty
Images
by a fan.
majorfault-lines
of
mostsignificant incidents of crowd
disorder in the history of North American sportthe 1955has
been interpreted
Richard
Riot in
Montrealin
March
as an expression of tensions between French Canadians and
English Canadians (Young, 2000). After Montreal Canadienssuperstar Maurice Rocket Richard wasinvolved in a violent altercation
with membersof the Boston Bruins, NHL
president Clarence Campbell suspended him for the remainder of the 1955 season. When Campbell attended the next Canadiensgamein
Montreal,fans greeted him withinsults and a
barrage of tomatoes thrown from higherin the stands.
Whena tear gasbomb exploded in the
Montreal Forum,the building wasevacuated and ariot began onthe streets outside. According to Jean Harvey(2006), Anti-English
sentiment wasrampant; English-owned businesseswere
attacked andlooted, and order wasrestored only through the useofriot police (p. 38). Harvey suggeststhat the violence triggered by Richards suspension showed that French Canadians in the Quebecof the 1950sresented very keenly their status asasubordinate group, dominated and discriminated against by a wealthy and powerful English minority (p. 38). Thesecond theme noted by Young(2000) is that collective violence in
North American
sport is linked to the celebratory nature of sport (Young, 2000, p. 383). The post-event riot, whenfans respond to the outcome of significant sporting events, is the mostcommon example of this type of rowdiness. As Young explains, Combined
with factors caused by aggrega-
tion (physical closeness, milling, tension, noise), sporting contests are thus characterized by emotionally charged behavior on the part of participants andspectators alike where proceedings can, under the appropriate conditions, get out of hand (p. 383). Forinstance, whenthe Montreal Canadiens wonthe Stanley Cupin 1986 and 1993, downtown scene of considerable looting,
Montreal wasthe
numerous arrests, and a significant number of injuries to both
riot participants and police officers (Young, 2000). On the other hand, the rioting that occurred on the streets of Vancouver in 1994 and 2011 and in Edmonton in 2006 wasa responseto the Canucksand Oilerslosing the Stanley Cup Final (Dunning, 1999). Finally, crowd violence has been analyzed in relation to other precipitating
factors at
sports events, such as player violence, unpopular decisions by officials, crowd size, or the start time of games(Young, 2000, p. 384). For instance, if fans observe or expect to see violence during the course of a contest, they are morelikely to act violently themselves (Coakley, 2009; Smith, 1983). In addition, the possibility of violence maydecreaseor escalate depending on the composition of the audiencein terms of age,gender, orsocial class;the amount of alcohol consumed byfans; the strategies for crowd control used by event organizers;and the power of a particular team to provide asource of identity for spectators (Coakley, 2009). For example, if the crowd at a sporting event consists predominantly of young men who have consumed large quantities of alcohol, then there is a greater likelihood
of violence and confrontation,
particularly if security personnel are poorly trained and the gameinvolves asignificant rivalry (Coakley, 2009). This kind of analysisfits together well with Smelsers value-addedtheory.
conclusions Thischapter hasprovidedtheoretical, historical,and contemporaryperspectiveson violence
in sport. Moreand more frequently,faninterestin violentsportis cominginto conflict with the consequencesofsporting violencefor the health of participants. Atthe sametime, ques-
tions arebeingraisedaboutthe responsibilityofsportsleaguesto protectplayersfrom the damagingeffectsofsanctionedviolence.Forexample, morethan 4,600former playersrecently Violence
199
suedthe NFLfor the wayit handled the issue of concussions and headtrauma, alleging that the league not only failed to warnathletes about the long-term dangers of repetitive blows to head, but also actively hid information
about the threat to their
mental and neurological
health (Hruby, 2013a). The players lawsuit claimed that the NFLdistorted, dismissed,and denied evidence that football can causelong-term brain damage(Fainaru-Wada 2013). In
& Fainaru,
August 2013, a preliminary settlement of $765 million wasreached in the NFL
concussion lawsuit, although significant doubt remains about whether or not this amount of money will be sufficient to compensate all deserving playersadequately (Hruby, 2013c; Zirin, 2013). A group of retired professional hockey players also launched a class-action lawsuit against the NHL in
November 2013, claiming that the league neglectedits responsibility to
inform them of the potential dangers of concussions while promoting a culture of violence that jeopardized their long-term health (Hruby, 2013d). Theselawsuits are one of the key sites where ongoing debates over sporting violence will continue as wecontemplate, criticize, and celebrate the violent actsthat are still central to many of our favourite sports.
critical Thinking
Questions
1. Athleteshavebeenhurtingthemselvesforpeoplesamusementforcenturies,goingbackto the pankratiastsof ancient Greeceand the gladiators of ancient Rome. Even when fans know that playersare being broken and diminished for entertainment purposes,they continue to enjoy the sport. At what point would asport becomeso violent that you wouldstop watchingit? Doyouthink public interest in violent sports will continue into the future? 2. Asthe dangers of contact sports become more apparent, the standard for what is con-
sidered legitimate
violence appearsto be changing. Whataresome examplesof
violent behaviours that were once considered acceptable within the norms offootball
and hockey, but which are now consideredto be quasi-criminal actions deservingof significant punishment? 3. This chapter has contrasted biologically
basedtheories of violence with socially and
culturally
oriented understandings of violent behaviour.
you find
mostconvincing in helping to explain violence in sport?
Which of these models do Why do you find
such approaches to be persuasive? 4.
When punishing hits, brutal fights, or severeinjuries have occurred in hockey in recent
years,commentatorshavefrequently askedthe questionof whetheror not a playerhasto die as a result of such anincident for the NHL to take significant action to curtail vio-
lence in the sport.If a modern-dayplayer waskilled in one ofthesesituations, what do you think the NHLs response would be? Wouldsuch atragic outcome produce meaningful change in the waythe league deals with illegal hits, vicious stickwork, orfighting? 5. RetiredfootballplayersandhockeyplayershavesuedtheNFLandNHLforfailingto act properly in preventing headinjuries andinforming
players of the potential risks of
concussions over the pastseveral decades. Do you believe these lawsuits are justified? Why or why not? Whatissues must be considered in assessingthe extent to which sports leagues are responsible for the health of players? 6. How do you think
NHL hockey would change if the league penalized fights between
players with ejection from the gameand
200Chapter
9
perhapssuspensionsfor repeated fightsin
a waythat is similar to how other
majorteam sports deal with fighting?
Are you in
favour of such a change? Explain your position. 7.
Whatarethe weaknessesor limitations for analyzing violence in sport?
that you seein
Michael Messnersframework
Whatfeatures of sporting
quences do not fit comfortably into
violence and its conse-
Messners descriptions of maleathletes violence
against women, violence against other men,and violence against themselves? 8. ApplySmelsersvalue-addedtheorytothepost-StanleyCupriotthatoccurredinVancouver in 2011.
Whatother theories of crowd violence discussedin this chapter are usefulin
explaining violent disturbancesthat occurin the aftermath ofimportant
suggested
wins orlosses?
readings
Charlesworth, H., & Young, K. (2004). WhyEnglishfemale university athletes play with pain: Motivationsand rationalisations. In K. Young(Ed.), Sportingbodies,damagedselves:Sociological studiesof sports-related injury (pp. 163180). Oxford: Elsevier. Fainaru-Wada, M., & Fainaru, S.(2013). Leagueof denial: The NFL,concussions,andthe battlefor truth. NewYork, NY: Crown Archetype. Gruneau,R., & Whitson,D.(1993). Fighting,violence,and masculinity.In R. Gruneau& D. Whitson, HockeyNight in Canada:Sport,identities,andculturalpolitics(pp. 175196). Toronto, ON: Garamond. Lefkowitz, B.(1997). Ourguys: The GlenRidge rape andthe secretlife ofthe perfectsuburb. Berkeley, CA: University of California Press,1997. Lorenz, S. L., & Osborne, G. B. (2009).
Brutal butchery, strenuous spectacle:
manhood, and the 1907 season. In J. C.-K. Second World War(pp. 160202). Proteau, A. (2011).
Toronto,
Fightingthe goodfight:
Hockey violence,
Wong(Ed.), Coastto coast: Hockeyin
Canadato the
ON: University of Toronto Press.
Whyon-ice violenceis killing hockey. Toronto,
ON: John
Wiley & Sons Canada.
references Arthur, B. (2009,
November 11).
Arthur, B. (2011a,
Winds of change a merebreeze. National Post,p. S1.
March 4). Proberts brain is just the start.
Arthur, B. (2011b, September 1).
National Post,p. A1.
Warriors onice, tragedies off it.
National Post, p. A1.
Arthur, B. (2011c, September 2). Head, not heart, mustlead the way. National Post,p. S1. Arthur, B. (2013,
October 2). Players defend fighting
after gruesome incident
in
Maple Leafs,
Canadiensgame,but there mustbe a better wayto policethe ice. NationalPost. Retrievedfrom http://sports.nationalpost.com/2013/10/02/george-parross-gruesome-injury-prompts-players-todefend-fighting/?utm_source=dlvr.it&utm_medium=twitter. Bandura, A., & Walters,R.(1963). Sociallearning andpersonalitydevelopment.New York, NY: Holt, Rinehart & Winston. Barnes,J. (1990). Twocasesof hockey homicide: The crisisof a moralideal. Paperpresentedat the North American Societyfor Sport History, Banff, AB. Bernstein, R.(2006). Thecode: Theunwrittenrulesoffighting andretaliationin the NHL. Chicago,IL: Triumph Books. Branch, J. (2011,
December 6). A brain going
bad.
New York Times, p. B13.
Burstyn, V. (1999). Therites of men: Manhood,politics, andthe culture of sport. Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press. Carnes,
M. C. (1989).
Secret ritual and manhoodin
Victorian
America. New Haven, CT: Yale
University Press.
Violence
201
Charlesworth,
H., & Young, K. (2004).
Why English female university athletes play with pain:
Motivationsand rationalisations. In K. Young(Ed.), Sportingbodies,damagedselves:Sociological studiesof sports-related injury (pp. 163180). Oxford, UK: Elsevier. Coakley,J.(2009). Sportsin society:Issuesandcontroversies (10th ed.). NewYork, NY: McGraw-Hill. Crosset,T. W.,Benedict,J. R., & McDonald, M. A. (1995). Malestudent-athletes reported for sexual assault: Asurvey of campuspolice departmentsandjudicial affairs offices.Journalof Sport & SocialIssues,19(2), 126140. Curry, T.J. (1991). Fraternal bonding in the locker room: Pro-feminist analysisof talk about competition and women.Sociologyof SportJournal, 8, 119135. Curry, T. J. (2000). Boozeand bar fights: Ajourney to the dark side of college athletics. In J. McKay, M. A. Messner,& D. Sabo(Eds.), Masculinities, genderrelations, andsport (pp. 162 175). Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage. Dollard, J., Doob, L.,
Miller, N., Mowrer, O., & Sears, R.(1939).
Frustration and aggression. New
Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Dryden, K. (1989).
The game: A thoughtful and provocative look at alife in hockey. Toronto,
ON:
Harper & Collins.
Duhatschek,E. (2013, October2). Stagedfights putting hockeysreputation in tatters. Globeand Mail. Retrieved from http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/hockey/hockeys-reputationin-tatters-by-staged-fights/article14671271/. Dunning, E.(1999). Sport matters:Sociological studiesof sport,violenceandcivilization. New York, NY: Routledge. Fainaru-Wada, M., & Fainaru, S.(2013). Leagueof denial: The NFL,concussions,andthe battlefor truth. NewYork, NY: Crown Archetype. Gillet,J., White,P., & Young, K.(1996). The prime ministerof Saturdaynight: Don Cherry,the CBC,and the cultural production of intolerance. In H. Holmes & D. Taras(Eds.), Seeingourselves: Mediapower and policy in Canada(2nd ed.) (pp. 5972).
Toronto,
ON: Harcourt Brace.
Gillis, C.(2009, February 9). Can weplease now ban fighting in hockey? Macleans, 122(4), 4851. Gladwell, M.(2009, October 19). Offensive play: How different are dogfighting and football? The New Yorker. Retrievedfrom http://www.newyorker.com/reporting/2009/10/19/091019fa_fact_gladwell. Gorn, E. J. (1986).
The manlyart: Bare-knuckle prizefighting in
America.Ithaca,
NY: Cornell Univer-
sity Press. Gruneau, R., & Whitson, D.(1993). Hockeynightin Canada:Sport,identities, andcultural politics. Toronto, ON: Garamond. Hall, A., Slack, T., Smith, G., & Whitson, D.(1991). Sportin Canadiansociety. Toronto, ON: McClelland & Stewart. Harvey,J. (2006). Whosesweater is this? The changing meaningsof hockey in Quebec.In D. Whitsonand R. Gruneau(Eds.), Artificialice: Hockey,culture, and commerce(pp. 2952). Toronto, ON: Garamond. Howell, C. D.(1995). Northernsandlots: Asocialhistoryof Maritimebaseball.Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press. Hruby, P. (2012,
December 13).
Maintaining appearances. Sports on Earth. Retrieved from http://
www.sportsonearth.com/article/40628020/. Hruby, P. (2013a, February 8). The NFL: Forever backward. Sports on Earth. Retrieved from http:// www.sportsonearth.com/article/41492872.
Hruby,P.(2013b, March28). The mythof safefootball. Sportson Earth.Retrievedfrom http://www. sportsonearth.com/article/43419226/. Hruby, P.(2013c, August30). Q&A: The NFLs concussiondeal. Sportson Earth. Retrievedfrom http://therotation.sportsonearthblog.com/qa-the-nfls-concussion-deal/. Hruby,P.(2013d, November27). The NHL concussionlawsuit: Anotherleague of denial?Sportson Earth. Retrievedfrom http://therotation.sportsonearthblog.com/the-nhl-concussion-lawsuit/.
202Chapter
9
Junod, T. (2013, January 18). Theater of pain. Esquire. Retrieved from http://www.esquire.com/
features/nfl-injuries-0213-2. Kaufman, M.(1987). The construction of masculinity and the triad of mens violence. In M. Kaufman(Ed.), Beyondpatriarchy: Essaysby menon pleasure,power,andchange(pp. 129). Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press. Kerr,J. H.(2005). Rethinkingaggression and violencein sport. London, UK: Routledge. Kimmel, M.(1996). Manhood in America:Acultural history. New York, NY: The FreePress. King, P. (2010, November1). Concussions:The hitsthat are changingfootball. SportsIllustrated, 110(16), 3440. Kline,J. (2011, October13). Fighting words. NationalPost,p. A3. Kyle, D. G.(2007). Sportandspectacle in the ancient world. Malden, MA: Blackwell. Lefkowitz, B. (1997).
Our guys: The Glen Ridgerape and the secretlife ofthe perfect suburb. Berkeley,
CA: University of California Press. Levy, L. (1989).
Astudy of sports crowd behavior: The case of the great pumpkin incident.
Journal
of Sport & Social Issues, 13(2), 6991. Lorenz, K. (2002).
Onaggression. London,
UK: Routledge.
Lorenz,S. (2004, December28). On-ice violence has been a part of hockeyfor almost 100years. EdmontonJournal, p. A16. Lorenz,S.(2007, October1). Just part of the game. Ottawa Citizen,p. A11. Lorenz,S.L., & Osborne,G. B.(2006). Talk aboutstrenuous hockey: Violence, manhood,andthe 1907 OttawaSilver SevenMontreal Wanderer rivalry. Journalof CanadianStudies,40, 125156. Lorenz, S. L., & Osborne, G. B.(2009). Brutal butchery, strenuousspectacle: Hockeyviolence, manhood,and the 1907season.In J. C.-K. Wong(Ed.), Coastto coast: Hockey in Canada to the Second World War(pp. 160202). Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press. Messner,M. A.(2002). Takingthefield: Women,men,andsports. Minneapolis, MN: University of Minnesota Press. Mirtle, J. (2013, from
October 2). Hockey doesnt need designated fighters.
Globeand
Mail. Retrieved
http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/hockey/mirtle-hockey-doesnt-need-designated-
fighters/article14654168/. Oriard, M.(1993).
Readingfootball:
Howthe popular presscreated an Americanspectacle. Chapel Hill,
NC: University of North Carolina Press. Pappas,N. T., McKenry,P. C., & Skilken Catlett, B.(2004). Athlete aggressionon the rink and off the ice: Athlete violence and aggressionin hockey andinterpersonal relationships. Menand Masculinities 6, 291312. Perrottet, T.(2004). Thenaked Olympics:Thetrue story ofthe ancientgames.New York, NY: Random House. Prettyman, S. S.(2006). If you beat him, you own him, hes your bitch: Coaches,language, and power.In S.S. Prettyman & B.Lampman(Eds.), Learningculturethroughsports: Exploringtherole ofsportsin society(pp. 7588). Lanham, MD: Rowmanand Littlefield. Proteau, A. (2011).
Fightingthe goodfight:
Whyon-ice violenceis killing hockey. Toronto,
ON: John
Wiley & Sons Canada. Robinson, L. (1998). ON: McClelland
Crossingthe line: Violenceand sexual assaultin Canadas national sport. Toronto, & Stewart.
Rotundo, E. A. (1993).
American manhood: Transformationsin
masculinityfrom the Revolutionto the
modernera. New York, NY: BasicBooks. Sage, G. H., & Eitzen, D. S. (2013). Sociologyof North Americansport (9th ed.). New York, NY: Oxford University Press. Saturday Night.(1905, April 1), p. 1. Scanlan, L. (2002). Graceunderfire: Thestateof oursweetandsavagegame. Toronto, ON: Penguin Canada.
Violence
203
Smelser, N.J. (1962).
Theory of collective behavior. New York, NY: The Free Press.
Smith, M. D.(1983). Violenceandsport. Toronto, ON: Butterworths. Spector, M.(2013, October16). Thefuture offighting in hockeyis here,its in the CIS.Sportsnet. Retrievedfrom http://www.sportsnet.ca/cis/the-future-of-fighting-in-hockey-is-here-its-in-the-cis/. Wamsley,K. B.(2003). Violenceand aggression in sport. In J. Crossman(Ed.), Canadiansportsociology(pp. 90101). Toronto, ON: Nelson. Wamsley,K. B. (2008). Sport andsocial problems.In J. Crossman(Ed.), Canadiansportsociology (2nd ed.) (pp. 139157). Toronto, ON: Nelson. Wamsley,K. B., & Whitson, D.(1998). Celebrating violent masculinities: The boxing death of Luther McCarty.Journal of Sport History,25, 419431. Wertheim,L.J. (2007, May28). The new mainevent. SportsIllustrated, 106(22), 5260. Whyno, S. (2013, ting too
November 11). NHL commissioner
muchattention.
Gary Bettman says debate over fighting
get-
National Post. Retrieved from http://sports.nationalpost.com/2013/11/11/
nhl-commissioner-gary-bettman-says-debate-over-fighting-getting-too-much-attention/?utm_ source=dlvr.it&utm_medium=twitter. Young, K. (2000). Sport and violence. In J. Coakley & E. Dunning (Eds.), Handbook of sports studies
(pp. 382407). London, UK: Sage. Young, K.(2002). Fromsports violence to sports crime: Aspectsof violence,law, andgenderin the sports process.In M. Gatz, M. A. Messner,& S.J. Ball-Rokeach(Eds.), Paradoxesof youth andsport (pp. 207224). NewYork, NY: State Universityof New York Press. Young, K., & White,P.(1995). Sport, physical danger,andinjury: Theexperiencesof elite women athletes.Journalof Sport & SocialIssues,19(1), 4561. Zirin, D.(2013, August30). The NFLconcussiondeal: Rottenfrom all sides. The Nation.Retrieved from http://www.thenation.com/blog/175977/nfl-concussion-deal-rotten-all-sides#.
204Chapter
9
Chapter10 Sportand PhysicalActivity in CanadianEducationalSystems Tim Fletcher and Duane Bratt
FPO Sport and physical activity represent important components of Canadianeducational institutions at all levels. Earlychildhood facilities (both formal andinformal) encourage children to learn howtheir bodies movethrough active play. Elementary andsecondary schools offer formal physical education, intramural leagues, and extracurricular sport, while university and college athletic departmentsrepresent a key piece of the institutional identity of those placeswhether that befor athletic participants or spectators. Thisis not to mentionthe burgeoningscholarly field of movement studies(which weuse as a catch-all term for kinesiology, physical education, human kinetics, recreation, leisure, dance, etc.), the programs of which manyreaders of this textbook are likely enrolled in. The aim of this chapteris to provide an overview of social dimensions of sport and physical activity in Canadianeducational systems,identifying keythemes or areas where important questions are being raised.In the first section, the current state of physical education in schools is examined using afour-dimensional framework employedin the
Physical education is
most effective
whenteachers and students together to develop
opportunities to participate. Blend Images/Getty
205
work
meaningful
Images
KidStock/
Handbookof PhysicalEducation(Kirk, Macdonald, & OSullivan, 2006), addressingthe nature and purposesof physical education; aspectsof curriculum, learners and learning, and teachers and teaching. Included in the secondsection is sport in universities, with a particular focus on the CanadianInteruniversity Sport system. How the history of Canadianuniversity sport hasimpacted the current system, particularly in relation to genderequity,is alsodescribed.Further,the practice of hazingand dopingpractices that haverecently led to negative portrayalsofseveral Canadianuniversity sportsteam in the popular mediais considered.Finally, variouschallengesto Canadianuniversitysportsin terms of financial factors (notably scholarshipsand the role of alumni) and the creeping north ofthe NCAA is examined.
The NaTure aNd PurPoses of Physical educaTioN iN caNadiaN schools Whatis physical education? Briefly, physicaleducationis a school subject wherestudents learn about and through movement.Forthe purposesof this chapter, wealsoask, what should or could physical education be? And whodecides?Thesequestionsare difficult to answerbecauseofthe diversitythat is presentin how physicaleducation hasbeenthought about andtaught. Researchersusea widevariety oftheoretical and methodologicalframeworks(including those describedin Chapter2), and curriculum developersand teachers similarly drawfrom a widevariety oftheoretical and practicalideasto shape whatgoeson in physicaleducation classes(Kirk et al., 2006).In addition, educational policyis governed bythe provincesin Canada,which means that there is widevariability in the organization andstructure of educationalsystems. Assuch, what mightconstitute a pressingissuein one province maynot be viewedin the same wayin another becauseof differencesin culture, geography,orthe political (and thusideological) climate. Thesedifferenceshavesignificant implications for funding, policiesrelating to curriculum developmentandimplementation, and the necessaryconditions and requirementsfor excellencein teaching. Certainlythe allocation of resources(financial, material,and human) to physical education in each provinceis discrepantdueto the provincial governanceof educationalsystemsin Canada. Despitealong history of debateaboutthe role of physicaleducationin schools around the world,the subjectremains animportant componentin the education of mostchildren. Sucha viewis supportedinternationally bythe United NationsEducation, Scientific and Cultural Organization (UNESCO, 1978), which identified the provision of physical education as afundamental humanright. In Canada,physical educationis arequired part of school life for children until at least Grade9, with students in some provinces being required to obtain physical education credits through to Grade12. Kilborns (2011) comparison of physical education curricula across Canada showed the following graduation standards:in Ontario and Newfoundlandand Labrador:students mustattain at least one physical education credit to graduatefrom high school; studentsin British Columbia, Alberta,and Saskatchewanmustcomplete physical education upto Grade10 at a minimum;studentsin Nova Scotia are required to complete physical education in Grade11; and Manitobaand Quebec mandatecompletion of physical education credits through to Grade12.
206Chapter
10
That physical education is mandatedthrough to completion of high school in Manitobaand Quebecmaysuggestthat policymakersin those provinces place morevalue on the subject than elsewhere. However,this masksthe significant issue that manystudents do not see enough value in physical education to chooseit whenit becomesan elective subject; that is, whenphysical educationis mandatory,students maybetaking it evenif they do not enjoy orsee valuein it. To besure,subjectssuch as mathematics, language(e.g., French), and science also becomeelective at some point in high school; yet judging by enrolment ratesin these subjects,students and parentsdeemthem to be more important than otherssuch as physical education primarily becauseof their perceived valueto preparestudentsfor the knowledge economy of the 21stcentury. Thedeclining trend in noncompulsoryphysicaleducation enrolment suggeststhis is the case(Lodewyk & Pybus,2013). Whilethere is widevariability in the language usedto describeto overall aims of the subject, physical education is concerned with children learning simultaneouslythrough movementand their bodiesand about movementand their bodies. Thereare manyreasons whythis is important, but the mostemphasizedaspectin Canadianphysical education programsis arguablyto developan appreciation of and ability to commit to a healthy, active lifestyle. Yet Canadianphysical education curriculum developersare being challenged to providestudents withlearning experiencesthat teach children aboutthings far beyond movementand healthyliving. Giventhe growing evidencelinking positive academic outcomes with participation in physical activity and physicaleducation (Sheppard & Trudeau,2008), physical educatorsappearjustified to claim that the subject enables achievement of a widerange of outcomes acrossdevelopmental domains. For example, Mandigo,Corlett,and Lathrop (2012) identify the potential of physicaleducation to support cognitive and academicdevelopment,raiseliteracy and numeracystandards,increase school attendance,enhanceschoolspirit andsocial cohesion,value diversity, and encourageattitudes of respect,fairness, andtolerance for others. Whilesuch aims are within in the scope of whatis possible from a quality physical education experience,there are doubtsabout the extent to which teachers are provided with the tools necessary to achievethese outcomes. Thereare manyexternalfactors that erode the quality of current physical education programs,such asreducedinstructional time, the introduction of userfees,lack of specialist teachers,inadequate facilities and equipment, and anincreasein standardizedtesting in subject areassuch asliteracy and numeracy. Even whenone considersthe addedemphasison the role of healthylifestyles and physical activity through healthyschools policies(such as Daily Physical Activity in British Columbia, Alberta, Saskatchewan,and Ontario) orthe provision of extracurricular sports programs,the existence of systemic barrierssuch as budgetcuts,lack of professional development or planning time for teachers, orinadequate space and equipment often stand in the way of successful programming and implementation. There are also several internal barriers that are entrenched in the history and discoursesof physical education (Francis & Lathrop, 2011), while others are entrenched in the institutional culture of schoolsin which physical education operates. In the following pages,we outline some of the challengesthat existin overcoming these ambitious goals, whilealsoproviding someexamplesof promising practicesthat may enablethese and other barriersto be overcome.
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems207
A Glimpse at the Past Despitethe emphasis on the whole child that is espousedin mostcurrent physical education curricula, earlyforms (prior to the 1950s) of physical educationin Canadaand elsewherefocused purely on the physical: Physical education wasknown as physical training, consisting primarily of military drills and calisthenics(Francis & Lathrop, 2011). Therelationship with military practices wasstrongin the early daysof physical education not onlyin terms of content andinstructional styles, but alsoin the genderedand classed views ofthe overall nature and purposeofthe subject. Sincethat time, Kirk(2010a) hasarguedthat present day physical education owes muchto shifts that occurredin the 1970s,for it wasduringthis decadethat physical education had begun to take shape as a multi-activity, sports-based curriculum. This multi-activity form of curriculum place in the yearsimmediately 50 years or more of domination
following
wasthe outcome of a dramatic shift that took World WarII, a shift that overturned some
of the curriculum
of physical education by various
forms of gymnastics, at least within systems of state-provided education. (p. 459)
Despitethe shortfalls ofthe sport-based multi-activity curriculum, Kirk (2010a) describes the shift to a sports-orientedform of physical education hasbeenidentified by some as leading to a moresolid justification of physicaleducation asaschoolsubject. Forexample, becausesport is a significant cultural practice, initiating young people into the institutions of sport and physical activity wasseen asa worthwhile pursuit, and schools seemed well placedto offer these experiences(Green, 2008). Thisis not to suggestthat teaching peopleabout and through sport and physical activity should belimited to learning the skills and techniques required to participatein, for example,basketball;it should involve learning sporting and physical culturethe customs,rituals, values,andtraditions associatedwiththese activitiesas wellasthe practical knowledgerequiredto participate (Siedentop, Hastie, & Van der Mars,2004). Whilesuch a holistic view of sport and physical education hasbeen praisedby manyin morerigorouslyjustifying the place of physical education,there hasbeenatendencyto focus only onthe practical whilelargely ignoring the cultural aspects. As well as generalshifts in the content and pedagogyof physical education in the 1970s,it wasduringthis time that mostphysical education classesbecamecoeducational, particularly in North Americaafter the introduction of Title IX in the United States (Vertinsky, 1992). Althoughthis offered manygirls opportunities to participatein a wider variety of activities than they previously had accessto, critical theorists revealedthat the inclusive form of physicaleducationintroduced at this time simply meantthat girls now participatedin boys forms of physical educationthat is, physical education that privileged forms of masculinitywith few attempts being madeto tailor programsto girls interests and needs(Lenskyj, 1986). Thoseinterested in the study and practice of physical education continue to wrestle with new and innovative waysto makestudents experience of the subject lead to a commitment to lifelong physical activity. However, with each advancethere comesthe recognition that muchremains contested about physical education. For example,current messages widelyseenand heardin the mediaespousephysicaleducations role in trying to prevent childhood obesity,as well asthe role of physical activity in providing cognitive
208Chapter
10
(and therefore academic) benefits to children. athlete talent athletic
Furthermore, some initiatives
linked to
development also identify the role of physical education in helping foster
excellence.
While such
messages mayserve to promote the role of physical
education in schools, the ideological
nature of such arguments has also been identified
reducing the role of physical education to a type of school-based (Sykes & McPhail, 2008) on one hand or watered-down Institute
as
weight-loss clinic
of Sport on the other.
In addition, emphasizing the benefits of physical education for academic achievement can, in some ways, position physical education as a crutch to support excellence in other areas of schooling rather than physical education being seen asa useful, meaningful, and enjoyable part of school life in its own right.
This is not to dismissthe benefits that come
from participation in physical education; however, such positioning
may undermine the
potential of physical education subject matter and pedagogiesto develop the whole child and provide experiences that
help all students find joy and meaning in
movement and
develop their self-esteem.
curriculum For the purposes of this chapter of knowledge for learning
we consider curriculum
as the
social organization
encompassing the formal and informal activities that occur in
schools (Kirk, et al., 2006, p. 563).
Whencurriculum is viewed as a social undertaking, it
becomes apparent that conceptualizations of physical education shift with changesin the social, cultural, and political landscape of the contexts in which curriculum is developed and implemented. Physical education historians identify
German and Swedish gymnastics astwo salient
forces that shaped early physical education curricula, countries. Ennis (2006) suggests that
particularly in English-speaking
Germanforms of physical education programs were
predominant throughout the United States and emphasized physical and mental discipline
through participation in mostlyapparatus-basedactivities. In contrast, hybridized Swedish forms of gymnastics that consisted of calisthenics and little apparatus werefavoured in the
United Kingdom andits colonies,including of gymnastics that
Canada(Mandigo et al., 2012). Thetype
wasfavoured hadimportant implications for how the future of physical
education progressed in eachcontext. Forexample, Swedishgymnasticstendedto be practised (and subsequently advocated) by manyfemale physical education students (Philips
&
Roper,2006). Following from this point, mostcountries that adoptedthe Swedish model tended to have morefeminized forms of physical education, which included rhythmic and
danceactivities,in their early histories. However,this standsin contrastto whatis reported to have occurred in Canada. Lenskyj (1986) suggeststhat the Swedishsystem of gymnastics wasrooted in
military drills and deprived many young Canadian women of any type of
physical education experience until well after 1950. The British influence
on Canadian physical education programs expanded beyond
gymnastics; games (usually in the form of team sports) also featured strongly in Canadian physical education curricula.
The games ethic
wasa philosophical
position underpin-
ning many early physical education programs and stressedthe important petitive team games played in developing desirable
role that com-
qualities (such asleadership, loyalty,
perseverance, teamwork, etc.) in young men. This approach wasreflected in the crucial role that games played in the education of many elite boys in
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Georgian and Victorian
Educational
Systems209
Britain (Mangan, 1983).
While game-playing experiences havesince been offered to both
malesand females, some feel that such experiences still favour who embody jock
culture,
are athletically
males, particularly those
able, and possessstereotypically
masculine
characteristics (Hickey, 2010). Today,the physical education curriculum is often discussedin terms that go well beyond games and gymnastics. For example, in
Canadathere is currently a strong emphasis on the
development of childrens physicalliteracy.
A physically literate individual is someone who
moves with competence, confidence, and creativity in a wide variety of physical activities, and consistently develops the
motivation and ability to understand, communicate, apply,
and analyze different forms of movement(Whitehead,
2001). Developingthese skills enables
individuals to make healthy choices that are both beneficial to and respectful of themselves, others, and their environment.
Tinning (2010) points out that through experience, physi-
cally literate individuals come to know themselves in a physical sense;through, for example, the joys of movement or the limits of their physical strength or endurance. In line with the benefits of having students understand and experience a wide variety of physical activities,
mostcurrent physical education programs consist of instructional
units that represent sports (team and individual), adventure
activities,
physical fitness, dance, outdoor and
aquatics, and gymnastics.
This approach to teaching
education captures Kirks (2010a) earlier reference to a multi-activity
physical
curriculum,
the intent is to provide students with brief opportunities to sample many activities the hope that they
where with
would find something in which they enjoy and experience success.
Many physical education scholars observe that the current forms of physical education in
multi-activity
curriculum
dominates
Canada and beyond, particularly in secondary
schools (Ennis, 1999). However, what is troublesome is that of such an approach have been identified.
many problematic elements
For example, although the
multi-activity
curriculum provides the scope for students to learn about a wide variety of activities, those that tend to dominate programs are competitive, such as soccer, volleyball,
basketball, or floor/ball
dominate these types of curriculum
power
and performance
hockey. The sporting activities that
are not inherently
problematic,
mented using pedagogical approaches that rely on direct instruction, approach (particularly for participation for
team sports
but when implethe
multi-activity
whenimplemented in a coeducational setting) limits opportunities mostgirls and low-skilled
boys; as such, they tend to alienate many
students from physical education (Gibbons, 2009). Ennis (1999) hasalso highlighted the following
problematic characteristics of the multi-activity
curriculum:
Short units with minimal instruction do not provide students with opportunities
n
to learn or develop skills in any depth. nFew
educational sequences acrosslessons, units, and gradeslimit learning.
arefew policiesto equalizeplaying opportunitiesfor low-skilled players.
nThere
displays of ability are required.
nPublic
nClass
is teacher-centred
andlimits student ownership and leadership opportunities.
To avoid the negative aspectsof the multi-activity curriculum whilestill providing students with opportunities to participate in a variety of activities, research on curricular
modelsindicates their potential to promote powerful student learning by offering units that are thematically
210Chapter
10
designed; enable students to develop skills in the contexts in which
Children should incorporating
benefit from
physical education
physical, social, and cognitive
programs that
develop the
whole child,
development.
Shmel/Fotolia
they would be used; emphasize physical, social, and cognitive development; and provide teachers with a coherent set of teaching and learning features to promote positive learning (Kirk,
2013).
education
Curricular
include
models that
Teaching
have been the subject of research in physical
Games for
Understanding
(TGfU),
Sport Education,
Teaching Personal and Social Responsibility, Co-operative Learning, and Health-Based Fitness (Metzler, 2011). Kirk (2010b) feels that a models-basedapproach mayprovide one avenue for a radical reform effort in physical education.
One of the
mostimportant
features underpinning the benefits of a models-basedapproach is the extent to which they are grounded in learning theory.
Thinking about how learners and learning
have been
studied in physical education is addressedin the next section.
learNers
aNd learNiNg
In the preceding section
we addressed how physical education curriculum
over time but also acknowledged that
taught in
has changed
manyforms of physical education are not being
waysthat can have a meaningful and sustainable influence on students
experiences of physical activity.
Adults who have power and makedecisions about physical
education curricula and pedagogiesshould paycloser attention to whatstudents themselves have to say about physical education.
Dyson (2006) observed that,
with the odd
exception, there had been very little done to understand whatstudents think and feel about their experiences in physical education.
Assuch, it is perhaps not that difficult to see
why manystudents find that a top-down physical education modellacks relevance or meaningin their own lives inside and outside of school (Cothran
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
& Ennis, 1999).
Educational
Systems211
Earlier in the chapter we described how the lum taught using direct instruction
hasled
multi-activity, sports-oriented
manystudents to feel isolated,
and powerless during their physical education experience. For instance,
curricu-
marginalized, many athletic
females tend to find physical education frustrating simply becausethe activities offered to them are largely feminized (such asrhythmic
activities)
that all girls enjoy the same types of activities.
and there is an assumption
Using a similar logic,
made
many males who do
not enjoy or participate in team sports often feel isolated, becausethe assumption is made that all malesenjoy body contact, competitive playing environments, and so onthat all
malesenjoy stereotypically
masculine behaviours (Tischler
For example, an elite malefigure skater or rock climber
is,
& McCaughtry, 2010).
maybe disengaged from physical
education programs because of the focus on team sports and pervading jock culture that tends to dominate
many programs. The diverse student body that is present in Canadian
schools tends to be divided into categories all too quickly,
meaning that assumptions are
made about the characteristics of all girls and boys, all students whose body shape is slim or not, and so on. Several researchers have begun listening to students opinions of physical education to stimulate
change in the curriculum
(2010) found that noncompetitive
development
process. Enright and OSullivan
many adolescent females preferred activities that
wereindividual
and
(such as boxercise, rock climbing, and dance) and could easily be under-
taken outside of schools. In addition, the pedagogies usedto teach these types of activities were highly varied and gave students greater roles and responsibilities. that participants in their study rose to the challenge [of reimagining and took
ownership of their learning,
They also found
physical education]
which resulted in a positive, energizing and
exciting experience for them and one in which deeplearning occurred and deepinsights were produced
(Enright
& OSullivan, 2010, p. 203). In this example, the traditional
power dynamic in teachinglearning
contexts
was disrupted, empowering the female
participants to be active constructors and agents of their own learning. The voices of low-skilled
students have also been studied to understand what is
being done in physical education and could be done better. For example, Portman (1995) and Carlson (1995) found that physical education school for
manylow-skilled
skills, and receiving Tischler and
wasa particularly
students, citing lack of success, little
humiliating
assistance to develop
or critical comments in the public space of the gym.
McCaughtry (2011) noted similar
experiences of boys whose embodied
masculinities were marginalized in physical education because they example, slower, weaker, and the wrong they did not fit the jock
culture
unpleasant part of
may have been, for
body shape or not well coordinatedin
essence
typically represented in high school physical education.
These boys rarely experienced success, often did not feel like they contributed to team success, and employed several strategies to remain on the
margins of the physical educa-
tion classroomenvironment. Although
Canadian schools
offer strong representations
of multiculturalism
in
action, relatively little has been done to study the experiences of Canadianstudents from different racial and ethnic backgrounds in whitestream
physical education classes
(see Chapter 5). One notable exception has been the work of Joannie Halasat the University
of
Manitoba,
who has studied
the physical
education
experiences
of
Aboriginal youth. Recently, Halas(2011) summarized the outcomes of her broader research program, identifying
212Chapter
10
that
most Aboriginal youth had a profound love of sport
and physical activity,
a love that
wasfostered and encouraged by family
Yet several teachers Halasspoke to suggested their
and friends.
Aboriginal students werent taking
part in gym class; some wereskipping phys ed and few weretrying out for teams (p. 11). Halas (2011) suggests that but in the inherent
most of the blame for disengagement lies not with students
structures,
patterns, and power relations
programs. For example, several participants tremendous source of vulnerability sist and racist tension (both implicit
that can create lots
(Halas, 2011, p. 12).
and explicit)
cited changing
of physical education clothes for class was a
of homophobic, fatphobic,
Moreover, students
clas-
experiences of racism
madethem feel isolated in class,in addition to feeling that
their cultural beliefs were not valued or respected in the gymnasium. So what can belearned from these disparate studies on students experiences oflearning in physical education? From our perspective, the importance
of listening to students
about their experiences is crucial in fostering the success and sustainability education programming.
Whenstudents are provided with voice
of physical
and choice and power
in their physical education program, they tend to improve in levels of motor skill proficiency, engagement in physical activity,
perceived competence, and intrinsic
motivation
(Hastie, Rudisill, & Wadsworth, 2013). If one aim of education is to empower students to be confident
and competent
decision
makers,involving
them
moreintimately
in the
educational processseems alogical step in the right direction.
Teachers
aNd TeachiNg
The role of the physical education teacher is paramount in the provision of quality physical education programs and experiences. Indeed, the role of the teacher in any subject is the key to student achievement, achievement
with teacher
quality being a more salient factor in
when compared to class size or student socioeconomic
status (Darling-
Hammond, 2010). Despite the common public perception that teaching is often easy, teachers face mounting pressuresto do their job well. This includes being asked to do more with less thanks to a combination
of escalating workloads and budget cuts. As a
result, at times they have withheld afterschool coaching in various labour disputes. In contrast to the diverse group of students that enroll and participate in physical education in Canada,teachers of physical education are quite a homogeneous group. For example, Halas (2006) suggests there arefew physical education teachers or teacher-educators in Canada whorepresent visible minorities. This lack of diversity is particularly problematic if a majorgoal of physical education is to build a moreequitable society (Mandigo et al., 2012). The problem lies in the challenges a homogeneous teaching profession faces in fostering meaningful experiences that reflect, are relevant for, and are representative of an increasingly diverse student population (Halas, 2006). If there is some degree of truth to the saying
that teachers teach whothey are, then it follows that physical educationteachersteach their classesin waysthat reflect the values of a mostly white, middle-class, heterosexual,
athletically able population (McCullick, Lux, Belcher, & Davies,2012). Because teachers bring their own prior experiences, values, and beliefsto their work, it is perhaps not difficult
to seethat tensions andstrugglesexist aroundacknowledging,respecting,andincluding the values and beliefs of all students so that they feel a sense of belonging in the gymnasium.
Thisis notto suggestthat teaching inclusively is an unattainable prospect,but rather to acknowledge the difficulties and challenges involved in teaching
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
well.
Educational
Systems213
Examinations
of the biographies of physical education teachers have revealed how
personal backgrounds and experiences shape their reasons for becoming teachers and the practices they enact in schools (Green, teaches
physical
education,
it is
2008).
evident
When consideration that
there
are two
of teachers: physical education specialists (typically found in
distinct
groups
middle and high schools)
and regular classroom teachers (typically found in elementary schools). a specialist does not guarantee a quality physical education
is given to who
Although having
program, they do tend to
teach better lessons than classroom teachers. For example, specialists are morelikely to have well-planned programs that consider students development acrossseveral domains (e.g., physical and affective), individualize recommended
instruction,
deliver inclusive lessons, use
assessment strategies, provide opportunities for skill development,
have
successin enhancing students fitness levels, and have a positive impact on the overall school climate. Specialists also tend to feel better prepared to teach physical education and enjoy teaching the subject more(Mandigo et al., 2004). It
makessense that
mostspecialist physical education teachers tend to look
back
positively on their experiences of physical education when they wereschool students. In particular, positive experiences with sport (not necessarily physical education per se) have a profound influence
on prospective physical education teachers decisions to enter the
profession. Other noted reasons why people choose to become physical education teachersinclude positive influences of former teachers and a desire to work with young people (McCullick
et al., 2012). Because most physical education teachers enjoyed their own
experiences of physical education asschool students, they often seelittle reason orjustification to change a curriculum that is, in This is one of the
many of their
minds, a mostly strong
major reasons why there has been more
product.
of the same in high school
physical education for about the last 50 years (Kirk, 2010b): PEteachers areinclined towardsreplicating (becausetheyfeel morecomfortable with) traditional approachesto traditional curricula. Thisis whythe sport- and gamesoriented PE programme associated with so-called traditional self-replication
built into it and has become self-fulfilling.
PE has an element of
(Green, 2008, p. 209)
Assuch, unless university teacher education programs and the culture surrounding physical education in high schools advocates and provides support for fostering change, any type of sustainable reform in physical education becomes moredifficult. Indeed, even when there are institutional
cultures amenable to change, the early socialization experi-
ences of teachers provide such strong and entrenched beliefs that they have proven to be one of the mostdifficult things to change (McCullick,
et al., 2012).
As has been done with specialist teachers, several researchers have considered the
extent to which elementary classroomteachers biographies and identities shape their experiences
of physical
education.
For example,
Fletcher
(2012)
and
Garrett and
Wrench(2007) found that whilesomeclassroomteachersenjoyedsport, physicalactivity, and physical education, for
manythe underlying discourses within these fields served to
alienate rather than encourage active participation. Forinstance, abilities in physical activity and physical education
sporty
ornonsporty.
physical activities
214Chapter
10
were often defined in terms of a dichotomous identity:
Classroom teachers oftenfelt that individuals whoparticipatedin
outside of school and held identities
closely linked
to the image
of a sporty
person gained the
most benefits in school physical education and would
make the best physical education teachers. In contrast, teachers themselves assporty
who did not view
children believed that they lacked the abilities to adequately teach
physical education (Morgan
& Bourke, 2008). Assuch, many classroom teachers source
external providers of physical activity to implement What results is that students
their physical education programs.
of public schools often have to pay for their
education experience (in the form of userfees), or they are taught in
physical
waysthat are not
pedagogically sound or appropriate for all learners. Understanding physical education is a complex task and there are no quick fixes that enable positive,
meaningful, and sustainable change.
physical education plays an important
However, what is clear is that
role in providing children and youth with the types
of experiences that can help foster a love for being physically active and to understand how physical activity and sport can play meaningful roles in peoples lives.
hisTory
of caNadiaN
uNiversiTy
sPorT
Sports have been played at Canadian universities since the 19th century. Canadian Interuniversity Union (CIAU)
According to
Sport (2013a), the original Canadian Interuniversity
wasfounded in 1906 and lasted until 1955. In these initial
membership comprised universities from provide common rules and regulations.
Athletic decades,its
Ontario and Quebec, and its purpose wasto At the same time, there
were multiple regional
conferences across Canada,some of which were membersof the national body and others that
were not. There was also a parallel organization,
Athletic
Union (WIAU),
which provided athletic
The WIAU would broaden beyond its WomensIntercollegiate The modern CIAU
Athletic
the
Womens Intercollegiate
competitions
for female students.
Ontario base and change its nameto the Canadian
Union (CWIAU)
in 1969.
was established in 1961 to develop national championships,
coordinate common rules and regulations, and increase education and communication in the area of university sports. In addition to receiving funding from the participating universities, the Canadian government also provided moneyto the CIAU for the purpose of developing high-performance amateur sport at a national level. This would foreshadow the creation of Sport Canadain 1971. The CWIAU form one national governing body. In
merged with the CIAU in 1978 to
manyrespects, the changes at the CIAU reflected
the widersocietal changesin Canada,including
expansion of the university system, efforts
at gender equity, federal funding in areas of provincial jurisdiction,
and the creation of
national organizations (CIS, 2013a). The CIAU changed its name to (CIS, 2013b).
Today, the CIS is
Canadian Interuniversity
Sport (CIS) in 2001
madeup of 54 memberschools, 10,000 athletes, and
550 coaches. It administers 21 national championships in 12 individual sports: basketball, curling, cross-country, field
hockey, football,
and team
hockey, rugby, soccer,
swimming, track and field, volleyball, and wrestling. All sports have both mensand womens divisions with the exception
only), and rugby (womens only). ferences: the
Canada
University Sport (AUS).
Sport
only), field
hockey (womens
Within the CISsystemthere arefour regional con-
West Universities
University Athletics (OUA), Atlantic
of football (mens Athletic
Association (CWUAA),
Reseaudu sport etudiant
Ontario
du Quebec(RSEQ), and
Theseregional conferences can sanction additional
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems215
sports. For example,
OUA schools also compete in badminton, fencing, figure skating,
golf, and rowing, among others (Ontario
University
Athletics, 2013).
The remainder of this chapter analyzes the key issues and recent controversies faced by the
CIS. These include
the challenge
gender equity,
presented by the
alumni funding
National
athletic
scholarships,
Collegiate
Athletic
doping,
hazing,
Association (NCAA),
models,academic achievement, and student-athlete life.
Gender Equity Women now make up the
majority of Canadian university students (Turcotte,
There has been a consistent improvement
2011).
in the degree of gender equity in the CIS, yet
there remain numerous issues. The last vestige of a parallel womens system, which was separate and unequal, finally ended when the Ontario Association
merged with the
formed the
Universities
Athletic
Athletic
Association and jointly
OUA in 1997. Likewise, there are now 11 womens sports recognized by the
CIS and 10for
men. Newerentrants include
and wrestling (19981999). for sport
Ontario
Womens Intercollegiate
participation
womens rugby (1998), hockey (19971998),
Excluding football, there are equal amounts of opportunity
between
male and female students (Donnelly,
Norman,
&
Kidd, 2013). Nevertheless significant
gaps still exist. The first is in the recruitment
tion of female coaches. Based on 20122013 sports are female.
and reten-
statistics, only 17% of all coaches in
CIS
Counting only womens sports, this increases to 32% of coaches who
are female (Donnelly
et al., 2013, p. 33). Only field hockey has a majority of female
coaches, although basketball and rugby closely follow (CIS, 2005a). Asecond gapis in the number of athletic directors: sities are female (Donnelly
Only 13 of 54 athletic
directors at Canadian univer-
et al., 2013). Athird gapis in athletic scholarships.
A 2005
CIS-sponsored survey on gender equity showed that only 47% of member universities had achieved
equitable allocation
of athletic financial
was exacerbated by the rise in external funding the
mensfootball
programs that are financed
however,
when football
probability
dollars were awarded to women; A final
with the greater
(CIS, 2005b). Yet even the presence of star players like
Hayley Wickenheiser, who played hockey for the shift attendance patterns.
2013c).
of womens programs and national champion-
have acknowledged that they promote teams
of attracting fans
This
of athletic scholarships (especially in
is excluded the number rises to 49.7% (CIS,
marketing and promotion
ships. CIS universities
(CIS, 2005b).
by alumni, as discussed below). In 2011
2012, only 42% of all external athletic scholarship gap is in the
awards
To this day, the
University of Calgary, was unable to
mens teams still substantially
outdraw the
womens teams.
Athletic Scholarships Athletic scholarships at Canadian universities is a heated topic because top players flee Canada for the scholarships.
NCAA (discussed in
more detail later) and the availability
Athletic scholarships can include free tuition
of athletic
and fees, room and board,
and required course-related books. High school athletes and Canadians outside of the university sport system maybesurprised to learn that there is some financial aid available
216Chapter
10
for athletes at CISschools,although it is limited solely to tuition and compulsoryfees.In 20112012, $12.7 million wasdistributed in athletic scholarships among CIS athletes (CIS, 2013d).In fact, 43% of athletesreceivedsometype offinancial support(CIS, 2013c). But that aggregate number masksthe low per player scholarship that mostreceive. The average disbursement wasa little over $2,700 a year, while tuition alone averages over $5,000a yearat Canadianuniversities (Macleans, 2013). Athletic scholarshipsequivalent to tuition and compulsoryfees are allowed to firstyear playersif they enter university with a minimum 80% average.Forreturning players, the requirement is a minimum 65% average. Thereis a morestringent athletic scholarships policy amongthe OUA schools. Forexample,athletic scholarshipscannot be given to first-year players,and returning playersarerequired to havea minimum 70% average (CIS, 2013e). The higher OUA standard hascreatedconflict with the other divisionsin the CIS. Morespecifically, the demandfor morelucrative athletic scholarships with morelax academicrequirements haspitted somelarge schools(e.g., Universite Laval,the University of Calgary,and the University of British Columbia) against universities in Ontario and smallerschools primarily in Atlantic Canada. This demandfor athletic scholarshipsis fuelled by the beliefthat all NCAA athletes receive full-ride scholarships. However,this is only availablein Division I and onlyfor afew studentsin high-profile sports.In Division I, it is common to divide scholarships among several playersthat have to be renewed on a year-by-year basis. Poor athletic performancecanresult in ascholarship being revoked. In addition, athletes and parents who maybe blinded by the allure of a free education sometimesforget that tuition at Canadianuniversities can bethousands of dollars a yearlessthan US universities. This gapis evenlarger whenhigher out-of-state orinternational fees areincluded (CIS, 2007). Academicstandardstend to beequitable across Canadianuniversities at the undergraduate level, but there is widevariation in the quality of the educational experiencein the United States. The United Stateshassome of the worlds best universities, both private (such asthose in the Ivy League,Stanford, or Duke)and public (University of Michigan, University of California at Berkeley). There are also a number of schools with much weakeracademic quality. This meansthat graduates at some US universities received a substandard education compared to what they would havereceived at a Canadian university. Canadianemployers haverecognizedthis educational gap and often do not provide equal consideration for degreesfrom some USschools (Charbonneau, 2013). Finally, bringing in athletic scholarshipsto Canadianuniversities wouldrequire atransfer offunds from academic programsto athletic programs.It is doubtful that provincial governments(who areresponsiblefor funding universities) or the public wouldsupport further subsidizinguniversity athletics at the expenseof academics.
Doping Dopingis discussedin greater detail in the deviance chapter (see Chapter 8), so this section concentrates onissuesin the CIS. The CISfaced its own majordopingscandal in 2010 when news emerged that the University of Waterloofootball team was involved in the use of performance-enhancing substances, and a player wasunder police investigation for trafficking banned substances(human growth hormone and steroids). The university immediately askedthe Canadian Centrefor Ethics in Sport
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems217
(CCES) to test the entire football team (football playersfrom McMaster University and the University of Guelph were also tested). Sixty-two Waterloo players were subsequently tested, and nine of them tested positive for performance-enhancing drugs,admitted their guilt, or refusedto provide a sample(CCES, 2010a). Anexample of the type of prohibited substancesthat werefound in the blood and urine samples wastamoxifen, a substance usedto combat the side effects of steroids. All nine players weresuspended by the CISfor one to two years. Moresignificantly, the University of Waterloodecidedto cancelits entire 2010football season. The scale of the Waterloofootball doping scandal rocked the entire CIS. Marg McGregor,the chief executive officer of the CIS,called it the mostsignificant doping issue in CIS history. It illustrates that the CIS doping control program needsto be strengthened to ensurealevel playingfield and to protect the rights of the vast majority ofstudent-athletes whorespectthe rules and competeclean (CCES, 2010a). The Waterloo football dopingscandaldidlead to changesin the CISdrug-testing policies. CIS drugtesting wasintended to be a year-round operation, but instead athletessupplied samples only at training camp or at the national championships. The majorreasonfor this is that the costis approximately $500800 per drug test (Maki, 2012). McGregor maintained that we wantto test an athlete at any point in time and not just at the Vanier Cup. Wewant to be aware of performanceinformation to look for drasticimprovements in performance and weight gain (Maki, 2010). In addition, the CISis going to do a completereview of[its] educational programs (Maki, 2010). Other measures, in conjunction with the CCESandthe CanadianFootball League, included hostingan anti-doping symposiumatthe 2010 Vanier Cupat Universite Lavalin QuebecCity, havingthe CCEScreateanindependent taskforce to look at performanceenhancing drugsin football, increasing the number of tests allocatedto CISfootball and extending testing into the offseason(seen as a moreat-risk period), moreextensive testing of CFLtop prospectsfrom the CIS,and a public education campaign aimed at minorfootball players(CCES, 2010b).1 Sincethe 19901991 season,the CCEShasbeenresponsiblefor administering drug teststo CISstudent-athletes. From 19901991 to 20122013 there were74 positive drug tests (72 menand 2 women). Football wasthe biggest offender with 63 positive tests, which is why approximately 40% of all playerstested annually by the CCESarefrom football (CCES, 2010c). Thetop two prohibited substancesthat have been usedare steroids (30 positive tests) and marijuana(16 positive tests) (CIS, 2013f). Considering that over 6,000 CISstudent-athletes have beentestedin this time period(which is about 1in 25),it is evident that the number of athletes usingdrugsis small.2 Nevertheless,every positivetestis damagingnot onlyto the individual, but alsoto the school andthe integrity ofthe sport.
Hazing Hazinghasbeen mentionedin other chapters,sothis sectionfocusesonspecificinstances of hazingin the CIS. Thereis little societal tolerancefor hazingthroughout Canadiansport, andthis occursin the CISas well. This can be demonstratedin several ways.First,thereis moremediaattention givento allegedandactual hazingincidents. Second, manyuniversities havebeen upgradingtheir codesof conductfor student-athletes.Forexample,after a 2011
218Chapter
10
hazingincident left a St. Thomas Universityvolleyball playerdead,the universitytoughened its codeof conduct policyto include off-campusactivities (Petz, 2011). Third,the penalties for hazing,asappliedby bothleaguesandindividual universities,are higher. Whileincidents of hazingarebeing dealt with much morethan in the past,they have not completely stopped. Thereare numerousexamplesof universities punishing athletes and teamsfor hazing. McGillsuspendedits football team for the rest of the 2005season after it uncovered a serious incident during a rookie night event in August 2005. Theincident involved nudity, degradingpositionsand behaviours,gagging,touching in appropriate mannerswith a broomstick, as well as verbal and physicalintimidation of rookies by alarge portion of the team (Drolet, 2006). Other examplesof teams being suspendedfor multiple games,and even aseason,included the St. Thomas Universitys mens volleyball team in 2010 and Wilfrid Laurier Universitys baseballteam in 2012. Hazingis often seenas occurring primarily on maleteams, but there are alsoexamplesof female teams hazing players. For example, both Carleton Universitys womens soccer team in 2009 and Dalhousie Universitys womens hockeyteam in 2013 sufferedlengthy suspensionsbecauseof hazingincidents. Universities havealsotried to usepositive measures as wellas punishments. This has involved establishing newtraditions that stressthe importance of team building andteam spirit while at the sametime eliminating the degradingforms of hazing. One Canadian university encouragedits teams to participate in ceremonies in which senior students presentrookies with ateam sweater (Drolet, 2006). Hazingis policed morerigorously in the CISthan in the Canadian HockeyLeague and other junior sportsleagues.In 2011, the Neepawa Nativesof the ManitobaJunior A Hockey Leaguehad multiplesuspensionsfor coachesand players becauseof a hazing issue, but the team did not missany gameson its schedule. Whatexplains this higher standardfor CISteams? Oneexplanation is that universities areabout education, not just sports.In addition, all universities havecodesofstudent conduct that prohibit hazingand initiations throughout the student body, not just athletes. Finally, universitiesin Canada are publicly funded and therefore responsible to government. University presidents and provincial politicians havestrongly objected to hazing among university students (sports teams, fraternities, residences, engineering schools, etc.) and have demanded harsh punishmentsfor offenders(CBC News,2011).
The Challenge of the NCAA The NCAA in the United Statesrepresentsa majorchallengeto the CIS. This can be shownin two ways.Firstis the threat of Canadianschools abandoningthe CISto join the NCAA. For example,in 2012 Simon Fraser University, after several years of probation, joined the NCAA DivisionII. Their motive wastwofold: greatercompetition andsaving money.Simon Frasercompetesagainst universitiesin western Washingtonand Oregon and those schools are simply less expensive to travel to than other western Canadian provinces. Otherschools,such asthe University of British Columbia, havealso debated leaving the CISfor the NCAA. Thesecond challengefor the CISis that Canadaregularly loses its top athletes to the NCAA.3 In 20122013, approximately 3,500 Canadians were participating in NCAA athletics (Geiger, 2013). With the notable exception of hockey, Canadian
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems219
sport
has delegated its high-performance
example, the 2012 training
Basketball,
For
mens national basketmore than
NCAA in the 20122013
The 2010 Canadian senior
meanwhile, had 13 of 22 players from experience.4
NCAA.
According to Canada Basketball,
Canada to play in the
2012b).
to the
NCAA schools and only four players who went to
Basketball, 2012a).
70 men and 80 women left (Canada
development
camp roster for the Canadian senior
ball team had 26 of 30 players from CIS schools (Canada
athlete
season
mens field lacrosse team,
NCAA schools and all four coaches had NCAA
The Canadian womens soccer team that
Olympic Games had 16 of 18 players from the
won bronze at the 2012 London
NCAA and only two players from
CIS
schools (Canada Soccer, 2013). Players go to the
NCAA
becauseit offers a better quality of play. This is because
NCAA schools have significant financial resources for large, full-time can develop new advanced athletic techniques.
coaching staff that
They also have state-of-the-art
athletic
facilities such as home rinks/fields, dressing rooms, weight rooms, specialized video rooms, and practice facilities. It is for these reasons that the NCAA is widely understood asthe pathway to professional sports leagues such asthe NFL and NBA. Another reason that
Canadian student-athletes
to experience the sports spectacle: the attendance, big-time
college sport.
(e.g., football
While there
athletes play in front glamour
soccer have
(mens
NCAA schools is
with regard to certain sports
New Brunswick,
Acadia, or Lakehead), and
basketball, and hockey), for the
most part CIS
of hundreds or, at most, the low thousands. In contrast, the
NCAA sports routinely
15,00020,000
are exceptions
at Laval), schools (e.g.,
national championships (e.g., football,
decide to attend
media coverage, and atmosphere of
basketball).
draw sellout crowds of 60,000100,000
more spectators than their
For example, in 2013 the
(football)
or
Other NCAA sports such as hockey, baseball, and Canadian counterparts
Mount Royal University
Calgary Dinos at the Scotiabank Saddledome in
by a wide margin.
Cougars played the
University of
Calgaryin a special game where tickets
Action during the Crowchild Classic womens hockey game between the University of Calgary and Mount Royal University. Megapress/Alamy
220Chapter
10
were given 4,000 for ordinary
away. It
drew over 2,000 for the
womens
mens hockey. Both games set CWUAA regular
a perennial
season
hockey game and over
attendance records.
mens hockey game at the
University
of
Meanwhile, an North
Dakota,
NCAA powerhouse, typically sells out its 11,889 arena.
The major NCAA sports offootball and basketball are big businessand arealsosaturated by mediacoveragethese
sports generate billion-dollar
contracts for television rights. For
example, in 2010 the
NCAA signed a 14-year $10.8 billion contract
television rights of its
mens basketball national tournament
(Getz
with CBSfor the & Siegfried, 2010).
As well, millions of viewers watch regular season televised games and there is extensive coverage of college gamesin national and local bet on high-profile football
media.Some gamblers (legal and otherwise)
bowl games and, especially, on the
NCAA
March Madness
national basketball tournament. It is a mediaevent where even President Barack Obama selects his annual basketball bracket; we cannot image Prime Minister Stephen Harper, a well-known hockey fan, being asked his opinion on CIS hockey. NCAA sports are big business.In 2010, both the Big Ten and the Southeastern Conferences hit a billion dollars in athletic receipts (ticket sales, concession sales, merchandise,licensing fees, television contracts, etc.). The Ohio State University outsourced its sports merchandiseto IMG
College, a sports marketing firm, for a guaranteed $11 million
a year. Meanwhile, EA Sports paid morethan $35 million in 2010 in royalties for based video games (Branch, spending.
NCAA-
2011). Revenue is one side of the equation; the other is
Overall, at public universities, Division I athletic programs spent $6 billion in
2010 (Desrochers, 2013). In contrast,
CIS sports budgets are far more modest. The CIS struggles to get games
televised on sports cable stations such as TSN or Sportsnet 360. or a regional division such asthe responsible for selling their
Whenthey do, the CIS,
OUA, often pay to get their games on the air and are
own advertising.
Although there are exceptions, tickets to
games at many universities are often given away. paraphernalia are minute in comparison to the
Merchandise sales of university sports
NCAA, especially universities with his-
torically significant sporting legacies such as Notre Dameand Michigan. The overall atmosphere at major US university games provides additional entertainment and excitement.
There are tailgate parties, cheerleaders, marching bands, and pep
rallies. Some professional sports in Canada or the
United States often find it difficult to
compete with the atmosphere at a big-time college game.
Alumni Funding
Model
Several universities in the CIS have abandoned the traditional model and adopted funding
university sport funding
modelsfor their football programs that strongly resemble the
NCAAs experience with private alumni donors. Privatelyfunded sports programsbegan with the
Universite Laval Rouge et Or, but due to its success(both on and off the field)
it has been emulated by other universities(Cardwell, 2009). Lavals program wasstarted in 1996 and is operated by a nonprofit board at arms-length from the university. Laval has
a $2 million budget, whichis four orfive times higherthan the averageschoolin Canada. Laval has usedthis
moneyto hire five full-time
coaches (most schools havetwo or three),
establish a moresophisticated weightroom, and run aspring training camp in Florida. This investment
has paid off, becausein the last 10 years Laval has won seven Vanier
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems221
Cups as the top university football team in program began in the same year that the NHLs
Canada. It is no coincidence that
Lavals
Quebec City lost its only professional sports team,
Quebec Nordiques. The departure of the Nordiques to
Denverin 1995 meant
that local businesses had moneyto spend on sports advertising, and the Laval Rouge et Or became the beneficiary. The University of Regina Ramsfootball team was once one of the junior football
programs in
Canada, but in 1999 they began to compete in the
through a community partnership agreement through independent
of the
mostsuccessful
which the team remains financially
University and mustpursue a broad range of fundraising
activities in order to keep the program running
CIS
(University
projects and
of Regina Cougars, 2012).
Similar to the Laval Rougeet Or,the Regina Rams have invested significant funds in the development
of first-class training facilities.
The University of Calgary Dinos, one of
Canadas mostsuccessfulfootball teams over the last three decades,is dependent on fundraising by an alumni group called the 5th Quarter (MacLeod, role is to raise private scholarship almost $100,000 in financial nent businesspeople in returned to competition funding
assistance. Many of the 5th Quarters members are promi-
Calgary, and they use their
careers once they graduate.
2012). The 5th Quarters
moneyfor football players. In 2012, 22 players received
The Carleton
connections
University
to get Dinos players
Ravens football
in 2013 after a 15-year absence, is also following
model, asis the Lakehead University
team,
which
the alumni
mens hockey team.
Academic Achievement In the United Statesthere hasbeen significant debate about the academic achievement of student-athletes.5 (GPA)
Academic achievement is typically
measuredin grade point averages
and graduation rates. The NCAA claims that student-athletes
annually outper-
form their student-body counterparts in graduation rates, and in almost all demographic
categories (2013). However,the methodologyfor that conclusion has been disputed by many academics precisely becausethe
NCAA includes
part-time students (who
have
higher dropoutrates and do notinclude athletes) and counts athletes whotransfer in good academic standing as graduates.
The adjusted graduation gap (AGG), a modelthat factors out part-time students, demonstrates that in
most athletic conferences, athletes graduate at rates lower than
non-athletes (Grasgreen, 2013). This gapis widestamong malefootball and basketball players at NCAA
Division I Bowl Series conferences. For example, football
ers in the Pacific 12 Conference have 27% fewer graduates than full-time students.
Richard Southall led the
among black football [in the rate
NCAA
players: Its
play-
male
AGG study and found that the gap was highest three times
Division I Bowl Subdivision
morelikely that black football
players
conferences] dont graduate at the same
as black nonathletes (Grasgreen, 2012). This gap also exists in
mens basketball,
where the number of black players who do not graduate is double that of white players (Grasgreen, 2013). Others have argued that the tion rates through degrees (Grasgreen,
major 2012).
NCAA and its
clustering [of athletes in certain
10
and advising, but it
manipulate gradua-
majors] and devalued
NCAA schools offer Student-Athlete
Programs that include special tutoring
222Chapter
member schools
Support Service
has been argued that the
purpose of these programs is simply to ensure that athletes remain academically eligible to compete, rather than fostering their
overall academic development and graduation
rates (Geiger, 2013). The CIS does not monitor the academic achievement of its student-athletes, and the research on graduation rates is not as extensive in However, the weight of the research indicates that GPAs and lower examination
graduation rates than
Canada asit is in the CISstudent-athletes
nonstudent-athletes.
of University of Victoria athletes from
athletes had lower
GPAs than the regular student
19701980,
found that student-
many different sports at a
Ontario university in the early 1990s, found that nonathletes had a higher
than student-athletes.
GPA
McTeer and Curtis (1999), in a survey of maleand female athletes
at a Canadian university from 19881993, lower
Martens (1985), in an
body and took longer to graduate.
Danylchuk (1995), in a study of maleand female athletes in large
United States. have both lower
GPAs and graduation rates than
also showed that student-athletes
nonstudent-athletes.
Finally,
had both
Miller and Kerr
(2002), in asurvey of maleand female athletes in their fourth or fifth years at a Canadian university, argue that
CIS student-athletes
significant improvement
report lower grades in year one but showed
in years four and five asthey reoriented their focus away from
athletics and toward academics. While the academic achievement
of CIS student-athletes
student-athletes, it is also clear that CIS student-athletes the NCAA.
non
outperform their counterparts in
There are a number of reasons for this. First, NCAA athletes are often given
preferential accessto enter university, applicants.
may be less than
while CIS athletes must compete with all other
This meansthat right from entrance into university,
NCAA student-athletes
are often weaker academically. Second, NCAA athletics, especially in the high-profile sports of football This meansthat
and mens basketball, is substantially CIS athletes have less team
larly scheduled training
more commercial than the
CIS.
events to attend per week outside of regu-
and competition, since their athletic team andleague is less com-
mercialized (Geiger, 2013, p. 3). Third, numerous USstudies have shown that there is often an athletic athletes (Geiger, some faculty
subculture
of low academic expectations
among
NCAA student-
2013, p. 3). Finally, these same studies have demonstrated that even
members possessnegative attitudes about the academic potential of NCAA
student-athletes,
especially black athletes (Geiger, 2013).
found a supportive academic environment
Miller and Kerr, in contrast,
among faculty, coaches, and players for
CIS
student-athletes (2002).
Student-Athlete
Life
How do student-athletes differ from nonstudent-athletes
at Canadian universities? Asthe
previous section demonstrates, there has been muchresearch comparing student-athletes and nonstudent-athletes
in terms of academic achievement, but what about their social
experiences? There are both positive and negative features concerning the social life of student-athletes. loneliness that
Onepositive feature is that student-athletes find it easier to adjust to the manyfirst-year university students experience. Loneliness occurs because
students have either just
moved away from home or are attending a campus that is many
times larger than their former highschool without a developed network offriends. Oneof the benefits of sport participation is that fellow athletes provide animmediate social network on
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems223
campus that can often alleviate sentiments
ofloneliness and stressthat often accompany
majorlife changes, particularly the first year of university
(Miller
& Kerr, 2002, p. 360).
This social network continues throughout their university career. For example, unofficial athletic residencesoff-campus after yearhave
housing that successive groups of student-athletes rent year
sprung up at most Canadian universities (Miller
& Kerr, 2002).
A negative feature is the sheer amount of time that student-athletes training and competing in their sport.
mustspend
Miller and Kerr (2002) found that athletes spent an
average of 20 hours per weekin training
and competition
for their sport.
This had an
adverse effect not just on their schoolwork, but it also restricted their ability to get a parttime job, unlike mostnonstudent-athletes Student-athletes
(McTeer
& Curtis, 1999; Miller & Kerr, 2002).
who deal with the time pressuresof combining athletics and academics
often restrict their social circle to their teammates and can become isolated from the rest of the student body (Geiger, 2013; Miller & Kerr, 2002). They play together, live together, take the same classestogether (a very high percentage of student-athletes
are in physical
education programs), and they often socialize together.
conclusions Given that elementary and high schools and universities are very different educational contexts, we would expect to find several differences in the waysthat sport and physical activity
are offered to students.
School-based
physical education
is a compulsory
requirement for the greater part of the education of Canadian children; however, participation in university sports (whether in competition, entirely voluntary.
such as CIS, or intramurals)
is
However, mostchildren do not experience specialized instruction
in
sport and physical activity (i.e., teachers and coaches) until they reach middle and high schools. There are few specialists providing
movement education to small children, but at
the other end of the spectrum those who educate university students in sport and physical activity contexts tend to be highly specialized. Despitethese and many other differences, there are also several common themes that are present in the two contexts.
Wehighlighted the important
any consideration of assessingthe current state
of play
role that history plays in
of sport and physical activity.
In order to graspthe present and future, alook to the past provides important why things are the way they are and helps usidentify possible. In addition, concerning
clues as to
areas where sustainable change is
weidentified issues related to difference and diversity, particularly
gender, as being salient factors in understanding
how sport and physical
activity is offeredand experiencedin schoolsand universities. Whilegenderequity may have improved
over the years, there is still
much to be done to not only understand
differencesbetween malesand females, but alsoto understanddifferencesamong males and females. Although our analysis hasindicated several changes that have been madeto
improve sport and physical activity provisionin Canadianeducationalsystems,students, practitioners, administrators,
policymakers, and researchers have significant
work ahead
of them to provide high-quality opportunitiesfor participation and engagementin sport and physical activity in
224Chapter
10
Canadian educational institutions.
critical Thinking
Questions
1. Think back to your experiences of physical education in elementary and secondary school.
Whotended to be successful? Why werethey successful? Whatactivities
you recall participating in 2.
do
most? Compare your experiences to others in asmall group.
Whatroledoescompetitivesporttendtoplayinsecondaryschoolphysicaleducation
programs? Whatrole shouldit play?Justify your answerby consideringthe experiences of manygirls in sport-based physical education. 3. Howcanphysicaleducationprogramshelptodevelopthewholechild(i.e.,physical,
4.
social, emotional,
cognitive
development)?
programs currently
meetthis aim?
What can be done to improve
how
Whatfactors contribute to the perception that physical education is a marginal subject in the school curriculum?
5. Should CIS schools try to emulate
6.
NCAA schools? If so, how?If not, why not?
Whatis the biggestchallengefacing the CIS: hazing,performance-enhancingdrugs, gender equity, or something else?
7.
How different
are student-athletes
in
Canada when compared to students in the
United Statesin the areas of academic performance and social experiences?
suggested Branch, T. (2011,
readings October). The shame of college sports. The Atlantic. Retrieved from http://www.
theatlantic.com/magazine/archive/2011/10/the-shame-of-college-sports/308643.
Aughey,T., Danylchuk, K., & Lebel, K.(2011). Theimpact of the economicrecessionon Canadian Interuniversity Sport(CIS) programs.Journalof IntercollegiateSport, 4(2), 147157. Donnelly, P., Norman, M., & Kidd, B. (2013). Genderequityin Canadianinteruniversity sport: Abiennialreport. Toronto, ON: University of Toronto, Centrefor Sport Policy Studies.Retrieved from http://physical.utoronto.ca/docs/csps-pdfs/cis-gender-equity-report---2013.pdf?sfvrsn=2. Gibbons,S. L. (2009). Meaningfulparticipation of girlsin senior physicaleducationcourses.Canadian Journalof Education,32, 222244. Halas,J. M.(2011). Aboriginal youth and their experiencesin physical education: This is what youve taught me. PHEnexJournal, 3(2). Retrieved from http://ojs.acadiau.ca/index.php/ phenex/article/view/1427. Kirk, D.(2010). Physicaleducation futures. London,
UK: Routledge
Quarmby, T., & Dagkas, S. (2012). Locating the place and meaning of physical activity in the lives of young people from low-income, (iFirst),
lone-parent
families.
Physical Education & Sport Pedagogy
116.
Tischler, A., & McCaughtry, N.(2011). PEis notfor me: Whenboys masculinitiesarethreatened. ResearchQuarterlyfor Exerciseand Sport,82, 3748.
references Branch, T.(2011, October). Theshame of collegesports. The Atlantic. Retrievedfrom http://www. theatlantic.com/magazine/archive/2011/10/the-shame-of-college-sports/308643. Bratt, D.(in press). Different not better: Comparing Canadian and American university sport systems.In D. Taras & C. Waddell(Eds.), How Canadians communicateV: Sport.Edmonton, AB: AthabascaUniversity Press.
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems225
Canada Basketball. (2012a). 2012 senior
mens training
camp roster. Retrieved from http://www.
basketball.ca/senior-men-p148740. CanadaBasketball.(2012b). NCAA: Canadianimpact. Retrievedfrom http://www.basketball.ca/ ncaa-national-collegiate-athletic-association-s15154. Canada Soccer. (2013). Womens national team/Olympic team. Retrievedfrom http://www. canadasoccer.com/index.php?t=project&sid=965. CanadianCentrefor Ethicsin Sport.(2010a). Dopingcontrol test results on University of Waterloo football team announced. Retrievedfrom http://www.cces.ca/en/news-126-doping-control-testresults-on-university. Canadian Centrefor Ethicsin Sport.(2010b). CCES, CISand CFLannouncerobust anti-doping measuresafter more university football playerstest positive for bannedsubstances. Retrieved from http://www.cces.ca/en/news-134-cces-cis-and-cfl-announce-robust-anti-doping. Canadian Centre for Ethics in Sport. (2010c). Media Backgrounder.
Retrieved from
CCEStesting
University of Waterloo football team.
http://www.cces.ca/files/pdfs/MediaBackgrounderTesting
UniversityofWaterlooFootballTeam2010FINAL.pdf. Canadian Interuniversity
Sport. (2005a).
Analysis of male and female coaches in
CIS sports.
Retrievedfrom http://english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/pdfs/pdf_research_and_stats/ Analysis_of_Male_and_Female.pdf. CanadianInteruniversity Sport. (2005b). Equity practices questionnaire: Responsesof the membership. Final report. Retrievedfrom http://english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/pdfs/ pdf_research_and_stats/2005_Equity_Practices_Questionnaire-CIS-Equity-Report-2005.pdf. CanadianInteruniversity Sport.(2007). Canadavs U.S.A: Thefinancial implications of the choice. Retrievedfrom http://english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/pdfs/pdf_research_and_stats/ july2007CanadavsUSAresearchfinal.pdf. CanadianInteruniversity Sport. (2013a). History of CIS. Retrievedfrom http://english.cis-sic.ca/ information/about_cis/cishistory. Canadian Interuniversity Canadian Interuniversity
Sport. (2013b). Sport. (2013c).
About the CIS. Retrieved from http://english.cis-sic.ca. Athletic financial
awards 20112012.
Retrieved from
http://english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/pdfs/pdf_research_and_stats/SportBySport AFASummary2011-12_-public-_-_english.pdf.
CanadianInteruniversity Sport.(2013d, June 20). Athletic scholarships: CISschools provided over $12.7 Mto student-athletesin 201112. NewsRelease. CanadianInteruniversity Sport. (2013e). Athletes Guide: 20132014. Retrievedfrom http:// english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/pdfs/pdf_elig_pack/13-14/athletes_guide.pdf. CanadianInteruniversity Sport.(2013f). Historyof CIS doping violations. Retrievedfrom http:// english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/pdfs/pdf_research_and_stats/Drug_stats_breakdown_jan_21_2013.pdf. Cardwell, M.(2009, November9). Lavals field of dreams. UniversityAffairs. Retrievedfrom http:// www.universityaffairs.ca/laval-s-field-of-dreams.aspx. Carlson, T. B.(1995).
We hate gym: Student alienation from physical education. Journal of Teach-
ing in Physical Education, 14, 467477. CBC News.(2011, November 2). N.B.students death prompts hazing probe. Retrieved from http:// www.cbc.ca/news/canada/new-brunswick/n-b-student-s-death-prompts-hazing-probe-1.887974. Charbonneau, L. (2013, July 22). The value of a degree earned in
Canada vs. one earned abroad.
University Affairs. Retrievedfrom http://www.universityaffairs.ca/margin-notes/the-value-of-adegree-earned-in-canada-vs-one-earned-abroad/. Cothran, D., & Ennis, C. D.(1999). Alonein a crowd: Meetingstudents needsfor relevanceand connectionin urbanhighschoolphysicaleducation.Journalof Teaching in PhysicalEducation, 18, 234247. Danylchuk, K.E.(1995). Academicperformanceofintercollegiate athletesat a Canadianuniversity: Comparisonsby gender,type of sport and affiliatedfaculty. Avante,1(2), 7893.
226Chapter
10
Darling-Hammond,
L. (2010).
Theflat world and education. San Francisco, CA: Jossey Bass.
Desrochers, D. M.(2013). Academicspending versusathletic spending: Who wins? Delta Cost Project.Retrievedfrom http://chronicle.com/blogs/players/files/2013/01/deltacost.pdf. Donnelly, P., Norman, M., & Kidd, B. (2013). Genderequityin CanadianInteruniversity Sport: A biennial report. Toronto, ON: University of Toronto, Centrefor Sport Policy Studies. Retrieved from http://physical.utoronto.ca/docs/csps-pdfs/cis-gender-equity-report---2013. pdf?sfvrsn=2. Drolet, D.(2006,January16). Universityathletic departmentsreview their hazingpolicies. University Affairs. Retrievedfrom http://www.universityaffairs.ca/university-athletics-departments-reviewtheir-hazing-policies.aspx. Dyson, B. (2006). Students perspectives of physical education. In D. Kirk, D. Macdonald, & M. OSullivan (Eds.), Ennis, C. D.(1999).
Handbookof physical education (pp. 326346).
London,
UK: Sage.
Creating a culturally relevant curriculum for disengaged girls. Sport, Education
and Society, 4, 3149. Ennis, C. D.(2006).
Curriculum: Forming and reshaping the vision of physical education in a high
need,low demand world of schools. Quest, 58, 4159.
Enright, E., & OSullivan, M.(2010). Can I do it in mypyjamas? Negotiatinga physical education curriculum withteenage girls. EuropeanPhysicalEducationReview,16, 203222. Fletcher, T. (2012). Experiences and identities: Pre-service elementary classroom teachers being and becoming teachers of physical education. EuropeanPhysical Education Review, 18, 380395. Francis, N. R., & Lathrop, A. H.(2011). Children who drill, seldom areill. Drill, movementand sport: Therise andfall of afemale tradition in Ontarioelementary physical education1850s to 2000. HistoricalStudies in Education(Spring), 6180. Garrett, R., & Wrench,A. (2007). Physicalexperiences:Primarystudent teachers conceptions of sport and physical education. Physical Education and Sport Pedagogy,12, 2342. Geiger, N.(2013). Intercollegiate quality, and funding.
athletics in
Getz, M., & Siegfried, J. (2010). universities?
Canada and the United States: Differences in access,
College Quarterly, 16, 3. What does intercollegiate
Working Paper. Nashville, TN: Vanderbilt
athletics
do to or for colleges and
University, Department of Economics.
Retrievedfrom http://www.accessecon.com/pubs/VUECON/vu10-w05.pdf. Gibbons,S. L. (2009). Meaningfulparticipation of girlsin senior physicaleducationcourses.Canadian Journalof Education,32, 222244. Grasgreen, A. (2012, September 25). Gapsin grad rates for athletes. Inside HigherEducation. Retrievedfrom http://www.insidehighered.com/news/2012/09/25/report-finds-football-playersgraduate-rates-lower-full-time-student-peers#sthash.ccLbD3Q9.dpbs. Grasgreen,A.(2013,January 10). DivisionI basketballplayersgraduateatlower ratesthan non-athletes.Inside HigherEducation.Retrieved from http://www.insidehighered.com/quicktakes/2013/01/10/ division-i-basketball-players-graduate-lower-rates-non-athletes#sthash.Nx2e7cfu.dpbs. Green, K. (2008). Halas,J. (2006).
Understandingphysical education. London, UK: Sage. Developing a white-race consciousness: Afoundation
cal education for Aboriginal youth. In E. Singleton
for culturally relevant physi-
& A. Varpalotai (Eds.), Stonesin the sneaker:
Active theory for secondary school physical and health educators (pp. 155182).
London,
ON:
Althouse Press.
Halas,J. M.(2011). Aboriginal youth and their experiencesin physical education: This is what youve taught me. PHEnexJournal, 3(2). Retrieved from http://ojs.acadiau.ca/index.php/ phenex/article/view/1427. Hastie,P. A., Rudisill, M.E., & Wadsworth,D. D.(2013). Providingstudents with voice andchoice: Lessonsfrom intervention research on autonomy-supportive climates in physical education. Sport, Educationand Society,18, 3856.
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems227
Hickey, C.(2010).
Hypermasculinity in schools. In
M. OSullivan
& A. Macphail (Eds.), Young
peoplesvoicesin physicaleducationandyouthsport(pp. 108122). London, UK: Routledge. Kilborn, M.(2011). Physicaleducation curriculum across Canada.Presentationat the Canadian Societyfor Studiesin Education Annual Conference.Fredericton, NB, May28June 1. Kirk, D.(2010a). Physicaleducation andsports.In P.Peterson,E. Baker, & B. McGaw(Eds.),Internationalencyclopedia of education(pp. 459463). Amsterdam:Elsevier. Kirk, D.(2010b). Physicaleducationfutures. London, UK: Routledge. Kirk, D.(2013). Educational value and models-basedpractice in physical education. Educational Philosophy and Theory(iFirst), 114. Kirk, D., Macdonald,D., & OSullivan, M.(Eds.), (2006). Handbookof physicaleducation.London, UK: Sage. Lenskyj, H.(1986).
Out of bounds: Women,sport and sexuality. Toronto,
Lodewyk, K. R., & Pybus, C. M.(2013). Investigating
ON:
Womens Press.
factors in the retention
of students in high
school physical education. Journal of Teachingin Physical Education, 32, 6177. Macleans.(2013, February 11). Sports scholarships are an expensive fix to a non-existent problem. Retrievedfrom http://www2.macleans.ca/2013/02/11/an-expensive-fix-to-a-non-existent-problem/.
MacLeod,R.(2012, November16). Alumni got the Dinos back. Globeand. Retrievedfrom http:// www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/football/university-of-calgary-alumni-ensure-dinos-have-topnotch-program/article5400055/. Maki, A.(2010, May28). Dopingcommonin varsityfootball, Waterlooplayersays. Globeand Mail. from http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/football/doping-common-in-varsity-footballwaterloo-player-says/article4321076/. Maki, A.(2012, September7). Costslimit number of drugtestsfor football players. Globeand Mail. Retrievedfrom http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/football/costs-limit-number-of-drugtests-for-football-players/article4528394/. Mandigo, J. L., Corlett, J., & Lathrop, A. H.(2012). Physical education in the twenty-first Toinfinity
and beyond? In E. Singleton
& A. Varpalotai (Eds.), Pedagogyin
nity ofinquiry for human movementstudies (pp. 1544).
London,
Mandigo, J. L., Thompson, L. P., Spence, J. C., Melnychuk, Marshall, D.(2004).
century:
motion: A commu-
ON: Althouse Press.
N., Schwartz,
M., Dunn, J. C., &
A descriptive profile of physical education teachers and related program
characteristicsin Alberta. AlbertaJournalof EducationalResearch, 50, 87102. Mangan,J. A.(1983). Grammarschoolsandthe gamesethic in the Victorian and Edwardianeras. Albion: A QuarterlyJournal Concernedwith BritishStudies,15, 313335. Martens,F.(1985). Academicachievement of intercollegiate athletesin physical education at the University of Victoria. CanadianAssociation for Health,PhysicalEducationand Recreation Journal, 51, 1422. McCullick, B. A., Lux, K. M.,Belcher, D. G., & Davies, N.(2012). A portrait of the PETE major: Re-touchedfor the earlytwenty-first century. PhysicalEducation & SportPedagogy,17, 177193. McTeer, W., & Curtis,J. (1999). Intercollegiate sport involvement and academicachievement: Afollow-up
study. Avante, 5, 3955.
Metzler, M. W.(2011). Instructional
modelsin physicaleducation (3rd ed.). Scottsdale, AZ: Holcomb
Hathaway. Miller, P. S., & Kerr, G.(2002). student-athletes.
The athletic, academic and social experiences of intercollegiate
Journal of Sport Behavior, 25(4), 346367.
Morgan,P., & Bourke,S.(2008). Non-specialistteachers confidenceto teach PE: The natureand influence of personalschool experiencesin PE. PhysicalEducationandSportPedagogy,13, 129. National Collegiate Athletic Association.(2013). Academics.Retrievedfrom http://www.ncaa.org/ wps/wcm/connect/public/ncaa/academics/index.html. Ontario University Athletics.(2013). Sports. Retrievedfrom http://www.oua.ca.
228Chapter
10
Petz, S.(2011, September 21). Should universities punish students for off-campus behaviour? Macleans. Retrieved from
http://www.macleans.ca/education/uniandcollege/should-universities-punish-
students-for-off-campus-behaviour/. Philips,
M. G., & Roper, A. P. (2006).
M. OSullivan (Eds.), Portman, P. A. (1995).
History of physical education. In D. Kirk, D. Macdonald, &
Handbookof physical education (pp. 123140).
London,
UK: Sage.
Whois having fun in physical education classes?Experiences of sixth-grade
students in elementary and middle schools. Journal of Teachingin Physical Education, 14, 445453. Sheppard, R.J., & Trudeau, F. (2008).
Research on the outcomes of elementary school physical
education. The Elementary SchoolJournal, 108, 251264. Siedentop, D., Hastie, P. A., & Van der Mars, H.(2004). paign, IL:
Completeguideto sport education. Cham-
Human Kinetics.
Sykes, H., & McPhail, D.(2008).
Unbearable lessons: Contesting fat phobia in physical education.
Sociologyof SportJournal, 25, 6696. Team Canada Lacrosse. (2013). 2010 roster.
Retrieved from http://www.teamcanadalacrosse.com/
team2010.aspx. Tinning, R.(2010). Pedagogyand human movement. London, Tischler, A., & McCaughtry, N.(2011). PEis not for
UK: Routledge.
me: When boys masculinities are threatened.
Research Quarterlyfor Exerciseand Sport, 82, 3748. Turcotte,
M.(2011).
No 89-503-x.
Women and education:
Retrieved from
A gender-based statistical report. Statistics Canada
http://www.statcan.gc.ca/pub/89-503-x/2010001/article/11542-
eng.pdf. UNESCO. (1978).
Theinternational charter of physical education and sport. Records of the
Conference, 20th Session. Volume I: Resolutions. Paris, October 24November
General
28. Retrieved
from http://unesdoc.unesco.org/images/0011/001140/114032e.pdf. University of Regina Cougars. (2012).
Football:
About us, club history.
Retrieved from
http://
reginacougars.com/sports/2012/2/7/FB_0207124739.aspx?path=football. Vertinsky, P. A. (1992). physical education. Whitehead,
M.(2001).
Reclaiming space, revisioning
the body: The quest for gender-sensitive
Quest,44(3), 373396. The concept of physical literacy.
Physical Education and Sport Pedagogy,
6, 127138.
endnotes 1. Five hundred football
players were tested in 2010 because of the exposure of the
Waterloo
scandal, but by 2012 the number had dropped back down to 100 (out of 1,503 players) because of significant 2.Another 3.This
cost pressures (Maki,
2012).
possible conclusion is that athletes have become moreadept at avoiding detection.
section is derived from Bratt (in press).
4. Statistics for lacrosse are derived from information
at Team Canada Lacrosse (2013).
lacrosse is not one of CISs sanctioned sports, but there is a good club league in
Field
Ontario and
Quebec, plus Simon Fraser University playsin a US university league. Thereis also a maritime university field lacrosse league, but it is of a very poor quality. 5.This
paragraph is derived from Bratt (in press).
Sport
and
Physical
Activity
in
Canadian
Educational
Systems229
Chapter11 Sport, Media,andIdeology Jay Scherer
The early days of sport on Canadian television.
AP Photo/Hans
Von Nolde
230
Thenumbersandfinancial figuresarestaggering.In 2007, Rogersand CTVglobemedia(now BCE)joined forces asa multi-platformbroadcastingconsortium and paidthe International Olympic Committee(IOC) over$150 millionto securethe broadcastingrights to the 2010 Winter Olympic Gamesin Vancouverand the 2012 Summer Gamesin London. The Vancouverrights alone were morethan three times whatthe CanadianBroadcastingCorporation (CBC) paid for the 2006 Winter Olympicsin Turin ($28 million). Likewise,in December2011, Canadiantelecommunications giants BCE and Rogerspaid morethan $1 billion to acquirea75%stakein MapleLeafSportsand Entertainment(MLSE), in part,to securethe broadcastingrights to the Toronto MapleLeafs,the Toronto Raptors,and Toronto FC(Rogersalsoownsthe Toronto BlueJays). Thesesportsproperties nowair on numerous Rogers-owned regional and specialty channels (Sportsnet, Sportsnet One,Sportsnet360, Sportsnet World),BCEs TSN and TSN2, and on a host of additional platforms (radio, magazines, and the Internet) that are owned by these deep-pocketedcorporations. All of these deals,of course,underscorethe unprecedentedvalue of popular, dramatic,live sports content as both BCEand Rogersbattle to securesubscribers andput togethersignificantaudiencesontheir platformsand distribution outletsthat canthen besoldto advertisers.
Theescalationofthe costsof varioussportsbroadcasting rights (see Tables11.1and 11.2) hasalsoprovidedvastamountsofrevenueand visibilityfor the various majorleaguesof North Americansport andtruly globalsportsorganizations like the IOC andthe FederationInternationale de Football Association(FIFA). Theseareleaguesand organizationsthat arethemselves monopoliesand cartelsthat havehistorically packagedand soldtheir exclusivesports productsto variouspublic and private networks;the ability ofthe majorleaguesto sell their productsascollectiveentities hasonly been madepossiblethanks to their ongoingexemption from anti-trustlegislation. Organized sport has,for severaldecadesnow,benefitedhandsomely from the substantial amount of free mediacoverageand the lucrative fees paidfor the broadcastrights to their events and products.Beginning withthe establishmentof the first Table 11.1
US Network
Payments for
Olympic Television
Rights
WinterLocationRightsAmountSummerLocationRightsAmount 1960United
States
CBS$50,000
1960Italy
CBS
$394,000
1964Austria
ABC$597,000
1964Japan
NBC
$1.5
million
1968France
ABC$2.5
million
1968Mexico
ABC
$4.5
million
1972Japan
NBC$6.4
million
1972West
ABC
$7.5
million
1976Austria
ABC$10
ABC
$25
1980United
States
million
Germany
1976Canada
million
ABC$15.5
million
1980Soviet
Union
NBC(cancelled)
$87 million
1984Yugoslavia
ABC$91.5
million
1984United
States
ABC
$225
million
1988Canada
ABC$309
million
1988South
NBC
$300
million
1992France
CBS$243
million
1992Spain
NBC
$401
million
1994Norway
CBS$300
million
1996United
NBC
$465
million
1998Japan
CBS$375
million
2000Australia
NBC
$705
million
NBC$545
million
2004Greece
NBC
$793
million
2006Italy
NBC$613
million
2008China
NBC
$894
million
2010Vancouver
NBC$820
million
2012United
NBC
$1.18 billion
2014Russia
NBC$775
million
2016Brazil
NBC
$1.2 billion
NBC$963
million
2020Japan
NBC*
$1.45
2002United
States
2018South *In
2014,
Korea NBC paid
Table 11.2
US$7.75
billion
for the
exclusive
broadcast
CFL(Canadian
Football
League)
League Baseball)
NBA (National NFL(National
NHL(National
**Largest
Kingdom
six
Olympic
Games from
Basketball Football
Association)
League)
Hockey League)
hundreds
billion
20222032.
Rights
RightsValueTerm
EPL(English Premier League)
*Excludes
to the
States
Network Payments for Professional Sports Broadcasting
LeagueBroadcasting
MLB(Major
rights
Korea
of
media rights
millions in deal in
broadcasting
NHL history,
TSN (Canada)
C$43
BSkyB, BT Group
3
ESPN, FOX, Turner Sports
US$12.4 billion
20142021
ESPN, ABC, TNT
US$7.4
20082016
CBS, NBC, FOX, ESPN
US$39.6
Rogers (Canada)**
C$5.2 billion
20142026
NBC(US)
US$2 billion
20112021
rights and
payments
Canadas
largest
from sport
networks
in
other
media rights
Sport,
million/year
billion (US$5.1
20142018
billion)*
billion billion
20142022
nations.
agreement.
Media,
and
Ideology
20132016
231
sportssectionin dailynewspapers andthe emergenceofspecialistsportjournalistsin the 1880s, regular detailed mediacoveragepropelledthe majorleaguesinto the mainstreamof popular culture and amplified an already broadening public interest in commercial menssport (Goldlust, 1987). Tothis day,for example,dailyprint andonline newspapers providecommercialsport with an endlessamount of promotionalcoverage,commentary,statisticsandinjury reports(especiallyfor fantasysport enthusiasts),andtraderumourson acontinuous newsand publicity cycle(Lowes, 1999). Asthe noted Canadaauthor andsports writer Roy MacGregor remarked,the sheerubiquityofsportin the mediahasbeen worthits weightin goldfor various teamsandleaguesoverthe years:Ever seeateam advertise? Whywouldyou advertisewhen you havea dailyadvertisementcalledthe newspaper?(quotedin Gilbert,2011,p. 251). Atthe sametime, the creation of exciting sportsproducts has,historically, provided advertisersvaluable opportunities to reach significant audiences(of mostlyaffluent men) to markettheir products and brands.Indeed, in the rapidly changing digital landscape where Canadianshaveaccessto aseemingly endlessflow of popular entertainment content on multiplefamily television sets and,increasingly, on mobilephones and tablet devices,the value of live sporting eventsfor capturing significant and predictable audienceshas never been greater;this is precisely whysponsorsare willing to paysignificant amounts to advertise during sports broadcasts.Theliveness of exciting televised sport content is the crucial elementin these economic calculations. Thatis, unlike other popular showsandfilms that can berecorded or purchasedindependently oniTunes or Netflix (allowing viewersto skip commercial messages), sporting events are generally consumed in real time and,thus, havefar greater potential to exposeaudiencesto advertising. Thislatter point hasonly beenreinforced in recent years withthe price of a 30-second time slot duringthe SuperBowlrising to an astronomical US$4 million;in 2013,an estimated108.4 million people watched Super Bowl XLVII in the United States alone. Likewise,in Canadathe mostpopularsporting eventscontinue to capturesignificant audiencesfor advertisers.In 2010,for example,an averageof 16.6 million Canadianswatched Canadabeatthe United Statesin overtimein the Olympicgold-medalgamein Vancouver onthe CTV/Rogersconsortiums eight channelsan all-time viewing record in Canada. In 2013,the final gamein the first round playoffseries betweenthe Toronto MapleLeafs and the Boston Bruins on CBCs HockeyNightin Canada(HNIC) set an audiencerecord with 5.1 million viewers. Boththe IOC and FIFA, meanwhile,claim to reach global audiencesof billions of viewersduringthe Olympic Gamesandthe World Cup, whichis why television revenues haveexpandedsignificantly overthe courseof the last three decades (Whannel, 2005). Still, its alwaysimportant to interpret these statistics with a degreeof skepticism;sport organizations(like FIFA andthe IOC) report the highestaudience numberspossiblesimply becausethesefigures entice greateradvertisingrevenue and, by extension, morevaluable broadcastingcontracts(Kuper & Szymanski,2012). Beyondthese economic figures, there hassimply never been a better time to be a sportsfan: Canadiansare now provided with an unprecedentedamount oflive sports content on television and other digital and mobile platformsthat weresimply unthinkable even a decadeago. Eventhough Canadiansremain avid television watchers,in 2010 our useof the Internet for news,information, and entertainment surpassedthat oftelevision, markinga decisiveshift in how weconsumepopularculture (Marlow, 2010). Despitethe recent expansionof viewing opportunitiesfor sportsfans,though, there are nowalsogreater coststo accessdigital sport content. Thisis particularlyimportant in light of the powerof a small number of distributors(e.g., Rogers,BCE, Shaw,and Quebecor)to bundletelevision 232Chapter
11
channelstogether in expensivepackages, in addition to the emergenceof a widerange of expensivespecialtysport channelsthat increasingly target niche marketsand audiencesof fans. AsI discusslater in this chapter, there alsoremain significant limits in terms of the types of sportsthat Canadiansare exposedto on aregular basis,including an ongoinglack of coverageof womenssport, Paralympicsport, and amateursport in general. Nonetheless, in the digital erasportsfans can nowfollow not onlythe North American majorleaguesandthe mostpopularsport mega-events, but a hostof othercompetitions(such asthe English PremierLeagueandthe UEFA ChampionsLeague)that wereonceinaccessiblefor Canadianaudiencesin an earlieranalogueera.Indeed,for studentsbornin the 1990s and who have never known atime whenthe Internet, Twitter, mobile handsets,and the multi-channeldigital television universedid not exist,it seemsunfathomableto think that there wasa period whensports broadcastingandtelevisionitself wereemergentphenomena in Canadaand an even earlier era wherelive sports coverage waslimited to the listening opportunitiesprovided by another onceinnovative and popularform of broadcasting:radio. Giventhe sheeramount of digitalsportscontent that Canadiansconsumeontelevision andincreasingly online,there is little doubtthat mediatedsportis asignificant component of popular culture and to understandit betteris to understand moreabout the culturein which welive (Whannel, 1992,p. 2). In this chapter,I provide a briefreview ofthe symbiotic and mutuallybeneficial multibillion dollar partnershipbetweenthe media,professional sportleagues/organizations, and advertisersin Canada.BysymbioticI meanthat theseinterestgroupsare nowso highlyintertwined andinterlocked that they cannot be understoodas separateentities and, crucially,they are motivatedby a mutualdesirefor financial gain and subsequentlyflourish and profit by protecting and promoting each othersinterests. Or,as the UScommunicationsscholar Robert McChesney(2008, p. 213) explained: Onthe one hand, the staggering popularity of sports is due, to no small extent, to the enormous amount of attention the
provided to it by the
mass media. Onthe other hand,
media are able to generate enormous sales in both circulation
based upon their extensive treatment
of sports.
and advertising
Media attention fans the flames of
interest in sports and increased interest in sports warrants further
mediaattention.
Together,theseinstitutionsform the sports-media complex(Jhally, 1984)andsharenot only similareconomicagendasbut a hostofideologicalintereststhat set distinctlimits and pressures onthe productionand consumptionofsport contentin Canada,albeit underthe governanceof the publicregulatoryagency,the CanadianRadio-televisionand TelecommunicationsCommission(CRTC). However,the Canadiansports-mediacomplex hashistoricallybeena contestedterrain, so I beginthis chapter byfocusing on the political, economic,andideological strugglesbetweenvariouspublic and private networksto securethe mostpopular Canadian sportscontent,especiallybecause telecastsof Canadian teamsandathletes(amateurand professional) qualifyas Canadiancontent (accordingto the CRTC,all networks must fulfill specific Canadiancontent requirements). Thesedevelopmentshave,for now, culminatedin an oligopoly(a marketdominated by asmall number offirms) controlled by verticallyintegrated telecommunicationempires(Rogers,BCE,and Quebecor) that ownanddistributevastamounts ofsportscontentto subscribers acrossa hostof print, radio,television, andInternet platforms. Whilethese broadeconomic dynamicsand,indeed, our personaldigital viewing habits mayseem entirely natural and normalizedincluding the relatively new practice of payingfor sporting and other mediacontentthere is, in fact, afascinating history of sports broadcastingin Canada,especiallyin the context of a much broader struggle Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology233
betweencompeting visionsand modelsof broadcasting(e.g., public versusprivate). These strugglesinevitably raise questions of cultural citizenship and whether key elements of national popularculture (such as NHL hockeygames)and events of national significance (like the Olympic Games)ought to beavailablefor all Canadiansin English and French over the air without additional costsorfees(Scherer & Harvey,2013). Popularsportscontent distributedbyvarious mediaplayacritical rolein organizingbroader ideologiesthrough which Canadiansmakesenseofsocialrelations andthe waysthat they see themselvesand debateaboutsociety,culture,politics,andsport. The media,of course,doesnot sell an innocent product: Theyproduceincreasinglyspectacularculturalsportingtexts and rituals that are manufacturedaccordingto a host of economic,ideological, andinstitutional pressures, including widelyembracedcommonsenseunderstandingsabout whatconstitutes good television (Gruneau,1989). Yetthe sheerpresenceof mediated sport contentand the narrativestructure oftelevisedsportin particularis so deeplytaken for grantedandfamiliar that weoften onlyfully appreciateits existenceas asocial constructionin the rareinstances whenthe flow ofsport contentis significantlyruptured. Thisis preciselywhatoccurredbetween Augustand October2005 when,thanks to a Canadian Media Guildstrike, CBC broadcast several CFLgameswith neither commentarynor additionaleffects(e.g., pregameprofilesand storylines,instant replay,close-upimages,statistical graphics,varioussound effects). Assuch, following manyof the theoreticalideas outlinedin Chapter2 on critical theories,I examine some ofthe ideological effectsof mediaassitesof struggleover various meanings and cultural identities, especiallythose associatedwiththe social constructionof popularunderstandingsof community/nationalidentity, gender,race/ethnicity, and militarism within andthrough various mediated sportrituals (the GreyCupand SuperBowl,the Stanley Cup,etc.). Finally,it is alsoimportant to considerthe role of sportsjournalists in promoting the fused economic andideological interests of a male-dominatedsports-mediacomplex and some ofthe uniqueoccupationalstructuresthat continueto set powerfullimits and pressures on the agency ofjournalists that workto restrict a broaderrange of coverage(including critical commentary, coverageof female and amateur athletes, etc.). However,thanks to widerprocessesof convergenceand concentration andthe emergenceof a host of technological developments(most notably Twitter), the workroutines and labour practices of sportsjournalists have undergonesubstantialtransformation. Thereis now moreaudience interaction than ever beforebetweensportsreporters,fans, and at times playersthemselves, markinga profoundtransformationin the way Canadiansconsumedigitalsport content.
Box 11.1
Key Terms Mass
media: The institution
Contribution
to sport:
Mediamaking:
and cultural ships,
Enhances
Aterm
are themselves
being
struggles:
producing
the
studied
apart from
context
of their
that
developed
produces
and distributes
commercial to emphasize
of sport
that the
interpretation,
and produces
media produces
made and re-created
by generations
[W]e
media and all of the relationships
must see the
world at the same time the
viability
information,
active relationships
economic,
political,
234Chapter
that
in
and cultural
11
the
of Canadians
world is
which they relationships
producing
sport-specific
and distributes against the that the the
are always involved: (Grossberg,
and entertainment
various
backdrop
We cannot
and ideology.
content
means that study
Whitney,
mass audiences.
just
as the
of a host of political
media are involved
media. This
Wartella,
values
to
&
the
in the
media debates
as active relationmedia cannot
media apart from
Wise, 2006,
p. 7).
be the
The CAnAdiAn
SpoRTS-MediA CoMpLex
The Early Days of Canadian Television1 Theera oftelevisedsport beganin Canada in 1952, whentelevised hockey was introduced on Canadaspublic broadcaster,CBCin Englishand Radio-Canada in French. Despitethe initial trepidation of leaguepresident ClarenceCampbell,whocalledthe arrival of television the greatest menaceof the entertainment world (Rutherford, 1990,p. 242), by the mid-1950s watching HNIC on CBCand Lasoireedu hockeyon Radio-Canadahadbecomea quintessential Canadianpastimeinsertedinto the rhythms ofthe Canadianyear. Pointingto the significanceofthe emergent mediumoftelevisionin the sports-mediacomplex, bythe late 1950s revenuesfrom bothbroadcasts had becomeasignificant factor in the profits ofthe Montreal and Toronto NHLteams and in the finances of the public broadcasteritself (Rutherford, 1990).Importantly, the popularity of these hockey broadcastsalso provided muchneeded Canadiancontentfor CBC,which was, to the chagrin of manyhighbrowcultural nationalists, dependenton popular USimports to pleaseaudiencesand attractadvertisingrevenue. The early daysof Canadiantelevision and the televised sports-mediacomplex have been widelyacknowledgedasa golden age (Rutherford, 1990). This wasan erain which CBC and Radio-Canadaenjoyed a monopoly position as national broadcaster with a mandateto expressand promote aseparate Canadianconsciousness,especiallygiven the increasing presenceand popularity of USculture and Hollywood productsfor Anglophone Canadiansnorth of the border. This wasalso,importantly, an erain whichthe ideological valuesof publicservicebroadcasting wererelatively dominantin Canadiansociety. Thefirst ofthese valuesincluded universal accessibilityand the establishment of the viewing rights (Rowe, 2004a) of Canadiansthe ability to maketelevision programming,to the extent that wastechnically possible,availableover the air to all Canadians, including households in rural andremote areas,in both officiallanguageson CBCand Radio-Canada.Theprinciple of universalaccessibility wasclearlyaligned with a broaderpostwarpolitical agendaasthe Canadiangovernmentsoughtto providefor all citizens,rich or poor,the basiceconomic necessitiesoflife, but alsoa nationalstandardof public cultural andleisure amenities,including accessto libraries, recreationfacilities, and populartelevision content on CBCand Radio-Canada. Thesecond value of the public broadcastingera wasuniversalaccessto a breadth of programsthat wererepresentativeof a common culture, a notoriouslydifficult conceptto definein light of the numerousdivisionsin Canadiansociety, mostnotablythe enduring linguistic and regional divisions between Anglophones and Francophones. Still, the Canadiangovernmentscommitmentto asplit service public networkin Englishand French madeit possibleto introduce a diverseand ambitiousarrayof visual programs(musical game shows, highbrow quizzes,historical docudramas,concert music,and intellectual panel discussions)and a host ofsporting events,including CFLfootball, wrestling,boxing, womens softball,roller derby,and of courseongoingcoverageof hockeyon HNIC and Lasoiree du hockey.Duringthe 1950s,then, watchingsports on CBCand Radio-Canadawasquickly naturalized and, through all of these developments,live televisedsport becameunderstood asimportant componentsof a Canadianwayoflife and asapublic good that added to the lives of manycitizensin both officiallanguages.In fact, agrowing appetitefor weekendsports coverageacrossthe country prompted CBCand Radio-Canadato expandtheir programmingto include curling, soccer,international hockey,bowling,skiing, swimming,
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology235
figure skating, and golf (Rutherford, 1990), although it wasnationally significant events that capturedthe biggestaudiences.Forinstance, 5 million Canadianswatchedthe 1959 Grey Cup matchbetweenthe WinnipegBlue Bombersandthe Hamilton Tiger Catsonly the final gameof the Stanley Cupplayoffsgainedalarger audience(Cavanaugh, 1992). In the earlydaysoftelevision,then, the Canadiansports-mediacomplex wasboth a public anda privateinstitutiona mixtureof publicbroadcasting,professionalandamateursport,and commercialadvertising.It wasa alsoa predominantly masculineexperience,and CBCand Radio-Canada suppliedan overwhelmingamount of malesport that wasconsumedby mostly maleaudienceswithgreaterlevels of disposable income andinfluencein family households.For example,Canadiansport historianandformer OlympianBruceKidd(1996a) hasrightly argued that the partnershipbetween CBCandthe NHL distortedthe developmentof Canadiansport and culturealongtwo keylines. First,the sheerquantity of airtime dedicatedto NHL hockey onthe public broadcaster reinforcedthe symbolic annihilation of womenssport withregard to mainstreammediathat hadpublic authority (Kidd, 1996a,p. 259).Indeed,onceadvertisersdiscoveredthe remarkable ability ofsportsbroadcasts to assembleaffluent maleconsumers for their sponsorsappeals (Kidd, 1996a,p. 260),the new broadcastingterrain wasquickly structuredto ensurethat womenssport washeavilyunder-represented. Second,telecastsofthe mostpopular menssportson CBClike NHL hockeyandthe CFLwere alsopubliccelebrations of hegemonic masculinity(Connell, 2005),anissuethat I willreturn to shortly. Oneofthe mostsignificant developments in the Canadian sports-mediacomplexoccurred in 1961 when CBCsdualrole asnational broadcasterandregulatorendedthanksto the longstandingstruggleby private broadcasters andtheir ideological alliesto establishanindependent broadcastingregulator, the Boardof Broadcast Governors(BBG), nongovernment stations(secondstations)in cities where CBC wasinstalled and,crucially,the first national private network, CTV. NicknamedThe Network That MeansBusiness, CTVs emergence ran in stark contrastto the birth of CBC, which wasintended to bea publicinstrument of nationhood. Whilethe pursuitof profit unabashedlymotivatedthe businessmenwhoinvested in CTV,they alsosharedanideologicalaffinity to showcaseCanadianprivateenterpriseand to destabilizethe ideological valuesassociatedwith public broadcasting (Nolan, 2001). Theparamountrole ofsport in the establishmentof CTV cannot beunderstated. The BBG hadearlier awardedJohn Bassett,the owner ofthe CFLs Toronto Argonautsfootball club, the television licence for the lucrative Toronto market,and to the surpriseof CBC, Bassettpurchasedthe 1961 and 1962rights to broadcastthe BigFour(eastern CFL)games andthe first right ofrefusalfor the Grey Cup. Bassett,however,lacked the facilities and a national networkto distribute his newly acquired CFLcontent and,assuch, he wasunable to providethe games with sufficient exposurefor advertisers. Oneof Bassettsrival applicantsfor the television station in Toronto, Spencer Caldwell,however,hadreceived BBG approval to form a national network in 1960, and Bassett would ultimately join with Caldwells networkto securea distribution systemfor the CFLgames, which werevaluable Canadiancontent. This agreement,in turn, promptedthe otherseven newlylicensed privatestationsto alsosign upto the network, and ultimately securedthe BBGsfinal approval in 1961for CTV to begin operating. As Nolan(2001, p. 27) notes,(w)ithout the Big Four easternconferenceof the CFL, CTV might never haveemergedasa network. Theentrance of CTV signalleda newera of competition for sports broadcastingrights betweenthe public and private networks,resultingin significant increasesin televisionrevenuesfor varioussportsleaguesincluding the NHLandthe CFL. Meanwhile,Canadiansports
236Chapter
11
fansfrom coastto coastenjoyedan evengreateramount of over-the-aircoverageof sport on CBCand CTV. Bythe mid-1960s,within aclimate oflow unemployment,high disposable incomes,suburbanization,newlevels of homeand car ownership,andsubstantialincreasesin the purchaseof light consumergoods,both CBCand CTV continued to staketheir claims and battledto deliversignificant weekendaudiencesfor advertisersvia expandedsportsprogramming. Thesport-driven audiencecommodity (Smythe, 1977)a very predictableand stable demographic/marketcomposedof mostly maleviewerswas alwaysthe overriding productthat these networks wereputtingtogetherto sellto variousadvertisersandsponsors. CTV,for example,washighly influenced by U.S.modelsandthe behaviourof American audiencestowards sports broadcasting (Nolan, 2001, p. 143), and the Canadiannetwork beganto showlessexpensivebroadcastsof WideWorldof Sports(obtainedthrough an arrangement withthe USnetwork ABC)that blended major USandinternational sportingcompetitions and, crucially, a numberof live ortaped Canadiansporting events.For example,the 19641965 seasonof WideWorldof Sports featured a mixof waterskiing,softball, horseshows, wrestling,car racing, golf,soccer,andtennis. CTV,importantly, underscoredthe value of a combined USand Canadiansports television packagefor its stations acrossthe country, which hadto meet Canadiancontent requirements:Self-Balancing Canadian Content (Nolan, 2001,p. 143)that wasableto deliverthe younger,larger, higherincomefamiliesin CTVsten vital marketingareas (Nolan, 2001, p. 143). CTV alsointroduced newtypes of colourfuland provocativesports-relatedprogrammingsuch asthe SportsHotSeatthat featured an opinionatedpanel of questionersand astrongguestfrom the sporting worldto respondto acontroversial,topical issue[to] stimulateinterest among viewers (Nolan, 2001,p. 145). Sportstelecasts werethus the lifeblood of the private broadcaster (Nolan, 2001, p. 144) and deliveredsignificant audiencesthat could besoldto advertisers.By 19651966, for example,sponsorswerepaying $1,050for a 60-secondspot during 26 consecutive weeks of CTVs WideWorldof Sports(Nolan, 2001). CTVs executivesalsorecognizedthe ability of specific sports to deliver different marketsegmentsto advertisers.For example, more affluent menwatchedcoverageof golf andrepresenteda valuablecommodity that could be sold to moreupmarketcompaniesvia advertising. Coverageof golf continuesto capture a demographicof primarily affluent, middle-aged,white men,whichis preciselywhy,to this day, BMW, Rolex,and bankandinsurance companiespaysignificant amountsof moneyto advertise duringthe mostprestigiousgolf events and tournaments aroundthe world(in 2013,for example, over $1.6 billion wasspent on golf sponsorship). Networkshave historically useddifferent sportsto deliverspecific audiencesto advertisers.Forexample,comparethe audiencecommodity that networks put together for advertisersduringthe Brier curling championship versusvarious World WrestlingEntertainment(WWE) events. Still,it was the mostpopularsportsthat capturedtruly nationalaudiences,and CTV continued to stakeits claimsin the Canadiansports-mediacomplex by providingcoverageof a successionof Winter Olympicsbeginning withthe 1964 Games in Innsbruck, Austria. CTV also beganairing NHL hockeygameson Wednesday nights,capturingsignificant national audiences for advertiserseven on weeknights.CBCand Radio-Canada,meanwhile,enjoyeda significant presence in homesacrossthe countrythrough telecastsof professionalandamateur events,including Canadiancollegeathletics,track andfield meets, alpineskiing, andthe SummerOlympic Games.However, it wasthe sport of hockeyand weeklybroadcastsof HNIC and Lasoireeduhockeythat remainedthe mostvaluableand popularsport programfor the public broadcaster.Despite the entranceofthe privatesectorin the Canadiantelevisionsports-media
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology237
complex, CTV and CBCcomplementedeach other on a number oflevels. Both networks providedasignificant amountof over-the-aircoverageoflive USand Canadiansportingcontent, including joint coverageof a numberof high-profileeventsincluding the 1972 Summit Seriesbetween Team Canadaandthe Soviet Unionandthe annual GreyCupgame.
A New Sport Broadcasting Order? Bythe early 1960s,the entrance of cabletelevision had already begunto radically transform the continental medialandscape, thus opening the door to UStelevision signals whilesiphoning audiencesawayfrom both CTV and CBC.In the context ofthe full emergence of cabletelevision duringthe late 1960sand early 1970s,the competition between the public and privatesectorintensified andfurther escalatedthe cost ofsports properties, andincreasedthe pressureon CBCand CTVto retain Canadiansportscontent. In an effort to meetits 80% Canadiancontent requirements,for example, CBC continued to expandits coverageof sport to include international hockey,the Olympicand Commonwealth Games, in addition to covering Canadastwo MLBteams,the Toronto BlueJaysandthe MontrealExpos. Withinthis context, the amount of airtime dedicatedto sports on CBC emergedasthe target of criticism on two widely different fronts. First, CTVs executivesresented havingto compete againstthe public broadcasterfor the most popularsports broadcastingrights that capturedlucrative national audiencesfor advertisers,especiallyasthe emergent cableindustry wasgraduallyerodingits marketshare. Second, manyof Canadascultural elite openly disagreedwith the significant presenceof professionalsport and other examplesof mass/commercial entertainment (especiallypopular USprograms)on CBCat the expenseof otherhighbrow programming (i.e., the arts). In fact, CBC wasactively targeted on both of thesefronts duringits CRTClicence renewal hearingsthroughout the 1970sand wellinto the 1980sand hadto continually defendits role in providing popularsports content for all Canadians(Scherer & Harvey,2013). Atthe dawn of the 1980s,[w]ith economictremorsfrom the end ofthe postwarboom rocking the economyand U.S.satellite signalsnibbling at the edgesofthe broadcastsystem, the federal government developeda new policy vision for the communications sector (Skinner, 2008,p. 7). Centralto this newnational communicationsagendawasan expanded subscription cablesystemto provide anincreasedrange of specialty Canadianandforeign programmingservicesto helpretain Canadianaudiences.Unlike CBCand CTV, which were networksthat wereavailableover the air for all Canadians,these newspecialty channels werediscretionaryservicesto bepurchased from cabledistributorsaspart of bundledpackages. It waswithin the context of the expansionof cabletelevision that anothersignificant developmentin the history of the Canadiansports-mediacomplex occurred:In 1984the CRTClicensedthe countrysfirst 24-hourcablesportsspecialtychannel, TSN,ownedbythe Labatt Brewing Company(its sister network,the all-sportFrench-language service RDS, was licensedin 1989). TSN wasclearlyestablishedto promotethe Labattbrandand products,but it wasalsoa crucialcircuit of promotion (Whitson, 1998)for the breweryto marketits MLB team,the Toronto BlueJays,to a principally maledemographicthat advertiserswantedto target. TSN quickly emergedasa competitorto the majornational networks(Sparks,1992) and, asaresult ofits solefocus onsport,the emergentcablechannel wasableto providefull coverage of entire tournaments,sporting events,and playoffseries without disruptingregularly scheduled prime-time shows. Sucha development gave TSN an immediate competitive advantagethat offered guaranteedexposurefor sporting events, whichin turn enticed other 238Chapter
11
leaguesandevent organizers to side with TSNratherthan anyofthe otherbig three Canadian conventional broadcasters (Global, CTV,and CBC) (Neversen,2010,p. 37). In addition to these developments,other political pressureswerealsoonthe horizonfor CBCasthe neoliberal era ascended(see Chapter4). In 1984, a new ConservativePrime MinisterBrian Mulroneydeclaredthe countryto beopen for business,settingthe stagefor the landmark freetrade agreement withthe United Statesin 1988.Importantly, the federal governmentimmediately directed CBCto cut its budgetby 10% (Raboy, 1996) andinitiated a host of marketreforms that wouldeventuallylead to the further expansion of the broadcastingsystemin favour ofthe privatesector. The political and economic pressureon the public broadcaster wasfurther heightened during the early 1990s as a result of the impacts of globalization (see Chapter14) and the emergenceof newsatellite and digital technologies that wereradically transforming the broadcastingand telecommunication industries. Indeed, all ofthese developmentssignalleda decisivepower shift towards the subordination of the public interest to private, commercial interests (Winseck, 1995, p. 101), andthe ascensionof a neweraof consumer-driven digitaltelevision characterized by unprecedentedlevels of consumerchoice and customizedchannels(Skinner, 2008). Theentrance of TSN/RDSalsoradically heightenedthe competition for popularsport programming.It wasatthis point that privatebroadcastersandtheir ideological alliesmost notably the Globeand Mailstepped up their lobbying effortsto force CBC and RadioCanadato abandonits coverageof the mostlucrative and desirablesports, mostnotably NHL hockeyandthe Olympic Games (Scherer & Harvey,2013) duringan era offiscal austerity. However,just asthey had donefor the pasttwo decades,CBC and Radio-Canada executivesvigorouslydefendedthe commitment they had madeto HNIC and Lasoireedu hockey in general,andto televisingthe playoffsin particular,pointing to the hugeaudiences that hockey attracts and the advertising revenues that hockey telecasts bring to the networkrevenues that subsidizeother programmingand Canadiancontent. Whilethe publicsector wasdealing withsignificant cutbacks,the CRTCcontinuedto license newspecialtysport channels owned by majorcorporate playersin the broadcasting industry (e.g., Sportsnet2),whilelongstandingregulatoryframeworksthat kept broadcasting andtelecommunications marketsseparatewererescindedbythe federal Liberalgovernment. Barriersthat onceseparated print, broadcasting,telecommunications, and information/ computersectorsevaporatedandtriggeredan unprecedentedaccelerationof mergers andacquisitions(Mosco,2003).In 2000,for example,BCEbought CTV(Canadaslargestprivatetelevision network) and withit acquired TSN/RDS. BCEthen struck an alliance withthe countrys premier national newspaper the Globeand Mailand combined CTV andthe Sympatico-Lycos portal(andits othercontent creationassets) to form Bell Globemedia.Ayearlater, Rogers (the ownerofthe Toronto BlueJays)acquiredSportsnetfrom CTV. Coinciding withthesepatterns of convergenceand concentration wasthe entrance of digital television and,in 2001,over 200 CRTC-approveddigitaltelevision channelswerelaunchedin Canada, including a hostof newspecialtysport channelsthat werefinancially backedbythe mostsuccessfuland,indeed, pre-establishedmediaplayersin the Canadianmarket(Neverson,2010). All ofthese developmentsheraldedand encouragedtighter integration in the communications and infotainment industries as deep-pocketedmediaconglomerateslike BCEand Rogersbeganto aggressivelycompetefor premiumsport content that could be distributed and cross-marketed to subscribersthrough a hostofintegrated digitalinformation and entertainment servicearenas.Giventheir size, Rogersand BCEalsohavethe ability to overpayfor varioussports broadcastingrights and amortize those costs over various properties and Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology239
platforms(television channels,Internet, radio, and print properties),including multiple feeds(TSN2, RDS, RDS2,Sportsnet One,etc.) and mobilephones.3Rogersand BCEhave alsojoined forces as a consortiumto securebroadcastingrights, just asthey did to winthe rights to the 2010 Winter Olympic Games in Vancouverandthe 2012 Summer Games in London with an exorbitant and entirely unprofitable bid of $153 million. Assuch, these telecommunications giants are now ableto vastly outbid CBC/Radio-Canada,which are inevitably limited by constraintsonthe public purseandlack similar distribution networks.4
The End of Viewing
Rights for Canadians?
Predictably,in the new millenniuma numberof propertiesthat hadonceaired on CBC(e.g., CFLfootball, curling,the 2010/2012 Olympic Games, the FIFA World Cup, MLSSoccer, andthe Toronto Raptors)werepurchasedby BCEand Rogers to supply muchneededpopular content to their growing number of distribution networks.In 2004, moreover,RDS(and its parent company BCE)securedthe exclusiverights for all French-languageNHL hockey broadcasts,markingthe demiseofthe venerableLasoireedu hockeyat Radio-Canadaandthe ability of French Canadiansto have over-the-air accessto nationally significant sporting events,including the gamesofthe MontrealCanadiensandthe Stanley Cupplayoffs. Despitewidespread speculationthat CBC wouldsufferasimilarfate andlosethe national broadcastingrights to NHL hockeyand HNIC, in 2007 CBCand the NHLsigned a new six-year dealrumoured to be worth $600 milliona stunning increasefrom the previous annualfee of $65 million. Thedeal wascrucialfor CBC, which hasfor manyyearsstruggled to developgenuinelypopular Canadiancontentthat consistentlyreachesnational audiences throughout the broadcastingweek,especiallyduring prime-time hours. HNIC also provides CBC with animportant promotional platformfor the public network,andthe show continuesto providea vital revenuestream(long rumouredto behalf of CBCsadvertisingrevenue) that subsidizes the widerange of other programmingon the network. Accordingto Richard Stursberg(the former headof CBCsEnglishservices),so centralis HNICto the financing of the public broadcasterthat withoutthe showthe CBC wouldfall into agravefinancial crisis that wouldimperil its survival (2012, p. 148). Moreover,givenits current budgetarycuts, CBCsimply could neverafford to replacethe 400+ hoursof prime-time Canadiancontent with original dramatic programsprograms that wouldbe expectedto competeagainstthe mostpopular USprogramsthat air on CTV and Global. AsStursbergnotes, An average one-hour drama coststhe commission on a total
CBC between $400,000 and $450,000 per hour to
budget of $1.21.4
million (the rest being
made up from the
Canadian MediaFund and tax credits). Given their normal audiences, Canadian dramas rarely
make$200,000 in advertising revenue. This meansthat each hour of drama com-
missionedby the CBC produces aloss of atleast $200,000. It can beseen,then, that if four hundred hours of hockey werereplaced withfour hundred hours of drama,the CBC would needto find an additional $80100 would have to be supplemented television
million. At the sametime, the Canadian MediaFund with another $80100
production tax credits would befurther
million, and the governments
drawn by a comparable amount. In
other words,if the government wanted the CBC to eliminate hockey and replace it with original
Canadian drama, the costs would be somewhere between $240 million and
$300 million. (The Tower of Babble: Sins, Secretsand SuccessesInside the CBC, Richard Stursburg, 2012, Douglasand McIntyre. Reprinted with permission from the publisher.)
By2012,it wasonceagain widelyanticipatedthat the public broadcasterwouldbeeasily outbid by TSN and Rogers for the English-languagehockeybroadcastingrights. Andin 2013, 240Chapter
11
Rogerspurchased the exclusive Canadianrights to the NHLfor the next 12yearsat astaggering costof $5.2billion whilealsoshutting outits competitor TSN. CBC did, however, manageto securean agreement with Rogers to continueto air HNICfor an additionalfour years oncethe public broadcasterscontract withthe NHL expiresin 2014. While CBC will pay nothingfor this arrangement,it will not receive a cent of revenuefrom the advertisingthat airs during HNIC. Rogerswill alsoassumetotal editorial control overthe show. Still, even without editorial control andthe ability to generateadvertisingincome, the continuation of HNICin the short term will providevital prime-time Canadiancontent andspare CBCfrom havingto produceothercostly original programmingto fill the voidleft by hockeytelecasts. Canadianswill haveconsiderablechoicein hockey gamesthat will air on a number of Rogers-owned specialty channels(albeit at a cost)in addition to the Rogers-controlled HNIC on CBC until at least 2018(although notin French). However,at the conclusion ofthat agreement, Canadiansfrom acrossthe country mayberequired to payincreasingly costly feesto accessNHL content on Rogersstelevision channels and online platforms. Thesedevelopments will signal the end of the viewing rights of Canadiansto have accessto over-the-air coverageof hockeytelecasts(events of national significance), while also markinganother stagein the privatization ofthe sports-mediacomplex.Indeed, CBC and Canadiantaxpayers have built and supported the NHL for over 50 yearsthrough extensive and high-quality coverageofthe sport, although it appearsthat the privatesector is nowset to reap the substantial benefitsfrom this historical public foundation. All of these developments, moreover,raiseimportant questionssurroundingthe institution of public broadcastingin Canadaand the type of role that the public broadcaster should playin contemporary Canadianlife. Forexample, will CBC beableto survive without NHL hockey? Oris it destinedto morphinto a PBS-like model(subscribersupported) that only providescontent that the private networksdeemto be unprofitable? Whatwould Canadalook like without the presenceof a public broadcasterthat hasthe ability to providea widerange of content (including sport) for all Canadians,regardlessoftheir level of income? Shouldthere belegislation, asthere is in Australiaand manyEuropeancountries, to enshrinethe viewing rights of Canadiansto haveover-the-air accessto sporting events of national significance(Scherer & Rowe,2013)? Theseare not solely the privateissuesof hockeyfans, but rather a public matterof nationalinterest that affectsall Canadians.
The IdeologIcal
Role of The MedIa
(Re)presenting Sport I have notedthroughout this chapterthat the organizationand structure of varioussports have been profoundlytransformedinto increasingly exciting and dramaticspectaclesthat could besoldto television networks. Thesenetworks,in turn, producedentertainingsports programmingto capturethe imagination and attention ofsizableaudiencesto bedeliveredto advertisers.Beginningin the 1960s,the imperatives oftelevision dictatedsubstantialchanges to professional(and amateur)sport, including rescheduling gametimes to primetime to maximizetelevision viewing audiences,the introduction of prearrangedtelevision timeouts for advertisersthat inevitably interrupt the flow of variousgames,the relocation offranchises to urbancentres withlarger television markets (and, hence,the prospectof greatertelevision revenue), and even the creation of entirely newsports that are supported by television revenue (e.g., mostrecently, Twenty20 cricket). Networkexecutives, meanwhile,lobbied
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology241
variousleaguesto makespecificrule changesthat would makesportseven moreexcitingfor television viewers. The NHL,for example, hasadopted a number of rules overthe years, including shorter overtime periods(with fewer playersallowed onthe ice) andshootoutsto further dramatize the sport of hockey. The NBA implemented the three-point shot to increasescoring,andthe AmericanLeaguein MLBapprovedthe useof designatedhitters to increaseoffensiveproduction. Thereplacement of matchplay(player againstplayerover 18 holes)for stroke play(wherescorescumulate overfour daysof play) hasheightenedthe dramain golf and madeit moreappealingto viewing audiencesaroundthe world. As notedabove,the economic pressureto cultivatelarger television audiencesin addition to the widerange ofinformational possibilities madepossiblebytelevision and a host of newtechnologies haveradically restructuredthe live sporting experienceasasportstelevision program. You arelikely well aware of the vast differencesbetweenattending alive sporting event and watchingcoverageofsport ontelevision or on variousnew mediadevices. Or,as Richard Gruneau,David Whitson,and Hart Cantelon(1988, p. 266) havesuggested, The representation of sport on television . . . presentsa different event in which the conventions of camera workand narrativecombineto renderideology much morepresent than it is when oneis viewing the event live, without mediation. Ratherthan merely capturing andrecordingsporting events,television transformsthose eventsthrough replays, soundseffects,graphics,close-upcamerashots, commercials,and vastamounts of pre- and postgamecoveragethat expert commentators drawfrom selected dominant narratives and codes.To alarge extent,though,it is through the live verbalcommentarybythe broadcastingteamthat the television sport narrativeis constructed(Goldlust, 1987)a narrative that privilegescertain culturalidentities andideologieswhile leaving others meanings and valueswhichcould bereadily associatedwithsport very muchin the background (Gruneau et al., 1988, p. 267).In other words,both sport andthe mediaare important sitesin the construction of acommon sense which makesexistingsocial practicesandsocial relations seemlike reflections of naturerather than productsof history (Gruneau et al., 1988,p. 265). Televisedsporting eventsaresubsequentlycontoured by producersand commentators accordingto varioushierarchies.Thesehierarchiesinclude the actualsportselectedfor television, but alsothe type ofsocially constructedcontent associatedand prioritized withthe event including personalizationstrategies(e.g.,afocus onindividual star athletesand hero-making) and variousdescriptive andinterpretive accountsthat arealwayscontextually specific. As notedat the start ofthis chapter, CBCattemptedto cover a CFLgame with noaudio(other than crowd noise)orspecialeffects, muchto the irritation ofleagueofficials whorecognized that their television product wasbeing devaluedandthat audiencesweretuning out. Clearly, manysporting eventsneedextensivenarrativeand dialogueto createappealingstorylinesand dramaticcontent to realizetheir potential astelevision spectacles.Forexample,the production of alpine skiing events demandsconsiderablenarrative,in partto identify individual competitors who wearsimilar equipment and clothing, but alsoto simply know whohadthe bestrun (Cantelon & Gruneau,1988).In turn, producersof alpineskiing events workhardto manufactureand emphasizevariousentertainment valuesthat focus onspectacle,individual performance,humaninterest, competitive drama,uncertainty, and risk (Gruneau, 1989, p. 148). Sportssuch as baseball,golf, and cricket, meanwhile,require significant amounts of narrativeto heightenvariousdramaticelementsto keepthe attention oftelevision viewers duringlulls in the action (Goldlust, 1987). Othersportsthat havehighlevels of continuous dramaandaction(such astennis and hockey)simply do notrequireas muchin-game narrative.
242Chapter
11
Equallyinteresting is that the style of commentary associatedwith particular sports often variestremendously andis reflective of the intended television audience: For example, compared to with the
style of television origins.
most other sports, tennis has been traditionally
middle and upper-middle classes, played in commentary
accompanying
associated
well appointed tennis clubs. The
tennis tends to reflect those social
At Wimbledon, the tone of the television
commentators is hushed and rever-
ent; they remain silent during the points, asthe spectators are expected to do.. . . In sharp contrast,
the television
footballsports
strongly identified
commentary with the
accompanying
the
various codes of
working and lower-middle
to beloud, continuous and overly descriptive. (Goldlust,
classestends
1987, pp. 9697)
Thesesentiments can easily beidentified in Canadaif wecomparesome of the commentary on Don Cherrys Coachs Cornerto coverageof majorPGA golf tournaments. Thus, whilethe Canadiansports-mediacomplex producesspectaclesof accumulation and consumerism,also producedarespectaclesoflegitimation that socially construct and privilege certain cultural identities andideologies over others(MacNeill, 1996).In what follows, I presenta brief outline of some of the ideological meaningsand themesthat are prominent within sport mediacontent in Canada. WhileI have addressedthese issues individually, I encourageyouto consider howthey intersect and connect with each other to form dominant meaningsand values.
Gender and Sexuality Giventheir substantialinvestmentsin sports broadcasting rights andtheir ownershipof variousprofessionalsportsfranchises,it is of nosurprisethat Rogersand BCEcontinueto commit significant amountsofairtimeto their properties on arange of platformsto securesubscribers
Television transforms ALAN
sport.
OLIVER/Alamy
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology243
andsizable maleaudiences for advertisers.The mostobviousconsequenceofthese economic dynamicsis that, despitethe growthin the numberof girlsand womenplayingsport acrossthe country,coverageofsportin Canada remainsalmostexclusivelydevotedto mensprofessional sport, with the exceptionof the Olympic Games(everytwo years)and othersportssuch as figure skating, curling, golf,tennis, andincreasingly coverageofthe highly successfulCanadian womenssoccerteama perfectexampleofsociallyconstructedhierarchy.Interestingly, BCEdid commitsomeresourcesto establishingaspecialty digital sport channel exclusively devotedto womenssport,the WomensSport Network(WTSN) in 2001,but the channel wasultimately abandonedin 2003for two interrelated reasons.First, WTSN wasunableto generatesignificant audiencesto attract advertisingrevenue,andthe executivesat BCE were simply unwilling to tolerate evenshort-termlossesto keepthe channel onthe air and commit to along-term increasein the coverageof womenssport. However,accordingto Neversen (2010), the demiseof WTSNalso needsto be understoodin the context of the ideological assumptionsheld by manyofthe businessmen in the sports-mediacomplex whosimplyregard womenssport asaninferior product and not worththe airtime. Thefusion ofthe allied economicandideologicalinterests ofthe sports-mediacomplex has,for somescholars,pointedto the ascendanceof aTelevised Sports ManhoodFormula (Messner, Dunbar, & Hunt,2000) asa powerful,overarchingnarrativethat cutsacrosssports broadcastsand commercials. Thisformula celebratespopularunderstandingsof hegemonic masculinity(that menshould betough, aggressive, stoic/unemotional, and presumablyheterosexual)and consumptionin waysthat supportand expandthe economicambitions ofthe sports-mediacomplex. Forthe sociologist Mike Messner (2012), the cumulative impact of the Televised Sports ManhoodFormula is that it ties manyof our ownsportsfantasiesand understandingsof masculinityto our ownfears, anxieties,and failures as menin an everchanginggenderorder. Theformula, for example,habituallysells boysand mena glorified packageof what masculinityis andshould be,regularly nudgesus withremindersthat wedo not measureupto this standard,andthen offerscompensatoryproductsbeer, underwear, cars,shaving productsand,yes,erectile dysfunction medications. . . . (p. 115). Maleviewersarealsoroutinely exposedto crushing hits(legal and otherwise),violent fights betweenplayers,and a widerange of otherthundering altercations duringthe everpresentdaily highlight shows(e.g.,the hits ofthe week clipsthat air on TSNs SportsCentre, Sportsnets Connected, and on weeklysegmentsincluding Don Cherrys Coachs Corneron CBC). Sotoo areaudiencespresentedwith a never-endingrange of commercialsdesignedto reach maleaudiencesthat celebrateandlink these actions with variouscommodities.In fact, so naturalizedand laudedis the warrior mentalityand the useof mensbodiesas weapons (Messner, 1990)that, even after asequenceof catastrophicinjuries andthe deathsof NHL enforcers DerekBoogaard,Rick Rypienand WadeBelakin 2011,sportsfans wereprovided with only a briefcritical discussionofthese publicissuesonthe majornetworks.5 Nonetheless,whilethe audiencecommodity hashistoricallybeen a decidedly maleone, marketers haveslowly cometo the realizationthat they haveexcludedasignificant population offemaleviewersand, morerecently,the lesbian,gay,bisexual,trans, queer(LGBTQ) population (Robinson,2002).In recentyears,there hasbeenasubtlerecalculation ofthe Televised Sports ManhoodFormula, representinga newstagein the commodification of various male athletesandan expansionofthe style of masculinityto marketandsell a widerrange of productsto both menand women.Recentsportsstarsincluding David Beckham,Sidney Crosby, and Dan Carterof the NewZealand All Blackshaveeachappearedin a variety ofsexualized
244Chapter
11
commercialsthat wouldhavesimply been unthinkablefor an earliergenerationof maleathletes. Therehascertainly been morediscussionabout LGBTQ athletes(within definitelimits) in the Canadianmedia than everbefore,especiallyas moreand moreathletescomeout(including athletes whoarestill in the midstoftheir professionalcareers, suchasbasketballplayerJason Collins)and asvariouspolitical projectslike the You CanPlaycampaigngain momentumand areendorsedby high-profileathletes.Still,thereis an obviousabsenceof LGBTQ commentators andsports writers,whileold stereotypescontinueto linger. Duringcoverageof the 2010 Vancouver Olympic Games, for example, RDScommentators Alain Goldbergand Claude Mailhotengagedin the following dialogueabout USfigureskaterJohnny Weir(Sager,2010): Mailhot: This may not be politically
correct, but do you think
helost points dueto his
costume and his body language? Goldberg: Theyll think example.
Weshould
all the boys who skate will end up like
him. It sets a bad
make him passa gender test on this point.
I havealreadydiscussed some ofthe limitations surroundingthe sheerlack of coverage and systematic under-representationof female athletes and womenssport in the media, including ontelevision andin newspapers and various magazines like SportsIllustrated,where female athletesremainlargelyignored andsilenced.In alongitudinal study of SportsIllustrated between19901999, Lumpkin (2009) discoveredthat only 9.7% offeature articles wereon womenssportsorfemale athletes,andthe femininity ofthe athletes wasat times highlighted through sexistlanguage. Women, in fact, rarelyfeature onthe cover of SportsIllustrated,with the exceptionofthe magazines swimsuit edition. The CanadianAssociation for the Advancementof Womenand Sportand Physical Activity(CAAWS), meanwhile,producedanannual reportthat detailedthe newspaper coverageof womenandsport. Foryears,the level of coverageoffemale athletesconsistentlyrangedfrom 2%to a high of 8%,and CAAWS eventually stoppedreleasingtheir reportssimply because those numbersneverchanged(Robinson,2002). In a morerecent longitudinal study, Cheryl Cooky, Michael Messner,and Robin Hextrum(2013) underscoredafamiliar paradox: Whilegirls and womenare playingsport in greater numbersthan ever beforein high school, college, and at the professionallevel, after a briefincreasein womenssport coveragebetween19891999 (59%), the coverage offemale athletes on UStelevision subsequentlydescendedto its lowest amount of 1.6% in 2009. Ona moreoptimistic note,these researchersfound that the pattern ofideological trivialization andsexualization of womenin sports broadcastshasdeclinedin recent years. They also observed, however,that female athletes werestill framed in relation to four themes: (a) rare momentsof respectful coverage,(b) sexualized gagstories, (c) fights, assaults,and scandals,and (d) womenas wives,girlfriends, and mothers.Lesshopefully, the authorsacknowledgedthat the declinein negativeportrayalsof womenhasnot been accompaniedby anincreasein respectful,routine newscoverageof womenssport.Instead, whenthe newsand highlightsshows ceasedto portray womenathletesin trivial andsexualized ways,they pretty muchceasedto portraythem at all (Cooky et al., 2013, p. 223). Despite the continuedlack of coverageoffemale athletes,the digital eraandthe expansion of varioussport highlight shows(e.g., TSNs SportsCentre, Sportsnets Connected)have raisedthe profileoffemale broadcasters and asmall numberofreporters,althoughthesetrends havesimultaneouslyworkedto trivialize the voicesof womenin the sports-mediacomplex.For the mostpart, womenremainrelegatedto the role ofsidelinereportersor asyoung,sexualized sportsanchorsemployedto seeminglycapturethe maleaudiencecommodity.Indeed,there are
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology245
Former gold casts to boost Jeff
Vinnick/NHLI
medal Olympian, Cassie Campbell-Pascall,
now commentates
for
NHL broad-
male audiences. via
Getty Images
regularonline discussions about whois Canadashottestfemalesportscaster andit scarcely needs statingthatthesepredominantly youngandattractivewomen areheldto widelydifferent standards thantheir malecounterparts whoexhibitafar greateragerangeandlevel of attractiveness(Houston,2011).LauraRobinson (2002) hasdescribed asimilarpatternastheponytail rule, wherebypredominantlyyoung,white,attractive,and presumablyheterosexual women receivethelions shareofraresponsorship and mediaopportunities in the worldof sport. Allofthesedevelopments, ofcourse, speakto the extentto whichthe bodiesof professionalandamateur femaleathletes(who pose in variousmensmagazines orcalendars to augmenttheir income),in additionto popularfemale mediacommentators such as Cassie Campbell, JenniferHedger, and HazelMaenowexistascommodities to attract male audiences.
Militarism and Nationalism Sincethe Englishnovelistandsocialcritic GeorgeOrwellfamouslydescribed international sportaswar minus theshootingin 1945,sportsociologistshavedrawnourattentionto the sociallyconstructed links betweennationalism, internationalsportingcontests,and militarism, and howthe languageofsport commentatorshashistoricallybeeninterlaced with militarythemesandsayings(Burstyn,1999).Today,coverageofsportremainsso heavily saturatedandsteepedwithsymbolsof nationalidentity, militarism,andhegemonicmasculinity thatthe presence ofthoseimagesandideologiesand theirseemingly natural link to professionalmenssportin particularare oftentakenfor granted.Consider all ofthe militaristicsayingsandwar-speakthat areregularlyassociated withsport(long-bombs,blitzes, bounties,defensive lines,battlingin thetrenches).Ofcourse,ourregularexposure to images offighter jets and other militaryequipment,CanadianForcespersonnel,and eventhe memorialization offallen Canadian soldiers(e.g.,onshowslike CoachsCorner)hasnothing 246Chapter
11
to do with whatis happeningonthe ice or onthe football field. Thetelevision presentation ofthesethemes,though, is usuallyelaboratelydesignedand orchestratedto emphasizevariousdominant ideological positionsand national myths(and indeed the militaryindustrial complexin general),overlappingand equatingthe context ofthe hypermasculinewarriors of professionalsport with militarypersonnelandinterests(Scherer & Koch,2010). Indeed,thanks to its representational power,sport andthe mediacontinue to serve as powerfulsitesthrough which wetell stories about ourselves,about our communities, and about whatit means to be Canadian. Sport has, of course,long provided popular and compelling spectaclesto dramatize dominant national qualities, just asit hasalso provided occasionsfor public assertionsof us versusthem, especiallyduringinternational sporting competitions like the Olympic Gamesand other high-profile eventsincluding both the 1972 and 1974 Summit Seriesbetween Team Canadaand the Soviet Union (Scherer & Cantelon,2013; Scherer, Duquette, & Mason,2007).In theselatter contests, for example, hockeyacted as a mediumnot just for the expressionof national identity, but alsofor the reaffirmation of a preferredversionofnational character: tough and hard, passionateyet determined,individualistic (Gruneau & Whitson,1993, p. 267). Thesetypes of associationshaveplayedoutin innumerable countriesaroundthe world and, asJean Harveynotesin Chapter12, variousgovernmentscontinue to link dominant understandingsof nationalidentity and national character withthe lives of ordinary people and with widelysharedpopularexperiencesincluding sporting eventsand athletes.In other words, mediatedsporting experiencesthat commonlyfeaturetaken-for-granted connections to other national symbolsand rituals (e.g.,flags, anthems, political leaders) are powerful aspectsof what MichaelBillig (1995) hascalled banalnationalismthe habitual, day-to-day representationsof Canadathat workto socially construct powerful hegemonicunderstandings of nationalidentity, solidarity, and cohesiveness.Still,its alwaysimportant to question whetherthose visions of Canadianidentity haveinspired anything that even remotely approachesthe imaginedideals of a unified nation, especiallyin light ofthe fact that there have always been subordinated groups (French Canadians,First Nations, working-class people,and manywomen)who havebeen historically excludedfrom the processofimagining Canadaasa national community (Gruneau & Whitson,1993, p. 273).
Race and Ethnicity The mediahassignificant powerin socially constructingandshaping our understandingsof raceandethnicity. Forexample, ChrisSpence(1999) and CarlJames(2005) havearguedthat the over-representationof blackathletesin heavily mediated sportslike basketballandfootball (and, conversely,the under-representationof black menin other mediacontent andspheresof life) hasnaturalizeda widelyheldbeliefthat black menare naturallyathletica beliefthat has encouragedyoung mento internalize asenseof biologicaland cultural destinyandto aspireto be professionalathletesaboveother morerealistic occupations.Both Chapter5 onraceand ethnicity and Chapter8 on deviance, meanwhile,haveaddressed the role of the mediain representinghigh-profile Canadianathletessuch as BenJohnson(Jackson,1998) and NHL goalie RayEmery(Lorenz & Murray,2013) asracialothers, the social constructionofstereotypical racialidentities in the advertisingassociatedwiththe Toronto Raptors(Wilson, 1999) and,controversially,the useofindigenousimageryto marketandcelebrate Canadianidentity duringthe 1976 MontrealSummer Olympics,the 1988 Calgary Winter Olympics,and the 2010 Vancouver Winter Olympics(OBonsawin, 2013). There aresignificant historical Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology247
antecedentsto theseissues.Forexample, Aboriginal marathonerTom Longboat(18871949) wassubjectedto biasedmediacoverage(see Chapter5), whilethe legendary Canadiansprinter HarryJerome(19401982) wasthe subject ofracist mediacoverageduring his athletic career (seethe wonderfuldocumentary MightyJerome). Meanwhile,hockeyplayer Herb Carnegie (19192012), whowasnot allowedto playin the NHLsimply becauseofthe colour of hisskin, remainsunelectedto the HockeyHallof Fame(aform of media). For manyyears,the vast majorityof sports writersand commentators were,of course, white men who wieldedconsiderablepowerin terms of not only representing athletes of colour but alsoin rendering whiteness invisible. Still, Canadiansociety hasundergonesubstantive demographicchange,especiallyasaresult of unprecedentedlevels ofimmigration, andthese changeshavebeenreflectedto some degreein various mediacontent andcoverage. Relatedto this latter point, CBC Sportsextendedthe reach and depth of HNIC throughout anincreasingly diversecountry by providing broadcasts in Punjabi, Mandarin,and Cantoneseat different points overthe courseofthe last decade.Thereis alsoanincreasingly diverse numberoftelevision anchorsand on-airsportscommentators,such as CBCs Kevin Weekes and David Amber,and TSNs John Lu, Farhan Lalji, Jermain Franklin, Cabral Richards, Nabil Karim,and GurdeepAhluwalia. However,not all Canadianshave welcomedthese changes.For example,in 2013 Karim and Ahluwalia werepairedtogether as anchors on TSNs SportsCentre and weresubjectedto a numberofracist commentson Twitter by various anonymoustrolls (Dowbiggin, 2013). Former MLSEanchor Adnan Virk (who currently worksasan anchor at ESPN)respondedto the incident by notingthat hehad neverreceived racistinsults while workingin the United Stateswhilealsoremarking Canada hasthis pluralistic impression of itself and thinks ofitself as multicultural. Maybewere not asforward thinking as wethink weare (Dowbiggin, 2013). Finally, there remains a decisivelack of female journalists and sports commentators of colour in Canada,which maysuggestthat network executivesdo not yetregardfemale minoritiesassellablecommodities.
SpoRTS JouRnALiSM
And neW MediA
The professionofsport journalism hasbeen centralto the growth of both newspapersand commercial sport, while variousjournalists have played crucial roles in the social construction of sports newsand the representation of sporting eventsin Canada.Indeed, it is precisely becauseof their centrality in the sports-media complex itself that significant criticism hasbeenlevelled at sportsjournalists and various punditsfor beinglittle more than the toy department (Rowe, 2007) of the news mediaunabashed promoters of sport and boostersof specificfranchises, asopposedto rigorous,investigative, and critical commentators who work at a degreeof distancefrom the sportsindustry. Manyoftheseissueshavelong-term historicalantecedentsthat datebackto the foundation of the sports-mediacomplex in the latter decadesof the 18th century and the early decadesof the 19th century, an era of growthfor the advertising-dependingpressandthe consolidationof menssport(Burstyn, 1999). Aidedbythe developmentofthe wiretelegraph and the establishment of centralized newsagencieslike Reutersand the American Press, centralto the growth of massnewspaper circulationin this era wasabonding processbetween the daily pressandsport (Burstyn, 1999,p. 105). Regular sportsectionsprovedto beintensely popular with North Americanreaders,including agrowing middleclassof mostlymalereaders (the audience commodity). Onthis note, regular and detailed newspapercoverage
248Chapter
11
provided variousestablishedleaguesand competitions with culturallegitimacy and visibility and helpedto cultivate fans, resultingin asteady growth of payingspectatorsa developmentthat onlyjustified morenewspapercoverageandfuelled the promotionalrole of the press(Lowes, 1999). Theearlysports writers(nearly always men)were mainlypromotersfor the teamsandthe playerswith whomthey travelled (Hall, Slack, Smith, & Whitson,1991, p. 147),and helpedto makeheroesout ofstarathletesby mythologizingtheir athletic exploits whileignoring their privatelives. Sportsteamsrecognizedthe value of this publicity and grantedconsiderableaccessto athletesin locker rooms (a distinctly genderedoccupational structure)in addition to providing mediafacilities in variousarenas,stadiums,and ballparks to accommodatejournalists on the sportsbeat (i.e.,journalists whocover aspecificteam throughout the seasonand provideregular, detailedcoverageon a daily basis). It is precisely becauseof the close,longstanding, mutually beneficial relationship betweensport andthe mediathat the Canadiancommunicationsscholar MarkLoweshas simply notedthat Sports journalism is an oxymoron (quoted in Gilbert, 2011, p. 252). For Lowes,the role of sportsjournalists andthe mediain generalis not simply to entertain orto provideinformation and stories, but to marketprofranchises,their players,and the majorleagues while alsocreating an endlessflow of public buzzthat is indispensableto the franchise owners whoseprofits depend onfilling their stands with paying customers and selling the wholespectacleto television (quoted in Gilbert, 2011, p. 252). Lowess point is a crucial onein light of the sheer amount of coverageof gamestories, previews, and player profiles, which can all too easilyslip into simple cheerleadingand boosterism. It is alsoimportant to re-emphasizethe synergiesbetweenthe sports media,wealthy individuals, andthe concentrated group of corporationsthat now own variousfranchises and exert significant influence in the majorsporting leagues. As noted earlier, there is now unprecedentedownership of sporting properties bythree dominant telecommunications corporations(Rogers, BCE, and Quebecor)who,increasingly, cover their ownfranchiseson a massivenumber of platforms and distribution outletsthat they also own. How can wepossiblyexpect Rogerssemployeesto provide substantial critical coverageof the Toronto BlueJaysor the Toronto MapleLeafs(both Rogerssproperties)? Oris the main role of sportsjournalists and commentators to simply promote the expansiverange of productsandservicesin the Rogersempire on a continual basis? The corollary of these ownership patterns and the dominance of this promotional ideology in the pagesofthe sports section is a means not to know about amateursport, Paralympicsport, and womenssport in general.Indeed,it remainsstriking just howgenderedandincestuousthe sports-mediacomplexremains. Forexample,it is not uncommon for former playersand coachesto pursuetemporary andsometimes permanent careersas mediacommentators on sports panel showsthat, predictably, promotethe economic and ideological interests ofthe sports-mediacomplex ascommon sense. And whilethere have beensome gainsin terms ofthe number of femalesportsjournalists and commentators,it will take many moresubstantial changesto increasethe quality and quantity of the coverageof amateurand womenssport simply becauseofthe powerful vestedinterests that the deeplygenderedsports-mediacomplex hasin maintainingthe economic and ideological status quo. As Gilbert(2011, p. 255) hasnoted,this is a status quofrom which others, mostly men,stand to gain: owners, management,players, players agents, union leaders, sports equipment companies, ad agencieseverything thats integral to the professional sports behemoth,including the sports press.6
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology249
Nonetheless, the workroutines andlabour practicesofsportsjournalists haveundergone substantivechangesin recent years,andit is questionablewhethersport organizationsremain anywherenearas dependentonsportsjournalists andthe pagesofthe sportssection asthey werein an earlier era of commercial sport. First, a host of new mediatechnologies have allowed variousleaguesandindividual franchisesto independently producetheir own content and distributeinformation and commercial messages withoutrelying on sportsjournalists ortraditional mediaaltogether(Scherer &Jackson,2008). Mostfranchises,for example, simply post majorannouncements(trades, hirings,andfirings) on Twitterrather than relying on pressreleasesorindividual journalists to breakthe news.Increasingly,sportsteamsand organizationsarealsorestricting journalistic accessto athletessimply becausethey can control the flow ofinformation and publicity ontheir own networksand platformsrather than relying ontraditional journalists (although as weshallseebelow,there havebeen numerous information accidents by bothteamsand playerson various mediaplatformslike Twitter). Second,the heavily concentrated newspaperindustry in Canadahasbeen decimated thanks to declining subscriptionrates,substantially diminished advertisingrevenue, and a widerange ofissuesassociatedwiththe adoption of newdigital platformsto accommodatenew habitsof mediaconsumption.Sincethe 2008economicrecession,newsroomsacrossthe country havesufferedsignificantlayoffs,and budgetsto varioussportsdepartmentshaveundergone sizablecutsascost-savingandrestructuring measures.Asaresult,sportsjournalistsin Canada are now expectedto simply do morewithless (and onthe samesalary)andto continually produce unprecedentedvolumesof content for a host of online platforms(including blogs, podcasts,and varioussocial networkingsiteslike Twitter,let alonetheir normal storiesfor the newspaper) to appealto sportsfansin the digital era whodemandimmediateinformation andinteraction. Traditionalsportsjournalists mustnowcompete with other blogsandfreelance reporters,leading some observers to bemoanthe lack of qualityin contemporarysports journalism andthe presenceof evenlesscritical commentary(Hutchins & Rowe,2012). Whilethereis somesubstanceto these claims, Canadiansportsfans arefar from cultural dupes who apolitically ingest and regurgitate the dominant ideologies embeddedin the sports-mediacomplex.Forexample,in 2000 Canadians resoundinglyvoicedtheir opposition to the federal governments proposedsubsidyof CanadianNHLfranchisesto such an extent that Ottawa wasembarrassinglyforcedto rescindtheir subsidy proposal within daysof the original announcement(Scherer &Jackson,2004). Canadianshavealsotaken to Twitter, for example,to debateissuesrelating to both hockey and broader political issues during hockeytelecasts(Norman, 2012), whileother onlineforumssuch assport-relatedblogs, messageboards,YouTube,and varioussocial networkingsites(e.g., Facebook)allowfor perpetualand at times politicizedinteraction between mediaproducers,distributors,and users. Onthis latter note,the ascensionof various new mediatechnologiesin the digital era has been one of the significant developmentsin the formation and normalization of networked mediasport (Hutchins & Rowe,2012). Indeed, whilean older generation of Canadiansconsumedsport in an era of relative scarcity of qualitysport content and alimited number of analoguetelevision channels, a digital plenitude now prevails and has becomeaninescapablepart of the normal rhythm of the dailylives of most Canadians, especiallyfor a youngergeneration whohavegrown upin an era whereit is simply natural to accessaseeminglyendlessamount of digital sportscontent on phones,tablets, and other devices. However,rather than erodingthe audiencefor televisedsport and destroyingthe televisedsport experience, new mediatechnologies aresupplementing and enriching the
250Chapter
11
experienceof watchingsport ontelevision. Indeed, broadcasters like CBCare nowencouraging viewersto comment on variousissuesand engagein discussionson Twitter and Facebookthroughout broadcastsof HNIC. CBC haseven developedaSecond Screen option that encouragesviewersto accessa host of additional interactive information and experiences on their smartphones, tablets, and laptop computersin tandem with the actual hockeybroadcastitself. Thekeyidea behindthesestrategies,of course,is to becontinually engaged with audiencesand sportsfans whoare encouragedto personalizetheir experiences with various brands and commodities acrossas manydigital platforms as possible (Scherer, 2007). Andit is no surprisethat the North American majorleagues,the UltimateFighting Championship,andthe mostprestigiousEuropeansoccerleaguesareregularly the leading trending topics on Twitter each week,whiletelevision numbers(and the valueof broadcastingcontracts)remain significant (Hutchins & Rowe,2012). Still,the unprecedented level ofinteractivity in the digitalera hasalsoproducednewchallengesfor varioussport organizations,media,andevenindividual athletes whostruggleto control information andimagesin unpredictableonline environments.Forexample,the message boardsof varioussport organizationsneedto becontinually monitoredby mediastafffor distastefuland abusivecomments, whileeven critical postingsaboutsponsorsare often censored andremoved (Scherer, 2007).International sport organizationssuch asthe IOC havealso establishedbloggingguidelinesthat contain arange of conditions,including the useofsocial media,to both protectthe commercialinterests ofsponsorsandto discourageathletesfrom makingcritical or politically chargedcomments(Hutchins & Rowe,2012). Ofcourse,star athletesthemselvesare nowthe subjectsof an endlessstreamof commentson Twitter;these newconditionsof digital productionand consumptionhaveresultedin a numberof controversialinteractions by variousathletesandsport organizations.Forexample,after Switzerlands 21 loss to South Koreaat the 2012 Summer Olympic Games,Swisssoccer player Michel Morganellawasexpelledafter hetweetedthat hewanted to beatup South Koreans,that they shouldburn andthat they wereabunch of mongoloids (Saraceno,2012). Closerto home, in 2013 DallasStarsplayer Tyler Seguinpostedanti-gaycommentson Twitter, commentshe blamed on hackers.Finally,in 2012 NFLplayer Chad Ochocincoupdated his Twitter page duringactualgamesactions that earnedhim a $25,000finefrom the NFL(Holden, 2011). The possibilities of the new digital sporting worldseem endless,especially when we further considerthe vastgrowth of sports gamesandfantasy sportsleaguesthat point to newtransmedia sport experiencesthat movebetweenthe television, desktop,computer, tablet, and smartphonescreen (Hutchins & Rowe,2012, p. 151). Thetremendous popularity of EA Sportsandthe licensing of gamesby variousleagueshaveresultedin billions of dollarsin revenue, whilethe gamesthemselves are now alsoimportant elementsin the broadcastand coverageof professionalsport. Forexample,thanks to a partnership between EA Sportsand ESPN,gametechnology wasembeddedwithin television coverage,which then referred backto a computergamethat simulated and built uponthe television experienceenjoyed by both viewersand gamers (Hutchins & Rowe,2012, p. 160). Thetremendous popularity of the MicrosoftXbox, Sony PlayStation,and Nintendo Wiiarealsotransformingthe experienceof sport, physicalactivity, movement,and playfor young people and their families in the comfort of their own homes(Millington, 2009). Finally,fantasysportsleaguesareattention multipliers (Hutchins & Rowe,2012, p. 168), and millions of mostly maleenthusiastsspend vastamounts of time online and watching television to take stock of injuries, playerstatistics, and othertrends and patternsin the
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology251
Fantasy sports leagues Greg Balfour
and video games are growing in popularity.
Evans/Alamy
world of professionalsport, all in the nameof managingtheir teams. Whatis clearfrom all of these developments,then, is that it is nolonger possibleto think of the interplay betweenthese newtechnologies and consumption habits asemergent cultural phenomena,but rather asa dominantset ofsocialrelations within the digitalsports-mediacomplex.
conclusions In this chapter,I haveemphasized arangeofideologicalandpoliticalstrugglesassociated withthesports-media complexsincethe entranceoftelevisionin Canadian society.Asthe competitionfor sportsbroadcasting rights hasescalated to unparalleled levels,the historicalrole of CBCand Radio-Canada in providinglive telecastsofsportingeventsof national significancefor all Canadians in bothofficiallanguages asaright ofculturalcitizenshiphas erodedconsiderably.And,thanksto a numberof political,economic,andtechnological developmentscoupled witha now dominantideology of consumerchoicethe winnersin the digitalerahavebeenan oligopolyof verticallyintegratedtelecommunications empires(Rogers,BCE,and Quebecor) that nowcontrolsignificantsportingproperties in additionto vastdigitaldistributionoutletsand mediaplatformsin a nearfully privatized sports-media complex.So,too, havevariousleaguesandsportorganizations profitedhandsomelyfrom expansivebroadcasting contracts;thisisrevenuethat hasbeenusedto paythe increasinglyhighsalariesof professional athletes.Canadians,meanwhile,haveaccessto unprecedented amountsofsport contentin the digitalera, albeitthroughincreasingly costlysubscriptionpackages andotherassociated products(mobile phones,tablets,etc.). Onthislatter note,it isimportantto rememberthat oneofthe mostsignificantand enduingideologicaleffectsofthe sports-mediacomplexin Canadian societyhassimply beenthe naturalizationofconsumptionpracticesandouridentities asconsumers. Indeed, because the dominantinstitutionsin the sports-media complexsharebothideologicaland commercialinterests,they subsequentlypromotea host of culturalidentities, social
252Chapter
11
definitions, andideologies asnatural and normal, especiallyto attract primarily male audiences(as subscribersto various Rogerssor BCE products and services, but also as commoditiesthat arethen sold to advertisers). As David Rowe(2004b, p. 7) reminds us, A trained capacity to decode mediasportstexts and to detectthe forms of ideological deployment of sportin the media,is irrespective of cultural taste, a crucialskill. Manyyoung Canadians are,ofcourse,wellversedin thesecritical capacitiesandtheyrealize that the meaningsaudiencesembraceandinternalize from programssuch as HNIC or TSNs SportsCentremaynot bethe precise meanings that wereintended by producersand advertisers.Variousresistantpossibilitiesarealsoalwayspresent,especiallyin the digital era, thanks to the agencyofindividuals and groups with varying degreesof resources.The useof variousnew mediadevicesandsitessuch as YouTubehas,for example,allowedskateboarders, surfers,BASEjumpers,andindividuals whoengagein othersportingsubcultures(e.g.,parkour) to creativelyproducealternative content and,at times, to challengedominant definitions of sport and varioussocialrelations. Othernew mediatechnologieshaveallowedcitizensto organizeand opposethe useof publicfundsfor the constructionof arenasandstadiumsfor professionalsportsfranchises,in additionto a hostof other political debates(Scherer &Sam,2008). Assuch,the sports-mediacomplexin the digitalera will continueto existasacontestedterrain that Canadians shapeand areshapedby,albeit againstthe backdropof a hostof political and ideologicalstrugglesthat exert powerfulsetsoflimits and pressures on Canadiansociety.
Critical Thinking 1.
Questions
Whatdoesthe term sports-mediacomplex mean?
2. HowhastheCanadiansports-mediacomplexchangedsincetheentranceoftelevision in the 1950s? 3.
Whydoesthere remain solittle
mediaattention devotedto womenssport?
4.
Whyhascriticism beenlevelled at sportsjournalists overthe years?
5.
Whyis sport such a valuable mediapropertyin the digital era?
Suggested Readings Goldlust, J. (1987). Playingfor keeps: Sport, the mediaandsociety. Melbourne, AU: Longman Cheshire. Hutchins, B., & Rowe, D.(2012). Sport beyondtelevision:
TheInternet, digital mediaand the rise of
networked mediasport. New York, NY: Routledge. Jhally, S. (1984).
The spectacle of accumulation:
the sports/media complex.
Lowes, M.(1999). Inside the sports pages. Toronto, MacNeill,
M.(1996).
Material and cultural factors in the evolution
of
Critical Sociology, 12, 4157. ON: University of Toronto Press.
Networks: Producing Olympic ice hockey for a national television
audience.
Sociologyof SportJournal, 13, 103124. Scherer, J., & Rowe, D.(Eds.). (2013). Sport, public broadcasting, and cultural citizenship: Signallost? New York, NY: Routledge.
References Billig,
M.(1995). Banal nationalism. London,
Burstyn,
V. (1999).
UK: Sage.
The rites of men: Manhood, politics, and the culture of sport. Toronto,
ON:
University of Toronto Press.
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology253
Cantelon,
H., & Gruneau, R. (1988).
The production
of sport for television.
In J. Harvey & H.
Cantelon(Eds.), Notjust a game: Essays in Canadian sportsociology(pp. 177193). Ottawa, ON: University of OttawaPress. Cavanaugh, R.(1992). The development of Canadiansports broadcasting19201978. Canadian Journalof Communication,17, 301317. Connell, R. W.(2005). Masculinities (2nd ed). Cambridge, UK: Polity Press. Cooky, C., Messner,M., & Hextrum, R.(2013). Womenplaysport, but not on TV: Alongitudinal study of televised news media.Communication& Sport,1(3), 203230. Dowbiggin, B.(2013). Racisttweets about TSN hostsreveal Canadasnastyside. Globeand Mail. Retrievedfrom http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/more-sports/racist-tweets-about-tsnhosts-reveal-canadas-nasty-side/article9845192/#dashboard/follows. Gilbert, R.(2011). Playing on the same page.In P. Donnelly (Ed.), Takingsport seriously: Socialissues in Canadiansport (3rd ed., pp. 251255).
Toronto,
ON: Thompson Educational Publishing.
Goldlust, J. (1987). Playingfor keeps: Sport, the mediaandsociety. Melbourne, AU: Longman Cheshire. Grossberg, L.,
Wartell, E., Whitney, D., & Wise,J. (Eds.). (2006).
Mediamaking: Mass mediain a
popular culture. Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage.
Gruneau,R.(1989). Makingspectacle: Acasestudyin television sports production. In L. Wenner (Ed.), Media,sports,andsociety(pp. 134154). NewburyPark, CA: Sage. Gruneau,R., & Whitson, D.(1993). HockeyNightin Canada.Toronto, ON: GaramondPress. Gruneau,R., Whitson,D., & Cantelon, H.(1988). Methodsand media:Studyingthe sports/television discourse.Societyand Leisure,11, 265281. Hall, A., Slack, T., Smith, G., & Whitson, D.(1991). Sportin Canadiansociety. Toronto, ON: McClellandand Stewart. Holden, E. (2011). The top five mostcontroversial tweets in NFL history: Afans view. Yahoo! Sports. Retrievedfrom http://ca.sports.yahoo.com/nfl/news?slug=ycn-10497693. Houston, W.(2011).
Women on TV: Looksfirst, knowledge later. In P. Donnelly (Ed.), Takingsport
seriously: Socialissuesin Canadiansport (3rd ed., pp. 256260). Hutchins, B., & Rowe, D.(2012). Sport beyondtelevision:
Toronto, ON: Thompson Educational.
TheInternet, digital mediaand the rise of
networked mediasport. New York, NY: Routledge. Jackson, S. (1998).
A twist
of race: Ben Johnson and the
Canadian crisis of racial and national
identity. Sociologyof SportJournal, 15(1), 2140. James, C.(2005). Racein play: Understanding the social-cultural worldsof studentathletes.Toronto, ON: CanadianScholars Press. Jhally, S.(1984). Thespectacle of accumulation: Materialand cultural factors in the evolution of the sports/mediacomplex. CriticalSociology,12, 4157. Kidd, B.(1996a). Thestrugglefor Canadiansport. Toronto, ON: Universityof Toronto Press. Kuper,S., & Szymanski,S.(2012). Soccernomics.New York, NY: Nation Books. Lorenz,S., & Murray,R.(2013). Goodbye to the Gangstas: The NBA dresscode, RayEmery,and the policing of blacknessin basketballand hockey.Journalof SportandSocialIssues,38(1), 2350. Lowes, M.(1999). Insidethe sports pages. Toronto, Lumpkin,
ON: University of Toronto Press.
A. (2009). Female representation in feature articles published by SportsIllustrated in the
1990s. Womenin Sport and Physical Activity Journal, 18, 3851. MacNeill,
M.(1996).
Networks: Producing
Olympic ice hockey for a national television audience.
Sociology of SportJournal, 13, 103124.
Marlow,I. (2010). CanadiansInternet useexceedsTV time. Globeand Mail. Retrievedfrom http:// www.theglobeandmail.com/technology/canadians-internet-use-exceeds-tv-time/article4352565/ #dashboard/follows. McChesney,R.(2008). Thepoliticaleconomyof media:Enduingissues,emergingdilemmas.NewYork, NY: Monthly ReviewPress. Messner,M.(1990). Whenbodies are weapons: Masculinity and violencein sport. International Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport,25(3), 203320. 254Chapter
11
Messner, M.(2012).
Reflections on communication
and sport:
On men and masculinities. Com-
munication & Sport, 1(1/2), 113124. Messner, M., Dunbar, M., & Hunt, D.(2000).
The televised
manhoodformula. Journal of Sport and
SocialIssues, 24(4), 380394. Millington, duct.
B. (2009).
Wii has never been modern: Active video games and the conduct
of con-
New Media & Society, 11(4), 621640.
Mosco, V. (2003). (Eds.),
The transformation
of communication
in
Canada.In
Changing Canada: Political economy as transformation
McGill-Queens
(pp. 287308).
& L. Vosko
Montreal,
QC:
University Press.
Neverson, N. (2010).
Build it and the
digital television. Nolan, M.(2001).
W. Clement
women will come?
WTSN and the advent of Canadian
Canadian Journal of Communication, 35, 2748. CTV: The networkthat meansbusiness.Edmonton,
Norman, M.(2012).
Saturday nights alright for tweeting:
sion, and the new media consumption/production
AB: University of Alberta Press.
Cultural citizenship,
of Hockey Dayin
collective
discus-
Canada. Sociologyof Sport
Journal, 29, 306324. OBonsawin, C.(2013). Indigenous peoples and Canadian-hosted A. Giles (Eds.),
Aboriginal peoples and sport in
issues(pp. 3563). Raboy, M.(1990).
Olympic Games.In J. Forsyth&
Canada: Historical foundations and contemporary
Vancouver, BC: UBC Press. Missedopportunities: The story of Canadas broadcasting policy.
McGill-Queens
Montreal,
QC:
University Press.
Robinson, L. (2002).
Blacktights:
Rutherford, P. (1990).
Women,sport and sexuality. Toronto,
ON: Harper Collins.
Whentelevision wasyoung: Primetime Canada(19521967).
Toronto,
ON:
University of Toronto Press. Rowe, D.(2004a).
Watchingbrief: Cultural citizenship and viewing rights. Sportin Society,7(3), 385402.
Rowe, D.(2004b). Sport, culture andthe media(2nd ed.). Maidenhead, UK: Open University Press. Rowe, D.(2007). Sports journalism:
Still the toy
department
of the news media?Journalism, 8(4),
385405. Sager, N. (2010).
Canadian commentators fail to cool it
Retrieved from
with Johnny
Weirjokes. Yahoo! Sports.
http://sports.yahoo.com/blogs/olympics-neate-sager/canadian-commentators-
fail-cool-johnny-weir-jokes--olympics.html. Saraceno, J. (2012).
Swiss soccer player banned from
Olympics for racist tweet.
USA Today.
Retrieved from http://usatoday30.usatoday.com/sports/olympics/london/soccer/story/2012-0730/swiss-athlete-banned-michel-morganella-olympics/56591966/1. Scherer, J. (2007).
Globalization, promotional
culture and the production/consumption
of on-line
games: Engaging Adidass Beat Rugby campaign. New Media & Society, 9(3), 475496. Scherer, J., Duquette, G., & Mason, D.(2007). national identity:
The 1972 CanadaUSSR
The Cold
Warand the (re)articulation
Summit Series.In D. L. Andrews & S. Wagg(Eds.),
East plays west: Essayson sport andthe Cold War(pp. 171194). Scherer, J., & Harvey, J. (2013). tudes
of Canadian
London,
UK: Routledge.
Televised sport and cultural citizenship in Canada: The two soli-
of Canadian public broadcasting? In J. Scherer & D. Rowe (Eds.), Sport, public broadcast-
ing, and cultural citizenship: Signallost? (pp. 4873).
New York, NY: Routledge.
Scherer, J., &Jackson, S. (2004). From corporate welfare to national interest: the public subsidization of NHL hockey debate in
Canada. Sociologyof SportJournal, 21, 3660.
Scherer, J., &Jackson, S. (2008). Producing allblacks.com: of electronic spaces of sporting consumption.
Newspaper analysis of
Cultural intermediaries
and the policing
Sociologyof Sport Journal, 25, 243262.
Scherer, J., & Koch, J. (2010). Living with war: Sport, citizenship, and the cultural politics of post9/11 Canadian identity.
Sociologyof SportJournal, 27(1), 129.
Scherer, J., & Rowe, D.(Eds.). (2013). Sport, public broadcasting, and cultural citizenship: Signallost? New York, NY: Routledge. Scherer, J., & Sam, M.(2010). Policing the cyber agenda: New mediatechnologies
and recycled
claims in alocal stadium debate. Sportin Society, 13(10), 14691485.
Sport,
Media,
and
Ideology255
Scherer,J., & Cantelon, H.(2013). 1974 WHA All Stars vs.the Soviet national team: Franchise recognition andforeign diplomacy in the forgotten Skinner, D.(2008). lic policy:
Television in
series. Journal of CanadianStudies, 47, (2), 2959.
Canada: Continuity
or change? In
Change and continuity in an era of global liberalization
D. Ward(Ed.), Television pub(pp. 326).
New York, NY:
Lawrence Erlbaum Associates. Smythe, D. W.(1977).
Communications:
Blindspot of
Western Marxism. CanadianJournal of Polit-
ical and Social Theory, 1(3), 127. Sparks, R. (1992).
Delivering the
male: Sports, Canadian television,
and the
making of TSN.
CanadianJournal of Communication, 17, 319342. Spence, C.(1999).
Theskin Im in: Racism,sports, and education. Halifax. NS: Fernwood.
Stursberg, R.(2012).
Thetour of babble: Sins, secrets and successesinside the CBC. Vancouver, BC:
Douglas & McIntyre. Whannel, G.(1992). Fieldsin vision: Televisionsport and cultural transformation. London, UK: Routledge. Whannel, G.(2005). in the
The five rings and the small screen: Television, sponsorship, and new media
Olympic movement. In
K. Young & K. Wamsley(Eds.),
sociologicalstudies ofthe modern Games(pp. 161178).
Global Olympics: Historical and
Amsterdam, Netherlands: Elsevier.
Whitson, D. (1998).
Circuits of promotion:
Media, marketing and the globalization
L. Wenner(Ed.),
MediaSport(pp. 5722).
New York, NY: Routledge.
Wilson, B. (1999). Cool NBA coverage. In P. Toronto,
pose incorporated:
of sport. In
The marketing of black masculinity in
White & K. Young (Eds.), Sport and genderin
Canadian
Canada (pp. 232253).
ON: Oxford University Press.
Winseck, D. (1995). and regulation.
Power shift? Towards a political
economy of Canadian telecommunications
Canadian Journal of Communication, 20(1), 81106.
endnotes 1.The
next three sections are derived from Scherer and Harvey (2013).
2. Launched in 1998 by CTV as a regional Sportsnet
network (with four feeds for different regions),
provided coverage of local teams, providing
an important
revenue stream for
those franchises. 3. In a move to prevent
mobile content
hoarding, in 2011 the
integrated telecommunications
companies like
under reasonable terms (i.e.,
price) to competing
CRTC ruled that vertically
BCE must maketheir sports content available mobile phone and Internet
providers
(e.g., TELUS). 4.
Unlike the public broadcaster, Rogers and BCE can recover some of their costs through
mul-
tiple revenue streams: ads, subscription rates, and the fees for carriage that they receive from other satellite and cable companies. 5. Infact,evenafterthesetragediesDonCherrypubliclycastigatedthosewhocritiquedthelevels of violence and fighting in hockey as pukes
and hypocrites.
tinely policed the behaviour of various playersincluding hypermasculine style of Canadian hockeyand his role as an outspoken CBC commentator
For decades, Cherry has rou-
star player Sidney Crosby and the
has, incidentally,
on Hockey Nightin
profited handsomely from Canadaand from the sales of
his RockEm SockEm videos that have, for years,showcased and glorified violence. 6. Still,itsimportanttoacknowledgethatseveralCanadiansportsjournalistsandcommentators have produced a number of insightful
analyses that have elevated public understandings of a
range ofissues (e.g., violence in sport and the changing economics of professional sport), others, including
US writer Dave Zirin, have provided consistent critical commentary
and social relations for
256Chapter
11
manyyears now.
while
on sport
Chapter12 Sport,Politics,and Policy Jean Harvey
The oncetaken-for-granted idea that sport doesnt mix with politics hasnow vanished. For example, one of the mostvisible aspectsof the link betweensport and politics in Canadais the struggle overthe allocation of scarce public resourcesfor the funding and regulation of sport. Variousgroups,including national sport organizations(NSOs), provincial sport organizations(PSOs), andlocal sport clubs, all call ontheir respectivelevels of government to help them develop, fund, and administer competitive local, provincial, national, and international teams. Governmentfunding is alsoexpectedfor grassrootssport, high-performance sport, as well asfor the construction of venuesfor hosting global mega-sportevents such asthe FIFA World Cup and the Summer and Winter Olympic Games. Regulations developed by international sport organizations such asthe World Anti-Doping Agency(WADA) and the IOC not only commandthe attention of governments but also,to a certain degree,impose themselves on national, provincial, or territorial sport policies. Givensuch interrelationships, the issue is not whetherthe state should intervene in sport, but wherethe state invests in sport and
Nelson Mandela hands the 1995 Rugby
World Cup to South African
team captain
Francois Pienaar.
Mandela used the positive side of sport to unite post-apartheid Africa, a great historical immortalized
in the film Invictus.
Gallo Images/Alamy
257
South
moment
Box 12.1
List of Acronyms This chapter of the
will use a number
most common
AAPAthlete
of acronyms.
ones that
you should
Assistance
CAAWSCanadian of
Here is a synopsis be aware
of.
and Physical
CCESCanadian
Centre for
COCCanadian
Olympic
CS4LCanadian
Sport for Life
CSPCanadian
Sport
Ethics in
Activity
NAFTANorth
Policy
American
NSONational
Development
Free Trade
Sport
Organization
Dispute
SSPSport
Support Program
Resolution
UNUnited
Nations
WADAWorld
Anti-Doping
WOGWinter
Association
Agreement
Sport Organization
SDRCSport
de Football
what interventions
Committee
Organization
PSOProvincial
Sport
Committee
Internationale
Athlete
MSOMulti-Sport
Program
Women and Sport
Olympic
LTADLong-Term
Association for the Advancement
FIFAFederation
IOCInternational
Centre
Agency
Olympic Games
and public policies become ascendant against the backdrop of a range
of political struggles, debates, and competing power relations. But fundamentally,
the relationship
between sport and politics is
much more com-
plex becauseit is deeply rooted in the social nature of sport. As noted in Chapter 1, sport is itself a contested terrain and the site of significant ideological struggle. The relationship of politics to sport prompts numerous questions: Is sport a private Whichsocial and ideological values should orient sport? ticipation
in sport? How should
matter or a public good?
Whoshould have accessto par-
massand high-performance sport be funded, structured,
and for what ends? Should sport bethe responsibility
of the state orleft entirely to private
organizations like PSOs? Whatis the role of municipalities with regard to the provision of sport facilities and programs acrossthe country?
Sport
AS A Site for
poLiticAL
reSiStAnce
Assport is closely entrenched in societal power relations, it has the potential to be a tool both for the reproduction
of dominant power relations and for political resistance
and change. For example, when governments invest heavily in high-performance sport, they hope that the victories of the athletes will bolster dominant views about national
identity and raise their international profile. Conversely, high-performance sport can also be the site ofresistance to dominant ideological
values and various power relations.
Forexample, at the Mexico1968 Olympics, USathletes Tommie Smith and John Carlos raised their gloved fists as they stood on the podium; their
Black Power salute was
meantas an act of resistance to existing racial power relations in their country (see Zirin, 2005).
The history of the modern Olympicsalso provides various examplesof encounters between sport and politics, through
258Chapter
12
boycotts, protests, and the banning
of specific
Sport can be a site of political resistance. HANDOUT/KRT/Newscom
countries. Indeed, since their formation Pierre de Coubertin in 1894, the
in
Ancient
Olympic
Greece and their resurrection
Games have been and are deliberately
by used
by nation-states for a variety of international
policy purposes. For example, under the
leadership
Games were meant to showcase to the
of Adolf
Hitler, the 1936 Berlin
world the cause of National Socialism, race. Several countries threatened
Naziideology, and the superiority
to boycott the games because,initially,
ply did not want Jews and black people participating.
In
of boycotting
the
Nazi Olympics (Kidd,
wasforced to concede to international of black
US athlete Jesse Owens, who won four gold
to Germany in 1972, 11Israeli athletes and trainers extremistsan
event that
1996). Eventually,
wasruined by the outstanding
Hitler
Ironically, performance
medals in track and field. In
another example of the fusion between sport and politics,
the film
and veterans group lead-
pressure and lifted some restrictions.
his orchestrated display of white superiority
Hitler sim-
Canada, for example, the
Workers Sports Association, as well as religious, university, ers, werein favour
of the Aryan
when the Olympics returned
weretragically
wasexplored in the documentary
killed by Palestinian
One Dayin Septemberand
Munich.
The intense public protest by various anti-racist
movements, most notably the 1964
banning of South Africa bythe IOC in objection to apartheid,is another strong example of the waysin
which sport has historically
been used to heighten diplomatic and ideo-
logical pressureon countries. In fact, the isolation of South Africafrom international competition
became almost all-encompassing after the
General Assembly of the United
Nations(UN) passedaresolution in 1971inviting countries not to participate or compete with those upholding discrimination
or apartheid laws and policies. This provision
Sport,
Politics,
and
Policy259
The 1936
Olympic
of his racist ZUMA
Games in
political
Berlin
were used by Hitler as a tool
for
propaganda
in favour
regime.
Press, Inc/Alamy
subsequently spurred a request to ban New Zealand from the 1976 Summer Gamesin Montreal in protest against a series of rugby
matches played between the
New Zealand
All Blacks and the South African Springboks. However, New Zealand was not banned, and as a result Olympic
most African countries
Games, held in
the United States and several invasion
boycotted the
Westerncountries including
of Afghanistan by the Soviet Union.
the former
Montreal
Olympics. The next
Moscowin 1980, were also marked by a boycott, this time by Canadain protest against the
Meanwhile, communist countries from
Eastern Bloc, with the exception of Romania, exacted their revenge
four
yearslater by boycotting the 1984 Los Angeles Olympic Games,alleging that the United States wassimply not safe for their athletes. Not only do governments usesport to pursue international ments also useglobally their
political
policy, but social move-
mediatedsport events to persuade governments to act in favour of
causes and ideological
claims (Harvey,
Horne,
Safai, Darnell,
&
Courchesne-ONeill, 2013). For example, the 2008 Beijing Olympic and Paralympic Gamestorch relay itinerary became a road paved with protests and demonstrations against
the alleged Chineseoccupation of Tibet and the poor record of China with regard to human rights. Prior to and during the 2010 Winter Olympic Gamesin Vancouver, a num-
ber of political coalitions fought for a range ofissues,including the housingrights oflowincome
residents,
the land
rights
of several
First
Nations groups, and pressing
environmental issues(Boycoff, 2011). Theseprotestsare not going to fade awayanytime soon. Indeed, while writing this chapter the streets of Rio de Janeiro werefilled
260Chapter
12
with mass
demonstrations prior to the 2014 FIFA
World Cup and the 2016 Olympic and Paralympic
Gamesin protest of the rising cost of public services in the investments
midst of massivefinancial
by the state for these mega-sporting events.
Government
invoLvement
Government involvement
in sport in
in Sport
Canadais, of course, far from new. In the second
half of the 19th century local governments in big cities like
Montreal and Toronto cre-
ated municipal parks. For several decades,these parks played a majorrole in preventing the working class from participating in sport through regulations that restricted the types of sports that
were allowed on their grounds (Gruneau,
1983).
While municipal parks
were mainly conceived as peaceful and quiet retreats from the busy streets for the benefit of the urban elite, working-class sports wereregularly
banned from these public places.
The enactment of the Lords Day Act by the federal government in 1906, which banned the practice of sport on Sundays, wasanother state intervention
that limited
opportuni-
ties for the working class to play sports (Kidd, 1996a). Atthe beginning of the 20th century, however, municipalities started to play a different role as aresult of political pressurefrom different organizations such asthe National Council of Women of Canada, which lobbied for vacation schools and supervised playgrounds as waysto prevent youth delinquency.
As a result, over the last century
municipalities have
becomeincreasingly involved in recreational sport through the subsidization of playground associations and local clubs, as well asthrough the development and maintenance ofincreasingly large numbers of sports fields and venues. Moreover, lobbied by the bourgeoisie to control urban masses after
World WarII,
municipalities invested further in providing sport
participation opportunities for their citizens, a role they still play today. Indeed, parks and recreation represent a significant item in current municipal budgets acrossthe country. The Great Depression of the 1930s prompted greater federal and provincial involvementin sport and recreation simply because of the growing numbers of unemployed youth and adults who,in their unrest, represented fertile
materialfor leftist
movements, reformist
groups, and variousforms of political resistance. Again, these interventions meant associal control
wereexclusively
measures.In December 1936, the National Employment Commis-
sion of Canada prompted the
Minister of Labour to establish young mens physical training
centres, the goal of which wasto help unemployed mendevelop good levels of mental and physical fitness to maintain their employability.
The minister soon agreedto this recom-
mendation and provisions were madeto create training centres under the and Agricultural
Unemployment
Assistance Act (1937) as well as under the Youth Training
These programs involved
cost-sharing agreements with participating
Act (1939).
provinces to fund a
wide variety of youth training opportunities that often involved gymnastics and other sports
(Harvey, 1988). Forconstitutional reasons,however, not all provincesagreedto participate in these programs, a point weshall return to later on. During
World WarII, the federal
governmentturned its attention to physically preparingcitizensto servein the war. Tothat end, the National Physical Fitness Act waspassedin 1943 (and waslater repealed in 1954).
Thereconstruction effort at the end of World WarII createda context for the transformation
of the Canadianstate into a welfare state (a definition of stateis provided in the
next section). A welfarestateis onein which organizedpoweris deliberately usedto play a more active role in the economy and society, for example, by providing
Sport,
Politics,
a minimum
and
Policy261
income for all as well assome state-financed insurance.
social services like education and health
This renewed role of the Canadian state in this era set the stage for more active
involvement
in sport. But according to
Macintosh, Bedecki, and Franks (1987), the adop-
tion in 1961 of Bill C-131, an act to encourage fitness and amateur sport, was predominantly the result
of the governments
increased
preoccupation
and focus on high-
performance sport and the promotion of Canadian nationalism through sport. Since the adoption of Bill active in the administration attracted the attention hockey Summit
and governance of sport.
of the
has been increasingly
Moreover, several historic events
House of Commons, such asthe 1972 CanadaUSSR
Series and the 1988 Ben Johnson doping scandal.
Series was a highly volatile Ottawanot
C-131, the federal government
moment for
Canadian sport and for
The 1972 Summit Parliament
simply becauseit represented a symbolic confrontation
Hill in
between East and
West,but also becausethe event wasexpected to restore Canadian nationalism via victory in its national winter sport. The BenJohnson doping scandal at the 1988 Seoul Olympics also commanded significant
political attention and intense debate in the House of Com-
mons, and resulted in the striking of a Royal Commission, commonly referred to asthe Dubin Inquiry,
with a mandateto investigate the Johnson affair and the broader use of
performance-enhancing recommended
drugs in
that the
Canadian sport (Dubin,
Canadian government
1990). The report eventually
adopt a strict anti-doping
policy and
prompted the creation ofthe Canadian Centrefor Ethics in Sport (CCES), an arms-length organization, to control and police the use of performance-enhancing In summary, the relationship deeply ideological
drugs in sport.
between sport and politics is complex, multifaceted, and
and can only be understood against the backdrop of a wide range of
conflicts between various social groups (with varying amounts of resources) asthey struggle for power. In this chapter, I will focus specifically policies and programs in
on an overview of current sport
Canada, although, as weshall see, it is difficult in our globalized
world to understand national policy without considering the larger international and various global structures. I will try to answer the following chapter: tutional
What motivates nation-states like and political
development
questions throughout this
Canadato get involved in sport?
contexts at the domestic and international
of sport policies in
context
Whatconsti-
levels influence
the
Canada? What are the key current sport policies in
Canada?Before answering these questions, a brief review of some key concepts is in order.
DefininG Some Key conceptS State, power, government, politics, policy, and programsit
is easyto becomeswamped and
overwhelmed by political science and political sociology terminology. defines politics asThe
Anthony
Giddens
meansby which power is usedto influence the nature and content of
governmentalactivities (1989, p. 729). This definition, byitself, speaksto the broadsocial reality that is covered bythe word politics. The definition also refers to two other concepts:
powerandthe state.In Chapter1, power wasdefinedasthe ability ofindividuals orgroupsto useresourcesto secure an outcome, even in the face of opposition. For Giddens,governmentis
the processof enacting of policiesand decisionson the part of officials within a political apparatus (p. 727), while astateis a political apparatus (governmental institutions, such as
court, parliament, civil service, officials) ruling over a given territory, whoseauthority is backed bythe legal system and bythe capacity to useforce to implement its policies (p. 732).
262Chapter
12
The main characteristics of a modern nation-state are its sovereignty over a given territory; its
monopoly of the use of force; its legitimacy,
mainly provided by its demo-
cratic electoral system; and the fact that its constituents are defined ascitizens who have both formal rights and duties and who generally recognize themselves as part of a given nation.
A key question to ask, then, is What
society?
is the role of the state in contemporary
Before attempting to answer this question, it is important
social institution
to emphasize that any
is the product of history and the result of power relations among social
classes, gender, race, and so on. This is a critical
point to remember
when examining
theoretical traditions in political science and their differing visions of the role of the state. For the purpose of this chapter, I will limit theoretical
mydiscussion to the two
main opposing
positions. For pluralists, the state is a neutral referee of competing social inter-
ests. For them, in theory, no specific organizedinterest group has more persuasive power over others regarding the orientation
or direction of state policies. For Marxists, mean-
while, the state needsto be understood asthe instrument domination
of society (refer to Chapter 2).
bold statement, the
of the ruling capitalist classin its
Although
many nuances have added to that
Marxist approach is a better reflection of the unequal influence differ-
ent social classes with varying resources have on the state. Morespecifically, the advanced capitalist state hasthree overall functions. accumulation of capital including,
The first is to adopt measuresthat allow the
for example, investments in transportation
infrastruc-
ture, the adoption oflabour laws that keepsalaries at the lowest possiblelevels for companies to remain competitive, attract private investment. achieved through
and policies that
Canadian
mandate low levels of taxation to
The second function is to preserve social cohesion.
This is
measuresthat easetensions between the interests of the dominant class
and the dominated classes. Atthe minimum, the state hasto give the impression that it is not the sole servant of the dominant class if it wants to keep its legitimacy. third function
Finally, the
of the state is one of coercion, asthe state has a monopoly over the use of
force to preservesocial order (Harvey
& Proulx, 1988).
Modern nation-states have sovereignty over a given territory nation-states as part of their international organizations, such as the
but interact
with other
relations. In addition, a panoply of supranational
United Nations, the
G7,the
World Trade Organization, and
treaties like the North American Free Trade Agreement create a context that influences the actions and policies of individual
nation-states. In the current context of globalization,
many authors argue that nation-states are ceding sovereignty to these organizations (see Chapter 14 on globalization) because national policies have to be at least partially in line with the international low
context. For example, the Canadian sport doping policy hasto fol-
WADA regulations in order for
mostamateur international
Canada to be able to compete in the
Olympics and
sporting events.
Another example of evasion
of sovereignty
wasthe
Olympic and Paralympic
Marks
Act enactedin 2008 by the federal government. Thislaw wasliterally imposed on the Canadian state by the IOC as part of the hosting requirements for the 2010 Games.
Athird andfinal examplethat other chapters have noted wasthe IOCs refusalto include womens ski jumping in the program of the 2010 Gamesin Vancouver and the subsequent
controversial court decisionthat ruled that the protection of the Canadian Charter of Rights and Freedom did not apply to the IOC (Barnes, 2010). In each of these examples,
a nonelectedinternational body wassimply ableto imposeits will upon a democratically elected sovereign governmenta
classic example of power.
Sport,
Politics,
and
Policy263
Building the concepts of politics and the state, lets explore the concepts of government, policy, and programs. Giddens(1989) states that government
refers to the regular enact-
ment of policies and decisions on the part of officials within a political apparatus. . . wecan speak of government asa process,or of the government, referring to the apparatusresponsible for the administrative
process (p. 301).
While politics is concerned
with the
means by
which power is used, policy or public policyrefers to a course of action or inaction chosen by public authorities to address a given problem or interrelated set of problems (Pal, 2006, p. 2). It is important to emphasize that a decision by a government not to act on a specific issue is often, by itself, a policy. Finally, there is afine line between programs and policies. Policiesare mostlyguides to arange of related actionsin a given field
(Pal, 2006, p. 2), while
programsarethe specific coursesof action taken in view of fulfilling the goals of a policy. Governments do possessa wide variety of action tools or policy instruments for the implementation
of policies and programs. Although there are a wide variety of policy
instrument typologies, lets adapt Leslie Pals (2006) classification system for the purposes of this chapter. Thefirst broad category refers to tools ofindirect action: Information is the first tool in this category, which can bethe preferred course of action in the case of health promotion, for example. Such wasthe case with ParticipACTION, program whosefocus
wasto encourage
a social
marketing
Canadians to become more physically active.
The second type of tool is expenditures, which can take several forms. Government funding as an indirect action for national, provincial, and local associations falls into this category. Thethird type of tool in this category relates to regulations that are explicitly to promote or discourage certain types of behaviour, such as anti-doping
made
policies that
prohibit the use of banned performance-enhancing substances. The second main category in Pals classification system refers to tools of direct action. In this instance, state agencies are createdto implement policies wherethe state is the delivery provider, such asthe case of provincial departments of education and of health and social services. State or Crown corporations, such as Canada Post and CBC/Radio-Canada, are arms-length agenciesthat offer direct public services in lieu of the state and are responsible to the
House of Commons for their actions. Finally, in our neoliberal times,
wherestate-
provided public services are increasingly criticized byright-wing forces, third-party arrangementslike publicprivate
partnerships are believed within right-wing
tool for efficient intervention.
In short, tools for state intervention
circles to bethe best are numerous, but as
I will outline later in the chapter, the choice of possibletools varies widelyfrom one policy field to another as afunction of the perceived overall role of the state in each of these fields. Now that
we have established a minimal basisfor understanding politics and policy
in our society, lets turn to the specific domain of sport and politicswhich,
like any
other domain, hasits own specificities, issues, and problems that influence and are influenced by state intervention.
reASonS for
StAte intervention
in Sport
At the beginning of this chapter I provided several examples of state intervention
in sport.
Thisintervention is not without issuesand problems,however. Onegood wayof getting an organized perspective of this issue is to identify
what generally
motivates the state to
intervene in sport. Overthe courseof history,these motivationsobviouslychangeas new problems and issues arise, but they also change associal forces and various interest groups
264Chapter
12
influence
what constitutes the legitimate role of the state in society. For example, com-
pared to the 19th century, the Canadian state is now much moreinterventionist actions. In the first known book on sport and politics, Jean three
in its
Meynaud (1966) identified
major motivesfor public authorities to intervene in sport: (a) to safeguard public
order, (b) to improve the physical fitness of the citizens, and (c) to affirm national prestige. According to
Meynaud,the safeguarding of public order is anissue for the state since
hosting majorsporting events involves security issues and becausesport is sometimes the cause of violence, on or off the field (see Chapter 9). For Meynaud, doping in sport also constitutes an issue of public order since it sometimes involves the use of banned substances. Five decades after
Meynauds work, sport has become an even moreimportant
social phenomenon, while the reasons for state intervention I haveregrouped these contemporary
in sport have diversified.
motivesfor state intervention
in sport into four
main categories. First, governments see sport as an ideological instrument sion. For example, high-performance sport is considered an important tion
of national
unity.
Governments believe that the
of social cohe-
tool for the promo-
medals and trophies earned by
Canadian athletes around the globe contribute to the fostering of national pride as well as to the promotion
of dominant understandings of Canadian identity.
Sport is also per-
ceived as a tool of social cohesion for at-risk populations, particularly at-risk youth, since it allegedly contributes to the prevention serves as afunction
of delinquency. In these instances, sport also
of social control.
Second, governments increasingly ment (or capital accumulation).
usesport as an instrument
For example, hosting
of economic develop-
mega-sporting events allegedly
contributes to the tourism industry by attracting athletes and visitors to the host cities. Moreover, hosting majorevents or having professional sport franchises is widely believed by governments to have a high economic and symbolic impact, and to help cities showcasethemselves as world-class tourist destinations and ideal locations for all kinds of businessesand industries (see Chapter 13). Third, sport is also an instrument push specific political against apartheid. tional
cooperation,
Francophonie,
agendas, as we have seen earlier with the international
Conversely, states also see sport as an instrument as is the case with the
whose functions
among communities
of foreign policy. To this end, states usesport to
Commonwealth
are to increase political
struggle
to foster interna-
Games and the Jeux de la and economic relationships
of countries.
The fourth and final category of motivations for state intervention to social development and the promotion of social inclusion.
in sport is related
Sport is popularly believed
to contribute to the education and health of individuals and to their participation in society as active citizens. To that end, inclusive policies are put in place by various governmentsto reduce social and economic barriers and to promote equity for women and men
andfor visible and cultural minorities. The above description provides a wide overview of the motives of modern advanced
capitalist statesto deliberatelyintervene in sport, but not all interventions are planned or premeditated.
At times, governments are forced to react and act quickly as a result of a
sudden crisis, as wasthe case with the BenJohnson scandalin 1988, whichforced the government to create the Dubin Inquiry that investigated sport doping. Finally, the above
description doesntinclude the more mundanemotivationsofindividual politicians to use sport and various athletes to boost their profile among their electorate.
Sport,
Politics,
and
Policy265
the SportpoLicy
context
To better understand the shape and direction of current federal sport policies and programs, I wish to return briefly to both the constitutional
as well asthe specific political contexts
that forge sport policy in this country. First,it is of utmost importance to remember that, by its Constitution,
Canadais afederal state with two major orders of government: the federal
and the provincial/territorial. territories.
Assuch,
municipalities
are the creation
of provinces/
The Constitution defines, although not always clearly, the jurisdiction
federal government and of the provinces/territories, tion on sport.
of the
but there is nothing in the Constitu-
However, sport is generally associated with social policies, particularly
education and health policy, both of which are under provincial/territorial
jurisdiction.
International sport is linked to Canadasforeign policy, which is clearly under federal jurisdiction. The High Performance Athlete Development in
Canada agreement of 1985 and
the National RecreationStatement of 1987 werepassedto delineate morepreciselythe mutual roles of the federal and provincial/territorial
governments. Similarly, in 2013 sport,
physical activity, and recreation ministersagreedon an updated version of the first two agreements that further
delineated eachlevel of governments areas of responsibility.
The
1985agreementrecognizedthe jurisdiction ofthe federal government onthe national and international
levels, while provinces and territories
maintained control over and responsi-
bility for the provincial/territorial and municipallevels ofthe sport system. The 1987statementrecognized the primary role of the provinces and territories in the area of recreation,
including sport. Presentedin this manner,the situation appearedstraightforward. Unfortunately, the outcome did not unfold asplanned. For example, hosting majorinternational sporting events primarily involves cities that orchestratethe bid process,but international sport falls under the jurisdiction of the federal government and,therefore, cities cannot bid for the event without the permission of the provinces/territories and without the financial help of the higherlevels of government. Anyfederal government intervention in municipalities, moreover,requires provincial approval.
Whileseveral provinces have a history offlexibil-
ity on these arrangements when the federal government has moneyto spend within their borders, other provinces are very strict in the preservation of their jurisdiction.
Asfar asfor-
eign policy is concerned, some provinces dorequest a presence on the international scene such is the case with the Jeux de la Francophonie,
where Quebec, New Brunswick, and
Ontario havetheir own delegationsin addition to a Canadian delegation (see Harvey,2013). The other set of considerations touches on what wecall a policy field. a relatively
autonomous regrouping
A policyfield is
of policies related to a defined area of public policy
(the field of economic policy, the field of sport policy, etc.). Each policy field has a specific culture, a set of norms and values about the general role of the state in that field at a given time in history. For each policy field, there is generally a state agency or governmental department under the responsibility icy development and implementation
of a cabinet
minister that is in charge of pol-
and, moreover, a specific set of social forces, power
relations, or interest groups that are active.
Having different agendas, these social forces
constantly lobby government for their views to be considered. Arguably, sport constitutes in itself a specific policy field, although it is related to education, health, and foreign policy. In this country, according to the current dominant neoliberal vision, the state should not intervene too directly in sport. Indeed, majorinterest groups like the Canadian Olympic Committee (COC) and NSOsare constantly lobbying
266Chapter
12
for morefunding bythe federal government and, at the same time, less government control. However, other groups,such asthe Canadian Association for the Advancement of Women and Sport and Physical Activity (CAAWS),
arein favour of strong government regulations
to force sport organizations to implement
stronger gender-equity programs. As a private
enterprise, professional sport does not normally wantstate intervention
in its businessaffairs
(unless requiring direct subsidies). Giventhe characteristics of the sport field, it would probably appearinappropriate for the Canadianstate to take full control of the Canadiansport systemthrough the creation of,for example, a Crown corporation (i.e., a state-owned independent corporation).
Nevertheless,the Canadian government plays an increasingly prom-
inent role in the governance of Canadian sport, namely through its imposition conditions and criteria as part of the financial support it provides to and service organizations (MSOs), such as Commonwealth
of strict
NSOs and multi-sport
Games Canada.
The prominent role played by the federal government leads to the last set of considerations regarding the context of sport policy. It is rare that the state does not put in place a formal administrative is no exception.
unit in charge of the delivery of policies and programs, and sport
Withthe adoption of Bill C-131in the early 1960s, afitness and amateur
sport program emerged under the
Ministry of Health and
Welfare.In 1971, two separate
units were created under the fitness and amateur sport directorate:
Sport Canada and
Recreation Canada. With Sport Canada,the federal government created an administrative unit to intervene in the world of high-performance sport, until then the exclusive territory
of NSOs and MSOs. Currently, two separate units in two different departments
are in charge of sport and physical activity.
First, Sport Canada, a branch of Canadian
Heritage, remains largely in charge of high-performance Living
Unit is within the Centre for
sport. Second, the
Healthy
Health Promotion, a division of the Public Health
Agency of Canada, and is in charge of promoting physical activity in its broadest sensefor all Canadians. Indeed, becausethe federal government, starting
with the government of
Pierre Trudeauin 1968, hasincreasingly used high-performance sport as a vehicle for the promotion of national unity and international
prestige on the world sporting stage, high-
performance sport has become the priority over massparticipation. In summary, a complex range of constitutional,
political, and administrative structures
and forces, as well as pressurefrom organizedinterest groups, makeupstateintervention in any policy field in Canadiansociety. I shall return to these issueslater in the next section where I describethe main policies and programsthat constitute the core of Canadiansport policy.
recent
poLicieS AnD proGrAmS
In 2002, a Canadian Sport Policy (hereafter
CSP 2002) wasadopted with the provision
that it had a life expectancy of 10 years. Accordingly, in 2010 the federal and provincial governments undertook several initiatives the early initiatives
to evaluate the policy and its impacts.
wasthe commission of an evaluation
analysis and interviews
One of
report based on document
with key players. The commission came to the conclusion that
CSP 2002 has been largely successful in achieving its goals, but that the participation pillar has been the neglected child of the family (Sutcliffe Clearly, the 2002 policy had to be revisited. field had changed significantly.
Group, 2010).
Moreover, since 2002, the sport policy
New players wereincreasingly active in the field and new
Sport,
Politics,
and
Policy267
trends
had emerged.
Development (LTAD)
The
Canadian
Sport for
Life (CS4L)/Long-Term
Athlete
model,for example, wasbecoming increasingly influential
and was
subsequently entrenched in Sport Canadas contributions criteria to NSO funding.
More-
over, thanks to pressure by groups such asthe Sport Matters Group and Sport for Development, the use of sport to reach desirable social development
goals wasincreasingly
a
candidate for inclusion in the CSP. Finally, the 2010 Vancouver Olympic Gamesraised all kinds of questions asto what should be done next for the development of sport in Canada. It is in this context that an extensive consultation
and engagement process was put in
place that eventually led to alargely revised Canadian Sport Policy (hereafter CSP2012), which wasadopted bythe federal, provincial, and territorial sport ministersin June 2012. Like its predecessor, CSP 2012 reads morelike a comprehensive framework to guide policy action and a road
map in the language of the policy rather than a precise set of
goals and targets, thus allowing the diverse partner governments to emphasizethe aspects of the framework that better suit their needs and will. Moreover, compared to all previous policies, CSP2012 promotes a broad definition of sport andits potential impacts on society. Figure 12.1 illustrates the wide scope that this new policy is meantto embrace. This broad policy scope stems from an overall vision for a that promotes and celebrates participation
dynamic and innovative
and excellence in sport
culture
and where
Canadais a leading sport nation where all Canadians can pursue sport to the extent of their abilities and interests . . . including
performing at the highest competitive levels;
and wheresport delivers benefits, for increasing numbers,to individual health and well-being,and contributesto socioeconomicincomes. (Canadian Heritage,2012) Linked to this vision are various policy values (safety, excellence, commitment, and core policy principles (i.e., value based, inclusive, technically intentional,
etc.)
sound, collaborative,
effective, sustainable).
Moreover,the policy framework recognizes four contexts of sport participation: performance, competitive sport, recreational sport, and introduction physical literacy).
high
to sport (as well as
Each participation context corresponds to a broad goal. For introduction
to sport, the goalis simply that Canadians
havethe fundamental skills, knowledge and atti-
tudes to participate in organized and unorganized sport (Canadian recreational sport, the broad goalis for
Heritage, 2012, p. 3). For
Canadiansto have the opportunity to participate in
sport for fun, health,social interaction and relaxation (p. 3). Withregardto competitive sport, the goal is for Canadiansto have the opportunity to systematically improve and mea-
suretheir performanceagainstothersin competition in asafe and ethical manner(p. 3). In high-performance sport,
meanwhile, the goal is for
Canadians to be systematically
achieving world-classresultsat the highestlevels ofinternational competition throughfair and ethical means (p. 3). Finally, CSP2012 also addressessport for development: [S]port is
usedasatool for social and economicdevelopment,andthe promotion of positivevaluesat home and abroad (p. 3).
Like its predecessor,CSP2012is meantto be a generalframework for policy action and collaboration
between different levels of government, different policy fields, and the
state and civil society, in partnership,
with regard to the delivery of the
morespecific
policies and programs that fall under this umbrella policy. Indeed, since the enactment of Bill C-12, several programs and policies have been redesigned and others will eventually be under review in light
268Chapter
12
of CSP 2012.
Figure 12.1 Canadian Contexts
of sport
Sport Policy 2012 Framework participationRelated
policy fields Health
High performance
Culture Recreation
Tourism Competitive
sport
Professional sport
Justice Recreational
sport
Infrastructure
Aboriginal
Introduction to sport
affairs
Citizenship andimmigration International
affairs
Source: Based on the Canadian Sport Policy 2012 Framework in Canadian Sport Policy 2012, pg. 7.
Akeydifference betweenCSP2012and CSP2002is the conceptthatthis policyshould not only benefitthe developmentofsport perse, but alsocontributeto largersocial goalsand
otherpolicyfields.Thiswidest scopeisreflected in Figure12.1byarrowsthat pointto andcome from otherpolicyfields such asinfrastructure, health,culture, Aboriginalaffairs,andso on.
WithCSP2012,Sport Canadasprogramsandpoliciesform anintricate networkof intervention
mechanisms that fall mainlyinto the category ofexpenditures.Indeed, Sport
Canadadoesnt haveits own policyandprogramdelivery mechanisms. Asstatedearlier, mostof the policies and programsarein fact deliveredthrough funding to varioussport
organizations and athletesthemselves.Evenif expendituresareinstrumentsofindirect action, the funding criteria adopted by Sport Canadaoverthe last three decadesresult in
anincreasingindirect control over MSOsand NSOs.Indeed, more fundingfrom thefederal government means increased dependencyfor these organizations, which haveto align
their policiesandprograms to obtaintheir funding. Giventhe length ofthis chapter,it is not possibleto describeand analyzein depth eachaspect ofthese policies and programs,
but Figure12.2providesthelist ofspecificpoliciesand programs(with the dateof their last iteration in parenthesis)as well asthe funding programsthat representthe bulk of
Sport Canada spending. Here,I will providean overviewofthreefunding programs: the Sport Support Program,the Athlete AssistanceProgram,andthe Hosting Program.
Sport Support Program Allegedly,the mostimportant funding programis the Sport SupportProgram(SSP), whichis the processby which the federal government identifies which NSOs, MSOs,
and Canadian sport centresareeligiblefor grantsby Sport Canada.SSPalsodetermines
Sport,
Politics,
and
Policy269
figure
12.2 Federal Sport Policies, Programs, and Regulations
policies
and
programs
The Canadian Sport Policy (2012) Treasury Athlete
Board Policy Assistance
on Official
Program:
Languages
Policies,
(2012)
Procedures
and
Guidelines
(2012)
Canadian Policy Against Doping in Sport (2011) Policy
on Aboriginal
Actively
Engaged:
Peoples A Policy
Federal Policy for
Participation on Sport for
in
Sport (2005)
Women
Hosting International
and
Girls (2009)
Sport Events (referred
to later
as the
Hosting
Policy, 2008) Canadian Federal
Strategy
for
Government
Ethical Policy
Conduct
in
on Tobacco
Sport (2002) Sponsorship
of
National
Sport
Organizations
(1985) funding Sport
programs Support
Sport
Program
Canada
Long-Term Own the
Research Initiative
Athlete
Development
Podium
Athlete Assistance Program Hosting
Program
Source: Canadian Heritage, 2013a.
in what areas, at what levels, and under what conditions recognized organizations qualify for funding.
Introduced
in 1995, under the name Sport Funding and
Accountability
Framework, the SSP contains aseries of criteria that determine which sport organizations should receive federal funding and at what level. nying contribution
With this
mechanism and its accompa-
guidelines, Sport Canada hasa tool that hassignificant influence
the policies and programs of each organization it provides funding to. Indeed, criteria relate to commitments
that sport organizations
on
mostof the
must have for several Sport
Canada policies and programs. For example, an NSO must have adopted the Canadian Policy Against Doping in Sport, be committed to ethical officiating and coaching education and conduct, and have formal
policies on bilingualism,
access and equity, women,
persons with disabilities, and Aboriginal people, as well as a policy against harassment and abuse. By attaching funding through these criteria,
Sport Canadatries to ensure that
all its policies, programs,and regulations are consistently implemented throughout the sport system. Thus, even if Sport Canada doesnt intervene
directly in the daily life of the
MSOsand NSOs,it neverthelessenforcesaseries ofstrict rules of conduct. Through the SSP, Sport Canada also provides funding to the Sport Canada Research
Initiative (a partnershipwiththe SocialSciencesand HumanitiesResearchCouncilof Canada in funding independent research on sport participation), the CS4L/LTAD initiative, as wellas
Ownthe Podium(OTP), a controversialfunding programtargetedat NSOsand athletes most likely to earn medalsat Olympicsand otherinternational
270Chapter
12
gamesand championships.
The Athlete AssistanceProgram The second
majorfederal funding
program is the
Through a carding system, the program identifies
Athlete
Assistance Program (AAP).
and financially
supports athletes in the
top 16 in the worldin their sport, or those athletes who have beenidentified
as having the
potential to reach that level of performance. The program consists of a monthly living and training allowance and postsecondary tuition
support, if applicable. In 2012, over 1,900
athletes in morethan 80 disciplines received some funding through the
AAP.
The carding systemincludes three majorcategories:the senior international cards(finished in the top eight in international competition) andthe senior national cards(have the potential to reach the international
criteria) both provide an allowance of $1,500 per month; develop-
mentcards(has demonstrated high-performance potential) provide an allowance of $900 per month. However,the current carding system doesnt matchthe needsof all high-performance athletes. Athletes CAN, alobby organization for athletes funded by Sport Canada,arguesthat morefunding is neededand that several athletes are still living under the poverty line. Thisis especiallythe casefor those who havent yet madeit to the international level and those who are unableto accessthe scarce private sponsorship funding and are not supported by OTP.
However,the needsof Canadianathletes are not limited to the issuesoffinancial support. In the early 1980s an increasing number of abuses of power by coaches and NSOs
wasdocumented. Areport about athlete rights in Canadaarguedthat basic humanrights, such asthe right to defend oneself in the case of an alleged arbitrary decision, were often
not respectedin the Canadiansport system. Mechanismswere,in turn, proposedto correct these issues, but the situation didnt improve enough for athletes (Kidd
& Eberts, 1982).
Bill C-12createdthe Sport Dispute Resolution Centre of Canada(SDRC) to provide a nonjudicial
dispute resolution system to
Canadian athletes and sport organizations.
Sport,
Politics,
and
Policy271
Assuch, each NSO and MSO mustadhere to the dispute resolution centres structure and allow their athletes to accessthe
AAP. The SDRC constitutes an improvement
for ath-
letes simply becauseit provides them with a tool that offers some protection from arbitrary decisions or abuse bytheir
NSO, MSO, or coaches. Also,the SDRC offers a quicker deci-
sion process than the judicial
system and has the advantage of relieving
the federal
authorities of the necessity to take a position on mostof the controversial issues.
The Hosting Program The third
majorfederal funding program is the Hosting Program, which Sport Canadacon-
siders a key instrument in the governments approach to enhancing sport capacity and development. Its purpose is to assist sport organizations or organizing committees in hosting national sport events like the
Canada Games or international
sport events. It is widely
believed in the sport community and government circles that these events produce significant sport, economic, social, and cultural benefits. The program is alsoseen asa contributor to other government goals,such as promoting Canadianidentity and fostering the international image of Canada and Canadian cities. The current events: international tional
major multi-sport games,international
Hosting Program supports four single sport events, interna-
multi-sport gamesfor Aboriginal peoples and persons with a disability, andthe Canada
Games. Each of these components hasits own set of criteria for funding; however, each project submitted
mustdemonstrate potential for social, economic, and cultural impacts as well
asthe delivery of benefits orlegaciesfor sport and the hosting communities after the events.
Other Policies, Programs, and Regulations I will now briefly present the other policies, programs, and regulations in place, which are listed in Figure 12.2. Actively Engaged: A Policy on Sportfor
Womenand Girlsis a document
that takes a liberal feminist approach to the issue of women in sport and was adopted by the government in 2009. The policy is mainly a series of objective statements encouraging gender equity in sports, and these objectives are operationalized in the structure of funding programs. For example, under the Sport Support Program, NSOs and MSOs have to demonstrate that they have adopted policies that commit to equity and accessfor women. According to the policy, Canadian Heritageis committed to a sport system that provides quality sport experiences, where women and girls are actively engaged and equitably supported in a full range of roles. Sport Canadais in partnership with organizations such as the Canadian Association for the Advancement of Women and Sport and Physical Activity (CAAWS),
launched in 1981, which gets mostof its funding from Sport Canada.
The Canadian Policy Against Dopingin Sport originated from the recommendations of
the DubinInquiry. Indeed, the report documentedthat the measures put in place by the Government of Canada(with the Canadian Council of Sports Medicine) werenot sufficient
andthat the existing anti-doping policy hadto berevised.Justice Dubin wasnotin favour of direct state intervention
in the daily administration
of sport organizations, so hesuggested
that astate-fundedindependent organization be put in placeto implement animproved anti-doping policy. Currently, the organization in charge ofimplementing the policy, includ-
ing anti-drugtesting,is the CCES,which wasbornfrom the mergerbetweenthe Canadian Centrefor Drug-Free Sport and Fair Play Canada.
272Chapter
12
The CCESis responsible for arange of issues,including fair play, drug-freesport, equity, safety, and nonviolence in
Canadian sport.
Again, ethical conduct and anti-doping
are
among the concerns the Sport Support Program deals with. Canadais not the only country dealing with doping problemsthe
issueis clearly a global one.In 1999, after doping scandals
in cycling, the IOC decidedto convene a conference in Lausanne, Switzerland. An outcome of the conference wasto recommend the creation of WADA asan independent international organization dedicated to anti-doping and equally funded by the IOC and nation-states. Housedin Lausanne, WADA movedits headquartersto Montrealin 2002after the Canadian government lobbied to housethe organization. This wasseen as an opportunity for Canadato makeits presence known in international sport and to foster its views on international doping policies. In 2004,
WADA adopted the first
World Anti-Doping
anti-
Code.
In addition to gender equity and doping initiatives, another important
hurdlefacing the
Canadian sport system rests in the area of language, specifically the lack of bilingualism. Although French and English have been recognized as Canadas two official languages for decades,sport organizations continue to blame their inability to provide adequate bilingual servicesto their
memberson limited financial resourcesfor translation and on their status as
independent, not-for-profit organizations that should not besubjected to federal government legislation. Counterargumentsto these claims point out that these national organizations have to adhereto the Constitution of the country if they wishto berecognized asthe national organizationin their sport. Besides,these organizationsreceive anincreasingly important amount of public funding provided by taxpayersfrom both linguistic communities. Overthe years, numerous complaints have beenfiled, servicesfor
mostlyby French-speaking athletes, about the lack of bilingual
example, unilingual coaching services, the forced relocation of national-team
athletes to wherebilingual schooling is not available, and perceivedlinguistic discrimination. In 2000, the office ofthe Commissioner of Official Languagespublished a document called The Official Languages in the CanadianSportsSystem, describing these incidents and outlining the intense debatesthat arose overlanguage politics in
Canadiansport. Given the lack of action
from the government, afollow-up report wasissued bythe commissionerin 2003. Now,as has been discussed,a bilingual strategy for NSOsand MSOsis a criterion underthe SSP.
iSSueS AnD controverSieS cAnADiAn Sport poLicy
in
In the previous section I briefly listed described the
mainfederal-level sport policies and
programs. Assuch, they appear as a set of different neutral administrative tools designed to efficiently and rationally
managethe Canadian state interventions
in sport, providing
values and guidance for the Canadian sport system. In reality, these policies and programs are much-debated partial answers to a variety of issues that permeate the Canadian sport
system,as wellasareflection ofthe status of powerrelations in sport politics at this time in
Canada.In this section I will describe two of these issues.
Thefirst issueis the extent the Canadianstateshould intervene in high-performance sport as opposedto massparticipation sport. Asa corollary, to what extent should the state
target high-performancesportfunding on Olympic medalhopefulsas opposedto providing equal funding to all high Canadian high-performance athletes in all disciplines? Since the
election of the government of Pierre Trudeau(in the context of the Cold War,poor performances by Canadian athletes on the international
stage, and increasing nationalism
Sport,
Politics,
and
Policy273
in
Quebec,followed bythe prospect of the
Montreal Olympic Gamesin 1976), the federal
government hasincreasingly considered high-performance sport as a tool to promote the image of Canadaabroad as well as national unity domestically. Thisideology forced by the trickle
wasalso rein-
widespread belief that great performances by high-performance
athletes
down to average Canadians,inspiring them to participate in sport.
The pervasiveness of this ideology reached another level
with the launch of OTP on
the eve of the Vancouver Olympic Games, a controversial program targeting athletes with the highest medal potential, providing them to achieve their best performances.
Canadians
with unprecedented resources
Whilethis approach hasliterally
created two classesof
athletes, questions have also been raised about the impact and cost ofthese performances. Indeed, asshown by Donnelly (2013), since the late 1990s, while Canadian athletes have won higher numbers of medals, masssport participation a sharp decline.
by average Canadians has beenin
Moreover, while other countries are putting in place similar programs, the
cost of winning an Olympic medalis increasingly
higher. For example, Donnelly (2010)
has calculated that in the four years between the
Torino
Games and the
Games, $94 million wasspent by OTP. Yet Canadian athletes won only two (n = 26) in
Vancouver more medals
Vancouver compared to the 24 harvested in Torino four years before, which
represents an additional cost of $47 million for each of these two additional much money will Canada have to spend to continue to succeed in widely called the global
medals. How
what is now more
sporting armsrace?
Connectedto the political decisionsthat haveresulted in increasing resources being dedicated to the pursuit of Olympic medalsis the issue of sport participation. Sport participation suffersfrom gross underfunding at the federal level. Despiterhetoric in CSP 2002 and CSP 2012 about the equalimportance of high-performance sport and sport participation, in reality very few Sport Canadaresources are devoted to the latter.
Under the SSP, MSOsfunding
criteria related to high-performance sport account for 60% of the weighting grid, and 40% is devoted to sport participation and development. Despitethese figures, it is estimated that not morethan 5% of the contributions
MSOsreceive from Sport Canadaactually goto participa-
tion (Donnelly, 2013). But one could arguethat this is not the only source of funding for participation sport. Indeed, since the adoption of CSP 2002,the federal and provincial/territorial governments entered into bilateral cost-sharing agreements to support sport participation. However, at roughly $5 million in 20102011, for example (Harvey, 2013), when compared to the total Sport Canadacontributions for that same year($160 million), the bilateral agreementsrepresent a modestsum in comparison to whatis spent on high-performance sport. Another source of funding to sport participation is the Childrens Fitness Tax Credit introduced
by the
Harper government in 2007 to provide a tax credit for parents for the
expenses of children under 16 years of age who are registered in sport andfitness programs. Again, this
measure,this time directed at citizens/taxpayers, is highly questionable asto the
extent ofits impact on sport participation. First, the tax credit is a regressivetax, which meansthat higher income earners receive the biggest tax credit (topped at $75for $500 in
expensesfor registration and membership).Yetthese higherincome earnersare precisely the
middle-classfamilies
who can already afford to register their children in sport.
More-
over,the lowestincome earners,those whocannot affordto registertheir children in sport, simply do not benefit from any tax credit. The Childrens Fitness Tax Credit, moreover,
doesnotinclude expenses for sport equipmentandtransportation costs;theseareadditional expensesthat regularly prohibit less-affluent families from enrolling their children in sport.
274Chapter
12
Besidesabysmal funding, the second problem with regard to sport participation is the bureaucratic
divide between Sport Canada (in charge of sport participation)
Healthy Living
motion of physical activity). dialogue and cooperation sport participation
Despite many attempts, there has been little
between these two administrative
is the lack of community
Olympic
meaningful
units.
Afinal challenge of
sport infrastructure.
As pointed out by
Donnelly (2013), if there is indeed some trickledown result of the
and the
Unit within the Public Health Agency of Canada (in charge of the pro-
Games,sport infrastructure
effect for
Canadian athletes as a
has to be existing and expanded to
accommodate potential new sport participants.
conclusions Sport, especially at the international level, hasa highly metaphoricpower ofidentification for countries and can therefore serve important political goals. High-performance sport, as well as grassrootssport, involves the distribution of collective resources and,thus, implicates the state in a widerange of power relations and struggles.In this chapter I have demonstrated that sport and politics are not mutually exclusive and that sport policy is a complex andimportant area of contemporary sport. Through an overview of some current policies and programs,I haveshown the complexity of the federal governments intervention in sport and how private organizations like
NSOsand MSOsinteract
withthe statein the governance of Canadassport system.
Atthis point I wishto underline that evenif federal government funding to sport orga-
nizationsis increasingly contingent ontheir adhesionto a vastarrayof precisestate policies and programs, NSOsand MSOsare nevertheless organizations that still have a great deal of
autonomyand oftenresist Sport Canadapolicies. Since Bill C-131,the federal government hasconcentrated on high-performance sport mainly for the promotion of Canadas national
unity andsocial cohesion. Butdiscrimination andinequalities arestill thriving in Canadas sport system in terms of class,gender, race, ethnicity, and language. Onlythrough action by
citizensand organizedpressuregroups willthe politics ofsport improve in Canada. Whatissues will governments face in the future? Increasing amounts of public funding will continue to be requested by sport system participants Olympic medalsand
aslong asthe quest for
World Cuptitles remains at the centre of state preoccupations.
the other hand, the obesity crisis, the aging population, andinequalities participation
opportunities call for
morestate intervention
On
of accessto sport
to tackle these issues. Indeed,
the problem is not whether the state should intervene in sport, but rather
what public
policies should be adopted for the benefit of all Canadians.
critical thinking 1.
Questions
Whatarethe mainreasons whygovernmentsincreasingly intervene in sport? Should that course be continued or reversed? If so, how?
2. Should the federal government continue to put the emphasis on high-performance sport or switch to improve sport participation for all? 3.
What hasto be done to improve current sport policies in
Canada?
Sport,
Politics,
and
Policy275
4. Cannational sport organizationssurvive without statefunding? 5. ShouldCanadaplayanactiveroleontheinternationalsportscene?Ifso,whatshould that role be? 6. Sinceanincreasing number of athletes andsport organizationsare nowsponsoredby private corporations,should the government reduceits funding?
Suggested readings Barnes, J. (2010). Thibault,
Thelaw of hockey. Markham, ON: Lexus Nexus.
L. & Harvey, J. (Eds.). (2013).
Sport policy in
Canada. Ottawa,
ON: University
of
Ottawa Press.
references Barnes, J. (2010).
Thelaw of hockey. Markham, ON: Lexus Nexus.
Boycoff, J. (2011).
The anti-Olympics.
Canadian Heritage. (2012).
New Left Review, 67, 4159.
Canadian Sport Policy 2012. Retrieved from http://sirc.ca/CSPRenewal/
documents/CSP2012_EN.pdf. Donnelly, P. (2010).
Rent the podium revisited:
Reflections on Vancouver 2010. Policy Options,
31(4), 8486. Donnelly, P. (2013). Sport participation. In L. Thibault (pp. 177213).
& J. Harvey (Eds.), Sport policy in Canada
Ottawa, ON: University of Ottawa Press.
Dubin, C. L. (1990).
Commission ofinquiry into the use of drugs and banned substancesintended to
increase athletic performance. Ottawa, ON: Supply and Services Canada. Giddens, A. (1989). Sociology. Oxford, UK: Polity Press. Gruneau, R.(1983). Class,sport andsocial development. Amherst, MA: University of MassachusettsPress. Harvey, J. (1988). Sport policy and the welfare state: An outline of the
Canadian state. Sociologyof
Sport Journal, 5, 315329. Harvey, J. (2013).
Multi-level governance and sport policy in
Canada. In J. Thibault
&J. Harvey
(Eds.), Sport policy in Canada. Ottawa, ON: University of Ottawa Press. Harvey, J., Horne, J., Safai, P., Darnell, S., & Courchesne-ONeill, ments.London,
S. (2013). Sport and social move-
UK: Bloomsbury.
Harvey, J., & Proulx, R.(1988). Sport and the state in Notjust a game: Essaysin
Canada.In J. Harvey & H. Cantelon (Eds.),
Canadian sport sociology (pp. 93112).
Ottawa, ON: University of
Ottawa Press. Kidd, B. (1996).
The struggle for
Kidd, B., & Eberts, MacIntosh,
M. (1982).
D., Bedecki,
mentinvolvement
Sutcliffe
Athletes rights in
T. & Franks,
since 1961.
Meynaud, J. (1966). Pal, L. (2006).
Canadian sport.
QC:
Group. (2010).
Interprovincial Retrieved from
University ON:
of Toronto Queens
Sport and politics in
McGill-Queens
University
Press.
Printer.
Canada: Federal governPress.
Paris, FR: Payot.
Beyond policy analysis: Public issue
Policy: Final report.
ON:
Canada. Toronto,
C. E. S. (1987).
Montreal,
Sport et politique.
Toronto,
management in turbulent times.
sport and recreation
council:
Evaluation
Toronto, of the
ON: Nelson. Canadian Sport
http://www.sirc.ca/CSPRenewal/documents/CSP_Evaluation_
Final_ReportEN.pdf. Zirin,
D. (2005).
Haymarket
276Chapter
12
Whats
Books.
my name, fool?
Sport and resistance
in the
United States.
Chicago,
IL:
Chapter13 TheBusinessof Sport Brad R. Humphreys and MosheLander
I
caught a couple of hours of the supermarket
Oh
Terribly. They
employees on TV last night.
A cashier
mishandled an easy credit card payment and it led to along lineup.
should trade him for a stock boy and future
Morethan
103,000 football
fans attended
yeah? How did our guys do?
considerations.
Super Bowl XLVin
Dallas, Texas, as the Pittsburgh Steelers defeated the Green Bay Packers.
Thisfictitious conversationsoundsbizarreand unlikely, butfans relationship with sports is peculiar, andthis is exactly howfans talk abouttheir teams.Fansenjoy watchinggames playedlive or on television, but to watchsport is to observean employee earn a paycheque by performing hisjob at his workplace. Beforeand after each contest, fans demandthat athletes and coaches defendtheir performanceand decisions,even though mostfans arelessinformed about the intricate decisionsthey observethan the athletes and coaches. Whenateam succeedsorfails, fans speak ofthem asus, we, and our, asif they hadsomething to do withthe outcome. Whorefersto CanadaPostasours? Whoraced outto getthe newestgear when Research In Motion officially changedits nameto BlackBerry? Did Montreal,the headquartersof Air Canada,celebratethe companysrecord third-quarter results with the samefervour it did whenthe Canadienswonthe Stanley Cup?
Gary Hershorn/Reuters
277
The unique wayin whichfans approachsportsis ofinterest to sociologistsand merits the needfor objective, critical analysis of sport. In this chapter, wediscussthe political economy of sport that describesthe study of production, consumption, and economic transactions; the distribution of wealthand income in economies; and the relationship betweenthese economic activities andlaw, government, and other elements of society. Wefocus on a critical economic analysis of professionalsports leaguesin Canadaand investigate the organizationof theseleagues,howthey operate,and howthey interact with fans. Wealso critically analyzethe hosting ofthe Olympic Games,an event that Canada hostedin 1976 (Montreal Summer Games),1988 (Calgary Winter Games),and most recently in 2010 (Vancouver Winter Games).
The STrucTure
of ProfeSSional
Team SPorTS
Professional Team Sport Leagues in Canada Eventhough the presenceof majorleaguesport and variousfranchisesis often taken for grantedin ourlives and simply seemsnatural, it is important to notethat the emergence ofthe majorleagues was far from uncontestedandfollowed a distinct pattern of cartelization, stable monopolyas national institution, andthe incorporation of potential competitors through mergersand/or expansions (Gruneau & Whitson,2001, p. 240). As wenote below, while motivatedfirst and foremost by profit, the economic structure of major leaguesport hasa number of unique characteristicsin comparisonto other businesses.
The national
hockey leagueThe
National HockeyLeague(NHL) is the premier hockeyleaguein the world.It wasestablishedin 1917 out of the National Hockey Associationas afour-team league consisting of two teamsin Montreal,onein Toronto, and onein Ottawa. Theleague wasfar from unique and wasone of manycompeting hockeyleaguesthat had varying degreesof successandfailure dating backto the 1880s.Forthe first 25 years, the NHL experiencedconstant expansion, contraction, and relocation with franchises appearing in Boston, Brooklyn, Chicago, Detroit, Hamilton, Montreal, New York, Ottawa, Philadelphia, Pittsburgh, Quebec,St. Louis, and Toronto. Duringthis time, it competedfor talent with rival leagues,the Pacific Coast Hockey Association(PCHA) andthe WesternCanada HockeyLeague(WCHL). Forthe first 10 yearsofits existence,the winner of a competition betweenthe champions ofthe PCHA and WCHL wouldchallenge the champion ofthe NHLto a contest in which the winner wasawardedthe Stanley Cup. Only whenthe PCHA and WCHL ceasedoperationsin 1924 and 1926,respectively, did the NHL claim defacto control of the Cup,and eventhen it only securedexclusive control ofit in 1947. By 1942,the NHL had establisheditself asthe monopolyprovider of professional hockeyin North America,asix-teamleague withfranchisesin Boston, Chicago,Detroit, Montreal, New York, and Toronto. The next 25 years(the Original Six era) contained no expansion,contraction, orfranchise moves.Aperiod of expansionstartedin 19671968 with the addition of six newfranchises and continued with two moreteams in each of 19691970, 19711972, and 19731974. Achallenge to its marketdominance,the World Hockey Association(WHA), was eliminated with the absorption of four of the six remaining WHAteamsinto the NHL
278Chapter
13
in 19791980. Further expansion brought the NHL to its current 30 teams. Thislast period of expansionincluded major marketsin the westernand southern United States and the relocation of the franchises in Winnipeg and Quebec City to Phoenix and Denver, respectively (although the Jets returned to Winnipegin 2011 when the Atlanta Thrashers movednorth).
The canadian football leagueThe CanadianFootball League(CFL) is a relative newcomerin North Americanprofessionalsportsleagues,butits franchises havelonger historiesthan the leaguethat grewout ofthe amateur CanadianRugbyFootball Union (CRFU), founded in 1884, and a championship trophy, the Grey Cup,that is secondin ageonly to the Stanley Cup(1909 comparedto 1893). The CFL wasformed in 1958. The league expanded into the United States between 1993 and 1995, placing teamsin Baltimore, Birmingham, Las Vegas, Memphis, Sacramento, and Shreveport. These US expansion teams experienced financial problems during their short existencefive folded, and the Baltimore franchise relocated to Montrealin 1996. Withthe exception of the USexpansion in the 1990s,the league hasbeen relatively stable at eight teams, although teamsin Ottawa have periodically folded. In 2014 a ninth team wasaddedin Ottawa, which hasnot had a team since 2005. major league BaseballMajor
LeagueBaseball(MLB) consistsoftwo leagues:the National League(NL), founded in 1876, and the American League(AL), founded in 1901. Until the late 1950s,eachleague contained eight teams operatingin manyof the largest US marketsin the Northeastand Midwest.Thelate 1950sand 1960ssaw teams movingto California andthe expansion of bothleagues.In 1969, MLBexpandedto Montreal and in 1977 into Toronto. Further expansion resulted in MLBs current size of 30teams. Whileprofessionalbaseballremainsin Toronto, Montrealsteam, the Expos, movedto Washingtonin 2005,citing financial difficulties and a badstadium.
national Basketball
associationThe
National Basketball Association(NBA) beganin 1949in a mergerof the Basketball Association of America and the National BasketballLeague.The NBAstarted with 17teamsintended to fill NHL arenas.By 1953 1954,the league had only eight teams and the nextfew yearssaw aseries of relocations. The NBA expandedin the 1960s. Arival league, the American Basketball Association (ABA), beganoperatingin 1967,forcing the NBAto expandrapidly to competefor talent and markets;four ABA teams mergedwith the NBAin 1976. The NBA addedfour franchisesin the late 1980sandtwo Canadianfranchisesin 1995:the Vancouver Grizzlies and Toronto Raptors.Professionalbasketball wasnever popularin Vancouver,and after six seasonsof disastrouson-court performancethe team relocated to Memphisin 2001. The NBAreachedits current 30-teamsizein 2004.
national football
leagueThe
National Football League(NFL) wasfounded in 1920 with 17teams. Onlytwo teamsremain from this league:the Chicago Bearsand the Arizona Cardinals; manyearly teamsfolded. In 1933,the NFLcreatedatwo-conference structure in which the conference champions played in a championship game and expandedto a 16-teamleague. The NFLfaced manyrival leagues,including the AllAmericaFootball Conferencein 1950 andthe AmericanFootball League(AFL) in 1960. The NFLand AFL agreedin 1966 to a championship game, now known asthe Super
The
Business
of
Sport279
Bowl,in whichthe champions of eachleague wouldplay each other; the leaguesformally mergedin 1970. Sincethe merger,variousfranchises haverelocated, and expansion has increasedthe leaguesizeto 32teams. No Canadianteamsexistin the NFL,although some regular-seasongameshavetaken placein Toronto withthe BuffaloBills asthe hometeam.
major league SoccerIn
1994,soccersgoverning body,la FederationInternationale deFootball Association(FIFA), forced the United StatesSoccerFederationto establisha premier soccer league in return for awarding the United Statesthe rights to host the World Cup. Theleague, now called MajorLeagueSoccer(MLS), debutedin 1996 with 10teams;two expansionteamsjoined in 1998. MLSexpandedto 19 teams by adding at least one expansionfranchise every yearafter 2005,including three franchisesin Canada (Toronto in 2005, Vancouverin 2011,and Montrealin 2012).
League Structure Professionalsportsleaguesall face asimilar set of economic problemsthat mustbesolved for playto take place. Theyalsoface the uniqueissue of joint production: Noteam can operatealone,so to succeedasportsteam requires competitors whocan becounted on to reliably provide competition for the team. In this section, wediscussthe organization of professionalsportsleaguesin an economic context. cartelis a group of two or morefirms that formally agreeto coordinate their cartelsA production and pricing decisionsto maximizejoint profits. By acting in unison, a cartel allows a group offirms to exercise monopolypower. Someaspectsof sportsleague behaviour can be describedascartel behaviour. Anti-trust laws exist to prevent the formation of cartels because,in exercising monopolypower,firms engagein anti-competitive behaviourthat is harmfulto consumers.In particular, a monopolyfirm earnsexcessprofits by restricting output belowthe amount that would havebeen producedby competingfirms andraisesthe price of output abovethe pricethat would havebeen charged by competingfirms. Until recently, think of RogersCablein Ontario, TELUSin Alberta, or Videotronin Quebec. Howdosportsleaguesachieve monopolystatus?First,for acartelto besuccessful, it must beableto preventnewcompetitorsfrom enteringthe market.Long-established sportsleagues can dothis easily. All professionalsportsleaguesin North Americahaveformal territorial agreementsthat divide upthe United Statesand Canadainto well-definedareasin which eachteam canact asa monopolistand prevent newteamsfrom openingin the territory. The Toronto MapleLeafshavelong exercisedtheseterritorial rights, preventing ownersseeking to bringrival teamsto Hamilton, Kitchener,and evento Markham.Long-termbroadcasting contracts,facilities, travel costs,playerdevelopmentsystems,brand building, andfan loyalty as wellassituating franchisesin denselypopulatedareasalsogeneratebarriersto entry. Second,cartels mustbe able to restrict output quantity and increase pricesto earn monopoly rents (i.e., profits over and above what they would earn in a competitive marketplace).Sportsleaguescreatealimited supply offranchises andrestrict the length of the seasonthat wouldnot existin a competitive marketplace.Absentthis monopolypower, moreteams wouldexistin every professionalleague and moregameswould be playedin eachseason. Successful(i.e., profitable) franchisesin a moreconventional industry, like sports apparel, wouldattract newentrants, reducing pricesand increasing the quantity of
280Chapter
13
output produced.Sportsleaguesblock entrantsand extractrentsfrom thoseseekingto enter (in the form of expansionfees),thus preventingthis market mechanism from occurring. Third, cartels mustproduce a reasonably homogeneous product. Sportsleagues require teams to play on the samefield or surface with the same dimensions, usingthe same rules, uniforms, and equipment. Fourth, cartels mustagree how to share their monopoly power. Territorial rights, revenue sharing, restricting player movementsand salaries all represent power-sharingarrangementsin sportsleagues. Whilethis poweris allocated to individual franchises, a governing body often enforcesthese agreementsto ensurethat cartel membersdo not infringe or cheat onleagueagreements. In 1922,the US SupremeCourtruled that MajorLeagueBaseball wasnot subject to anti-trust laws becausean individual baseballfranchise cannot exist independently and baseball did not, according to the court, constitute interstate commerce. Thatis, for a team to existthere mustbe at least one other team to ensuresome on-field competition. Upto a point, moreteams meansmorecompetition, so the formation ofleagues necessitates the formation of cartels. Since professional baseballcould not exist otherwise,the court ruled it could not be subject to anti-trust laws. By extension, other professional sportsleagues mustalsolend themselvesto cartel behaviour. The marketpower generatedby professionalsportsleaguesreducesconsumer welfare. Byrestricting output, leagues deny accessto live professionalsports to fans in cities that would otherwisebe ableto support ateam. Byincreasing prices,leaguesforce fans to pay a higher priceto attend gamesor watchgameson television than they wouldhaveto pay if leagues weresubject to anti-trust laws like other businesses. In Canada,the Competition Bureauis responsiblefor preventing anti-competitive businesspractices. However, whereeconomic welfareand efficiency are enhancedthese behavioursare permitted, regardlessof whetherthe owner orthe playeris the recipient of the welfaregain. Such permissible practicesinclude the right to collective bargaining
The Saskatchewan team
to
win the
Roughriders CFL championship
won the
2013
on their
Grey Cup, becoming
the third
consecutive
home turf.
MARK BLINCH/Reuters/Corbis
The
Business
of
Sport281
(allowing employees to form unions for the purpose of negotiating wagesand other terms of employment), to forming amateur sports associations and professional sports leagues and teams, and to protecting products covered byintellectual
property law, such as patents,
copyrights, and trademarks. Theline between what is permitted and whatis not is afine one. For example, sharing statistics among owners and players is acceptable, but not if it leads to collusive behaviour wherein owners engagein price-fixing
when setting player salaries. Another example is
when a sports league hasthe ability to set its rules for the league. Theserules can be usedto
membership or participation
within
maintain a reasonable balance among teams, but
they cannot be so unreasonable that the opportunities
ofindividual
players or interested
investors (i.e., new owners) to participate are severely limited. Intellectual
property rights allow league governors to self-regulate
(i.e., to interpret
and implement their own rules on the assumption that these rules are aimed at promoting the bestinterests of the sport or sports league that they represent). In a simple example, the league can allow each franchise to have a monopoly over its team name and to profit from it. Of course, most Canadians will befamiliar
with the bizarre situation in which two
CFLfranchises carried the name Roughriders (Saskatchewan spells it as one word while the Ottawa franchise spelled it as two).
monopsony
Power, the
reserve
clause,
and free
agencyA
monopolyis
a market with only one seller; a monopsonyis a market with only one buyer. Withthe exception of the CFL and MLS,the other four major North American professional sports leagues are the premier leagues in the world in their respective sports. The worlds top players in these sports have a strong preference to play in these leagues, giving teams monopsony power when negotiating player rights, salaries, contracts, and freedom of movement. Theleagues further strengthen their position through the implementation
of an entry
draft in which top unsigned amateur players are restricted to negotiating entry-level contracts exclusively with the team that drafted the rights to their labour services. This arrangementleaves players with little
bargaining power and gives owners the potential to exploit
players by paying lower salaries, benefits, or pensions and restricting the free movement and transfer of their talents to other teams. A player entering a league through the entry draft can either negotiate with the team that holds his rights or not play professionally in the league. The effect of entry drafts that assign the rights to an incoming
players labour ser-
vices to a single team is a reduction in young players salaries below what they would have earnedin a competitive
market where players could sell their services to the highest bidder.
Professionalathletes haveresponded to this monopsonypower byforming players unions, like the
National Hockey League Players Association, that exert monopoly power when
negotiating with franchises. Players unions counter franchise owners desiresto exploit players by guaranteeing minimum salaries, specifying conditions under which players can moveand negotiate freely with competing franchises, and developing a common set of safety standards and basic provisions such as healthcare coverage, pensions, and other rights and benefits. Since the beginning of organized professional sports leagues in
North America, team
owners controlled players through an agreement under which each owner would agree not to tamper with any other owners players by enticing a player under contract with promises
of betterpay, workingconditions,status,andso on. Thissystem,calledthe reserveclause,was first usedby National Leaguebaseball ownersin 1879 (just three years after the formation
282Chapter
13
of
the National Leaguein 1876). It effectively created indentured servitude by playersto their teamsfor aslong asthe players careerlasted. Thereserve clause refers to an actual clausein the standard contract between each player and his team that allowed the team to reserve the players servicesin perpetuity. A player was never allowed to sell hisservices to the highest bidder under the reserve clause,although teams werefree to trade the contracts of players to other teams or to terminate the contract at will. Like entry drafts, the reserve clause reduced players salaries below what they would have earned under a system where players werefree to sell their services to the highest bidder. Othersports leaguesincorporated varying forms of the reserve clause with differences reflecting the unique nature oftheir league. Curt Flood, a defensive standout for macy of such an arrangement.
MLBs St. Louis Cardinals, challenged the legiti-
When traded to the Philadelphia
refused to report, citing racist fans and poor playing conditions. ciation (MLBPA)
Phillies in 1969 Flood The MLB Players Asso-
offered to fund his legal options, and Flood pursued his free agency
rights to the US Supreme Court, where he ultimately lost. Nonetheless,the
MLBPA secured from rattled ownership the creation of an indepen-
dent arbitration panel to resolve contract disputes between owners and players.In one such ruling, the panel granted limited free agencyto a pair of players who had played the previous season without a contract. The ability to sell ones talents competitively to the highest bidder came with restrictions, but free agencyspread quickly to the other leagues. Salariesrose significantly in all professional sports leagues after the advent of free agency becausethe monopsony power enjoyed by teams operating under the reserve clause wassignificantly reduced. Thelast 40 years of collective bargaining agreementsin eachleague havefocused, to varying degrees,on the right balance between the owners rights to buy
playersfor their teams (i.e.,
the reserve system) and the players rights to freedom of movement (i.e., free agency). The reserve clause still exists in a limited form in all professional sports leagues in North America. Young players mustplay a specified number of seasons before they become eligible for free agency. From the time they are drafted until they qualify for free agency, professional athletes are still subject to the reserve clause.
League Functions cooperative eliminating
BehaviourIn
a typical industry, firms
maximize profits in part by
competitors. Professional sports leagues are different in that, while one team
might try to defeat its competitors in on-field or on-ice competition, it does not want to eliminate its competitors from off-field operations.
Without a team against which to com-
pete, how can one team survive or be profitable? Moreover, even in a financially
viable league, if the winner of the on-field competi-
tion is aforgone conclusion, then fan interest in competitions
will decline. If the outcome
of a contest werecertain, the result would beless opportunity to generate revenue, lower profitability,
and a welfare loss for owners and consumers. Therefore, it is in each teams
interest to ensure not only the financial competitivenesscooperative Individual
viability of its competitors, but alsotheir on-field
behaviour is necessaryin professional sports leagues.
teams will often cede control
more profitable than
of decisions to a coordinating
body if it is
making such decisions at the team level. Examplesinclude
ing broadcastingagreements,joint enue sharing. In circumstances
negotiat-
marketingand merchandisingarrangements,and rev-
where cooperative behaviour is optimal, the individual
The
Business
of
Sport283
franchises benefitfrom the monopolypowerthey generateby acting collectively. This can best be accomplished whenthe league negotiates with an outside partner on atopic of league-wide relevance (e.g., negotiations with television networksfor broadcastrights fees) and where bargaining poweris essentialfor extracting a return in excessof the resourceowners opportunity cost. Thisexcessreturn is known aseconomicrent. In this setting, individual teamsretain control over day-to-day operationssubject to league-widerules. This allowsteams to maintaina vertically separatedoperationalstructure with the coordinating body acting asanintermediary. It is critical that teamsretain independence or the integrity and credibility of the on-field product could be compromised.Findingthe balancebetweencooperative behaviour andindependenceis essential. Sportsleagues undertaketwo types of cooperative actions:those that mustoccurfor playto take place(single-entitycooperation)andthosethat are unrelatedto playtaking place (joint venturecooperation). Oneofthe mostimportant types of single-entity cooperationis the establishment of aleagueschedule. Thisis not aseasyasit sounds. Aleagueschedule mustinclude all ofthe teamsand ensurethat eachteam playsthe same numberof gamesat homeand away,that gamesarerelatively evenlyspread out overthe length of the season, andthat teams haveroughly similar schedulestrengths and opponents. Thisis an actthat wouldbe almostimpossible, particularly asthe size ofthe league andthe length of the seasonincreases, without cooperative behaviour.If teams decidedtheir schedules,eachteam wouldpursueits ownself-interestin trying to schedule morehomegames,weekendgames, or gamesagainstpopular or weakteams. Partof creating aleaguescheduleis determining the optimalseasonlength. Whenaleagueactsasa cartel,it becomesa monopolist. Monopolies, comparedto competitive markets, maximizeprofits whenthey restrict output and increase prices. Aleaguetries to establishaseasonlength that achievesthis objective, but the key point is that the seasonis shorter than what wouldexistin acompetitive market. Anotherimportant type ofsingle-entity cooperationis establishingthe rulesandregulations under whichteams operateand gamesare played.If left to their own devices,teams will try to skewthe rulesin their ownfavour to increasethe probability of winning. Numerous examplesofthis can befound acrosssports. The GreenMonster in FenwayParkrewardsrighthandedhitters;smallerice surfacesin Buffaloor Chicagoreward offence;outdoorfootball stadiumsin frigid GreenBayor humid Miamiprovidetheseteams with advantagesandaffect outcomes.It alsohasthe ability to affectattendanceand,therefore,revenuesand profits. Single-entitycooperationalsoincludesthe process for determiningthe leaguechampion. Someleagues,particularlyin Europe,forgo a postseason,whileall of the North American professionalleaguesdo not. Even North Americanleaguesexhibit postseasonvariationin terms of how manyteams, how manyrounds, how manygamesin eachround, the order of homeandawaygames, first-round byes,andeven whenand wherethe championshipis played. Playoffsare profitable;otherwise,they wouldnot exist. By allowing moreteamsto play longer or simply potentially playing longer, fans remain engagedlonger, creating larger revenue-generatingstreamsfrom ticket sales,broadcastingrights, merchandising, concessions, andso on. Longerplayoffswith moreteamsalsodecrease the chancesthat the team withthe bestregular-seasonrecord winsthe championship. The morerounds of postseason playthat the bestteam mustnegotiateto winthe championship,the morelikely they areto sufferdefeat in oneofthoserounds. Sincethe team withthe bestrecordislesslikely to win,teams willfind it optimalto reducetheir investmentin talent sincethe directlink betweentalent and championships weakens.Thereducedinvestmentlowerssalaryexpensesandincreasesprofits.
284Chapter
13
Thesecondtype of cooperativebehaviour,joint venturecooperation,involves cooperative action unrelatedto makingplay happen.In this situation, teamssurrendera portion of their autonomy to collective decision makingin exchangefor increased profits. Classic examplesofjoint venture cooperationareleague-level negotiations of broadcastingrights, merchandisingarrangements,revenuesharing,labour agreements,andfacility development.
entry DraftsAll
professionalsportsleaguesin North Americaoperatesomeform of entry draft.In general,the systemgivesthe worstteamin the previousseasonthe exclusiverights to negotiatewiththe unsigned,incoming amateurplayerofits choosing.Thesecond-worstteam choosesfrom the remaining playersandso on until the bestteamfrom the previousseason selectsa player. All ofthe entry draftsheldby North Americansportsleagueshave morethan oneround, so the processis repeatedfor eachround (i.e., the worstteam selectsfirst, the second-worstteam second,etc.). Thisis calledareverseentrydraftformat. Asdiscussed earlier, entry draftsgeneratemonopsonypowerfor teamsandreducethe salariesofincoming players. Becausethe teams gain exclusive negotiatingrights withthe player of their choosing, these rights have value and teams are allowed to trade these rights to other teams in exchange for compensation, financial or otherwise. Eachleague dictates the specific detailsof howthis processworks. Entry draftsareintended to enhancecompetitive balancein leagues.If the worstteams getthe bestincoming talent, theseteams willimprove. Thisin turn benefitsall teamsbecause a morecompetitive on-field productincreasesfan interest and revenues.Furthermore,by granting exclusive negotiatingrights to oneteam, the team gainsleveragein negotiations because the franchise becomesa monopsonybuyer. Thisallowsthe team to compensatethe playerat below-marketvalue,lowering expenses.Sooverall,the draftincreasesteams profits. Of course,the draft does not guarantee profits. Teams maylose moneyif they are managedbadly. Granting a badlyrun franchise accessto the player of its choosing does not meanthat the team can successfullyevaluate, develop, or managetalent, nor canit necessarilyvalueit properly whenusingit to trade for future considerations. Additionally, evenfranchises withskilled managementmight not benefitfrom the draftif it is not in the franchises bestinterest to winas muchasfans might want.It is hardto arguethat MLBs Chicago Cubshavebeeninept for over acentury. If the ballparksells out every gameand if the fans are happy with their extracurricular activities at the game,then ownership mightfind it optimal to save on player development costsand keepthe profit instead.
Teams ownershipWith
few exceptions, North American professionalsportsteams are privately owned businesses.Publicshareissuesand stock exchangelistings do not exist, in manycasesbecauseleague rules prohibit this form of ownership, and assuch audited financial accountsfor professionalsportsteams are often unavailableto the public. Somefranchises arefamily-run affairs dating back generations,such asthe Rooney familys eight-decadeownership and managementofthe NFLs Pittsburgh Steelers.Some franchises are community owned, such as the NFLs Green Bay Packers or the CFLs WinnipegBlue Bombers,Edmonton Eskimos,and SaskatchewanRoughriders. Ofthe 149teams coveredin this chapter, noneis owned by a woman,only one hasa black manasits principal owner (Michael Jordan of the Charlotte Bobcats),and onlya
The
Business
of
Sport285
handful of ownersare nonNorth American, mostnotably MikhailProkorov,owner of the NBAs NewJersey Nets,and afew ownersin MLS. All ofthem sharecommon traits in that they are exceptionally wealthy,often worth billions of dollars,and manyshare a conservative viewpoint. Outspokenandflamboyant charactersoften struggletrying to gain ownership stakes(e.g., NBA owner Mark Cubansfailed attempt to purchase MLBs Chicago Cubsor ResearchIn Motionsformer co-CEO Jim Balsilliesfailed purchaseofthe NHLs PittsburghPenguins[2006], NashvillePredators [2007], and Phoenix Coyotes [2009]). Many NHL ownersalso own NBAfranchises(e.g., Stan Kroenkeofthe Avalanche/Nuggets,Ted Leonsisofthe Capitals/Wizards,andJosh Harrisofthe Devils/76ers).Bothleaguesoperate in the samecities and playin similar arenas,sothere is room for economiesof scaleif the significant cost of operatingthe arenacan bespread overtwo teamsrather than one. Teamownershipis generallyexpensivebut profitable.In 2013, Forbesmagazine valued NHLfranchisesbetween US$175 million(Columbus) and US$1.15billion (Toronto), NBA franchises between US$312 million (Milwaukee) and US$1.1billion (New York), MLB franchises between US$451 million(Tampa) and US$2.3billion (New York Yankees),and NFLfranchises between US$823million(Oakland) and US$2.3billion (Dallas). MLSfranchises werevalued between US$26 million(San Jose)and US$137 million (Los Angeles) becauseof the leagues shorter existenceandlonger history of financial troubles. Dataon franchise valuesfor the CFLis unavailable,but Table13.1providesthe valuefor other Canadian professionalsportsfranchises. Despitenewsofthe periodic bankruptcy orfinancial problemsof a particularfranchise, sportsteams generally deliver outstandingreturns. Consider,for example,the NBAs Los Angeles Clippers. In mid-2014,the NBAforced Donald Sterling, the owner since 1981,to sell the Clippersafter he madediscriminatory comments. The winning bid byformer Microsoft CEOSteve Ballmer valuedthe team at approximately US$2billion, animpressivereturn for Sterling on his initial purchaseprice of US$12.5 million, even after accounting for inflation. Andthis is despitethe team losing an NBA-worst two-thirds ofits gamesover that period, makingthe fewest playoff appearances(seven), andsetting an all-time record for longest drought betweenplayoff appearances(15 seasons). Moreastoundingis the profitability of the NFLsPittsburghSteelers.Purchased in 1933 for US$2,500(US$45,000in 2013 money),the franchiseremainsin the ownership of the Table 13.1 Value of Canadian Professional franchise
Sport
Toronto
rank
(in
Value)
Value (in
millions
Maple Leafs
NHL
1
Montreal Canadiens
NHL
3
$775
NHL
4
$700
NHL
11
$420
Oilers
NHL
14
$400
Ottawa Senators
NHL
15
$380
Winnipeg Jets
NHL
16
$340
MLB
21
$568
21
$405
Vancouver
Canucks
Calgary Flames Edmonton
286Chapter
league
Sports Franchises
Toronto
Blue Jays
Toronto
Raptors
13
NBA
$1,150
of uS$)
founding
Rooneyfamily and is now valued at US$1.12 billion. Since the AFLNFL
merger
in 1970, the franchise has won the mostregular-season games, appeared in the conference championship the
mosttimes, appeared in the Super Bowl the
mosttimes, and won the
most Super Bowls.
costs,
Payroll,
each team in
Salary
capsPlayer
salaries are the largest operating expense for
North American professional sports. Each leagues collective
agreement specifies the maximum size of each teams roster and, except for cap limit,
bargaining MLB, a salary
which is the total amount an owner can allocate to salaries. How strict the cap
is varies from league to league and is often expressed as a percentage of total revenues and is equal for each team. The CFLimport
rule also restricts (to 19) the number of foreign-
born players that can play on each team. Philadelphia Phillies teammates Ryan Howard and Cliff Lee werethe top-paid American athletes in 2014, each earning
North
US$25 million, with morethan a dozen other
players earning in excess of US$20 million.
Whilethis amount seems extremely
high
when compared to the average North American salary, this has not always been the case. In fact, historically professional athletes earned relatively lower salaries compared to athletes today. For example, in 19061908 the highest paid professional baseball player, Nap Lajoie, earned $8,500 per season, which is equivalent to about $200,000 in todays dollars. Figure 13.1 shows the average salary of MLB players over the period 19672008 in inflation-adjusted
2008 dollars. In 1969 the average salary of an MLB player wasjust under
$25,000, or about $146,000 in 2008 dollars. From the graph, increase significantly lective
MLB player salaries did not
until the late 1980s. Theseincreases were primarily the result of col-
bargaining by the
MLBPA, the union representing professional baseball players,
which successfully brought free agency to baseball through alawsuit in the mid-1970s. In some leagues, players work under a guaranteed contract (NHL,
NBA, MLB, MLS)
where they are paid their full salary regardless of their performance, health, or status on the team.
Other leagues (CFL,
nonguaranteed figure
13.1
NFL) pay players some guaranteed
money but also
moneythat is dependent on maintaining an active roster spot. Contracts Average
Major League
Baseball Salary, 2008 US Dollars
3,000,000
2,500,000
2,000,000
1,500,000
1,000,000
500,000
0 196719691971197319751977197919811983198519871989199119931995199719992001200320052007
The
Business
of
Sport287
can include sweeteners such as signing bonuses and performance bonuses. The details of how muchthese can be and how they count against the cap are negotiated between management and labour aspart of the collective bargaining process. Upon entry into the league, a players rights arefirst assignedto one team through an entry draft, at which time the team negotiates a contract with the player. During a players employment
with his team, he can be traded or waived at the teams discretion, though
some players have a no-trade clausein their contract that restricts the ability of the team to act unilaterally in
moving the player. Oncethe players contract expires, the player
becomes a free agent and can negotiate
with his current team or with other teams,
although the details are many and varied. In general, NHL players can become free agents after playing seven seasons or turning 27 years of age, whichever comes first,
MLB players can become free agents after playing six
seasons, NBA players can become free agents after playing three or four seasons, and NFL players can become free agents after playing three seasons. While MLS does not have free agency that corresponds to the other North Americanleagues, it does have a variation called a re-entry draft that works on a similar basisfor players after their third orfourth season. In addition to player compensation, franchises incur costs related to player development (such as minorleague teams), team operation costs (such asscouting, training, and facilities
maintenance), day-to-day operations (such as management salaries and other
businessexpenses), and depreciation.
This last one allows firms to write down the value of
their players as any other businessis allowed to write down the value of its aging assets. Salary caps, restricted free agency, and the ability to sign talent to tracts keep total
player compensation
costs relatively
multi-year con-
stable. Furthermore, the
major
North American professional sports leagues have become quite skilled at demanding and receiving subsidies from various levels of government to offset the operating and maintenance costs of their facilities. In cases where the team does not own its own facility, it is often able to negotiate steep discounts on rent, also helping to keep nonsalary costslow.
revenuesWhile
the
mix and importance
league (and in some casesfranchise to franchise),
of revenue sources differs from league to North American professional sports fran-
chises generaterevenues from five sources:(a) game-dayrevenues,including ticket sales, concessions, parking, personal seatlicences, andluxury box deals;(b) local television and radio broadcasting agreements;(c) shared revenue arrangements,including league-wide broadcasting deals, merchandising, and licensing; (d) local sponsorship and advertising, including stadium naming rights and exclusivity agreements; and (e) postseasonappearancesrevenue. Traditionally, game-day revenues have been the biggest source of revenues for professional sports teams. Before the spread of multi-channel television and all-sports channels like RDS, TSN, and ESPN,fans could only seetheir teams by attending the gamein person. Overthe years,ticket sales became moreelaborate, evolving from the single-game ticket to the season ticket to
multi-game packages. High-demand facilities could add surcharges to
fans who were willing to payfor the nonguaranteed right to buy a ticket or tickets. Ticket pricing in professional sports can be described by the hedonic pricing
model,
which posits that a ticket to a game represents a bundle of characteristics and each characteristic
has an associated price. Characteristics include
proximity to the action, seat
size, accessto concessions, facility amenities, team quality, and other factors. The hedonic pricing model explains why premium seats cost morethan other seats, since the premium seating areas havesuperior characteristics in terms of comfort, sightlines, proximity, access
288Chapter
13
to better concessions, and other benefits compared to seats further from the action or in less desirable parts of the stadium or arena. Some teams also practise economic price discrimination
by charging different prices for identical
citizen discounts and discounted group ticket included
differentiated
seats through
prices.
student and senior
Morerecent developments
have
pricing depending on the quality or popularity of the opposing
team, the time of the season, the day of the week, or even the strength of the home team. Secondary markets, often called ticket
scalping,
have transformed from an illegal and
questionable marketform to a more professional and reputable
marketthrough online sys-
tems, whereinfans can purchase tickets to games posted by other fans and authenticated by reputable
market makers, and even teams and leagues. Secondary ticket
markets arise
becauseoffan heterogeneity. Sportsfans can be groupedinto two general categories: diehard fans who plan to attend games wellin advance and wantto purchasetickets atthe time they makethese plans, and busy professionals who havethe resources to pay higher ticket prices but do not know if they can attend any particular game until shortly before the contest takes place. Since the busy professionals are willing to pay a premium for tickets purchased at the last minute, arbitrage profit opportunities exist that teams cannot take advantage of because they mustoffer tickets early to diehard fans to obtain their patronage and cannot distinguish between diehard fans and arbitrageurs. This asymmetric information ticket
generates secondary
markets;the fact that teams cannot easily profit from this led to anti-scalping laws. Over the last three decades, media broadcast rights have become a significantly
moreimportant sports television
source of revenue for professional sports teams, particularly
with 24-hour
and radio stations chasing after content to fill out their schedules (see
Chapter 11). Some franchises have even created their YES Networks) to eliminate the
own networks (e.g.,
middleperson and capture
MSG and
morefully the advertising
revenue generated during broadcasts. Sponsorship has also increased in importance
in the last decade or two.
Naming
rights for stadiums and arenas, exclusivity agreements (whereby a company can claim to be the teams exclusive and official provider of a particular good or service), advertising along the baselines, boards, playing surface, and fences have all proliferated exhaust every available space to capitalize.
asteams
MLSfranchises have gone further than the
other leagues in selling off prime space on their uniforms.
Pricing Ticket sales represent a majorsource of revenue for professional sports teams in
North
America. All teams offer single-game tickets as well asseason-ticket packagesfor the full slate of home games,or partial packages wherethe fan can select tickets to asubset of home games. Franchises have retrofitted
existing facilities
or built new ones that include
more
expensive luxury seating nearer the game action or private suites. These premium seats often come with additional requirements, such as minimum food and drink expenditures or privileged parking fees. Becauseof the significant expenseinvolved in purchasing these locations,
often for the entire season, the owners of these premium seats have evolved
over the years from individuals
to businessesthat usethem as a form of entertainment
expense for their employees, partners, or clients. Attending professional sporting events is expensive. Figure 13.2 shows the fan cost index (FCI) of attending a gamein the four prominent
North American leagues from 1994
The
Business
of
Sport289
figure 13.2 Fan CostIndex 19942011,
MLB, NBA, NFL, NHL(2011 US Dollars)
700
600
500
400
300
200
100
0
199419951996199719981999200020012002200320042005200620072008200920102011 MLB
NFLNBANHL
to 2011, controlling for inflation. The FCI, calculated annually by Team Marketing Report(www.teammarketing.com), reflects the total costfor afamily of four to attend a game,including tickets, concessions,parking, and the purchaseoflicensed merchandise. In 2011it costafamily offour between$276 and $597to attend a pro game. The cost of attending gameshasincreasedsubstantially in inflation-adjusted terms in all four leagues. From 1994to 2011,the FCI for MLBand the NFL morethan doubled and increased by 81%in the NHL and 65%in the NBA. Sincethe cost of attending gameshasincreasedfaster than the rate ofinflation, it hasalsoexceededthe rate of increasein earnings, makingattending a gameincreasingly difficult for individuals with lower incomes. Attending gamesis alsocostlyin relative terms. Basedon the FCI,in 2011 attending 25% of the regular-seasongamesplayed (40 MLBgames,10 NBA or NHL games,or 2 NFLgames) wouldaccount for 9% of the medianincome of a Canadianhouseholdfor MLBgames,4%for NHL games,3%for NBA games,and 2%for NFLgames. The pricing of tickets to professionalsports events is subject to variousforms of pricing differentiation basedon proximity to the action, sightlines, accessto or shelter from the elements,concessionstands,and otherfactors. Pricediscriminationoccurs whena team sellsidentical tickets to identical seatsfor different prices. Examplesof price discrimination include student discountsandsenior citizen discounts. Not all differencesin ticket pricesreflect price discrimination. Somedifferencesin ticket pricesreflect seats with different characteristics, which can bethought of as differentiated products. Tickets closerto the ice in hockeyarenascommand higher pricesbecausethey provide proximity to the action, for whichfans are willing to paya higher price. Manyfranchises havefound other waysto generaterevenuesfrom ticket salesby charging fans afeethat entitlesthem the right to purchasetickets to homecontestsoverthe course
290Chapter
13
of aseason. Theserights arecalledpersonalseatlicences(PSLs). APSLcostsa predetermined priceand allowsthe fan to reserveaspecifiedseatlocation beforethe actualseasontickets are availablefor purchase.Oncethe consumerhaspurchaseda PSL, heorsheis consideredthe owner ofthat seat and hasthe ability to either useit orresellit, like any other commodity. Theonly condition attachedto the owner ofthe PSLis the requirementto purchaseseasons tickets whenthey becomeavailable. Failureto doso resultsin the loss of the rights to the specifiedseatandthe moneypaidfor the PSLis not refunded. The NFLs CarolinaPanthers werethe first North Americanprofessional franchiseto makeuseof PSLs. Whenthey entered the leaguein 1995,they playedtheir homegamesat Clemson(South Carolina) Universitys stadium whilebuildingtheir ownstadiumin Charlotte, North Carolina. To helpfinance the newstadium,they sold over 61,000PSLs,generatingover US$150 million.
Labour Relations compensation,
risk, and liabilityIn
labour markets,whena union negotiates in a competitive marketfor labour services,the union is ableto procure wagesabove what would prevailin the absenceof the union. Similarly, whena monopsonyemployernegotiatesin a competitive market for talent, the employeris ableto obtain wagesbelowthe competitiverate. But whena monopolyunion negotiateswith a monopsonyemployer,asituation known as a bilateral monopoly, the equilibrium wagerate couldfall anywherebetweenthe above-average situation described in the first scenarioandthe below-average situation described in the second one. Therelativestrength ofthe union andthe employer will determine wherewages fall. Like manyindustries that involve trained professionalswithrare skills, the difference betweenthe top end of the wagedistribution and the bottom or middleis significant. Extraordinary talents are able to negotiate extraordinary salaries, compensation, and perks. Butjust as muchastalent dictatescompensation,risk also playsarole. An office workeror afactory employeecan expect a workinglife of 40to 50 years. A professionalathlete hasan expectedcareerlength of a handful of seasonsfor afootball running back and certainly no morethan 20 yearsfor an elite, healthy, andfortunate athlete. Without performance-enhancing drugs, mostathletes are on the downside of their professionalcareersin their 30sandface an uncertainfuture beginningin their 40s, often with little morethan a high school education, maybeafew years of college, and fleeting namerecognition if they werenearthe top of their game. Thissignificant risk on the players part often resultsin significant compensationin the form of high earningsoverthe courseof their professionalcareerand generousbenefits if their careerlasts beyonda certain number of gamesplayed. Buteven withthis compensation, playersface greater-than-usualhealth andsafetyrisks.
collective Bargaining and StoppagesNegotiations betweenthe ownersand players unions are donethrough a processcalledcollectivebargaining.Thissystemcreatesa collectivebargainingagreement(CBA) that regulates workingconditions and all economic interactions betweenthe two sides. CBAsspecifysalaryscales,salary caps,arbitration rules andregulations, as wellasother compensationsuch as pensionsand benefits.Freeagency, the draft, revenue sharing, and the division of sharedrevenuesfrom merchandisingand broadcastingrights are alsoincluded in the negotiations. Workingconditions related to playersafety,travel requirements,seasonlength, drugtesting and enforcement, and other technical issues necessary to makethe leaguerun arealso part of the negotiating process.
The
Business
of
Sport291
Asleaguerevenues haveincreased overthe last 30 years,labour relations in professional sports have become morecontentious, especially as players have become more organizedand unions increasingly militant. Each of the four major North American professionalsportsleagues have experienced multiple workstoppages,including recent extendedlockouts in the NBA, NFL,and NHL. Although often usedinterchangeably, there is a difference between alockout and astrike. Alockout occurs whenownership doesnot let the playersperform, eventhough the playersare willing. Astrike occurs when workersrefuseto perform, despitethe owners willingnessto allowit. Thestrength andresolve of eachgroup determinesthe length of any workstoppage and the ultimate resolution. Despitethe occasional(significant) concessions,the ownershavetraditionally heldthe upper handin negotiations with the players.
fanS Attendance Figure13.3showstotal attendancein the major North Americansportsleagues overthe last 40 years. MLBdwarfsthe otherleagues becausebaseballteams play almosttwice the number of homegamesas NBA and NHLteamsand 10times morethan NFLteams. The NBA and NHL haveroughly the same attendance level, consistent with their similar seasonlength and venue size. Notethat the NBA started from alower level in 1970 despitehaving alonger season(41 homesgamesin the NBA versus39in the NHL) and despitehaving moreteams (17 in the NBA and 12in the NHL). Nonetheless,basketball hasdone a betterjob overthe last four decadesof broadeningits fan base, whereashockey hasremained a niche sport, favoured primarily by Canadiansandthose living in the US Midwestand Northeast. In everyleaguetotal attendance hasrisen overtime, quadruplingin the NBA, almost tripling in MLB,and morethan doublingin the NHL. Thesmallestincreasesoccurredin figure
13.3 Attendance in North American Sports Leagues
80,000,000
70,000,000
60,000,000 NFL
50,000,000 NBA 40,000,000 Attendance
MLB 30,000,000 NHL
Total
20,000,000
CFL
10,000,000
0 1970
292Chapter
13
1980199020002010
football (70 percentin the NFLand 25 percentin the CFL). Some of the increase in attendance comesfrom league expansion and schedule changes overthat time. When comparedto 1970,in 2013the NFLschedule hasexpanded by 41%,the NHL by 163%, the NBA by 76%, and MLBby 25%.In terms ofincreased attendanceper game, MLBhas grown the mostfollowed closely by the NBA with the NFLand NHLlaggingfar behind. The NHLs movetoward alonger season(including playoffs) and expansioninto the US south could explainits lagging performance. Predicting attendanceis difficult. Whyafan would wantto attend a gameis afunction of manyfactors, but attendanceis positively correlated with the marketsize of the hometeam. Second,good performancein the previousseason,and alsoin the last few games,is correlated with current attendance.Finally, attendancetends to be priceinflexible, meaningthat higherticket prices do not havealarge impact on attendance.
SPorTS leagueS
anD PuBlic Policy
Facility Subsidies Professionalsportsfacilities arelarge, highly visiblestructuresthat can besourcesof civic pride. Theimpact that thesestructures andthe teamsthat playin them haveon the local economyis notlost onteam ownersorlocal politicians. In the balanceof powerover who receivesthe economicrents from the stadiums and arenas,it is all too often the franchise owners whogainthe most. Again,the useof monopolypoweris key. Mostcities arelarge enoughto contain onefranchise persport. There are of course exceptions,such as metropolitan Toronto, Los Angeles, New York, and Chicago. Recall that the allocation of teams to cities alsoreflects the territorial rights agreementsthat leaguesemployto provideteams with monopolypowerin their local market. As monopolies,leagues restrict output where possible. This includes limiting the seasonlength or gametime, but it alsoinvolves limiting leaguesize. By ensuring that the number of cities capable of supporting afranchise is greater than the number of franchises in existence, leagues generate outside options. Theseoptions are simply cities that arelarge enough to support ateam (but do not currently have one) that can be usedasleverage; ownerscan threaten to movetheir franchise to these cities unless local politicians provide strong economic incentives in the form of large public subsidiesfor the construction and operation of professionalsportsfacilities. Ownersextract significant economic rents by holding cities hostageand demanding sizable subsidies from state/provincial andlocal governmentsfor everything from construction and operating coststo reducedrents andfacility upgradesor to municipalinfrastructure developmentandimprovement. Their bargaining powerlies in the threat offranchiserelocation. Politicians recognizethe prestigeand economic benefits that come from hosting a professionalsportsfranchise and areloathe to bethe onesthat let another city enjoythose advantages.In 2013, only 11 municipal areas had an NHL, NBA, NFL and MLB franchise: Boston, Chicago, Dallas, Denver, Detroit, Miami, Minneapolis, New York, Philadelphia, Phoenix, and Washington. Although the spillover effects are less pronouncedin some regions than others,Judith Long (2012) estimatedthat morethan $22 billion in public subsidies wereprovided for the construction of new professional sportsfacilities in North Americaoverthe period 19902010. In caseswherepoliticians
The
Business
of
Sport293
refuse to provide subsidies, team owners sometimes move;the mostrecent example occurredin 2008 whenthe NBAs Seattlefranchise relocated to Oklahoma City after Seattle would not provide publicfunds for the construction of a newarena.
Subsidies for Canadian Teams Sportsteams are often classifiedas playingin alarge marketor asmall market;the latter group hasbecomeknown assmall market franchises(SMFs). SMFsare characterizedbylow revenuesandaresometimesunableto generateenoughrevenueto covertheir payroll. While it is oftenthought that SMFswill ultimately relocateto large marketdestinations,the professionalsportsleagueshaveproveda mixedbag wherethe directionis not alwaysso obvious. The NHLis mostcommonly associated with the idea of SMFsfor severalreasons. First,the NHL hasthe greatest number and proportion of Canadianteamsin the league. Outsideof Toronto, Montreal,and Vancouver,not one Canadian metropolitanareais in the USCanada top 50 population centres. Second,hockeyis the only majorprofessional sport in North Americadeeplyrooted in Canadianidentity. In the NFL, NBA, or MLB, movingafranchise from one Americancity to another, or evenfrom a Canadiancity to an American city, while unfortunate for the marketthat losesits franchise, does not changethat the game was,is, and remains Americanin character. But whena Canadian hockeyfranchise threatensto leave for the United States,its effectsare not just financial but psychologicaltoo. Finally, all Canadianfranchises are exposedto exchangerate risk in that their ticket revenues andlocal broadcastingrevenues are denominatedin Canadian dollars, but their biggestexpense(i.e., playersalaries)is paid in American dollars. Otherwiseviablefranchises can be harmedby unfavourableexchangerates, wherea weak Canadiandollarincreasessalaries. A weak Canadiandollarin the early 1990scausedfinancial hardshipfor all Canadian teams and affectedthe relocation of the QuebecCity and Winnipegteamsto the United States. NHL commissioner GaryBettman persuaded US-basedteams to contribute to a stabilization fund to help Canadianteams hedgeagainst unfavourable exchange rate movements,and manyof the Canadianteams urgedtheir local, provincial, andfederal governmentsto providefinancial support to preventthe relocation oftheir franchises(see Chapter12for moredetailsaboutthe outcome ofthis). Butfor governmentsto subsidizeprofessionalsports teams,the moneyto finance it mustcomefrom somewhere,specificallythe taxpayer. Tothe extent that sportsteamsand their facilities are public goods(i.e., goodsin which ones consumptionofthe goodis unpreventableand doesnotinterfere with anothers consumption ofit), taxation is areasonable form of ensuringthat the right amount ofthat goodis provided. Still, spending moneyon sportsteams means lessavailable moneyfor the arts,education,science,andinfrastructure. Theseare difficult and often contentiousissues with which politicians mustgrapple. In Canada,Edmonton has often been a battleground for this debate. Beginning with former Oilersowner Peter Pocklington in the 1980sand continuing in 2013 with current owner Daryl Katz, Oilers ownership hasstruggled to maintain a viable product in the sparsely populated and economically challenged area of northeast Edmonton. Edmonton city council haslong supported movingthe franchise to downtown, but not if it comesat asignificant expenseto the city. WhenKatzthreatened to movethe team to Seattle or any other bidder, city council eventually relented and controversially
294Chapter
13
agreed to build a C$604.5 million arena and entertainment
district.
Thefacility,
Rogers
Place, is targeted to be complete in 2016.
inTernaTional
iSSueS: The olymPic
gameS
The Olympics and the IOC The International
Olympic Committee (IOC) is an unelected, nonprofit, nongovernmen-
tal organization (NGO) national
basedin Switzerland. Its membership consists of representatives of
Olympic committees, international
sports federations like FIFA, and Olympic
athlete representatives. The IOC has a monopoly on excellence in amateur sport, promotes ethics and good governance in sport, and awards the rights to organize and host the quadrennial Summer and
Winter Olympic Games.
The modern Olympic Gameslook very different than the original ideas promoted by Pierre de Coubertin when he revived the
Gamesin 1894. Then, amateurism and athleti-
cism, competition and fellowship (le fraternite) wereguiding principles with little paid to the business of the
attention
Olympics. Early Olympic Games werefinanced entirely
by
de Coubertin, which contributed to his subsequent bankruptcy. Today, the
Gamesfocus
more on business. The overriding
principle in
much IOC
decision makingis maximizing profits from its key asset:the rights to host Olympic Games and its symbols. Beginning with the presidency of Juan Antonio Samaranch in 1980, the IOC transformed itself from asmall organization dependent on selling broadcasting rights to UStelevision
networks into a global brand worth billions of dollars.
Samaranch appointed arm known as TOP (The
Canadian Richard Pound to create an integrated Olympic Program or, alternatively,
marketing
The Olympic Partners) to
sell corporations the exclusive rights to usethe Olympic rings and other symbols associated with the Olympic Gamesfor one four-year
Olympic cycle. The rights to these symbols are
sold to one company perindustry and are valuable because of the global recognizability
of
the Olympics as well asthe profitability that comes from association with the Games. Broadcasting rights remain the biggest source of revenue, but now the IOC generally sells exclusive broadcast rights to one network per country (e.g., CTV in Canada or NBC in the
United States), increasing revenue from broadcast rights significantly.
Television
networks spend vast amounts for the rights to broadcast the Gamesbecause of the advertising revenues that can be earned from the limited amount of commercial advertising opportunities during the broadcasts (see Chapter 11). The 2010 Vancouver Gamesand the 2012 London Gamesgenerated almost US$2 billion in broadcasting revenue for the IOC. Since the IOC is a monopoly, they follow the standard profit-maximizing of any monopolist in restricting
quantity and increasing
prices above what a competi-
tive market would generate. By holding the event quadrennially, the IOC revenues generated from
billions
of worldwide
approach
maximizes
viewers and by TOP sponsors
who
themselves earn billions of dollarsin revenue from their exclusiv.e (i.e., monopolistic) association agreements.
Because the potentialfor monopolyprofits existsat everystep,incentivesfor the ability for corruption also exist. The 2002 Salt Lake City, 2006 Nagano,and 2008 Beijing bids were
all later found to involve variousforms of corruption, bribery,and bid-buyingby variousIOC officials in attempts to influence voting and steer winning bids. Corruption over the awarding
The
Business
of
Sport295
of building contracts is thought to be common and currently plaguesthe Rio de Janeiro 2016 process. Doha, Qatars 2016 and 2020 unsuccessfulbidsfor the Summer Gamesreportedly used its countrys dominant financial position in the Middle Eastto try and rig the votein its favour, an ultimately unsuccessfulstrategy becausethe games wereawardedto Tokyo,Japan for 2020. Whilethe IOC hastaken steps to addressthese variousforms of vote rigging and corruption, the chance for billions of dollars in profits continues to prove to betoo attractive to resist.
Bidding and Costs Cities and regions compete vigorously to host the
Games. Each country interested in
doing so creates a national organizing committee (NOC) region) that
that determines the city (or
will carry its bid. In some countries this is done by vote; in others it is done
by the designation of its
NOC. Each NOC then submits a formal
occur in two phases and take place years before the
bid to the IOC.
Bids
Games. Preparing a bid can cost tens
of millions of dollars. Toronto has bid for the Summer Olympic Gamestwice, each time costing the taxpayers $15 million.
Consequently, a group called Bread Not Circuses pro-
tested that the money would be better spent on social programs. Whilebidding has become very expensive, it wasnot always so. Hosting the Gamesis also extremely expensive and can saddle a city
with significant
costs. The 2014 Sochi
Winter Gamesreportedly cost US$51 billion for hosting and related infrastructure. struction for the
Montreal 1976 Summer Games wassignificantly
went so far over budget that the city incurred
almost C$1 billion in debt. The original
price tag was$120 million. Thelasting symbol of those
Games wasthe
Olympic stadium,
a doughnut-shaped stadium with a retractable roof. Known affectionately as the Big it is moresarcastically referred to asthe Big
The 2010 Canadian its home ice, Paul
296Chapter
Kitagaki
13
O,
Owe, areference to the financial
catastrophe
mens Olympic hockey team became only the third team to
win gold on
winning in overtime in Vancouver.
Jr./ZUMA
Con-
behind schedule and
Press/Newscom
wrought by hosting the
Olympics. Only in 2006, 30 years after the Olympics ended, did
the city finally retire the last ofits
Games-related debts.
Montreals experience wasso jarring that
when bidding rights were madeavailable in
1977 to host the 1984 Summer Olympics, only one candidate expressed an interest: Los Angeles. The Los Angeles Organizing Committee decided that its beststrategy to
mini-
mizethe financial risks incurred by the city of Montreal wasto sell sponsorship rights on a scale that
wasunparalleled at the time.
Television rights
weresold for $240 million, an
eightfold increase over the amount generated by Montreal.
Legacy Effects These expenditures include infrastructure
(e.g., transportation
tion, accommodation provisions), advertising, and security. Gamesis extremely expensive. But when the
upgrades,facility construcAs noted earlier, hosting the
Games are over and the fans and partici-
pants go home, what remains? It is hard to calculate the total net cost or benefit of hosting the Olympics for several reasons. First, much of the infrastructure the
and tourism spending
might be shifted forward for
Gamesand might have occurred on its own even without the Games. Athens wasa
majortourist destination before hosting the 2004 Games. Newinfrastructure hosting the Gamestypically exceedsthe size neededfor domestic competitions,
specific to but these
facilities and their associated maintenance costs remain. Second, host-organizing committees tourism.
may overstate the direct economic impact from
Manyhost cities or regions are majortourist destinations before hosting the Games.
London, Sydney, Beijing, Vancouver, and other former host cities already attracted large numbers of visitors before winning the rights to host the
Games.Fanstravelling to these
cities to watch the Games maysimply replace other tourists who would have visited if the Games were held elsewhere. If so, then the spending by hundreds of thousands of visitors touted by organizing committees
mustbe offset by the alternative spending bythe tourists
who would normally have come regardless of the
Games,reducing the total economic
impact of the Games. Also, manylocals mayleave the area during the Gamesbecauseof the crowds, traffic, and higher prices charged bylocal bars,restaurants, and shops. Third, legacy benefits promoted before the capital, international
Games,such asthe increase in human
recognition, and urban regeneration,
might be overstated. Dointer-
national cities such as Vancouver, Sydney, London, or Beijing really gain in stature from hosting the Olympics? Do people remember
Grenoble, Lake Placid, or Calgary, and even
if they do, do they plan vacations based on the distant A study of name recognition found that
memory of Olympics past?
of Canadian cities following the 1988 Calgary Games
Europeans recognition
of Calgary was near or equal to that of
Montreal,
Toronto, and Quebec City only in the year the Gamestook place, and bythe yearfollowing the Games much of that name recognition Urban regeneration,
while laudable,
had disappeared (Ritchie
& Smith, 1991).
might come at the expense of the deterioration
neglect of other needy neighbourhoods orinterfere
with a market mechanism that
or
might
signal the benefit of growth in other areas.In 2008, Beijing created headlines when thousands of residents wereforced out of their homes and relocated to overcrowded neighbour-
hoodsso that authorities could build the necessary infrastructure andfacilities neededto host the Games.In 1996, Atlanta dismantled mostof the Olympic housing facilities rather
than sell them or evenrent them to those in need of housing.
The
Business
of
Sport297
The economic benefits and costs might not be the deciding factor.
Civic pride and
unity of purpose might bereason enough to bid to host the Olympic Games. Think of the flag-waving
patriotism
of Norwegians in Lillehammer
Aboriginals in Sydney 2000, or the 2008 coming-out Gamescan provide long-lasting intangible Benefits might also be tangible too. links to
1994, the reconciliation party in
Beijing.
with
Hosting the
benefits for hosts. Vancouver benefited from improved transport
Whistler, Calgary gained from the construction
of the Saddledome, the home for
the last 25 years of the NHL Calgary Flames as well asthe site of numerous international skating, curling, and rodeo competitions.
Calgary has also become the
major training
ground for many Canadian winter Olympians becauseof the bobsled andluge runs, the ski jumping facilities, and the proximity to the Rockies. And despite the problems with the Olympic stadium in
Montreal, the
Montreal subway wasextended out to the
park area, creating substantially improved public transportation ing the traffic congestion common to
Olympic
links and thereby reduc-
mostbig cities.
conclusions Irving Berlin famously wrote, Theres
no businesslike show business, but the sports busi-
nessis pretty uniquein its own way.Billionaire franchise ownerscompete with each other over multimillionaire fans.
players to charge millions to advertisers and thousands to adoring
Almost every facet of sports has become commoditized and sold, from naming rights
to stadiums to in-house signage to uniforms and even to the players likeness. idealistically
Even the
pure Olympic Gameshavetransformed themselves from an amateur athletic
competition into a brand and identity that is sold to the highest bidder(s). But just as sports tries to compete off the field to opportunities to capitalize on its
maximize its profits and to create
monopolistic position, it also creates significant
costs.
Players sacrifice their bodies, with careers that are often over by the time they are 40. Public funds are diverted from the arts, education, and hospitals to building arenas for modern-day gladiators and competition.
Cities compete vigorously for the civic pride and
tax dollars generated by hosting professional sports franchises, yet compete just as easily in giving away tax concessions, subsidies, and other sweetheart dealsto The net impact of all of this is hard to
wealthy owners.
measure.Professional sports teams are barely
and rarely valued over US$1 billion, which is miniscule compared to Apple, Exxon
Mobil,
or Citibank, but the happiness and sadnessthat their successesand failures elicit in us,the fans, is priceless. It is for this reason that the business of sports is worthy of study and often a source of discussion in our daily lives.
critical Thinking 1.
Questions
Withfew exceptions, professional sports leagues expand the size of their league and increase the length of their season. Whydont they ever decreasein size and length?
2.
Whyaresomecartelssuccessfulandothersunsuccessful?Whatconditionsareneeded to maketheir agreement to restrict output and exercise monopoly power work?
298Chapter
13
3. Aggrievedathletes often claim that they areunderpaid or seekto renegotiate their contract after a good performance. Canan athlete be underpaidif they agreeto the contract at the time that they signit? Is it reasonablefor them to seekto renegotiate whenthey are performing well? 4.
Whyare there so few women,visible minorities,and foreigners in ownership positions? Are professionalsports an exampleof an old boys club?
5.
Whateffects do revenue sharing and salary caps have on competitive balance? Do they enhancethe competitivenessof poor,small-market franchises? Dothey punish rich, large-market teams?
6. Giventhatmostplayerscareersareoverbythetimetheyare35,andgiventhatmost of them lack aformal, postsecondaryeducation, whatresponsibility do owners have to ensuringthe long-term health and earning potential of their athletes/employees? Whatresponsibility should the athletesthemselvestake? 7.
Whyare cities so interested in hosting a professionalsports team?Is it purely an economic argument, or arethere other benefitsto doing so? Whatarethe costsassociated with having a professionalsportsteam in town?
8. Municipal and state/provincial governments will often subsidizeteam facility construction. How can governmentsensurethat those that stand to benefit mostfrom the facilities paythe taxes neededto finance these subsidies? 9. Torontois Canadaslargest city by population, but three smaller cities havealready hosted Olympic Games(Vancouver 2010, Calgary1988,and Montreal1976). Should Toronto continue biddingfor the right to host? Willit raiseits international prestige if it does? Willit damageits international (or domestic)reputation if it doesnt? 10. The Olympicshaveevolvedfrom asimple athletic competition among amateurathletes into a multibillion dollar global brand. Canthe Olympicideal of higher, faster, stronger coexist with the vast amounts of moneyspent on training and developing athletic skills necessary to succeedat the Olympiclevel? Hasthe amount of endorsement moneyavailableto start athletes corrupted the Olympic movement?
Suggested readings Fort, R. D.(2010). Sportseconomics (3rd ed.). Upper Saddle River, NJ: Prentice Hall. Quinn, K. G.(2009). Sports andtheir fans: Thehistory, economics and culture ofthe relationship between spectator, and sport. Jefferson, NC: McFarland & Company. Zimbalist,
A. (2006).
Thebottom line:
Observationsand arguments onthe sports business.Philadelphia,
PA: Temple University Press.
references Gruneau, R., & Whitson, D.(2001). culture, and corporate integration.
Upmarket continentalism: In
Major league sport, promotional
V. Mosco & D. Schiller (Eds.), Continental order: Integrat-
ing North Americafor cybercapitalism (pp. 235264).
Lanham:
MD: Rowman & Littlefield.
Long, J. G.(2012). Public/private partnershipsfor majorleague sportsfacilities. New York, NY: Routledge. Ritchie, J. B., & Smith, Alongitudinal
B. H. (1991).
The impact
of a mega-event on host region awareness:
study. Journal of Travel Research,30(1), 310.
The
Business
of
Sport299
Chapter14 Globalizationand Sport David Whitson
Star Brazilian soccer player signs
Neymar
with Spanish powerhouse
FC
Barcelona. Nippon News/Aflo Co.Ltd/Alamy
300
In 2004, Franklin Foer,a political journalist for the US magazineThe NewRepublic,published a book called HowSoccerExplainsthe World:An(Unlikely) Theoryof Globalization (Foer, 2004). In a series of provocative and entertaining essays,Foer explorestopics as diverseassoccer clubs historical connections with political andregional rivalries in Spain and the former Yugoslavia;the wealthand commercial ambition that are creating new rivalries today and diminishing the meaningoftraditional ones;the flood of playersfrom Latin Americaand Africato Europeanclubs while domesticleaguesin their own countries struggleto survive; and the antipathy toward the game held bysomeinfluential US sportsjournalists, notably ESPNradio hostJim Rome.Foercites NewYork Timescolumnist ThomasFriedman(1999), whohas written of globalization as aforce bothinevitable and beneficent, enabling historically unprecedentedstandardsofliving for manynations (China, Brazil,South Korea)andindividuals. However,Foergoesonto questionsome of Friedmans enthusiasmfor the new world order. Hearguesthat, in soccer atleast, even though there is more moneyat the top, prosperity hasnever materializedfor agreat many playersand clubs. Onthe contrary, the gap betweenrich and poor has widenedinto a chasmin soccer,just asit hasin the worlditself for manyindividuals and nations.
I introduce myown discussionof globalization with this brief overview of Foers book becauseI believethat soccerofferssome extraordinarily goodillustrations of globalizationin sport, andin the sportsbusiness.1 In the spring of 2006,I hadthe pleasureof viewingseveral big matchesfrom the 2006 UEFA ChampionsLeaguecompetition on satellite TV. The Edmontonsports barthat screenedthe matcheswaspacked with expatriatesfrom England, Italy, and Latin America,but also with Canadians like myselfwhohad not grown up withthe game.I couldnt help but bestruck by howsatellitetelevision hasexpandedthe sporting horizonsofthe Canadianmediaandthe sportinginterestsof Canadians.Canadiansportscastsand sports pagesnowreport Europeansoccerresultsand cycleraceslike the Giro dItalia, where 30 yearsagoit wasrareto find eventhe NBAcoveredin any detailin the Canadianmedia. Having notedthis small example of globalization,though, I should addimmediately that the excitement of asmall group ofsoccerfansin Edmonton wasnothingin comparison to the passionthat hasgripped Canadiancities whose NHL teams have madethe playoffsin recent years.In 2013,for example, whenthe Leafs madethe playoffsand Ottawa and Montreal metin the first round, one couldnt help being reminded that hockey arouses Canadassporting passionslike no othersport and that there is no other country where hockeytakes over public attention the wayit doesin Canada.Therearelimits to globalization, in other words,and eventhough there are many Canadianswho welcome opportunities to follow other sports,there are others(almost certainly more)for whomit is our traditional sport, hockey,and our owntraditional rivalries that still matter most.
Globalization:
a ConCeptual
overview
Theliterature on globalizationhasgrownsubstantiallyin recentyears,even withinthe sociologyof sport (see,for example, Carter,2011; Giulianotti & Robertson,2007; Sage,2011; Scherer &Jackson,2013).In fact, there hasbeenan active debatein sport sociologyabout whethersome of the developmentsoften associatedwith the term globalizationare better understoodas modernization, or asthe Americanizationofsportin other countries(Donnelly, 1996). Even morespecificdiscussions about particularsporting phenomenafor example,the growthofthe Olympicsasatelevisionspectacle,the globalappealof MichaelJordan(Andrews, 2001), orthe global manufacturingactivities of Nike(Sage,2004)not surprisinglyreflectthe theoretical assumptionsandresearchinterests oftheir authors(see Chapter2for an overview of some ofthe mostinfluential theoretical perspectives in sport sociology). For our purposes here,though, we will define globalizationsimply as a processor combination of processes through whichthe worldis becominga moreintegrated place(Robertson,1992). Asinvestmentsand goods,ideasand news,and even people(with someimportant qualifications)flow acrossinternational boundariesin unprecedentedways,the worldis becomingonein which morepeopleareawareof eventsin distant places(includingsportsevents)and morepeopleare affectedby decisionstakenin distantplacesby transnationalcorporationsor byinternational bodieslike the WorldTrade Organization (WTO)than wastruefor earliergenerations.2 If our starting point, then, involves thinking about globalization as a combination of processes, it is also helpful to think of economic processes,political processes,and cultural processesas wellasthe relationships amongthem (Short & Kim, 1999).It is beyondthe scopeofthis chapterto depict these connectionsin any detail; however,someillustrations will hopefully encouragereadersto think of examplesin their ownlives. In the economic realm, the mostbasicidea to graspis that money(especially investment capital) and
Globalization
and
Sport
301
Communications
technologies
make the
world a smaller
place.
Lightspring/Shutterstock
products(whether raw materials,manufacturedgoods,orservices) now movearoundthe world morequickly and easilythan ever before.In the caseof money,wenow haveglobal financial marketsand a host of newfinancial products(like mutualfunds and derivatives) that facilitate investment in other parts of the world.In addition, the concerted effort overthe last quartercentury to promotefreer globaltrade has meantthat companiescan try to promotetheir productsin other countries(whether hard goodslike carsorshoes,or soft goods like films, sportstelevision, orinsurance products) without the tariffs or other barriersthat onceprotected domesticproducts. This hasled to opportunitiesfor ambitious companiesto establishthemselvesasglobal brand names(e.g., Apple, Canon,Bombardier). Meanwhile, other nationally or locally basedcompanies (Eatons is a good example from Canada)have disappearedbecauseof newcompetition. It hasalsoled to corporate mergersand takeovers andthe phenomenon of transnational corporations (such as Nike, News Corp., and Toyota) doing businessin manycountries at once. None of this is unprecedented.International trade and corporate empiresboth date backto the daysof Europeancolonialism and (in Canada)the HudsonsBay Company. However,computer technology hasfacilitated boththe rapid movementof moneyandthe managementoffarflung empires,andthe post-1980periodrepresentsa new phasein the economic pressures that encourageglobalization(e.g., competition and the drivefor growth). Shifting our attention to the political processes that are part of globalization,the most obvious might bethe growthin importance oftransnational bodieslike the WTOand the International MonetaryFund(IMF), as wellasregionalinstitutions like the EuropeanUnion (EU) and trade agreementslike NAFTA (North AmericanFree Trade Agreement). However, weshould alsorecognizethat muchofthe economicintegration discussed in the previous paragraphwasfacilitated bythe withdrawalof governmentsfrom economicfunctions that
302Chapter
14
usedto beconsideredessentialto national autonomy. Manygovernments,for example,have privatized what wereoncepublicly ownednational airlines(e.g., Air Canadaor Qantas)and public utilities (electricity, telephones,andsometimeswater).In addition, althoughit maybe hardfor those bornsince 1980to appreciatethis, Canada(and other nations) oncestrictly regulatedforeigninvestment in keysectorsof the economyinstead of welcomingit. Canada alsoroutinely employedindustrial policiesincluding tariffs, tax incentives, and grantsfor Canadiancompaniesin addition to buy local governmentprocurementpolicies,allintended to encouragethe growth of home-based industries.In the free trade agreementsof the 1980s and 1990s,though, national governmentssignedaway muchoftheir powerto manage their economiesin return for freer access for their companiesto foreign capitalandforeign markets. This wasconsistent with the neoliberal ideology shared by manygovernmentsin those years. Neoliberalsbelievethat free marketsas opposedto public policyare the mosteffective wayof allocating resources(whether capital orlabour). They also believe that the private sector can provide services moreefficiently than can governments,so they havepushedfor a downsizing of the size andscope of government. Critics of neoliberalism contend that privatization and deregulation amount to abandoningthe idea of a national economyin the hopethat Canadianswill bewinners in the global economy. They also contend that government cutbacks have widenedthe gapsbetweenthe rich andthe rest (see Chapter4). Whatis widelyagreedis that these newrestrictions on what governmentscan do havealteredrelationships betweengovernmentsandinvestors sothat governmentsat all levels (city and regional governments, as well as national ones) now find themselves chasingafter highly mobileinvestment capital. Wehaveseenthis phenomenonin sportsin the efforts of citiesto attract or keep professionalsportsfranchises. In the cultural sphere, mostof usat least in the Westernworldare experiencing new kinds of transnational connectedness(Hannerz, 1996). Satellitetelevision makespossible the global broadcastingof news and sports events, whilethe Internet and cheaper travel enableusto connect withlike-minded peoplein mostpartsofthe worldfor purposes that varyfrom musicto politics to sex.In these circumstances,national cultures or cultural practicesonceassociatedwith particularcountrieslike cuisine orsportscan nolonger be associatedquiteso closely withtheir placesof origin. Rather, ChineseandItalian food, like soccer, have beencarriedto manyplacesas people have movedaroundthe world,taking their cultural interests and skills with them. C. L. R.James(1963) and Eduardo Galeano (1998) have describedhow Europeancolonizerstook the gamesof cricket and soccerto the WestIndies and Latin America,respectively, and how newstyles of play and sometimes newsocial meaningsweredevelopedin these New World societies.3 Conversely, somerecent migrantsto Canadafrom societies wheresport wasnot a normal part of childhood, or wheresport wasnot encouragedamong women,havefeared the Westernizing influences of Canadiansports and worriedthat sports weretaking their children awayfrom the valuesandrole modelspreferredin their own cultures of origin (see Chapter5). At another level, assome cultural practices have beenturned into entertainment productsprofessional sports, music,andfilm arethe bestexamplesthey haveeachbecome big businesses that are actively marketedaroundthe globe(Butsch, 1990). USpopularculture offersthe mostfamiliar examplesof the marketingof cultural productsand often provokescriticism of UScultural hegemony(see Chapter2). Yetit is simplistic to assumethat UScultureis spreadinginexorably aroundthe globe(Lull, 2000). Consider,for example,the global popularity ofItalian and Chinesefood, notedabove,as wellasthe newerfashionsfor
Globalization
and
Sport303
world music and ethnic clothing, muchof whichis originatingin French-speakingAfrica or Latin America. Consideralsothe waysin which citieslike Londonor Parisare nolonger Englishor Frenchso muchasworld cities, encompassinglarge communitiesfrom parts of Asia, Africa,and other partsof Europe.Finally, considerthe global passionfor association football (or soccer) everywhereoutside North America,despitethe USsrelative indifferenceto the gameand despiteattempts bythe NFLto promote USfootball in Europe. Ulf Hannerz(1996) thusinvites usto seecultural globalizationasa multi-polarprocess in which someregionsand countriesparticipate moreactivelythan othersandin different ways. Eachof these processes through whichtraditional links betweenculture and placeare erodedthe transportation of cultural practicesthat follows from migrationandthe promotion of newcultural products in the popular mediaare leading to unprecedentedcultural heterogeneityin some places,and beyondthis to cultural hybridity, which Hannerz(1996) definesasthe production of newculturewhen peopleand cultures blend togetherto producenewand originalsyntheses. Again,its important to recognizethat the effectsof cultural globalization are not equally felt everywhere.It is the affluent countries of the global Northparticularly WesternEuropeand North Americathat are being transformed mostvisibly byimmigration, andit is thesesameaffluent countries where morehomeshave satellite television, multiple personalcomputers,and other handheldtablets. Even within Canada,moreover,evidenceof cultural heterogeneityis all around usin citieslike Toronto and Vancouver,but less presentin rural communitiesthat are getting older, poorer, and whiter. Thus,one visitor to Canadahasremarkedthat while Vancouverand Toronto are amongthe most multicultural citiesin the world, villages only forty-five minutesaway [seemed] undisturbedin their white-bread, Protestant, nineteenth century pasts (Iyer, 2000,p. 124). Others, meanwhile,expressconcernthat an urban/rural divideis developing in Canadathat hasracial and cultural overtones.In parts ofthe prairie provinces, northern British Columbia,northern Ontario,northern Quebec,and partsof Atlantic Canada,rural populationsthat include fast-growing Aboriginalcommunities as wellasagingsettler communities(farm, logging, andfishing communities)neither of which can offer mucheconomic future to their youngare becoming culturally and politically detachedfrom the multiculturalcitiesthat will bethe enginesof economicgrowth(seeEpp & Whitson,2001). Whatsimportant to emphasizehereis that the processesof globalization, whether cultural or economic, arecharacterizedby uneven development. At onelevel, this refers simply to the unevenspatial distribution of the effects of globalization. Somecountries, and especiallycities (London and Los Angeles, Mumbaiand Hong Kong,andin Canada, Vancouver and Toronto), becomefinancial and cultural centres through which both moneyand ideasflow. Theseare the places wherecapital is concentrated and cultural products are produced, and where valueis addedto everything (not least of which is property) as aresult of lucrative new economy activities (Short & Kim, 1999). Other countries, meanwhile,and even wholeregions (parts of sub-Saharan Africa, Hannerz (1996) suggests)remain largely untouched, exceptinsofar asthey areimpoverished by a steady outflow of natural resourcesand people.In addition, the stark contrastsassociated with uneven development alsoinvite usto see globalization as a set of processesthat produces winnersandlosers andincreasessocioeconomic polarization not only between societies, but also within them. Mostevidence wouldsuggestthat the affluent countries ofthe North have been net beneficiaries of globalization, asare manysocietiesin Asia whereurbanstandardsofliving areincreasing rapidly. Nonetheless,both Asiaand North
304Chapter
14
America havesignificant areas of rural poverty alongsidetheir booming cities, while North Americansevenin urban areasare all too familiar with the phenomenon of the jobless recovery, in which morewealthis produced without producing morejobs. Suchincreasesin both wealthandpovertyinvite critics to ask whobenefits(and who loses)from globalization,and whether morecannot be doneto mitigatesome ofits harmful effects.Economicglobalization hasproducedhugeprofitsfor corporationsthat operatesuccessfullyon a globalscale(whether in miningortelevised entertainment), andthis translates into well-payingjobsfor mostoftheir employees. Globalizationhasalsoincreasedthe marketfor variousproducer services: accounting and otherfinancial services, managementconsultants,and technical/scientific and advertising/marketingexpertise,all providing employmentfor agrowing cadreof educated,knowledge economy workers with good salariesand high standards ofliving (Short & Kim, 1999). Yet political integration has proceeded much morehaltingly than economicintegration, in the NAFTA countries as wellasthe European Union,and whilecompaniescan moveproduction acrossbordersvery easily, barriersto the movementof workersand their families still remain. The debatein the United Statesin 2012aboutimmigration amnesties and policing alongthe Mexican borderillustrates clearly that migrantsfrom poor countries whotry to reach countries wherethere are better employment prospects(whether in Americaorin Europe)still face manylegal and political obstacles,and often gravephysical dangersas well. I cannot dojustice hereto whatarelarge and ongoingdebates,andI referreadersto some of the questionsconcerningsocial conflict, power,andideologythat areraisedin Chapters2 and 4. However,I wantto leave readers withtwo ideasto considerduring oursubsequent discussionsof globalizationin sport. Thefirst is simplythat it is important to understandboth the upsidesand downsidesof globalization,to think about whoarethe winnersandlosers,and whythere are people whofiercely opposeit as wellas enthusiasticadvocates.Thesecond idea, whichis directlyrelated to the first, is that some ofthe processes of globalization(e.g., free trade) resultfrom political decisions,andthereforetheir consequencesarelegitimately mattersfor political debate.Someof globalizations moreenthusiasticcheerleaderspresentit asaninevitable process,a historical trend that is inexorable and therefore beyondpolitical control (seeFriedman,1999). However,althoughthere are newtechnologiesthat manifestly raisestandardsofliving and that mostpeoplein mostsocietiesclearly wantto incorporate into their lives (e.g.,the Internet, television, sewagetreatment, and safe drinking water), governmentsstill makedecisionsabout how weaccesseachof theseservicesand how much the public can beexpectedto pay. Theycanalso monitorthe resultsand hold corporateservice providersaccountable.Thesearelegitimate mattersof public policy,therefore, and we should not treat asinevitable anytrend that hascontroversialsocial consequences.
the new SportinG
world
order
Conceptualizingglobalizationas a complex and contestedprocess,with economic, cultural, and political dimensions,lays afoundation for exploringsomeofthe changeswehaveseenin sport overthe last quarter century. Someof the moresignificant of these changes might include the expansion of the NBAinto Canadaand the NHLinto the southern United States;the staging ofsoccers WorldCupin Americain 1994,in Asiain 2002,andin Africa in 2010;the growth of the Olympicsinto a massivemediaspectacle;and the migrationof professionalathletesfrom poorercountriesto those wherethe highestsalariesare paid,a
Globalization
and
Sport305
phenomenon wecan observejust asclearlyin the NHL as wecanin Europeansoccer. This list doesnot pretendto beexhaustive;however,whatis commonto all ofthese examplesis a searchfor newaudiences,new markets,newjobsin short, for opportunitiesto make more moneyfrom sport. Thisis the economicdimension,veryclearly. Whatshould becomeclearer, though, as weproceedis that cultural changesfollow directlyfrom these economicambitions. In the first two examplesofferedabove,the patternis clearlythat the organizationsand financial intereststhat manage eachsport asa business4wereseekingto expandthe markets for their productsby promotingthesesportsin placeswherethey werenot historically part of the local popularculture. The NHL, NBA, and FIFA eachsaw opportunitiesto dramatically grow their respectivegames,developingpotentiallylucrative new markets for merchandise and television packagesin addition to live audiences.Forthis potential to berealized, though, required that NHL hockey,for example, be actively promotedin the southern United States.Thesame wastruefor NBA basketballin Canadaand other nations,andfor soccerin both the United Statesand Asia. Readerscan debate how wellthese economic ambitions havebeenfulfilled (all three, arguably,remain worksin progress). Mypoint here is simplythat for newsportsto becomepopularon anenduring basisrequirescultural changes in the countries and continents wheresports entrepreneurshopeto promote newleisure choices.Peoplehaveto getinterestedin these newactivities, andif they do,this means less time andless moneyfor the gamesthey enjoyedbefore. The newcultural choicesassociated with globalization compete directly,in other words,for peoplestime and attentionand moneywith the entertainmentforms andspending habitsthat weretraditional to those places.Perhaps,though, if peoplein Europeand Asiacould affordregular accessto NBA or NFLproductsthey mightflock to these US-based sports, whileinterest in soccerorin Asian cultural practiceswoulddecline. Thisis the promiseor the spectreof Americanization. The Olympics,and the migration of professional athletes to North America and WesternEurope, highlight slightly different dynamics.In the Olympicexample, we have a global governing bodythe International Olympic Committee (IOC)that is not commercial in quite the same senseasthe NBA or FIFA. However,anyone with any interest in the subject will know that the Olympic Gameshavebecomea globaltelevision extravaganza,that corporations are willing to pay higherand highersumsto be associated with the Olympicsasadvertisersandsponsors,and that the IOC, underthe leadership of Juan Antonio Samaranchand Richard Pound, put a strategic priority on promoting the value of the Olympicbrand (Barney, Wenn, & Martyn,2002). Amongthe reasonsfor the global appeal of the Olympicsare that they provide a global stage for manysmall countries that cannot support the major leagues and for athletes (especially women) whodont otherwisegetthe mediaexposureenjoyed bythe majorprofessionalsports. The Olympic movementpromotesvaluesinternationalism, inclusiveness, excellencethat manypeopleadmire and wantto bepart of. The Olympic Gamesare a uniqueinstitution, in other words,and havea history of promoting sport aroundthe world. Thefinal phenomenon flagged above,the increasingly global movementof professional athletes, will bethe subject of a moreextended discussionin a moment.For now, though, a striking example will suffice. Foer(2004) estimatesthat there are now more than 5,000 Braziliansoccer playersplying their trade in other countries. Ofthe 22 players whorepresented Brazilin the 2002 WorldCup,onlysevenstill playedtheir clubsoccerin Brazil.Bythe 2014 WorldCupin Brazil,onlyfour out of 23 playersonthe Brazilianteam still played their club soccer in Brazil. This exodus of Brazilian soccer playersis, he
306Chapter
14
suggests,one of the great migrationsof talent in recent history,the sports equivalent of the post-Soviet brain drain (Foer, 2004, p. 131). Mostwould agreethat these Brazilian migrantshaveimproved the standard of playand the entertainment valueof the foreign leaguesthey now playin, and the economic advantagefor the individual playersis obvious: highersalariesthan they could hopefor at home,in a country whoserecent economic growthstill cannotsupport the kind ofinfrastructure andticket pricesthat fuel the richer economy of professionalsport that existsin Europe,Japan,and North America. However,an exodusoftalent onthis scale hashad predictableeffectsonthe domestic game. Brazilianfans seldom getto seetheir top players,and the quality of Brazilianleague playhassuffered.For Uruguayanwriter Eduardo Galeano(1998), this exodusof good players from Brazil, Argentina,and Uruguayhasled to mediocre professionalleagues(at home), and everfewer, everlessfervent fans. Peopledesertthe stadiumsto watchforeign matches ontelevision (p. 206).It wasnot unusualin the late 1990s,Foer(2004) notes,for a Brazilian league matchin RiodeJaneirosfamous Maracana~ Stadium(with a capacityof morethan 100,000)to have only afew thousandspectators. By 2013,increasing Brazilianprosperity andthe hostingofthe 2014 WorldCuphadimproved this situation alittle. However,Brazils mostrecent young prodigy, Neymar,announcedin May2013that he hadsignedto playfor the nextfive yearsfor Barcelona,at asalary his Brazilianclub, Santos,couldstill never match from the gatereceipts andtelevisionrevenuesavailablein Braziliansoccer. Thereare manyinterestingexamplesandcomparisonsonecouldpursuefar too manyto proceedin this fashion. In an effortto distill the arguments,the discussionthat follows will focus on three aspectsof globalizationin sport, eachinvolving phenomenathat can be observedin a numberofsportsandin manydifferentcountries.First, we will proceedwith our discussionof player migrationandthe globalizationofthe labour market in professionalsports. Fromthere, we will moveto an examination of globalizationin the sports business, including the growth oftransnational ownershipandinvestment, the searchfor globaltelevision audiences,andthe experienceofseveralsports with global marketingstrategies.Thefinal subsection willfocus onfans and examinethe effectsofthe first two changeson the waysthat fans relateto teams,to players,andto sportsthemselves.Thechapter willconclude withsomeobservationsonthe extentto whichsportsinterestshavebeensuccessful in constructingthe global consumer andenquireinto the culturalimplications of changesin the sportsbusiness.Returning to questionsraisedin ourconceptualoverviewof globalization,wewill alsoenquireinto who winsandlosesasaconsequence ofthe increasingglobalintegration that wefind in many sports.
Professionalization and Globalization in the Sports Labour Market Wevenoted abovethe diasporaof Braziliansoccer playersnow playingin better-paying leaguesin Europe,and this is alsotrue for Argentinaand, to alesser extent, other Latin American nations(e.g., Mexico, Uruguay, Colombia,and Ecuador). Therich leagues of WesternEuropeSpain, England,Italy and,to alesserextent, Germany,France, Portugal, andthe Netherlandsnow include substantial numbersof Latin Americanplayersas wellas playersfrom Africaandfrom former EastBloc countries, whereplayersalariesalsoremain low. Indeed, the labour marketfor soccer playershasnow becomeso transnational that in the 2006 UEFA ChampionsLeaguefinal, the Englishrepresentative, Arsenal,fielded only two English players. Their starting lineup included playersfrom France, Spain, Sweden,
Globalization
and
Sport307
Germany,Belarus,and CotedIvoire. Their opponents,FC Barcelona,fielded alineup that featured a majorityof Spaniards;however,it alsoincluded star playersfrom Brazil, Cameroon, and Mexico.Thispattern hasbeenrepeated, withsome variations,in every UEFA Champions Leaguefinal since, andthe pointis simply that the wealthiestand mostambitiousclubs in the majorsoccernationsof WesternEuropecanaffordto buythe bestplayersin the world. In the North American majorsportsleagues,similar trends can be observedoverthe last quartercentury. NHLteams beganto employ Europeanplayersin the 1970s,initially as aresponseto the World Hockey Association(WHA) andthe competition for elite players that the newleagueintroduced. Before1990,though, the numbers werestill fairly small, and mostcamefrom Swedenand Finlandplayers like Borje Salming, MatsNaslund,Jari Kurri,and EsaTikkanen. Playersfrom the state-supportedhockeysystemsof EasternEurope like ViacheslavFetisovandIgor Larionov (from Russia)andthe Stastnybrothers, Anton and Peter(from Czechoslovakia),wereexceptionsto this pattern. Withthe collapseof the Soviet Union,though, andturmoil in Czechoslovakia,manyplayersfrom Russiaand the Czechand Slovak Republicssoughttheir fortunes in North America,and now many NHL lineups include playersfrom a variety of Europeannations,as wellasincreasing numbersof US players.Before1990,the NBA waslessinternational than the NHL,remaining overwhelmingly American. Today,there areincreasing numbersof NBA playersfrom Croatia and Serbia,from Lithuania andItaly, from Spain and Argentina,andfrom China(as well as Canadaand Australia). Major LeagueBaseballhashadincreasing numbersof players from a small core of Latin American countries (the Dominican Republic, Mexico,and Venezuela),as wellasJapanand morerecently South Korea,for a number of years.5 If a globallabour market is the newnormal in majorleaguesports,though, whyshould this bean issue?To understandhow globalizationdepartsfrom previouslyestablishedpractices, and alterssome of the meanings traditionally associatedwith intercommunity competition, requires usto look backalmosta hundredyearsto the earlydaysof representative sports. AlanIngham hasnotedin aninfluential essaythat sporting contestsonce provided dramaticrepresentationsof us and them, andthat the historical popularityof teamsports derivesfrom their capacityto dramatizecommunalidentities andrivalries(Ingham, Howell, & Schilperoort,1988,p. 437).In the earlydaysofspectatorsports,indeed, cheeringfor the home team meantcheeringfor teams comprisinglocal talent, and this gavecredibility to popular beliefsthat sportingsuccessreflectedfavourablyonthe communitythat hadproducedthem.6 However,as hiring afew travelling playersto bolsterthe local side andthen hiring whole squadsof professionalplayersbecamestandardpractice,the relationships betweenteamsand the communitiesthey representedbeganto take on a different character, whichIngham and his colleaguesdepict as moreakin to a merchantcustomerrelationship. Fansupportis solicited for the bestteam that local ownerscan buy. Now,though, teamsuccessnolongerreflects the quality oflocal players,let alonethe characteristicsoflocal people.Instead,it reflectsthe wealthofthe ownersandcrucially in todays worldthe wealthof acitys economyandits capacityto yieldthe revenuesthat supportcompetitivesalaries(Whitson, 2001). Forthe greaterpart of the 20th century,then, professionalismwasthe normin North American majorleaguesports. However,although this meantthat those playingfor a city haveveryseldombeenraisedin that city (in 2013,for example,only one ofthe Vancouver Canuckswasbornin British Columbia,two ofthe MontrealCanadienswerebornin Quebec, and only one of the Toronto BlueJaysis Canadianborn), severalfactors continued to encouragefans to identify with playersand to seethem aslocal representatives. To begin with, until recent decadesrestrictive player contracts bound professionalathletes to the 308Chapter
14
teamsthey begantheir careers with, unlessthose teams choseto trade them or cut them. Teamrosters,in these circumstances,were morestablethan they aretoday, andfanslearned to identify with players who hadrepresentedthe city for manyyearsand often had made their homesthere. However,once baseballsreserve clause wasoverturned by UScourts in 1976, players werenolonger legally boundto their original teams,and player unionsin all the North American majorleagueshavenegotiatedsteadilylower barriersto free agency (see Weiler,2000). Predictably,this hasled to steadilyincreased player mobility. The history of globalizationin the soccerlabour market,not surprisingly,is different. The mostobviousdifference, perhaps,is that instead of one majorleaguein eachsport, as hasbeenthe casein North America(except in those brief periods whenrival leagues haveattempted to compete),there hasbeenfinancial competition amongteams basedin Spain, England,andItaly to sign elite players:bothfrom each other and from anywhere elsein the world. Theother obvious differenceis that, withsoccer played on a much more global basisthan any of the North Americansports,the talent pool is moregenuinely global, with manygood players now coming from Africa and Latin America. Athird important differenceis that eventhough playerassociationshavepushedoverthe yearsto easerestrictions on player mobility,they have been historically weakerthan their North Americancounterparts, withthe result that majorchange did not come until 1995(much later than in North America),following a ruling by the European Court of Justice. The court ruled in favour of a minorleague Belgian player namedJean-Marc Bosman,saying that rules that the majorEuropeansoccerleagues hadfollowed, which had by agreement limited teamsto threeforeign-born players,contravenedthe rights of playerswho wereEU citizensto pursuetheir tradein any EU country (Ammirante, 2006). Thisopenedthe door for ambitiousEnglishteams,for example,to scout andsign playersfrom Franceand Portugal, leading to the overwhelminglyforeign Arsenaland Chelseasidesthat representedLondon in the 2006 UEFA ChampionsLeaguecompetition. It hasalso encouraged manyplayers from French-and English-speaking Africaandfrom Braziland Argentina(many of whom have SpanishorItalian ancestry)to seekresident statusin these EU countries. Increasedplayer mobility hasthus led to important changesin professionalsports,in both North Americaand Europe. Onthe positiveside,it hasled to markedlyhigher player salaries(though some mightarguethat the stars,atleast, now maketoo much money),andit hasradically alteredthe relationships betweenplayersandteams,underminingthe absolute control that teamsand managers usedto haveovera playerscareer.It hasalsoenabledfans, atleastin those countries wherethe top leaguesplay,to regularlyseethe worldsbestplayers andto enjoythe skills of Braziliansoccerplayersor Czechhockeyplayerson aregularbasis.It alsospeaksto ideas of humanrights that wonderfulplayersfrom small countries, playerslike Jaromir Jagrfrom the Czech Republic, Didier Drogba(the Cote dIvoireborn star who helped Chelseawinthe UEFA ChampionsLeaguein 2012), and Lionel Messi(three-time FIFA Playerofthe Year),areableto earnsalariescommensuratewiththeir abilities.7 Onthe negativeside, however, weve notedthat this same phenomenon hasreduced the Brazilianand Argentinesoccerleaguesto the status of minorleagues,staffed mostlyby hopefulsand has-beens,with acorrespondingdeclinein fan interest. Thesame observation could fairly be madeof Czechand Russianhockeyin the last decadeor so (Cantelon, 2006), despitethe opportunities that arenewed Kontinental HockeyLeague(KHL) has offeredto Russiansand other Europeanswho nolonger wantto playin the NHL.In the top leagues,increased player mobility has produced a situation in which good players often switch teams at the end of each contract, and playersveryrarely stay withthe same Globalization
and
Sport309
team for their entire career. This new pattern has meanta reshaping of relationships among players,teams, andthe communities they aresupposedto represent. It mayalso bechangingthe meaningsoffan allegiancesandloyalties, in waysweshall exploreshortly. Beforeleaving the phenomenon ofincreasedplayer mobility behind,though, weneed to reflect onthe fact that globalizationin the sportslabour marketis sofar mostlya one-way street, with playersfrom poorercountries(or atleast countries wherethe structure of professionalsport doesnot supportmajor league salaries) migratingto those countries wherethe salariesare highest. Thereis, as yet, verylittle traffic in the other direction. There have always,to besure, beensome North American university hockey playersand basketball players(many of them too small by NHL and NBAstandards) whohavegone onto play in Europe. However,the Europeanleaguesin these sports do not generateeither the arena revenues or the television revenues(see below) that would enablethem to pay North Americanstyle salaries,evenin those WesternEuropeancountries(such as Germanyor Italy) that support majorleaguesalariesin soccer. Afurther barrierto the movementof Canadianand USathletesto Europe, moreover,hasbeenthe unwillingnessof manyunilingual North Americansto make the sortsof cultural adjustments(including masteryof another language)that weroutinely expect of Europeanor Hispanicplayerscoming here. Both of theseissueshavecometo the fore duringthe NHLlockouts of 2004and 2012, whensome NHL athletesstartedto playin Europebut quickly camehome,complainingof poor hotelsor travel conditions, orsimply the foreignness ofthe living environment (Cantelon, 2006). Finally, however,I wantto challengeone of the argumentssometimes madeby advocatesof globalization, namelythat the increased presenceof playersfrom other culturesin our midstand the increased visibility of heroesfrom other racesleads inexorably to increasedtolerance, and ultimately the disappearanceofracism. Eventhough there are bits of evidencethat appearto supportthis thesisthe increasing number of black playersin professionalsportsin both Europeand North America,and Francescelebration ofits victorious team in the 1998 World Cup(a team madeup predominantly of black playersfrom Francesformer colonies)the larger pictureremains discouraging.Riotsin Frenchcitiesin early 2006revealed howshallow or transitory wasFrenchgoodwill toward their immigrant populations and how deeplyingrained in Frenchsociety wereanti-black and anti-Arab attitudes. Morerecently, soccer matches in Spain,Italy, England,andthe Ukrainehaveall been marredby uglyepisodesof racist chanting byfans, andsometimesbyracial epithets by prominent players.In some oftheseinstances,leagueshaveimposedsignificant penaltieson both clubs and players;however,the recurrence of such events only servesto demonstrate that racial prejudicespersist,andlegislated protection of minoritiesremains necessary. In North America,the presence of black stars in professional sports is of longer standing and hence morefamiliar. However,the NHL and the majorjunior Ontario Hockey League(hockey is by far the whitest of the major North Americansports) have both hadracist incidents in recent years(Pitter, 2006). Thereis alsoa constituency in Canadianhockeythat hasregularly given Europeanplayers(Swedesand Russiansin particular) arough reception. Examplesin other professionalsports are plentiful, but my point hereis simply that although racism and xenophobia cannot be blamedon globalization (they clearly predateglobalization by manycenturies),increased player migrationhas led to some uglyreactions. Globalization,therefore, hasnot led to the tolerance that some predicted,and global culture is notor not yet, at anyratea culturein which people of all coloursarereadily acceptedfor their accomplishments(see Chapter5).
310Chapter
14
Corporate Strategies: The Promotion of Sports Product Turning from player mobility to owners, and the increasingly global horizons of professional sports entrepreneurs,wecanseeeven greaterchangesin the businessofsport over a periodof about 40 years. Thefirst changeto noteis in the kinds of people whoare owners. Thetraditional team owner wastypically arich local businessman, for whomsports ownership waspart of being a prominent local citizen orsimply a prestigioushobby.From about the 1980son, though, it became morecommonto find sportsteams owned by corporations or by majorinvestors from outsidethe community.8 The underlying factor hereis that professionalsports cameto be viewed asaninvestment that could potentially pay offin a big way.Instead of a businessin which the revenuescame primarily from gatereceipts andindeedfrom cheapseats(or, in manyEuropeansoccerstadiumsbeforethe 1980s,from standing-room admissions)leagues in all sports beganto follow a businessmodelpioneeredin the NFLandthe NBA,in which newrevenue streams wereactively developed. Luxury boxes, moreexpensivefood, and newforms of electronic advertising all increased the revenuesavailable within the stadium (or arena)itself. Ofevengreaterpotential value, though, werethe revenuesto begainedoutsidethe venue:from the promotion oflicensed merchandise,from the sale of television products amongthe muchlarger audiences who dont often attend live games,and from the capital gains that could berealized from increasesin the valuesoffranchises orshares(Horne, 2006; Whitson,2001). In the caseof merchandise,of course,sports clubs havesoldjerseysand other clothing bearingteaminsignia and coloursfor manyyears. However, mostsuchsales wereto faithful fans, andsales weremostlylimited to the city orregion wherethe team wasbased.The market,in other words,waslocal. There wereafew exceptionalteamsthat developednational followings: the New York Yankeesand the Montreal Canadiens,for example. However, evenfor theseteams, merchandise sales werearelatively small factor in team incomes. In the 1980s,though, the NBA and the NFLdemonstratedthat merchandisecould be promotedin a much moresystematic manner,and withthe celebrity drawing powerof Michael Jordan, ChicagoBullsgear wassold aroundthe world, muchofit to people whohad never seenJordan play.In Europe, majorsoccer clubslike ManchesterUnitedand Real Madrid have movedeven moreaggressively into the marketingof merchandise,promotingsalesnot onlyin their homecountries butin the Americasand Asia,too. Real Madridwasallegedto havesigned English midfielder David Beckhamas muchto promote merchandise salesin the Asian marketasfor hisabilities onthe field, whileboth Madridand ManchesterUnited (Beckhams former club) nowregularly report higher earningsfrom merchandisingand sponsorshipthan they dofrom gatereceipts (Ammirante, 2006).In both Europeand North America,teamsthat onceattracted nationalfollowings becauseof their historiesofsuccess (Barcelona FC,the Dallas Cowboys,and the Los AngelesLakersare additional examples) nowseekto establishthemselvesasgloballyrecognizedbrands (Horne, 2006). It is television, of course,that has madesuch commercial ambitionsfeasible. Satellite television hascreatedthe prospectof worldwideaudiencesfor the mostprestigiousleagues (the English Premier LeagueandItalys Serie Ain soccer,and NBA basketball),as wellas for eventslike the MastersGolf Tournamentandthe WimbledonChampionships in tennis. It is satellite television, likewise, that has madepossible worldwide audiencesfor the Olympicsand the FIFA World Cup,audiencesthat attract rights fees now valued at well
Globalization
and
Sport311
overa billion dollars. Televisiontook these eventsinto homesaroundthe world,creating a version of global culture in which peoplearoundthe world nowfollow the same global entertainment events and care aboutthe fates of the same global celebrities. Television also multipliedthe value of any advertisingthat is visibleto its cameras(on team jerseys, as well as on and around the playing surfaces), thus greatly expanding the potential income from advertising andsponsorships(Bellamy, 1998;seealso Chapter13). However,if satellite-fed broadcasttelevision haddramatically expandedthe revenues available to sportsin the 1960s,both in North Americaand Europe,the real bonanza would not come until the late 1980s with the arrival of paytelevision as a commercial reality. Theintroduction of successiveforms of paytelevisioncable and satellite subscriptions and later pay-per-view channelstogether with the channel capacity that these technologies provide, openedup a successionof new andlucrative possibilitiesin the sale oftelevisedsports entertainment. Theseinclude the nowfamiliar sports networks (TSN and Sportsnetin Canada,ESPNin the United States,and Sky Sportsin Europe), as well as morespecializedchannels devotedto particular sports (e.g., golf, fishing) and even particular teams (e.g., Real Madridand the Toronto MapleLeafs). This growth of narrow-casting,or special-interest channels aimed at niche markets,created demandfor moresports programmingthan the broadcastnetworks hadevershown and opportunities for new kinds of sports product, notably pay-per-view channels (Bellamy, 1998). In Europeand Australia, moreover,wherecable and satellite did not becomeestablished until the 1990s, having exclusive rights to televise the mostpopular sports (soccer in Europeand the rugbyleaguein Australia)also provedthe mosteffective vehiclefor selling millions ofsatellite subscriptionsand dishes(Williams, 1994). This allled to increases in the rights fees availableto the mostpopularsports,andit illustrates the extent to which sport hasbecomeincorporatedinto circuits of promotion in a culture wherethe value of any event to advertiserscan be calibrated according to its capacityto promotethe major productsand personalitiesassociatedwithit (Whitson, 1998). Ultimately,it hasalsoled all the majorsports, andthe television interests nowintimatelyconnected withthem, to actively seekglobal audiences.In both Europeand North America,the homeaudiencesfor the majorsportsleaguesthe EnglishandItalian soccer leagues,the NBA, the NFLhad reached saturation points, or something very closeto this. Therefore,if further growth wasto take place,the greatestpotential clearlylay abroad, through the sale of television packagesin marketsthat had not previouslyfollowed the English Premier League(EPL) orthe NBA,for example,in any numbers.Thisis why EPL matchesare nowcarriedinto homesaroundthe worldontelevision screensand new media devicesthroughout the season. Anotherinnovation hasseenthe creation of newcompetitions (the UEFA ChampionsLeaguesoccercompetition, for example,orthe Rugby World Cup)that are aimedspecifically at international television audiencesas well asthe traditional territories for these sports.Indeed, televisedsport hasdemonstratedthat, with rare exceptions, the appeal of sport crossesinternational boundaries morereliably than do otherforms of popular entertainmentlike dramaor comedythat rely moreheavily on language skills and culturally specific knowledge. Specialtysports networks, and their Internet-based websites,are alsopopularsourcesof up-to-the-minute sportsinformation. Atthe sametime, the optimism ofsome expansion-mindedenthusiaststhat, with the right marketing,anysport could besold anywhere hasto be viewed withsomeskepticism. Despitethe successesofsoccers biggestclubsin promotingthemselvesin Asia,the worlds
312Chapter
14
mostpopulargame has madeonly modestinroads in the United States.Likewise,despite three decadesof NHL effortsto expand hockeysfootprint in Americanpopular culture, the resultsremain disappointing(Mason, 2006). Many USsportsfans remain resistant to sports that didnt originate thereor perhapsthey remain resolutely loyal to their own sporting traditions? Atthe sametime, despiteefforts by the NBA, the NFL,and MLBto establish marketsfor their products in Europe and other continents, these too have achievedfairly limited success.It can be hypothesized,then, that global marketingruns up againstentrenched cultural tastes andloyalties everywhere.
Fans: Constructing the Global Consumer? For manyfans, though, and especiallyyoungerfans,the dynamicsdescribedabove haveled to adelocalization ofsportinginterestsandloyaltiesan idea that suggeststhat peopleare becomingless attachedto the sporting practicesandinstitutions historically associatedwith the cities or nationsthey live in (Wilson, 2006). At onelevel, thisis illustrated in the growth oftransnational television audiences for the majorleagues(English andItalian soccer,as well as North Americanprofessionalsports)and acorrespondingdeclinein fan supportfor smaller clubsin provincial cities.It is alsoregisteredin the growth of globalinterest in famousteams (Manchester United, Real Madrid,the DallasCowboys,the Los AngelesLakers)and arise in elective affinities amongyoungfans:supportingteams otherthan their local representatives on the basisof team success,attitude, or (increasingly) celebrity playerslike David Beckhamor LeBronJames whoare now extraordinarily valuable brandsin their ownright. Since Real Madridsigned Beckhamin 2003,income from sponsorship,advertising,and merchandising has multiplied,and the club haslaunched its own 24-hoursatellite television channel and a websitein English,Japanese,and Spanish(Ammirante, 2006). Whatsgoing on hereis that fan allegiancesrootedin place(the practiceof rooting for the hometeam) andin socialchoices(classor ethnic identities, for example,orregionalloyalties) are being underminedbythe languageof consumerchoice,in whichfans everywhere areencouragedto identify with world classteamsand players(Whitson, 1998,pp. 6566). Beckham,of course, wouldlater sign withthe Los Angeles Galaxyin 2007in a movethat paidimmediate financial dividendsfor the clubin terms of sponsorship,gaterevenue, and global visibility. After beingloaned to AC Milanin 2009 and 2010, Beckhameventually finished his playingcareerin Franceat ParisSaint-Germain FCin 2013. At a deeperlevel, though, delocalization also meansthat traditional national (or regional) sports mustnow compete with sportsimported from other countriesif they are to retain their audiencesand their cultural significance, especiallyamong young people. Thus, asthe major professionalsports expand and go global as businesses, the kinds of national and regional rivalries that once defined the meaningsof sportsin popular culture aresupplanted bythe attitudes and practices of consumerchoice and of global youth culture and fashion. Whatis emerging maybe a global sporting culture in which the mediaindustry plays asignificant part, and audiencesaroundthe world(or the affluent world, at least) areinvited to take an interest in the samesports events and celebrities. Canadians,for example, now haveaccessto a widerrange of sports entertainment than we hadin the past,including not only NBA basketballand UEFA Champions League soccer, but alsosports like cycling and rugby that wereonce very difficult to find on Canadiantelevision. Canadiansports audiences,like audiencesin other countries, are
Globalization
and
Sport313
being addressedasfree-floating consumers who mightswitch teams andevendevelopnew sportinginterestsif wearegiven accessto world-classsporting entertainment. Theclaim of promotersof cultural globalization,indeed, is that as peoplegain access to global information, so they develop global needsand demand global commodities, thereby becomingglobal citizens (Levitt, cited in Robins,1991, pp. 2627). For critics of globalization,this road leadsinexorably to the loss of cultural diversity, asthe expensively producedcultural events that the mainstream mediapublicizethe majorprofessional sports and the Olympics, Hollywoodfilms and UStelevision dramas, musicianson the majorlabelsmake less well-fundedcultural productionslook unprofessional,even homespun, by comparison.It should berecognized herethat the purposeof marketingis precisely to createdemandfor new products,and that global marketingsets out to reshapepatterns of cultural consumption andto grow the marketsfor the productsof transnational corporations (Fawcett, 1992). However,we needto examinethe rhetoric through whichthis is accomplished,in particularthe nowfamiliar notion of world class products. I wantto proposeherethat the label of world class seeksto connect global brand names with ersatzideas of excellence,specifically the idea of beingthe bestof its kind in the world. Whatglobal brandspurportto offerwhether an eventlike the Olympic Games or the World Cup, orthe products of the global corporations that associatethemselves withsuch eventsare famous names,state-of-the-art production values,and productsthat aresupposedto bethe best of their kind in the world. Weneedto carefully distinguish, though, betweenexcellenceandfame, especially wherethe latter is a product of expensive publicity machines.Think about how difficult it is to determine whatis the best when considering cultural products(like films or booksor sports) that maybe very difficult to compare. Theterm worldclass wasonce meaningfullyappliedto athletics or swimming performancesthat were measurablythe bestin the worldin that event in a given year. However,it is now usedas a claim to superiorityin so manyother contexts,ranging from orchestrasto universities to citiescontexts wherequalitative comparisonsare difficult and criteria of excellenceareopento debatethat it hasbecomedevoid of concrete meaning. It can besuggested, indeed, that the label world class now denotesnothing but selfpromotion, andindeed the status of an aspirant asopposedto an establishedclaimant.
Conclusions I havepresentedglobalizationasa complexset of processes that combinesto makethe world a moreintegrated place,andI havetried to distinguish,for the sake of clarity, betweeneconomic or businessprocesses (e.g.,freertrade ortransnational corporateintegration) and cultural processes (e.g.,the spreadof heterogeneityandthe loosening of historicalties between culturesand places).It remainscrucial,though,in thinking about globalizationto remember the linkages betweeneconomic and cultural processes.For example,it is the drive on the part ofsports businesses to constructglobal marketsthat hastaken ussome waystoward the creation of a globalsporting culture. The globalexpansionofthe leisure and entertainment industries undoubtedlybrings newopportunitiesto manyof usopportunities to watchor even practicesports that wereonce not availableto usin our home countriesand this developmentis heraldedbythose who wantto celebratethe benefits ofincreasedconsumer
314Chapter
14
choice (Ammirante, 2006, p. 240). However,for critics of globalization, among whom Julian Ammirante wouldcertainly beincluded, this is a dubious benefit. Heproceedsto point to the metropolitanderivation of mostof the cultural products(and the lifestyles) that attain worldwidepromotion and distribution (Ammirante, 2006, p. 240) and to the fact that global socceris increasingly dominated by a handful of super-rich clubs. It is important, therefore,to understandthat in the entertainment industry, globalizationis an agendapromoted by the biggestof businesses, andindeed that the entertainment industry is one of globalizations mosteffective boosters(Fawcett, 1992). Here we have,in capsuleform, the essenceof economic globalization, as wellasthe standard objection to it: the takeover of our mostpopularsports bysuper-rich individuals and mediacorporations, and their managementof these popular institutions with morethought given to the bottom line than to the traditions of the team or the sport. Examplesinclude the marketing of leagueslike the English Premier Leagueand the National Basketball Association,teams like Real Madrid and Manchester City, and celebritieslike David Beckham, Kobe Bryant, and Tiger Woods. It is alsoimportant, however,to seethe continuities as wellasthe changes.Professional sport wasa businessfrom its inception, in both Europeand North America. However,the sports businessin the United Statesbeganin the 1960sto adopt businessmodels and practicesbeing used with successelsewherein USbusiness(franchising, expansion, and branding campaignsarethe bestexamplesof this). In Europeand Australia,in contrast, teams and national governing bodiescontinued to operate along moretraditional lines for another quarter century, and traditional waysof doing things often trumped commercial logic. Since the early 1990s, however, and the advent of pay TV, sports entrepreneursin Europe,as wellas Australiaand parts of Asia, have quickly movedto adopt similar money-makingstrategies,and the outcomeis the globalspread of a more frankly commercial approachto sport (Horne, 2006, pp. 2930). Nonetheless,globalization in the sports businesshasnot meantthe spread of USsports around the world, as somefeared,so muchasit hasseenthe spread of US businessand marketingpractices practicesthat originatedin the United Statesbut are nolonger uniquely American. Turningto cultural globalization,it can besuggestedthat, asabove,the threat is lessthe inexorable spread of USpopular culturethan it is the steady detachment of culturefrom place,asaresult of a combination of migration, media,and marketforces. Tothe extentthat this continues, one mightpredictthat some once-localcultural traditions will becommercializedand marketedaroundthe world(West Africanand Cuban musicmightbeexamples ofthis, asis rugbyin sport). Others, meanwhile,will die out, andthe worldscultural diversity will bediminished. Both ofthesetrendsthat is, the commercializationoffolk culture andthe loss of cultural diversitywill beseenbysome astroubling developments,andthis includes not just anti-globalization activists but alsosometraditional conservatives who careaboutthe survival oflocal traditions. Indeed, Foer(2004) proposesthat the innovation ofthe anti-globalizationleft is its embraceof traditionalism: its worrythat globaltastesand brands will steamrollindigenous cultures, and that global marketingby Real Madridand Nike will succeedin prying fans awayfrom their old allegiances (pp. 45). Suchfears mustbe credited with havingsome grounds,for mostof us will beable to seein our own experiencesome evidence of cultural homogenization. However,Foergoes onto observethat in his ownresearchinto the globalization ofsoccer,cultural homogenization turned out to belessthan he had anticipated. Onthe contrary, manyof soccers
Globalization
and
Sport315
quirky local culturesand
blood feudsappear
to be flourishing
despite globalization.
And in Canada, too, we can find lots of evidence oflocal traditions
and enthusiasms, as
well as regional allegiances and rivalries that seem alive and well. All we have to do is look at the passion with which Canadians followed
the fortunes
of the
Vancouver
Canucksin the 2012 Stanley Cup playoffs and the enthusiasm for hockey that persistsin manysmaller cities across Canada wherethe junior game is thriving:
placeslike Kamloops
and Cranbrook, Red Deer and Brandon, Peterborough and London, and Rimouski and Moncton.
We might also recognize the continued
popularity of curling in rural
Canada
and in prairie cities like Edmonton (see Mott & Allardyce, 1989), as well asthe revival of enthusiasm for the Canadian Football League.9 Foer also warns us,finally, against the temptation to see the past through highly selective glasses. He clearly enjoys many of the cultural traditions regrets that in trying to movethe game up-market some of the games working-class traditions.
associated with soccer and
soccers new investors have destroyed
Yet he also remarks that the nostalgia he
encountered in some quarters for the games good old days uncritically celebrated traditions of bigotry, drunkenness, and violence against others
that were better left behind. It also
appeared to gloss over the fact that the old-fashioned terraces where working-class male fans gathered to shout their partisan allegiances and hatreds were places where fans were often treated like cattle and where,in too manytragic instances, significant numbers offans wereinjured and even killed. The cultural effects of change arent all bad,in other words, and weshould be careful about glorifying tradition With these caveatsreminders
in an uncritical
that the effects of globalization
bad elements and, in any event, mayoften be exaggeratedI a point madein the introduction
way(Foer, 2004). may have good and
want to close byreturning to
to this chapter, namely that both economic and cultural
globalization raise issues of public policy. In our first free trade agreement with the United Statesin the 1980s, as well as the subsequent NAFTA, keep culture off the table
tion give enormous advantages to the USfilm, (Grant
Canada did everything it could to
becausethe economics of cultural reproduction
and distribu-
music,television, and publishing industries
& Wood, 2004). Canadathus fought successfully for a cultural
exemption
that
allowed usto continue to support our cultural industries: our musicindustry, our publishers, our film industry.
Such policies are regularly challenged by the
US cultural industries,
which tend to see the Canadian market almost asan extension of their own domestic market (predominantly
English-speaking and already familiar
with USentertainment products
and personalities).
However, we need to remember that culture represents a different kind
of product from wheat or auto parts. Our culture is part of our identity, athletes and musicians and filmmakers
and our authors and
constitute a big part of what keeps us different
from our neighbours to the south and from everyone else. This is what makesthe protection of Canadas ability to produce our own culture, and of cultural diversity within Canada,
mattersof morethan academicinterest and mattersof morethan entertainment,too.
Critical thinking
Questions
1. Consider the popular idea that
hockey is Canadas
countries the gameis now played in.
game in light
of how many
Compare hockey and soccer as global games.
2. Is globalization leading to a greater diversity of sporting choices or to the dominance of a small handful of mens professional sports?
316Chapter
14
3.
Whatarethedifferencesbetweensportsfansof40yearsagoandthoseoftoday?Isthe expansion of consumer choice an important
advancement?
Whatare the limitations
of consumer sovereignty? 4.
Whatare the meanings of world
5.
What does it
class in relation to sports? cities? universities?
meanto be a global citizen?
How might this go beyond being a
global consumer?
Suggested readings Foer, F. (2004). Howsoccer explainsthe world: An(unlikely) theory of globalization. New York, NY: Harper Perennial. Horne, J. (2006). Sportin consumer culture. London, King, A. (2003).
UK: Palgrave Macmilian.
The European ritual: Footballin the new Europe. Burlington,
Tomlinson, J. (1999). Whitson, D.(2001).
Globalization and culture.
Chicago, IL:
VT: Ashgate.
University of Chicago Press.
Hockeyand Canadianidentities: Fromfrozen rivers to revenue streams. In D. Taras
& B. Rasporich(Eds.), A passionfor identity: Canadianstudiesfor the 21st century. Toronto, ON: Nelson. Whitson, D., & Gruneau,R.(Eds.). (2006). Artificialice: Hockey,culture, andcommerce.Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press.
references Ammirante,J. (2006). Globalizationin professionalsport: Comparisonsand contrasts between hockey and Europeanfootball. In D. Whitson & R. Gruneau(Eds.), Artificialice: Hockey, culture, and commerce (pp. 237261). Andrews, D. (Ed.). (2001).
Toronto,
MichealJordan, Inc.:
ON: University of Toronto Press. Corporate sport,
mediaculture, and late
modern
America. Albany, NY: SUNY Press. Barney, R. K., Wenn, S., & Martyn, S. (2002).
Selling the five rings: The International
Olympic
Committee and the rise of Olympiccommercialism. Salt Lake City, UT: University of Utah Press.
Bellamy, R.(1998). The evolving television sports marketplace.In L. Wenner(Ed.), MediaSport (pp. 7387). New York, NY: Routledge. Butsch,R.(Ed.). (1990). Forfun and profit: Thetransformationofleisureinto consumption.Philadelphia, PA: Temple University Press. Cantelon, H.(2006). Haveskates, will travel: Canada,international hockey, andthe changing hockeylabour market.In D. Whitson & R. Gruneau(Eds.), Artificialice: Hockey,culture, and commerce(pp. 215235). Toronto, ON: Universityof Toronto Press. Carter, T.(2011).In foreignfields: Thepoliticsandexperiences oftransnationalsportsmigration.London, UK: Pluto Press. Donnelly, P. (1996).
The local and the global:
Globalization in the sociology of sport. Journal of
Sport & Social Issues, 20, 239257. Epp, R., & Whitson, D.(Eds.). (2001).
Writingoff the rural
transformation of rural communities. Edmonton, Fawcett, B. (1992). The trouble with globalism. In Vancouver, Foer, F. (2004).
BC: Douglas
&
West: Globalization, governments, andthe
AB: University of Alberta Press. M. Wyman(Ed.), Vancouverforum (pp. 183201).
McIntyre.
How soccer explains the
world:
An (unlikely)
theory of globalization.
New York,
NY:
Harper Perennial. Freidman,
T. (1999).
Galeano, E. (1998). Giulianotti,
The Lexus and the olive tree. Soccerin the sun and shadow.
R., & Robertson,
R. (2007).
New York,
NY: Farrar, Strauss
M. Fried (Trans.).
Globalization and sport.
London, Oxford,
& Giroux.
UK: Verso.
UK: Blackwell
Globalization
Publishing.
and
Sport317
Grant, P. & Wood, C. (2004).
Blockbusters and trade wars: Popular culture in a globalized world.
Vancouver, BC: Douglas & McIntyre. Hannerz,U.(1996). Transnationalconnections:Culture,people,places.London, UK: Routledge. Horne,J. (2006). Sportin consumerculture. London, UK: Palgrave Macmillan. Ingham, A., Howell,J., & Schilperoort, T. (1988). Sport and community: Areview and exegesis. Exerciseand SportScienceReview,15, 427465. Iyer, P.(2000). Theglobalsoul. New York, NY: Vintage Books. Jamail, M. H.(2008). Venezuelan bust, baseballboom: AndresReinerandscoutingonthe newfrontier. Lincoln, NE: Universityof NebraskaPress. James, C.L. R.(1963). Beyonda boundary.London, UK: Hutchinson. Klein, A.(1991). Sugarball: The Americangame,the Dominicandream. New Haven, CT: Yale University Press. Klein, A. (1997). Princeton,
The owls of the two laredos: Baseballand nationalism on the TexasMexican border.
NJ: Princeton
Lull, J. (2000).
University Press.
Media,commerce, culture: Aglobalapproach. New York, NY: Columbia University Press.
Mason, D. (2006). Expanding
the footprint?
Questioning the
NHLs expansion and relocation
strategy. In D. Whitson & R. Gruneau(Eds.), Artificialice: Hockey,culture, andcommerce (pp. 181199). Toronto, ON: Universityof Toronto Press. Mott, M., & Allardyce, J. (1989). Curlingcapital: Winnipegandthe roarin game, 18761988. Winnipeg, MB: University of ManitobaPress. Pitter, R.(2006). Racialization and hockeyin Canada:From personal troubles to a Canadian challenge. In D. Whitson & R. Gruneau(Eds.), Artificial Ice: Hockey,culture, and commerce (pp. 123139). Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press. Robertson,R.(1992). Globalization:Socialtheory andglobalculture. New York, NY: RussellSage. Robins, K.(1991). Tradition andtranslation: National culturesin a global context. In J. Corner& S. Harvey (Eds.), Enterprise and heritage: Crosscurrentsof national culture. London, UK: Routledge. Sage, G.(2004). transnational
The sporting goods industry: From struggling entrepreneurs to national businessto corporations. In T. Slack (Ed.), Thecommercialisation ofsport (pp. 2951).
London,
UK: Routledge. Sage, G.(2011).
Globalizing sport: How organizations, corporations,
media,and politics are changing
sports. Boulder, CO: ParadigmPublishers. Scherer,J., & Davidson,J. (2011). Promoting the arriviste city: Producing neo-liberal urban identity and communities of consumption duringthe Edmonton Oilers 2006 playoff campaign. International Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport,46(2), 157180. Scherer,J., &Jackson, S.(2013). Thecontestedterrain ofthe NewZealand All Blacks: Rugby,commerce,andcultural politicsin the ageof globalization.London, UK: Peter Lang. Short,J. R. & Kim, Y. H.(1999). Globalizationandthe city. New York, NY: Longman. Weiler,P.(2000). Levelingthe playingfield: Howthelaw can makesports betterfor fans. Cambridge MA: Harvard University Press. Whitson, D.(1998). L. Wenner (Ed.), Whitson, D. (2001). In
Circuits of promotion:
Media, marketing, and the globalization
MediaSport(pp. 5772).
New York, NY: Routledge.
Hockey and Canadian identities:
D. Taras & B. Rasporich (Eds.),
(pp. 217236).
Toronto,
of sport. In
From frozen rivers to revenue streams.
A passionfor identity:
Canadian studies for the 21st century
ON: Nelson.
Williams,J. (1994). Thelocal andthe globalin Englishsoccer andthe rise of satellite television. Sociologyof SportJournal, 11, 376397. Wilson, B. (2006). Selective memoryin a global culture: Reconsideringlinks between youth, hockey,and Canadianidentity. In D. Whitson & R. Gruneau(Eds.), Artificialice: Hockey,culture, and commerce(pp. 5370). Toronto, ON: University of Toronto Press.
318Chapter
14
endnotes 1. I use soccer throughout
this chapter, for a Canadian audience.
aware that everywhere outside the
However, readers should be
United States and Canadathe game is known asfootball (or
futbol in Spanish-speaking nations). 2. FollowingHannerz(1996),Iuseinternationaltorefertorelationsorbodiesthatinvolvenationstates, andtransnational to describe other kinds of connections (e.g., corporate or interpersonal). 3. Braziliansoccer,likeWestIndiancricket,isknownforitsoffence-oriented,almostflamboyant, style of play. Both James (1963) and Galeano(1998) also relate how cricket in the and soccer in
many Latin
American countries (notably
tied up with national identity in ways very similar to the role that hockey playsin 4.
Weneed to understand here that sports dont have interests interests of those
WestIndies
Brazil and Argentina) have become Canada.
of their own, distinct from the
who own teams, televise games, and so on. Thus, whenever we hear people
talking about the interests
of the sport (in expansion, for example, or in appearing drug free)
weshould recognize that this really
meansthe interests of those who are in the business of sell-
ing that particular sport as entertainment. 5. See Alan Klein (1991, 1997) for accounts of baseball in the
Dominican Republic and Mexico,
respectively, and the effects of Major League Baseball on baseballin these countries. See Milton Jamail (2008) for a review of baseball in Venezuela. 6.
As an example, during the Edmonton mayor Stephen
Oilerss successes in the 2006 Stanley
with a never-say-die determination (Scherer 7.
A qualifying
note is important
which is focused on the as yet, that attract the
& Davidson, 2011).
here. Some readers
will have noticed that this discussion,
most popular professional team sports, has said nothing about global
opportunities for women athletes. levels of the
This is becausethere are no womens professional leagues,
media coverage and television
West European soccer leagues or the
ther is there the competition
audiences that would support the salary
North American
majorleague sports. Nei-
for players described in the chapter.
The Canadian and US
womens soccer teams now draw substantial stadium audiences for international a very few leading athletes in some of the individual can makesignificant
prize moneyin international
year-round circuit competition
circuit competition.
However, tennis and
media audiences to support
and the sorts of earnings commensurate
with this.
8. English soccer in the last decade has seen several of its biggest clubs taken Chelsea by Russian billionaire
Glazer, the
US owner of the
City by Sheikh
Roman Abramovich;
NFLs Tampa Bay Buccaneers; and morerecently
(i.e., taken over and kept in
Eugene Melnyk, while the
over by foreign
Manchester United by Malcolm
Mansour bin Zayed Al Nahyan. On a smaller scale, the
tors wererescued
matches, and
Olympic sports (notably skiing and track)
golf are still the only womens sports to have generated sufficient
tycoons:
Cup playoffs,
Mandelsuggested that the team reflected the city itself: industrious, feisty, and
NHLs
Manchester Ottawa Sena-
Ottawa) by Toronto pharmaceutical
Dallas Stars and the
Phoenix
magnate
Coyotes are each now owned by
Canadian investors. 9.
Curling in
Canada underwent some commercialization
bonspiels that
in the 1990s with the advent of cash
madeprofessional careers possiblefor a handful of the countrys leading players.
Its also a sport that is now part of the
Winter Olympics program and has annual
World Cham-
pionships (for both menand women), events at which Canadais usually a favourite but doesnt always win. The processes of commercialization
and globalization are not nearly as advanced,
though, asthey arein the other sports that have been the focus of this chapter.
Globalization
and
Sport319
Chapter15 Sportandthe Future Brian Wilson
Will ongoing tensions inequalities
lead to
about societal moreintense
protests at global sport mega-events? Darryl Dyck/The Canadian
Press/AP Images
320
Underlyingthe variouschaptersin this bookand indeedthe sociologyof sportfield more generallyis the idea that sport is acultural form andsocial practicethat is rife with contradictions. Sport unitesand dividespeople.It is healthyandinjurious. It reflects andreproducessocialinequalities andsocietalinequities, andit is aforum wheresocialjustice-oriented issuesand changesare promoted(Eitzen, 2003). Putsimply, sport is acontestedterrain. Toidentify thesecontradictionsandexplorethis contestedterrain, sociologistsstudy how particular viewson andfeaturesofsport cameto betaken for grantedandinspect the mechanismsthrough whichthey continueto betakenfor granted. Theidea is that bylooking at the rolesport playsin contemporary Canadian societyand howit cameto playthis rolewe will be better positionedto make recommendationsfor changingsport (and society)for the better. The argument that underliesthis chapter is that a final analytic step is necessary to give ourselvesthe best chance of makingrecommendations for changesthat are both desirable and effective. Specifically, I suggest that to respond in an informed mannerto sport-related social problems we mustusethe information wehave acquired about the processesand structures of sport and society to help us consider what the future holdsand to envision what a preferredfuture wouldlook like.
Thistask of looking to the future requires usto consider current trendsin sport and society asa wayofthinking aboutthe direction that sport is going.It alsorequiresthinking about howthis directionis influenced by(and is influencing) driversofsocial changein the broader Canadiansociety,including all of the social institutions outlined in this book(the media,variouslevels of government,the economy, etc.). Whenwearesensitiveto sports currenttrajectory andthe factorsthat influence it, wearealsoin a better positionto assess whetheraspectsofsport aregetting better and whethersport-relatedsocial problemsseemto beintensifying. Ofcourse,to dothis type of reflection also meansasking ourselveswhat a better and worse sport system,sport culture, and broadersocietylook like. Thisis not astraightforwardtask simply becauseviews on whatcounts as a preferred future will vary greatlyand areinevitably deeplypoliticized.It is wellknownthat attemptsto pursue majorUtopianvisionsofsociety haveled to some ofthe worsthumanrights violations imaginable(Winter, 2006). Forexample,the visionthat guided Adolph Hitlers workin Nazi Germanyleading upto and during World WarII wasguidedby a particular understandingof anideal society. Sothe questionalwaysremains, whosepreferredfuture is being pursued? Thereis agreementin the sociologyofsport communitythat it is preferable for sportto be, for example,more equitableandinclusive, more democratic,less violent, andmore environmentallyfriendly. Still, decidingon howto achievethese versionsofsportis not straightforward. Consideringwhatsport andsociety willlook like in the future requiressensitivity not onlyto currenttrendsin sport andsociety, but alsoto the political mechanisms and powerrelations that drivesocial changeandthe processes that preservethe statusquo. Thistaskrequires an ability and desireto imagine whatsport andsocietycould be,and an acceptanceofthe fact that onecan neverknowfor surehowthings willturn out. Finally,it means choosingto believe that wecanuseoursociologicalimaginationsto helpusimprove sport andsociety. In the remainder ofthis chapterI attempt to provokethis sort of thinking aboutsport and the future. I do this byfirst describing aset offour overarching categoriesthat have been associated with majorsocial changes:governance, globalization, technology, and environment. I discussbroadersocietal trends asthey pertain to eachcategory,and then offer a series of 11 predictions basedon this information. Finally, I outline waysthat those hopingto influence the trajectories of sport andsociety might useexisting research andtheory to inform intervention.
Drivers of social change anD implications for the future of sport anD society Withhis 2013book TheFuture:Six Driversof GlobalChange, renownedenvironmentalistand former vice-presidentofthe UnitedStates,Al Gore,identified six driversofsocial changethat heseesatthe coreof majorand ongoingchangesin the worldaroundus:(a) ever-increasing economicglobalization;(b) the emergenceofrevolutionary digital communicationsand new mediaformatsthat haveresultedin linkages betweenbillions of people;(c) shiftsin the balanceof globalpolitical, economic,and militarypower;(d) a deeplyflawedeconomiccompass; (e) revolutionsin genomic,biotechnology,neuroscience,andlife sciences;and (f) aradical disruption of the relationship betweenhuman beingsand Earths ecosystems(Gore, 2013). Goresattemptto bringattention to some ofthe keytrajectoriesof contemporarysocietiesand offerexplanationsfor thesetrajectoriesis part of along tradition offuturist workthat hastaken placein the socialsciencesas wellasin literature,film, and other areasofthe arts.
Sport
and
the
Future321
Acoreassumptionthat underpins Goresworkthat is especiallyusefulfor our purposes is that looking to the future requiressensitivity to the range of waysand reasonsthat societies have developedasthey have. Thisidea is reminiscent of C. Wright Millssargumentthat beingsensitiveto the historyof particularideologiesandstructuresis crucialif weareto begin to seehow manythings wetakefor grantedaresocial constructions(Mills, 1959). Ofcourse,if ideologiesandstructuresofsocietyaresocial constructions,they canbechangedby peoplejust like they werecreatedby people. Goreand Millssimilarly remind usto remain opento the multipledirectionsthat society could goin the future, and how particular drivers of social change mightlead to outcomesthat seemcounterintuitive. It is in this spirit that I haveidentified four overarchingthematic areasandidentified driversofsocial changethat areespeciallypertinentto eachoftheseareas.Theseareasand drivers werechosen withthe goal of capturingsome ofthe mostcompellingaspectsof Goresposition whileat the sametime illuminating majorthemesthat havebeenespeciallypertinentfor sociologistsofsport. WhileI do not (and cannot possibly)treat these areasascomprehensivein the sensethat there areso manychangesassociatedwiththese broadcategoriessport related and otherwiseI doseetheseareasasusefuldeparturepointsfor discussionaboutsomecurrent and preferreddirectionsofsport andsociety. Theareasand associateddriversareasfollows: 1. Governance:The driver ofsocial change within this areais the ongoing adoption and practice of postpolitical decision makingand neoliberal governance. 2. Globalization:The driver of social change within this areais the ongoing developmentof societal changesassociatedwith economic,social, and cultural globalization. 3. Technology:Thedriver of social change within this areais the ongoing development and effectsof highlyinteractive and sometimes highlyinvasive technologies. 4. Environment:The driver ofsocial change within this areais the widespreadconcern aboutthe impacts of environment-related problems. Below,I elaborateon eachofthese and discuss their relevanceto sport andthe future. As will becomeevident,these areasand driversareintegrally linked to oneanother,andfor this reasonshould beconsideredholisticallyas part of asharedandever-evolvingsystem.
Governance In recent decadesand especially with the rise of conservativegovernmentsin Britain, Canada,and the United Statesin the 1980smany social and political commentatorsand othersobservedand consideredthe implications of the developmentandimplementation of whatis known as neoliberalforms of governance(Brown, 2006; Harvey,2005). Whileissues associated with neoliberalismin Canadaare embeddedin various chapters of this book (especially Chapter4),I will offera briefsynopsisofthe term and whatit means for governance. Neoliberalism,whichrefersto government policiesas wellasthe ideologiesthat guide decisionsto makethese policies,is basedon a belief that a market rationality can be usedto effectively deal with social, economic, and environmental problems. To usea marketrationality meansbeing guided by the principles that private businessesusein their attemptsto secureprofit in the competitive corporatesector. The mainincentive for businessesin this context is, of course, to secure profitwhich in mostcases means respondingto the demandsof consumers.
322Chapter
15
Theideology underlyingthis approachis that economicinterestscanbeservedalongside social and environmentalinterestsand that this competition-based modelwilllead to the mostefficient and effective overall outcomes. Governmentsthat are guided by neoliberal principlesare,therefore,knownto reducefunding for programsintended to deal withsocietal problems,justifying such movesbyindicating that market mechanisms willlead to (a) the best serviceprovisionand(b) prosperityfor businesses or nongovernmentalorganizations(NGOs) that providethe bestservices. Government-offered serviceshavebeentreatedsimilarlyin the sensethat reducedfundingfor public provisionslike a municipalrecreationcentrerequiresthe centrestaff to beespeciallyentrepreneurialin their attemptsto stay afloat. This neoliberalinfluenced approachto funding thesesorts of governmentservicesis known asnew public management(Aucoin, 1995). Theidea hereis that rational consumerswill beableto use their purchasing powerto implicitly and explicitly support prosocialsocietal changesby choosingthe bestservicesdecisions that, theoretically speaking,shouldlead to financial successandsustainabilityfor the mosteffectiveand efficient privateand public providers. Alsoat neoliberalisms coreis the belief that individuals/consumers areresponsible for their own well-beingandthat external social and economic barrierscan be overcome bythose whoare appropriately entrepreneurial. Theidea is that neoliberal governments prioritize consumer choice, and therefore if one makesthe wrong choices, then the consequencesof these choicesshould not bethe responsibility of the state. Since manyscholarshaveobservedthat thereis alink betweenneoliberalforms of governanceandincreasedinequality, it is perhapsunsurprisingthat critiques of neoliberalismare abundant. Healthsociologist David Coburn(2004), for example,illuminates this link in an oft-quotedstudy hepublishedin the journal SocialScience& Medicine, whereheconcludesthat global and national socio-political-economic
trends have increased the power of busi-
nessclassesand lowered that of working classes. The neo-liberal policies accompanying these trends led to increased income inequality
but also poverty and unequal accessto
manyother health-relevant resources. . . Furthermore, countries with Social Democratic forms of welfare regimes (i.e., those that are less neo-liberal) have better health than do those that are more neo-liberal. (p. 21)
Sociologists of sport have also been highly interested in these issues and have produceda wealthof research and commentaryin recent yearsthat identifies flaws with neoliberal and new public managementforms of governance(Andrews & Silk, 2012). You will have undoubtedly notedsome of this workin variouschapters of this book, as scholars workingfrom a conflict perspective(concerned especially withthe economic and classissuesthat are so central to critiques of neoliberalism) and critical perspectives (focused on how variousforms of identity-based inequalities are exacerbated within particular systems) haveall weighedin on this issue. Frisbyand Millar(2002), for example, describehowas newpublic managementmeasures have beenimplemented and the focus on service provision in the recreation and sport sector hasshifted to efficiency and cost effectivenessin Canada,the needsof the poor are being overlooked (p. 217). Instead of offeringanin-depth look atthese critiques,assome otherauthorsin this book havealreadydone,in this chapterI consider whatsport andsociety mightlook like in upcoming decades if currentforms of governancethat areinfluenced by neoliberalprinciplescontinue to be dominant. ThepredictionsI offer here pertain especiallyto the future of sport, recreation, and physical activity provision. The predictions are alsointended to provoke
Sport
and
the
Future323
thinking not only about whatsociety willlook like if public policy decisionsareto be made basedon neoliberalideologies,but alsoaboutlikely responsesandchallengesto this approach to governance.It is also worth noting herethat the consequencesof the rise of neoliberal forms of governanceis integrally relatedto globalization,technology, andthe environment so governance-relatedthemes will emergeagainin eachofthe remainingsections.
prediction #1: in upcoming years, access to conventional forms of participatory sport, recreation, and physical activity will continue to be highly unequal (with some variations) in canadaNeoliberal principles have beenand arecontinuingto influence policymakingin Canada,andit appearsthat these principles willincreasinglyfind their wayinto governmentpolicy until anideologicalshift orevening out takes place(Wilson, 2012a). Atthe sametime, scholarslike Donnellyand Harvey (2007) and Frisbyet al. (2005) havelinked neoliberalpoliciesorthe newpublic management approacheswithunequalaccess to sport,leisure,and physicalactivityin Canadaand of course Coburn(2004) hasnoted(seeabove)that the implementation of neoliberalpoliciesis linked with unequalaccessto manyhealth-relevantresources. Withtheseinterconnected observations in mind,it is not astretchto suggestthat accessto conventional(i.e., organized,often governmentfunded) forms of participatorysport,recreation,and physicalactivity will remain at currentlevels(i.e.,they will continueto becharacterizedby unequalaccess)or becomemore unequalif levels of economicandsocialinequality continueto growacrossthe country. Although muchof the existing workin this areahasfocused on young people,this predictionis intended to accountfor other populationsas well,especiallyolder adults. Thatis to say, although it would makesenseto anticipate that programsin the future will cater moreto older populations,and especiallythe large babyboomer cohortthat is entering an older age demographic,such aresponse would not necessarilyreduceinequalities between those with moreresourcesandthose withfewer resources. Withina neoliberal modelthat promotesconsumer-drivenresponsesto social concerns,the target marketfor newand existing programswouldstill bethose whocan mostreadily afford userfees andthus do not need to prove poverty to gainreduced-feeaccess(Frisby, Reid, & Ponic,2007). Havingsaidthis, neoliberalismdoesoffer another possibleresponseto the problem of unequalaccess,whichis outlined in the next prediction. Asabove,though, this response mayhelp deal withsome aspectsof the inequality whileexacerbating others.
prediction #2: nongovernmental organizations that use sport for development purposes will continue toand perhaps increasinglywork to fill the gaps left by governmentsIn recent years,various nongovernmental organizations(NGOs) have workedto fill the gapsleft by governmentsthat havereduced their financial investment in accessibleforms of physical activity, sport, and recreation programming. Thesegroupscontinually face challengesto remain sustainable and serve their target populations,a point confirmedin astudy Lyndsay HayhurstandI conductedon the experiencesand challengesfaced bysome of these NGOsin the Canadiancontext. We found, for example,that organizationslike Vancouver-basedMoreSportsa not-for-profit group mandatedto provide sustainable sport and physicalactivity opportunitiesfor children andfamilies living in Vancouver (Wilson & Hayhurst,2009, p. 164)are in many casesforced to compete for resources with organizations that mayalso offer valuable context-specificservices. Thesesame NGOs mayalsobeforcedinto partnershipsthat may, at times, result in compromised service provision. Of course, a shift in policymaking
324Chapter
15
practices at the local, provincial, or federal levels of government away from the neoliberal practices would alter this scenario somewhat, but that is not the current trend. So what will bethe ongoing implications tion, it is important
of this apparent trend? To answer this ques-
to consider that such programs receive competitive government fund-
ing along with philanthropic
and corporate support.
This form of funding is notable here
becauseit aligns well with a neoliberal approach to service provision where programs must appear to be a good investment to receive funding. those attempting to secure funding
The idea is that competition
will lead to better programming than
vided by organizations with ongoing and noncompetitive
among
would be pro-
government funding.
Predictably, critics of neoliberal forms of service provision disagree.Instead, these critics arguethat by putting these sorts of competitive pressureson organizations, an incentive systemis created wherethose providing such services mustappearto be a good investment. Such appearances are especially important for funders who,in to enhance their image through philanthropic
manycases, are alsolooking
work. A problematic consequence of this
situation is that such organizations mustconsistently demonstrate the successful of their programsinstead, assessmentsthat
outcomes
perhaps, of doing rigorous and balanced (and publicly reported)
would be designedto improve programming (Wilson
& Hayhurst, 2009).
For example, highlighting select feel-good successstories and counting the number of people exposed to a program is quite different from assessingthe quality and longer-term comes of a program. Organizations mayalso be morelikely to target participants mostlikely to succeedin their program, leaving those in marginsagain. Moreover,in a competitive funding
out-
who are
moredifficult circumstances on the
marketsituation,
NGOsthat will thrive
are those that are mostentrepreneurial (and perhaps the largest, with the mostresources). Smaller, community-based, and grassroots organizations that are known to cater wellto the context-specific
needs of those in need of particular services, meanwhile, will continue to
be at risk of closing down in the absence of securing competing funding (Darnell, 2012). In sum, then,
while this trend
mayin some ways offset the inequality
problem identi-
fied in Prediction #1, there arereasons to be concerned about the quality of these programs and the unintended and intended consequences of neoliberal forms of NGO-led intervention. I would also suggest that those who are concerned first and foremost healthnot
with the survival
and image of their
organizationshould
with public be leading a
response to the problems of unequal accessto physical activity and recreational sport, problems that arethemselves the public issues of social structure referred to by Mills (1959).
prediction
#3: for some young
physical activity problems
people,
alternative
forms
of leisure
and
will continue to be adopted as a creative response to
of access and ambivalence
about current
physical activity
and
sport options in formal and structured settings. such forms of participation
will become
more prominent
becomes increasingly
as exposure
to these cultural
available and prominent
through
options
the internet
Although concerns about the moreformal provision of resourcesthat support sport, physical
activity, and recreation-related practicesare understandablycentral to manydiscussions about sport and society, it is also important to keepin
mindthat forms of physical activity
alsotake place outside moreformalized structures. This kind of sport is sometimes associated with subcultural sport-related activities (Atkinson lifestyle sports (Wheaton, boarding,
2004).
& Young, 2008a), what some refer to as
Whatis being referred to here are activities such asskate-
windsurfing, BASE jumping,
surfing, parkour, and ultimate Frisbee that are
Sport
and
the
Future325
commonly moreparticipant-driven activitiesactivities that are,in somerespectsand contexts,intentionally oppositionalto dominant aspectsof mainstream(sport) culture. Wecanthink of this oppositionin two related ways. Onthe one hand,this can mean opposition to the valuesand practicesassociated with mainstream,(hyper)competitive, (overly)structured, and adult-controlledsportthe powerand performance modelof sport. Beal(1995), for example, described howin skateboarding culture, competitors often actively cheerfor each otherto completeimpressivetricks andjumps. Onthe other hand, opposition refers hereto the underlyingethos of particularsport subcultural groupsthat are critical of manynonsport-relatedaspectsof mainstream societies. Atkinsonfound this form of oppositionin hisresearchonthe parkoursubculturein Toronto, wherehe describedhow parkour practitioners(known astraceurs) equatetheir acrobatic movementsover,through, and around variousfeatures ofthe urban environment assymbolic and embodiedcommentary onthe disciplining,corporatized,and environmentally pathological aspectsof contemporarycities (Atkinson, 2009, p. 175). Wheaton(2008), in her work on windsurfingand relatedlifestyle sports,refersto the activities of groupslike Surfers AgainstSewagethat are also,in their own way,environmentalistand anti-consumerist. Referringbackto Chapter2, the perspectivesof theseidentity-based groupsand their cultural forms of expression wouldconventionally beassessed usingcritical culturalstudiesperspectives. Whileit is difficult to know if moreyoung people will beattracted to these subcultural optionsin the future becauseof feelings of disillusionment with mainstreamsport andsociety,it seemsreasonableto suggestthat as moreand moreyoung peopleareexposed to these cultural formssomething that the disseminationof these activities through the Internet and associatednew mediaallowsparticipation will alsoincreasein Canadaand globally. Thisfinal argumentseemsespeciallyaproposin light ofthe recent publication of astudy onthe emergenceand meaningof parkourin the MiddleEast(in Gazaespecially), a cultural phenomenonthat the authorsfound to be attributable to parkours circulation through the Internet and social media(Thorpe & Ahmad,2013).
Parkour and other alternative/lifestyle to problems Ammentorp/Fotolia
326Chapter
15
sport activities
mayincrease in popularity in response
with mainstream sport and physical activity structures.
Acaveathereis that these alternativesubculturesare oftenfairly homogenous in terms of demographicmakeupand arealsoknownattimesto reflect someofthe broadergendered,race and ethnicity, and ability-related exclusionarypracticesof the broadersociety(Atkinson & Young,2008a;Beal,1995). Forexample,whilethoseinvolved in parkourinclude middle-and lower-classparticipantsand in someinstances(but not others)thereis aninterethnic mix young malesarethe usualparticipants(Kidder, 2013; Thorpe & Ahmad,2013).It is also well documentedthat suchsubculturesareinevitably incorporatedinto the mainstream cultureto some degree(e.g., mass-mediated extreme sports) whenthe profitsassociatedwith marketing alternativeculturesarepursued(Atkinson, 2009; Wilson,2006a). Whilethese caveats areimportant, they should not be viewed asreasonsto completely dismissthe subversivepotential of these groupsasalternativesto mainstreamsport and asconveyorsof countermainstreamideologies. AsI havearguedelsewhere,these types of alternatives help generatenewunderstandingsof what is possible for participants and others(Wilson, 2012a), revealing opportunities for counterhegemonic activity. At the sametime, it is known that involvement in such movements mayin some casespredict future participation in moreconventional politics (Staggenborg,2008; Wilson,2012a).
Globalization Although globalization, the second maindriver of social change,refers to various processesof changeand development(see Chapter14),sociologist Arjun Appadurdai(1996) outlines aset offive key processes (what hetermsscapes)that havebeenespeciallyuseful for scholars workingin this area: 1. Ideoscapes(referring to the cross-bordertransmission ofideas). 2. Financescapes (referring to the cross-border movementof capital). 3. Mediascapes (referring to the globalinfluence of massmedia). 4. Technoscapes(referring to the movementof technologies aroundthe world). 5. Ethnoscapes(referring to the cross-border movementof people). Jarvie (2006) usesthese scapesto help him describesome sport-related globalization processes: Sporting ethnoscapes mightinvolve personnel through
the
migration of professional or non-professional
player, manager or coach transfers; sporting technoscapes could
include sports goods, equipment . . . and transporting
ofsports technology [more gener-
ally]; sporting financescapes refer to the global flow of finance brought about through the international sporting
trade of players, prize-money,
endorsements, and sporting
goods;
mediascapesrefer to the sport-media complex that transports sport across the
globe [and] sporting ideoscapes are bound up with the ideologies and philosophies expressed by, in and through sport. (p. 100)
Although scholars and others have paid particular attention to these globalizationrelated processes in recent decades,it is worth acknowledging herethat social changes associated with globalization have been at workfor along time (consider world exploration, trade, and colonization). Thereare, of course, particular characteristics associated with morerecent iterations of globalizationthat will guidethe discussionand predictions in this section, manyof which areintroduced in the above quotation from Jarvie and especially David Whitsonsdiscussionofsport and globalizationin Chapter14.
Sport
and
the
Future327
FollowingJarvie and Whitsonthen, wecan beginto think aboutthe range of studies pertainingto globalizationandsport that mightaid predictionsabout whatsport mightlook like in the future. Forexample,some majortopics pertainingespeciallyto finance and mediarelatedissuesinclude waysthat transnational corporationsconnectto and becomeimmersed in national culturesthrough sport (Scherer &Jackson,2010),the useof sweatshoplabour to produceinexpensive athletic apparel(Sage, 1999), and attempts by majorsportsleaguesto expandtheir global audience(Scherer &Jackson,2010). Majorsport-related peaceand developmentprogramshavebecomea maintopic of researchfor sociologistsin recent years. In addition, arange ofstudiesareemergingon development-relatedworkassociatedwiththe Olympic Gamesandthe IOC and onthe emergenceofinternational sport for development and peace(or SDP), organizationslike Rightto Play(formerly known as Olympic Aid, reflecting its origins as an Olympiclegacy projectfrom the Lillehammer Games in 1994). Sport-relatedenvironmentalissuesarecross-border issuesin themselves(e.g.,climate change) and havealsoinspired globalresponses(as discussed in moredetaillater). Manyforms of socialresistancealsohaveglobalfeaturesand globallyfocusedgoals,as we will explore below. Thosedoingthe aforementionedresearchfrequently comment onthe potentialimpacts of globalization and debatethe future of societiesin an increasingly globalizing world (Maguire, 1999; Miller, Lawrence, McKay, & Rowe, 2001; Scherer &Jackson, 2010). Althoughthese debatesarelong-standing and complex,sufficeto say herethat questions remain asto whetherthesetrends willlead to morehomogenous (or Americanized)global cultures, morehybridizedor glocalized cultures (that consist of a variety of local and global features), or moreintensely differentiatedlocal culturesthat are highlyresistantto globalizingforces. Ofcourse,the idea that any one oftheseandrelated perspectives on globalization is mostaccurateis problematicbecausethe consequencesof globallocal interactions areso dependentoncontext. Acknowledgingthesecomplexities,there aresomeglobalizationrelatedtrajectoriesthat stronglysuggestparticularfutures. I predictafew ofthese below.
prediction #4: With the growing influence of sport-related transnational corporations, national and local cultures will become less distinct and more corporatized, but not homogenizedAs noted above,there are ongoing debatesabout the impacts of variousforms of globalization on local and national cultures. Somescholars emphasizethe cultural imperialist potential of globalforces, while otherscelebratethe diverseand hybrid character of culturesthat emergefrom globallocal interactions. Myprediction follows the line of thinking promotedby those whowalk the middle on these debateswho suggestthat while major differencesbetween nations and cultures will bereduced astransnational cultural entities andforces continue to circulate and beenabled by governmentsthat increasingly deferto privateinterests, variations within and between national andlocal cultures will become increasingly evident. Maguire(1999) describedthis middleground bysuggestingthat processesof globalizationlead to diminishing contrasts between nations and cultures, and increasing varieties of globallocal cultural hybrids. An example ofthis wasprovided by Carrington, Andrews,Jackson, & Mazur,(2001) in their study onthe impacts of Nikes majorendorserand globalicon MichaelJordanin a range of national contexts. Theyarguedthat althoughlocal culturesare certainlyimpacted by Nikes advances,theseimpacts are not uniform or predictable. Thereasonfor this sort of varietyis, in part, becauseshrewd global corporations commonly cater their products
328Chapter
15
and advertisingfor particular target audiences/cultures.In a related study, Robert Sparks andI found that middle-classblack adolescent males in Toronto and adolescent nonblack males in Vancouverinterpreted athletic apparelcommercials(and especiallythe celebrity black athletesfeaturedin them) in quite distinct ways.Forexample,the black adolescents offered morepassionateand, at the sametime, morecritical readings of the featured athletes (e.g., referring to the problem of race-relatedstereotypingin massmedia),whilethe nonblack youth, who werealsoconsumersofthe apparelfeaturedin the commercialsand fans of the athletes endorsingthe apparel, were moreambivalent andless critical in their responsesto questions(Wilson &Sparks,1999, 2001). The mainpoint here,again,is that the impacts of cultural impositions by transnational companiesare not uniform. David Whitsonsdescriptionofthe increasinglydiversepopulationsemergingin areasof Canada (see Chapter14)and the stark differencesbetween manyurbanandrural contexts is relevant hereto thinking aboutthe impacts of cultural messages on audiences. Whitsons point alsoanticipatesfuture debatesaboutissuesraisedin othersections/predictionsin this chapter,such asthe implications of changingdemographics emerging with varyingpatternsof immigration andsettlement. Forexample,ourfutures willinclude further questionsabout how to approachopportunitiesand challengesassociatedwith emergingcultural andsocial differences,and with problemslike the healthy immigrant effect (i.e., diminished health ofsome immigrants afterspendingtime in Canada)(McDonald & Kennedy,2004). Looking to the future, then, I suspectthat we will continue to see moreand more cultural variations within and between nations as a result of processesof globalization. SchererandJackson(2010) say as muchin their study of howthese processes arereflected in and reinforced through Adidas, Rupert Murdochs News Corporation, and the renowned All Blacksrugby team in New Zealand. Asthey suggest,although potentially homogenizinginfluences haveincreasingly circulated through New Zealandin recent years,the country is now morediversethan ever before as a result of immigration (Scherer &Jackson,2010, p. xiii). This observationshould remind us(as Al Goredid) of the needto be cognizant of the multiple and interacting forces of changethat mustbe accountedfor if weareto understandthe social and cultural trajectories ofsocieties. The broaderpoint hereis that the corporatization of nations will be accompaniedby the emergence of morecosmopolitan audiencesthat will have their own somewhat distinct sport participation and sport consumption interests and habitsinterests and habitsthat will beincreasingly difficult to predictfor majorsport marketers,sport leagues, and other entities thought to promote cultural homogenization. Whitsons point about immigration patternsin Canadaand the implications ofthese patternsfor sport consumption is especiallyrelevant here(see Chapter14).
prediction #5: the influence of international nongovernmental sport for development and peace (sDp) organizations will remain strong and likely increase in upcoming yearsThis predictionis akin to Prediction #2 in the sensethat it is basedonthe argumentthat NGOs(in this caseinternational NGOs) areincreasingly beingrelied uponto lead prosocial workin variousregions of world, especially in areasthat areexperiencing highlevels of poverty and are,in somecases,war-torn andin postconflict situations. It is worth noting here(as backgroundinformation for this prediction) that arapid risein the number ofinternational SDPorganizationssince 2000is welldocumentedand
Sport
and
the
Future329
unprecedented(Levermore & Beacom,2009). Theincrease hasbeen associatedwith the United Nationsrecognition of 2005 asthe International Year of Sport and Physical Education and with the rise to prominence of international SDPleader, Rightto Play. Hayhurst, Wilson, &Frisby,(2011) documentedthe ongoinguseof communication technologies(e.g., the International Platform on SDP at www.sportanddev.org)to maintain and promotethis SDP movement. Althoughit remainsto beseen whetherthe problemsassociatedwith having an SDP sector that is embeddedin afunding culture that includes some perverseincentives outlined in Prediction #2, the involvement of those with knowledge of the enabling and constraining aspectsof sport andinternational development could lead to some noticeable advances. This moreoptimistic view of the SDP movementaligns with arguments madeby peoplesuch asscholar-activists Bruce Kidd(2008) andJohn Sugden(2010), who uniformly recognizethe problems with the SDPsector while also documenting how the interventions they areinvolved with arethought to, in some circumstancesandfor some people,supportreconciliation efforts or other prosocial outcomes. It is also worth notingin this context that the IOC, arecognizedsuper-NGO in its ownright, hasstepped upits effortsto promote development by granting the Olympicsto Rio deJaneiro for the upcoming 2016 Summer Gamesan act that commentatorslike Millington and Darnell(2012) seeas part of atrend for sport mega-events to beawardedto countries ofthe GlobalSouth (e.g., 2010 FIFA World Cupin South Africa andthe Commonwealth Games in Delhiin 2008). For Millington and Darnell,this trend speaksto the role that sport mega-eventsareincreasingly thought to play as a form of international developmentfor countriesseento bein needofthe most development. Ofcourse,the idea that holding asport mega-eventis the bestavenuetoward developmentfor all citizens (including more marginalizedgroups)is highly controversialas scholarslike Lenskyj (2008), Hayesand Horne(2011), and several others haveargued for years. Despitethese debates,it is clear that the IOC has proclaimed leadership on these issues and that this leadership has beenrecognized by the key playerin international development,the United Nations.I am referring hereto the fact that in 2009the IOC wasgiven observer status at the United Nationsa highly significant endorsement ofthe IOCs workconsidering that this statusis generallyreservedfor countries or for NGOsthat are undisputedleadersin peace,development,and humanitarian aid (e.g., the International Red Cross/RedCrescenthasthis status).
prediction #6: ongoing and at times extreme tensions about the negative impacts of neoliberal policies willlead to local and global forms of dissent, and sport-related, internet, and social mediaenabled global movements will be part of thisIn earliersections of this chapter, I notedthat current trends in governanceand globalization maylead to an exacerbation of existing inequalities. The prediction offered hereis intended to highlight the idea that real and perceivedimpacts of these trends and related problems will inspire formidable responses. TheIdle No Moremovementis an example ofthis sort ofresponse. Whilethis movement wasviewed by manyto be an expressionof dissatisfaction with a wholerange ofissues,Idle No Moreoriginated asa responseto governmentlegislation in Canadathat wasthought to underminethe lobbying powerandrights of Aboriginal groupsand to weakenenvironmental protection legislation. The Occupy WallStreet movementin 2011, meanwhile, was morebroadlyfocused on economic inequalities associated with forms of economic
330Chapter
15
globalization and neoliberalismand included demonstrationsintended to highlight the movementsfundamental concerns with social justice and unequal powerrelationships (CBC News,2013). Movementssuch asthesethat receivedsupportaroundthe world would seemto be part of a developingtrend toward the emergenceof globalsocial movementsof all kindsglobal movementsthat link people whoare concernedabout governmentsthat implement (neoliberal) policiesthat seemto bedirectly related to increasesin inequality. Asyou mightexpect,theseglobaldevelopmentsinspired a wealthofsociologicalresearch focused onthe potentialimplications ofsocialresistancesincethe rise of the highlyinteractive andinexpensiveInternet-related communication medium(I return to this themelater on). Thisresearchincludes work bysportsociologistJean Harveyand his colleagues,whoin their 2013 bookSportandSocial Movements: Fromthe Localto the Global identified arange of sport-relatedglobal movements, including movements focused on the rights of workers,the rights of women,peace,andthe environment. I havearguedin myown researchhowthe emergenceof Internet communication offersan unprecedentedplatform for these sorts of sport-relatedsocial movements (Wilson, 2007). Thisincludesresistance movements like the global anti-golf environmental movement(Stolle-McAllister, 2004), anti-Olympics movements(Lenskyj, 2008) andanti-sweatshopsmovements that protestpoorlabour conditionsin factoriesthat produceathletic apparelfor companieslike Nike(Sage,1999).Increasedpublic engagementon alocal and globallevel bythose whostudysportis alsolikely here.Evidence of this sort of engagementincludes the increasing numberand prominenceof blogskept by sport scholars whohavebegunto respondto callsfor morepublic sociology (links to such blogscan befound at http://nasssblog.blogspot.ca) (Donnelly, Atkinson,Boyle, &Szto,2011). In sum,it wouldseemthat wecan anticipate anincreasein the numberandinfluence of highly interconnected grassroots movementsthat aim to confront governments and othersthought to beimplicated in social injustices of all kinds.
Dissatisfaction
with various forms
of sport-related
economic
globalization
maylead to further
tensions and protest. ZUMA
Press, Inc./Alamy
Sport
and
the
Future331
Technology I have alluded alreadyto some waysthat newtechnologies are associatedwith aspectsof contemporary governanceand globalization. Building onthese arguments,in this section I outline three technology-focused predictions pertaining to the future of sport, physical activity, andsociety.
prediction #7: video games intended to promote fitness will become an increasingly important component of formal and informal physical activity programs of all kindsThere is a range of video gameson the market that promote activity through the useof visual simulations that require physical activity for the games participants. Thesegamesalsocommonly offer usersthe option of measuring and monitoring aspectsof the body, such as weight, body mass index, and calories burned. Although Nintendos WiiFitis the mostprominent exampleof asystemthat runs these sorts of games,Xbox 360 and PlayStation are alsoin the fitness gamebusiness. Sociologist Brad Millington (2013) and others,including the Heartand Stroke Foundation of Canadaand the American Heart Association, haverecognizedthe potential benefits of such technologies. Forexample,these games maysupport physical activity for those limited in activity by poor weather,for those with particular physical challenges (noting that some people maybe able to play sports through Wiithat they would be unableto play otherwise), andthose whosimply prefer/enjoy video gameenabled activity. Althoughthese gamesare known to target young people whoarethought to bethe primary consumersof such games, Millingtons (2013) recent researchrecognizesthe role these gamesare now playing in Canadianretirement centresand the increasingly prominent placeofsuch video gamefitnesssystemsin health promotion plansof all kinds. Millington (2012) alsorecognizedsomeissues with having private video gamecompaniesin leadership roles around physical activity and health promotion. The most straightforward critique hasto do with accessto these games, preciselybecausenot all consumers/citizensare equally positioned to purchasesuch health-promoting technologies. Millingtons mainconcern, however,is with the individual-focused features of the gamesthemselves, and especially with the waysthat self-monitoring features of these gamesposition consumersasindividually responsiblefor their health. The point is, while individuals certainly makecrucial decisionsthat will positively or negativelyimpact their health,it is also well knownthat environmental, economic, andsocial barriersto activity continue to exist, and these structural barriersare commonly deemphasized in favour of individual-focused responses. Millington suggeststhat this individual focus aligns well with the neoliberalpresumption that biologicalself-improvement is achievablethrough the marketplace(Millington, 2012, p. 1). By keepingthe focus onthe individual in these circumstances,the responsibilities that elected governments wouldseemto havefor crucial health-relatedfactors beyondthe control of citizensare potentially overlooked.
prediction #8: new technologies will continue to lead to new opportunities for enjoyable recreational participation in sport for some populationsNew technologies designedto improve the performanceof competitive athletes and to enhance the experience of everydayrecreational athletes have beenin developmentand onthe marketfor years. The previousprediction (Prediction #7) alludes to some of the benefitsfor recreational athletes and those interested in being physically active who maybenefitfrom fitness-oriented videogames. Thedevelopmentoflighter golf 332Chapter
15
clubs andtennis rackets withlarger sweet spots areexamplesof this. Thereare of course numerousother exampleswherenewtechnologies havebeen helpfulfor those with disabilities, especiallyhigh-performanceathletes(e.g.,the bladesusedby Paralympicrunners). Ofcourse,some of the sametypes of concernsthat have beenraisedin previous predictions about the incentive systemthat underliesthe development of prosocialinnovations apply hereas well. Marksand Michaelrefer to some ofthese issuesin a 2001 British Journal of Medicinearticle entitled Science, Medicine,and the Future: Artificial Limbs. Althoughthe neoliberal environment is not explicitly referred to by these authors,they are clearin their suggestionthat the future development of prostheseswill be driven by demand(especiallythe demandsof amputees with privatefunding, like highly competitive athletes)despite the fact that prostheticsare neededby manywithfewer resources, like some amputeesin countries of the GlobalSouth. Asthey state, one of the greatest challengesfor the new millennium will beto find the will andthe wayto fund widespread application of prostheticinnovations (Marks & Michael,2001, p. 735) Perhapsthe best wayto frame a predictionlike this one, whichspeaksto the waythat innovations will offer manyprosocial benefits and that these benefits will be distributed unequallyaslong asthe currentincentive systemremainsin place,is to suggestthat the future holdspromiseandtensionsasbattlesoverthe socialissuesof prosocialnewtechnologies wouldseemto beinevitable.
prediction #9: innovations in the field of biotechnology will lead to new ethical dilemmas in competitive sportMany analystsand certainly the World Anti-Doping Agency(WADA)see gene doping asa mainissueto be dealt within upcoming years,asresearchersbeginto understand not only how particular genes mayberelated to athletic performance,but also how a personsgenetic makeup mightbe alteredto enhance performance.Leslie Pray(2008) describesthis processasfollows: [I]nstead ofinjecting
DNA into a persons bodyfor the purpose ofrestoring some func-
tion related to a damaged or missing gene, as in gene therapy, gene doping involves inserting
DNA for the purpose of enhancing athletic performance. (p. 77)
Andy Miah,author ofthe 2004 book GeneticallyModifiedAthletes, is aleading scholar who hasweighedin onthis issue and offeredhis own vision of the future on genes,sport, andsociety: I envisage afuture for humanity where gene transferand enhancementis integral
sufficiently
safe for its
many other forms of human
widespread use and where it becomes an
part of our pursuit of good health. Indeed, undertaking
such modifications
would be considered as normal as body piercing or cosmetic surgery. Such attempts to promote our health
will become increasingly important
and will create a scenario
where the
performing in extreme conditionssuch
in an evermore-toxic
population is, as a whole, as elite sports competition.
world
more capable of (Miah, 2010)
Miahs optimistic understandingis at odds with the near-alarmistposition taken by thosefocused onthe implications of gene dopingfor elite sport. It is an excellentreminder that developmentsthat mayappearto be problematicfor competitive sport may,in fact, beseenas quite hopeful and enablingfor the broadersociety. Ofcourse, Miahis aware of the lingering implications of gene dopingfor sport as well: The challenge for the sports world is not just that gene transfer would be usedto break the rules, but that the therapeutic use of gene transfer maycreate athletes who are even more
Sport
and
the
Future333
capable than the so-called healthy athlete. Intimations
of this shift are occurring in the
context of Paralympic sport, wherethe prosthetically enhanced athlete is beginning to surpassthe so-called able-bodied athlete, asin the caseof South Africansprinter OscarPistorius. One of the big challenges that will determine whether WADAs gene doping problem can besolved is their ability to detect it. Yet,the [current] absence of detection methods,coupled with shifting social values on the
morality of enhancement challenges the integrity
and relevance of an anti-enhancement
movementlike anti-doping. (Miah, 2010)
It is obviously difficult to envision precisely how gene-doping technologies will impact competitive sportor how gene doping and other technologies that target noncompetitive athletes and citizens might be taken upin enabling and constraining ways. Whatis for sureis that these and related bioethical and biotechnology issues will needto be dealt withfor yearsto come.
prediction #10: the experiences of sport media audiences will become increasingly fragmented, interactive, and corporatized as sport and the various forms of new media become increasingly intertwined. however, the evolution of media forms will not be accompanied by substantial changes in the types of social messagesthat are embedded in and imparted through media contentWith the range of new mediatechnologiesthat have emergedin recent years,the conventional television viewing experience hasbeenradically transformeda point discussedin some detail by Jay Schererin Chapter11, and elaboratedby commentatorslike Hutchinsand Rowe(2012) and Norman (2012). Whilethe details of this increasingfragmentation and pervasivenessof mediaare well documented,it is worth noting here that these developments are not necessarily accompaniedby changesin the types of messages about gender,race, and ethnicity that appearin and arereinforced through the sports-mediacomplex,since manyof the commonsport media-related stereotypesandsocial problemsfound in previousstudies of media still exist. Aparticularly provocativestudy that speaksto this issueis Davisand Duncans (2006) study of fantasy sports participation. Theresearchersfound that in the online leaguesthey examined,fantasysport appearedto reinforce hegemonicideologiesin sport spectatorship, emphasizingauthority, sports knowledge,competition, male-bonding,and traditional genderroles (p. 244). Myownrecent review ofliterature on waysthat themes of war,violence,andinequality arecoveredin the mediaconfirmedthat trendsin coverage oftopics do not appearto havechangedin tone in recent years(Wilson, 2012a)although, as noted earlier,the potential for media-drivenresistanceto theseissuesis muchgreater. So, while newforms of mediaare perhapsempoweringsome consumers whocan now pursuesport mediaviewing and consumption options outside of the old TV-only format,thus allowing for some novelforms of sport fan communities to emerge(Norman, 2012),some old social problems wouldappearto remain unchanged,asthe content of the mediacontinuesto reflect broadersocietalissues.
Environment Asenvironmental issuescontinue to berecognizedas being amongthe mostpressingissues ofthe current momentandinto the future, sport managers and organizersareresponding.In recent works whereI wrote on the topic (Wilson, 2012a, 2012b),I identified some of the sport-relatedenvironmental problemsthat these managers and promotersare dealing with:
334Chapter
15
Pollution hazardsand carbon emissionsfrom building sport venues, hostingsport events,and producingsport apparel/equipment.
n
alteration andreduction of wetlandareasbecauseof modificationsto rivers and lakes for watersportslike paddling and canoeing.
nThe
nThe
destruction of natural vegetationand erosion of soil from alpineskiing.
impactson naturalhabitatsandrisksto the healthof wildlifeand humansbecause of golfcourseconstructionandthe useof pesticides to maintaingolf courses(paraphrased from Wilson,2012a,p. 156;cf. Millington & Wilson,2013; Wilson& Millington,2013).
nNegative
Althoughenvironmental issuesare always,in essence,globalissues,there are Canadaspecific environmental concernsthat have been studied by sociologists. For example, Whitson(2012) examined controversiesand protestsaroundthe construction of a new section of highway leading up to Whistler Villagein preparation for the Vancouver/ Whistler2010 Olympicsa highway plan that meantthe demolition of two rare and diverseecosystemareas.Stoddart(2012) examinedlinks betweenskiing and environmental issuesand exploredresponsesbyskiers and othersto theseissues. Myown workexamined sport mega-eventorganizerswhoclaim to becarbon neutral (Wilson, 2012a,2012b). Thisresearchincluded an examination of the controversial and complex carbon offsetting schemesthat are commonly usedto deal with the inevitable emissionsassociated with sport mega-events like the 2010 Olympic Games. Asthose workingin sportsociologyhavebegunto engagetheseissuesandrecognizethe progressthat some organizationsare makingon environmentalissues,a numberof concerns havebeenraisedabout whattheseresponses look like. Althoughsome ofthese will berevealed through the predictionI offer below,sufficeto say herethat whenorganizationsareleft to makedecisionsabouttheir environmental behavioursin responseto market mechanisms, it would makesensein some casesto prioritizeappearing green overbeing green instead of respondingto stringent environmental regulationsimposedfrom those externalto industry (i.e., those whodo not havea vestedinterestin sport eventsbeing held orcancelled).
Debates about sports undoubtedly
potential links
with environmental
and public healthrelated
issues
will
continue into the future.
Matt Gibson
Sport
and
the
Future335
Researchershavealsoexpressedconcernthat for governments mandatedto bothlead environmental protection work on behalf of constituents and at the sametime to facilitate economic growth, compromises are commonly madethat would seem to favour economicinterests. SociologistJohn Hannigan(2006) explainedthis phenomenon: [G]overnments
often engage in a process of environmental
they attempt to legislate a limited [e.g., about environmental economic growth.
concerns] but not significant
By enacting environmental
and open to exploitation
managerialism in which
degree of protection sufficient to deflect criticism enough to derail the engine of
policies that are complex, ambiguous
by the forces of production and accumulations the state reaf-
firms its commitments to strategies for promoting economic development. (p. 21)
None of these argumentsis intended to disregard or dismissthe fact that major improvements in sport and environment-related behaviouraretaking place.It doesseem, however,that aslong as an incentive systemis in place wherethe sport managersand organizers who are makingdecisions about their environment-related behaviours are mandatedultimately to makeprofits for their organization or makesure that the sport events are viewed positively,there will becompelling reasonsto beconcerned about how their leadership will,in the long run, impact public and environmental health. It is worth emphasizing herethat this exercise of looking into the future is perhaps mostimportant for this topic becausethe influences of current environment-impacting behaviours will in some casesonly becomeevident in the future when problemsrelated to the impacts of climate change and ecosystemdestruction perhapsbecome moreobvious. Thisis why environmental issues are associated with a form of inequality that is rarely discussed,but is central to thinking aboutsport, the environment, and the future. Thisform ofinequality isintergeneration,whichrefersto the inequality that exists between future generationsthat have no control over how current generationstreat the natural environments that they will inherit (Maguire, Jarvie, Mansfield, & Bradley,2002).
prediction #11: Debates about best strategies for greening be invigorated as existing critiques begin to take holdIn
sport
will
recent years, high-profilesport organizationsthat collectively promotethe ideathat sportsleadersarealso taking leadership on environmentalissueshaveemerged.Thesenetworksinclude members ofthe GlobalForumfor Sportand Environment(www.g-forse.com)and GreenSports Alliance(http://greensportsalliance.org).Everysecond year manyof these same organizations assemblefor the World Conferenceon Sport andthe Environmenta conferencejointly organizedby the United NationsEnvironment Programmeandthe local organizingcommitteefor the Olympic Games that will betaking placein the yearafterthe conference. Theemergenceof these alliancesand conferencesshould be unsurprisingconsidering the attention that sport-related environmentalissueshavebegunto receivein recent years. Weshould anticipate that sport leaders will continue to demonstrateproactivity on environmental issuesthrough publicrelations campaignshighlighting leadershipontheseissues, asconcernsaboutthe environment remain in public consciousness.Thefact that the IOC madethe environment athird pillar ofthe Olympic movement,alongsidesport and culture, speaksvolumesto the importance that is being placed on appearinggreen.It is alsolikely that environmental performance will continue to improve as greenertechnologies are developedovertime and asthose biddingfor the Olympicsand othersport mega-events are requiredto include environmental performancestrategiesand measures into their bids.
336Chapter
15
Despitethis apparent progresson environmental issues,there are alsoreasonsto be cynical about current responsesto environmental issues.For example, and despitethe immensetechnology-driven progressionsthat haveled to moresustainablesport eventsin recent years,sport managers ultimately havea vestedinterest in running the mostsustainablesport eventa mandatethat doesnot include the option of cancelling an event if it is deemedto betoo unsustainable.Put another way, whensport managers areleading the regulation of their ownindustrys behaviours,it is unlikely that a decisionto not hold a highly unsustainableevent wouldeverbe made,notingthat sustainablesport management meansbalancing economicas wellas environmental (and social) concerns. However,and perhaps moreoptimistically, I suggestthat debatesaboutsport-related environmental issuesand discussionsaboutthe bestapproachto dealing withsport-related environmental problems will be muchricher and morenuancedin the future as people become moreeducatedabout some of the issuesraised above(and perhapsthe urgencyof theseissues becomes moreevident). I suggestthat some of this education will take place becausethe globalsocial movementsmentionedearlier (including sport-related environmental movements)will have moreimpact becauseofthe power ofthe Internet and other new mediatechnologiesto support connections andinformation sharing betweenpeople. Debateswill alsobe morelikely asthe public sociologistsI mentionedearlier areincreasingly taking their important research and argumentsto blogs. Putsimply, we are at a moment whenthere is unprecedentedpotential for informed sociological critique to be widelydisseminated(Wilson, 2007). WhileI haveframed this final prediction as alikely future, it is perhaps moreaccurately called a preferredfuturea future wheresociological researchis accountedfor in public debatesaboutsome ofthe mostpressingsport-relatedissuesof ourtimes. Giventhe potentialimplications of waitingtoo long to deal with environmental problems(seeFoster, Clark, & York, 2010), myhopeis that the future is not far off onthis prediction.
hoW sociologists can Drive social
anD others change
Thisfinal prediction offersa helpfulsegueinto thinking about howsociologistsand others mightattempt to incite social changesandthus worktoward a preferredfutureone that is hopefullyinformed by some of the information and theories encounteredin this text. I will dothis first byidentifying some key approachesto inciting change andlinking them to some ofthe theoretical perspectivesyou haveencounteredin this book. Second,I will askyouto engagein an exerciseof future thinking asa wayof beginningto envision the type of sport andsociety you wouldlike to see.
Strategies for Change Oneofthe morecomprehensivelists ofstrategiesfor achievingsport-relatedsocial change wasoffered by Coakleyand Donnelly (2009, following Hall, Slack, Smith, & Whitson, 1991), whodiscussedsome keystrategiesfrom which social change might beinstigated. Oneof these strategiesis to work within the existing systemin an attempt to create prosocial reforms. This morefunctionalist approachpresumesthat the existing systemcan be tweaked or alteredin waysthat will lead to desirableoutcomes without aradical overhaul
Sport
and
the
Future337
of the system.It also presumesthat there is enoughflexibility working within the established systemto deal withthe issuesof concern. Another strategyis to join a social movementthat lobbies for change. Such groups can be reformist if they work closely and collaboratively with government or other decision-makingentities. Thesegroupscan also be moreoppositional and overtly protest oriented with their argumentsand position. In this sense,the goals of social movements can befunctionalistif the aimis to bea cooperativestakeholderin discussionsfor change (e.g.,the environmental group Greenpeacehasbeen known to playthis role whenconsulting with Olympic Gamesorganizers). Othergroups mightbe viewedastaking a critical stance becausetheir goalis to challenge and undermine some of the basic assumptions that underlie the current system (i.e., if they are a counterhegemonic movement). For example,the anti-golf environmental movementis not interested in trying to convince membersof the golfindustry to improve environmental performance.Instead,they prefer to challengethe very assumptionthat such large tracts of golf-focusedland that are often maintainedthrough pesticideuseand majorwaterconsumptionshould even exist. Othercritically orientedgroups maynot completelyreject the existingsystem,but will attemptto transformculturesandsocialrelations bystriving to changethe corevaluesof particular organizations.This mightinclude challengingthe long-standingacceptanceoffighting in hockey,the reverencefor those whoplay wheninjured in manysports,orchallengingsport mediaproducersthat offer objectifiedportrayalsof womenandstereotypicalportrayalsofrace and ethnicity. The publicsociologists mentionedpreviouslycommonly makecontributions herethrough engagementswith media,government,orin discussionsat civic forums. Yetanotherstrategyis to createorjoin an alternativesport groupthat rejectsthe dominant powerstructuresthat underliehighly organized,competitive,and corporateforms ofsport (Coakley & Donnelly,2009). Althoughthe activities of these groupsare not alwaysdirectly confrontational,the ideais that by providingcultural/symbolicalternativesto the mainstream, social and culturalchange maytake place(eventually)through moreindirect pathwaysand by promoting a personalizationof politics for participants. This attempt to deal with and respondto problemswith dominant powerstructuresthrough participationin acultural movementaligns well withthe critical, culturalstudiesapproachreferredto in Chapter2.
Conclusions Askyourselfthe following question:What wouldanideal sporting worldlook like? The reasonthat asociologicalimagination is usefulfor this sort ofthinking about our preferred futures is that it helps usseesport-related problemsthat might otherwisefly under the radar andto ask questionsthat arerarely askedabout whatis possible.Forexample,could anincentive system becreatedthat prioritizesthe physicalactivity needsofsocietys marginalized groups, or could the Olympicsberethought so that environmental and social concernstake precedenceover economic concerns? Withthe latter questionin mind, scholarslike Coakleyand Donnelly (2009) haveenvisioned a situation whereexisting athletic facilities in different countries are usedas Olympic venues(i.e., wherenew venuesare not constructedfor every Olympics)and wherethe Gameswouldtake placeacross
338Chapter
15
various countries and venues(i.e., there would be multiple hosts). Sociologist Harry Edwardssimilarly suggestedthat one venue (e.g., in Greece,site of the Ancient Olympics) could be chosen as the venue for all future Gamesand that different countries could bid to organizeand bethe featured host of the Gamesin this one venue (Wilson, 2012a). Thissolution wouldreducethe environmental impacts of building newfacilities while allowing for some of the tourism-related promotional and economic benefits. Usinga sociological imagination can alsoremind us of positive social changesthat havetaken placechanges that people would haveconsidered to be unlikely at other points in time (e.g., pertaining to the integration of majorsports). Thisis the value of usingsociologyas atool to help us movein some newand preferabledirections.
critical thinking
Questions
1.
Whatis your vision for anideal sporting world? Whatarethe characteristics of sport in this vision of a preferredfuture?
2.
Whataspectsof the presentsporting worldremain unchangedin your vision of this ideal world? Whydothese remain unchanged? Whataspectsof sport andsociety are taken for grantedin your preferredfuture? Whataspectsofthe present wouldyoulike to keepinto the future?
3.
Whatbarriers do you seeto some of the desirablesocial changesyou wouldlike to see? Whyarethey barriers?
4. How dosociological theories help usthink aboutthe types of changes we wouldlike to seein the future? Whattheories do youfind mostusefulfor thinking about waysto changesport andsociety? 5. Arethere strategiesfor social changethat youfind preferableto others?Explain. 6. Arethere predictions offeredin this chapterthat youfind especiallycompelling? Are there predictionsthat youtake issue with? Explain your positions.
suggested
readings
Giroux, H.(2004). Gore, A. (2013).
When hope is subversive. Tikkun, 19(6), 3839. Thefuture: Six drivers of global change. New York, NY: Random House.
Miah, A. (2004).
Genetically modified athletes: Biomedical ethics, gene doping and sport. New York,
NY: Routledge. Moylan, T., & Baccolini,
R. (Eds.). (2009).
Utopia methodvision: The use value of social dreaming.
Bern, Switzerland: Peter Lang. Wilson, B.(2007).
New media,social movements, and global sport studies: Arevolutionary
moment
and the sociology of sport. Sociologyof Sport Journal, 24(4), 457477.
references Andrews, D., & Silk,
M.(Eds.) (2012). Sport and neo-liberalism: Politics, consumption, and culture.
Philadelphia, PA: Temple University Press. Atkinson,
M.(2009).
Parkour, anarcho-environmentalism,
and poiesis. Journal of Sport and Social
Issues, 33(2), 169194.
Sport
and
the
Future339
Atkinson,
M., & Young, K. (Eds.). (2008a).
Tribal play: Subcultural journeys through sport. Bingley,
UK: Emerald Group Publishing. Appadurai,
A. (1996).
Modernity atlarge:
Cultural dimensions of globalization.
Minneapolis,
MN:
The new public management: Canadain comparative perspective. Montreal,
QC:
University of Minnesota Press. Aucoin, P. (1995)
The Institute for Research on Public Policy. Beal, B. (1995).
Disqualifying the official:
An exploration
of social resistance through the subcul-
ture of skateboarding. Sociologyof SportJournal, 12, 252267. Brown,
W.(2006).
Edgework: Critical essayson knowledge and politics. Princeton,
NJ: Princeton
University Press. Carrington,
B., Andrews,
D. L. Andrews (Ed.), (pp. 177216).
D., Jackson,
S., &
MichaelJordan Inc.:
Mazur, Z. (2001).
The global Jordanscape. In
Corporatesport, mediaculture, andlate modern America
Albany, NY: SUNY Press.
CBC News.(2013, January 9). Is Idle
No Morethe new Occupy Wall Street? Aboriginal
movement
compared to 2011 grassroots protests that sprang up acrossthe globe. Retrieved from http://www. cbc.ca/news/canada/is-idle-no-more-the-new-occupy-wall-street-1.1397642. Coakley, J., & Donnelly, P. (2009). Toronto,
ON: McGraw-Hill
Coburn, D. (2004). inequalities. Darnell,
Sportsin society: Issues and controversies (2nd
Canadian ed.).
Ryerson.
Beyond the income inequality
hypothesis:
Class, neo-liberalism,
and health
Social Science & Medicine,58(1), 4156.
S. (2012).
Sport and international
development:
A critical
sociology.
New York,
NY: Bloomsbury. Davis, N. W., & Duncan, privilege through
M. C. (2006).
Sports knowledge is power:
fantasy sport league participation.
Reinforcing
masculine
Journal of Sport & Social Issues, 30(3),
244264. Donnelly,
P., Atkinson,
M., Boyle, S., & Szto, C. (2011).
Sport for development and peace: A
public sociology perspective. Third World Quarterly, 32, 589601. Donnelly, P., & Harvey,J. (2007). Social class and gender: Intersections in sport and physical activity. In P. White & K. Young (Eds.), Sport and genderin
Canada(pp. 95119).
Toronto,
ON: Oxford
University Press. Eitzen, S. (2003). Fair and foul: Beyondthe mythsand paradoxes of sport. New York, NY: Rowman & Littlefield. Foster, J. B., Clark, B., & York, R.(2010).
Theecologicalrift:
Capitalisms war onthe earth. New York,
NY: Monthly Review Press. Frisby,
W., Alexander, T., Taylor, J., Tirone, S.,
Watson, C., Harvey, J., & Laplante, D. (2005).
Bridgingthe recreation divide: Listening to youth and parents from low income families across Canada. Ottawa, ON: Canadian Parks and Recreation Association. Frisby,
W., & Millar, S. (2002).
inclusion
of low income
The actualities
of doing community
development to promote the
populations in local sport and recreation.
European Sport Management
Quarterly, 2(3), 209233. Frisby,
W., Reid, C., & Ponic, P. (2007). Levelling the playing field: Promoting the health of poor
women through
a community
development approach to recreation. In P. White & K. Young
(Eds.), Sport and genderin Canada(pp. 121136). Gore, A. (2013).
Toronto,
ON: Oxford University Press.
Thefuture: Six drivers of global change. New York, NY: Random House.
Hall, A., Slack, T., Smith,
G., & Whitson, D. (1991).
Sport in
Canadian society. Toronto,
ON:
McClelland and Stewart. Hannigan, J. (2006) Environmental sociology. New York, NY: Routledge. Harvey, D.(2005).
A brief history of neoliberalism. New York, NY: Oxford University Press.
Harvey, J., Horne, J., Safai, P., Darnell, S. C., & Courchesne-ONeill, movements: Fromthe global to the local. London,
340
Chapter
15
S. (2014). Sport and social
UK: Bloomsbury Academic.
Hayes, G., & Horne, J. (2011).
Sustainable development, shock and awe? London 2012 and civil
society. Sociology,45(5), 749764. Hayhurst,L., Wilson, B., & Frisby, W.(2011). Navigating neoliberal networks: Transnational internet platformsin sportfor development and peace.International Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport,46(3), 315329. Hutchins, B., & Rowe, D.(2012). Sportbeyondtelevision: Theinternet, digital mediaandthe rise of networkedmediasport. New York, NY: Routledge. Jarvie, G.(2006). Sport,cultureandsociety: Anintroduction. New York, NY: Routledge. Kidd, B. (2008). A newsocial movement:Sportfor development and peace.Sportin Society,11, 370380. Kidder,J. L. (2013). Parkour, masculinity,andthe city. Sociologyof SportJournal, 30(1), 123. Lenskyj, H.(2008).
Olympicindustry resistance: Challenging Olympic power and propaganda. Albany,
NY: SUNY Press. Levermore, R., & Beacom, A.(2009). Sport and development: A. Beacom (Eds.), Sport and international
Mappingthe field. In R. Levermore&
development (pp. 125).
New York,
NY: Palgrave
MacMillan.
Maguire,J. (1999). Globalsport:Identities,societies,civilizations. Cambridge, UK: Polity Press. Maguire,J., Jarvie, G., Mansfield,L., & Bradley,J. (2002). Sport worlds: Asociologicalperspective. Champaign,IL: Human Kinetics. Marks,L. J., & Michael,J. W.(2001). Science, medicine,and the future: Artificial limbs. British Medical Journal, 323(7315), 732735. McDonald,J. T., & Kennedy, S.(2004). Insights into the healthy immigrant effect: Health status and health service use of immigrants to Canada. Social Science & Medicine,59(8), 16131627. Miah, A.(2004). Geneticallymodifiedathletes:Biomedical ethics,genedopingandsport. New York, NY: Routledge. Miah, A.(2010, February 5). Gene doping: Areality, but not a threat [Weblog
post]. Professor Andy
Miah. Retrieved from http://www.andymiah.net/2010/02/05/is-gene-doping-a-threat-to-sport/. Miller, T., Lawrence, G., McKay, J., & Rowe, D. (2001).
Globalization and sport. Thousand Oaks,
CA: Sage.
Millington, B.(2012). Amusingourselvesto life: Fitness consumerismandthe birth of biogames. Journalof Sportand SocialIssues.doi:10.1177/0193723512458932. Millington, B. (2013). Agingin the information age: An ethnographic study of video gamingin Canadianretirement centres. Paperpresentedat the Sport CanadaResearch Initiative Conference, Ottawa, ON. Millington, B., & Wilson,B.(2013). Superintentions: Golfcourse managementandthe evolution of environmental responsibility. TheSociologicalQuarterly,54(3), 450475. Millington, R., & Darnell, S. C.(2012). Constructing and contesting the Olympicsonline: The Internet, Rio 2016 and the politics of Brazilian development.International Reviewfor the Sociology of Sport. doi: 10.1177/1012690212455374 Mills, C. W.(1959).
Thesociologicalimagination. London,
Norman, M. (2012).
Saturday nights alright for tweeting:
sion, and the new media consumption/production
UK: Oxford. Cultural citizenship,
of Hockey Dayin
collective
discus-
Canada. Sociology of Sport
Journal, 29(3), 306324.
Pray,L. (2008) Sports,gene doping, and WADA. NatureEducation,1(1), 77. Sage, G.(1999). Justice doit! The Niketransnational advocacy network: Organization,collective action and outcomes.Sociologyof SportJournal, 16(3), 206235. Scherer,J., &Jackson, S.J. (2010). Globalization,sport andcorporatenationalism: Thenewcultural economyofthe NewZealandAll Blacks. Oxford, UK: PeterLang. Staggenborg,S.(2008). Social movements.Toronto, ON: Oxford UniversityPress.
Sport
and
the
Future
341
Stoddart,
M.(2012).
Making meaningout of mountains. Vancouver, BC: UBC Press.
Stolle-McAllister, J. (2004). Contingent hybridity: The cultural politics of Tepoztlans anti-golf movement.Identities: GlobalStudies in Cultureand Power,11, 195213. Sugden,J. (2010). Critical left-realism and sport interventions in divided societies.International Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport, 45, 258272. Thorpe, H., & Ahmad, N.(2013). Youth, action sports and political agencyin the Middle East: Lessonsfrom a grassrootsparkour groupin Gaza.International Reviewfor the Sociologyof Sport. doi: 10.1177/1012690213490521. Wheaton, B. (Ed.). (2004). Understanding lifestyle sports: Consumption,identity and difference. London, UK: Routledge. Wheaton,B.(2008). From the pavementto the beach: Politics andidentity in Surfers Against Sewage. In
M. Atkinson
(pp. 113134).
Whitson, D.(2012). (Eds.),
& K. Young (Eds.),
Tribal play: Subcultural journeys through sport
Bingley, UK: Emerald Group Publishing. Vancouver 2010: The saga of Eagleridge Bluffs. In
G. Hayes &J. Karamichas
Olympic Games, mega-eventsand civil societies: Globalization, environment, resistance (pp.
219235).
New York, NY: Palgrave Macmillian.
Wilson,B.(2006a). Fight,flight, or chill: Subcultures,youth, andraveinto the 21stcentury. Montreal, QC: McGill-Queens University Press. Wilson,B.(2007). New media,social movements,andglobalsport studies: Arevolutionary moment andthe sociology of sport. Sociologyof SportJournal, 24(4), 457477. Wilson,B.(2012a). Sport &peace:Asociologicalperspective.Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press. Wilson,B.(2012b). Growth and nature: Reflections on sport, carbon neutrality, and ecological modernization.In D. Andrews & M. Silk (Eds.), Sport andneo-liberalism:Politics,consumption, andculture (pp. 90108). Philadelphia, PA: Temple University Press. Wilson,B., & Hayhurst,L. (2009). Digital activism: Neo-liberalism,the internet, and sport for development.
Sociologyof Sport Journal, 26(1), 155181.
Wilson, B., & Millington,
B. (2013).
Sport, ecological
modernization, and the environment.
D. Andrews & B. Carrington (Eds.), Acompanion to sport (pp. 129142).
In
Malden, MA: Black-
well Publishing. Wilson, B., & Sparks, R. (1999). Impacts of black athlete
media portrayals on Canadian youth.
Canadian Journal of Communication,24(4), 589627. Wilson, B., & Sparks, R. (2001). MichaelJordan, sneaker commercials, and Canadianyouth cultures.In D. Andrews(Ed.), MichaelJordanInc.: Corporate sport, mediaculture, andlate modern America(pp. 217255). Albany, NY: SUNY Press. Winter,J. (2006). Dreamsof peaceandfreedom: Utopianmoments in the 20thcentury. New Haven, CT: Yale University Press.
342
Chapter
15
References Aboriginal
Sports/Recreation
release
on the 1997
Victoria, Active
Association North
of
American
BC. (1995,
October).
Indigenous
Media
Autor,
Kids
Canada. (2013).
Active
Kids Report
Card. (2013).
and youth.
Retrieved
Feb. 2014 from
ment.
M. L. (2006).
in
ficial ice:
D. Whitson
Artistic impressions: ON:
Toronto,
Alliance for
(2013).
Comprehensive achieve
60
Physical Education,
Anderssen,
Artificial
Toronto,
E. (2010,
rules for nations
ON:
ice:
Game-changing Globe and
Helping all of
Barney,
andlate
modern America.
sport:
Comparisons In
D.
and
Whitson
&
sumption, Appadurai,
and culture.
A. (1996).
Minneapolis, Arctic
B. (2009,
through
sex-abuse
cases mean new
PA: Temple
MN: University
B.(2011a,
Arthur,
B. (2011b,
1).
National
University
Press.
2).
Head, not
a mere breeze.
ice.
heart,
National
Post.
Retrieved
from
National
Beamish,
National Post, p. A1. off it.
Beamish,
National
must lead the
tweets.
CBC Sports. Retrieved from
must be a better
wayto police
Journal Atkinson,
M. (2009).
M., & Young,
Champaign, Atkinson,
Parkour,
IL:
M., & Young,
through sport.
K. (2008).
Human
high-performance
Marxs enduring
& I.
McDonald
UK: Emerald
International
legacy for the sociology
(Eds.),
Review
of sport.
Marxism, cultural
studies &
The classical tradition
and contem-
Q. What do you do for a living?
A. Im
an
Kingston,ON: TheSport ResearchGroup. Synchronized swimming:
W. (1882).
An American history. Jefferson,
The Montreal snow shoe club: Its history and record.
The
T. (2011).
evolving
MediaSport
Deviance,
television
sports
marketplace.
In
(pp. 7387). NewYork, NY: Routledge.
conformity,
the
R. (2006). NHL.
and social
control
in
Canada
Experience
and career length
Bhabha,
H. K. (1994).
Thelocation
M.(1995). Banal nationalism.
Birrell,
S., & McDonald,
Bloom,
M., Grant,
of culture.
Tribal play: Subcultural journeys
professional football:
The
Canada.
London,
M., &
Retrieved
Reading sport:
Critical essays on
Richmond, VA: Northeastern University Press.
Watt, D. (2005).
from
UK: Routledge.
London, UK: Sage.
M. G.(Eds.). (2000).
power and representation. control in sport.
in
effect of positional segregation. Sociology of Sport Journal, 4(4), 410420. Billig,
and poiesis.
The code: The unwritten rules of fighting and retaliation in
Chicago, IL: Triumph Books.
economic benefits of sport participation Group Publishing.
& society
Toronto, ON: Universityof TorontoPress.
R., & Borowy, J. (1988).
Best, C. (1987).
Kinetics.
K. (Eds.). (2008a).
Bingley,
Doing critical
An analysis of participa-
athletes.
The promise of sociology:
R. (1998).
Bernstein,
of racist
169194.
Deviance and social
studies:
(3rd ed.). Toronto, ON:PearsonCanada.
P. K. Subban target
anarcho-environmentalism,
and cultural
Marxism, alienation and Coubertins Olympic project.
L. Wenner (Ed.), Bereska,
http://www.cbc.ca/sports/hockey/
of Sport and Social Issues, 33(2),
12,
JAI.
R.(2010).
H.
Bellamy,
http://sports.nationalpost.
nhl/canadiens-p-k-subban-target-of-racist-tweets-1.2629997. Atkinson,
Sociology of Sport Journal,
Montreal, QC:BecketBrothers.
http://www.washingtontimes.com/
May 2). Canadiens
The Inter-
of Utah Press.
interactionism
Karl
D. P. (2005).
after gruesome incident
news/2013/jun/3/quebec-soccer-leaders-cite-safety-on-turban-bans. Press. (2014,
Nexus.
NC: McFarland.
way.
Associated Press.(2013, June 3). Quebecsoccer leaders cite safety on turban bans. Accessed from
ON: Lexus
Selling the five rings:
(pp. 88105). London, UK: Routledge.
athlete.
defend-fighting/?utm_source=dlvr.it&utm_medium=twitter.
Associated
R. (2002).
sport
com/2013/10/02/george-parross-gruesome-injury-prompts-players-to-
Washington Times.
Markham,
of skateboarding.
Canadas
B. Carrington
Becket,
October 2). Players defend fighting
History,
Amsterdam: JAI.
Beamish, R.(2009). In
Warriors on ice, tragedies
Maple Leafs, Canadiens game, but there
the
Symbolic
Amsterdam:
Post, p. S1.
B.(2013,
in
September
Sport
In J. Maguire & K. Young (Eds.), Theory, sport & society (pp. 2539).
Bean,
B. (2011c,
Arthur,
University
the subculture
among
Beamish, Politics, con-
Post, p. A1. Arthur,
of hockey.
porary sociological thinking. September
The crisis of a moral ideal. Society for
for the Sociology of Sport, 25, 143155.
media cul-
Press.
March 4). Proberts brain is just the start.
homicide: American
Beamish, R.(1990). The persistence of inequality:
Cultural dimensions of globalization.
Winds of change
UT:
(pp. 353373).
of Minnesota Press.
11).
North
multiculturalism,
Scholars Press.
ethnography. In J. Maguire & K. Young (Eds.), Theory, sport
Retrieved from http://www.arcticwintergames.org.
November
Thelaw
Beal, B. (2002).
http://www.
Corporate sport,
NY: SUNY
at the
Essays on
ON: Canadian
252267.
Post, p. S1. Arthur,
& Winston.
Wenn, S., & Martyn, S. (2002).
Lake City,
and commerce
Sport and neo-liberalism:
Modernity at large:
Winter Games.(2013).
Arthur,
Albany,
Philadelphia,
DC:
Beal, B. (1995). Disqualifying the official: An exploration ofsocial resistance
Press.
Mail. Retrieved from
Micheal Jordan, Inc.:
M.(Eds.). (2012).
Washington,
http://www.federalreserve.
AB.
R. K.,
tion
D., & Silk,
of the Areassess-
national Olympic Committeeand the rise of Olympiccommercialism. Salt
mean-new-rules-for-nations-coaches/article4314402/#dashboard/
ture,
from
The dark side of the nation:
Two cases of hockey
Barnes, J. (2010).
follows/.
Andrews,
H. (2000).
Banff,
915.
of Toronto
April 9).
(2001).
decades:
Social learning and personality development.
NY: Holt, Rinehart
Barnes, J. (1990).
Dance.
each day. Journal
Hockey, culture,
coaches.
and the
and
programs:
activity
professional
ON: University
D. (Ed.).
The contribution
over three
Discussion Series.
Retrieved
A., & Walters, R.(1963).
Bannerji,
theglobeandmail.com/news/national/game-changing-sex-abuse-cases-
Andrews,
Board.
Paper presented
Recreation
physical activity
in
Research on Public Policy.
U.S. wageinequality
and Economics
Reserve
New York,
Press.
hockey and European football.
(Eds.),
(pp. 237261).
Education,
minutes of physical
Globalization
between
Gruneau
school
masculinity,
of Toronto
Recreation and Dance, 84(9),
J. (2006).
contrasts R.
Arti-
Peterborough,
Figure skating,
University
Health, Physical
students
Ammirante,
for
C. L. (2010).
nationalism and gender. Toronto,
of sport.
American
& R. Gruneau (Eds.),
Bandura,
Press.
M. L. (2011).
limits
Gender, race, and entitlement
Hockey, culture and commerce (pp. 7184).
Broadview Adams,
game. In
Finance
& Smith,
gov/pubs/feds/2010/201060/201060pap.pdf.
The game of whose lives?
Canadas national
A.,
wage to
Federal
activehealthykids.ca/2013ReportCard/en/.
QC: The Institute
Manning,
minimum
http://www.
The new public management: Canada in comparative perspec-
Montreal,
D.,
Are we driving our kids to unhealthy habits? Report card on physical activity for children
Adams,
P. (1995)
tive.
BC.
Healthy
Aucoin,
Games planned for
Strengthening in
Canada.
Canada:
http://www.conferenceboard.ca/e-library/
abstract.aspx?did=1340.
343
The socio-
Conference Board of
Bompa,
T. (1995).
Booth,
D.,
From childhood to champion athlete.
& Tatz,
South
C. (2000).
Wales, AU:
Boudarbat,
Allen
B., Lemieux,
returns
to
One-eyed:
ON: Veritas.
Australian sport.
P. ([1972]
Cambridge Bourdieu,
capital
in
Canada,
The evolution
19802005.
of the
Canadian
1977).
Public
Bourdieu,
MA:
P. ([1980]
versity Bourdieu,
Outline of a theory of practice.
Cambridge,
Distinction:
Harvard
1990).
Asocial critique of the judgement
University
CA: Stanford
Uni-
1986).
The forms of capital. In J. Richardson (Ed.),
New York,
NY: Greenwood
P. (1966).
Condition
Hand-
241258).
Press. de classe. Archives Euro-
peennes de Sociologie, 7, 201223. Bourdieu,
P. (1973).
Information, Bourdieu,
The three forms
knowledge.
Social Science
12, 5380.
P. (1989).
power. Sociological Theory, 7,
P. (1993).
Sociology in question. London,
UK: Sage Publications.
Bourdieu,
P. (2000)
Pascalian meditations. Stanford,
CA: Stanford
University
Press. &
Wacquant,
Chicago, IL:
University
Brackenbridge,
L. (1992).
An invitation
of Chicago
Press.
The anti-Olympics. C. H. (2001).
exploitation in sport. Branch, J. (2011,
London,
T. (2011,
sociology.
D. (in press).
Braunsdorf,
Different
The shame
D. (2001,
mentality.
New York Times, p. B13.
of college
sports.
The Atlantic.
R.(1964).
not better:
Comparing
Canadian and
D. Taras & C. Waddell (Eds.),
August 4).
AB: Athabasca
Heatstroke
Overuse injuries, athletes.
lies
American
How Canadians
University
problem
University
mens training
in twentiethPress.
camp roster.
Retrieved
NCAA:
Canadian impact.
Retrieved from
http://
Womens
national
team/Olympic
team.
Retrieved
Centre for
and sport.
Ethics in
Final Report.
Sport. (2002).
Public opinion survey on youth
Retrieved from
http://www.cces.ca/files/pdfs/
Brohm J.-M.
completeness
of immigrants.
Press.
(1978).
within
athletes
and burnout in
12421245.
child
doi: 10.1542/
A. (1980).
communities
M. (2012).
and per-
Power and everyday practices.
work. Minneapolis,
MN: University
of
NJ: Princeton
Minnesota
Press.
visits Australia.
University
levels
Press. and youth receive failing replaces
active
grade for
play.
Active
http://dvqdas9jty7g6.cloudfront.
net/pressreleases/ahkcrelease2008-finalen.pdf. Bryant, J. E., & McElroy, Englewood,
CO:
R. J. (2014).
Burnaby Now. (2013,
CanadianCentrefor Ethicsin Sport.(2010a). Dopingcontroltestresults on
M.(1997).
Company.
Wethe people: Society in question.
Toronto,
ON: Nelson. CFL Canadian
http://www.burnabynow.com/sports/photo-
galleries/stm-grad-named-just-third-cfl-canadian-mvp-1.708508.
344
team
announced.
Retrieved
from
university. Centre for Ethics in Sport. (2010b). anti-doping
measures after
positive for banned substances.
CCES,
CIS and
more university
Retrieved from
CFL announce
football
players test
http://www.cces.ca/en/
news-134-cces-cis-and-cfl-announce-robust-anti-doping.
loo football team.
Media Backgrounder.
CCES testing
University
Retrieved from
of Water-
http://www.cces.
Team2010FINAL.pdf.
Canadian Centrefor Ethicsin Sport. (2012). Sport in transition: Canada moreresponsible for gender inclusivity.
Canadian
Fitness and
activity Canadian
Canadian
References
Lifestyle
monitor.
Ottawa,
Fitness and
Research Institute. ON:
Lifestyle
(2012).
ON: Author.
(2004).
2004
Physical
(2010).
2010
Physical
Author.
Research Institute.
monitor: Facts and figures. Heritage.
Making sport
Ottawa,
Ottawa,
Canadian
ON: Author.
Sport Policy
2012.
Retrieved
from
http://sirc.ca/CSPRenewal/documents/CSP2012_EN.pdf. Canadian from
Canadian
Heritage. (2013).
Sport participation
2010:
Research paper. Retrieved
http://publications.gc.ca/collections/collection_2014/pc-ch/
Heritage. (2013a).
Sport
Canada policies and legislation.
http://www.pch.gc.ca/eng/1358438405126/135843
8550678. Canadian
Interuniversity
coaches
in
Sport.
CIS sports.
(2005a).
Retrieved
Analysis from
of
male and female
http://english.cis-sic.ca/
of_Male_and_Female.pdf. Canadian
November 20). STM grad named just third
Accessed from
Waterloo football
information/members_info/pdfs/pdf_research_and_stats/Analysis_
Sociological dynamics of sport and exercise.
Morton Publishing
of
http://www.cces.ca/en/news-126-doping-control-test-results-on-
Retrieved from
as screen time
Healthy Kids Canada. Retrieved from
Whatsport can do: The true sport
CH24-1-2014-eng.pdf.
Critical essays on knowledge and politics. Princ-
Canadian children
activity
organizing
History of Sport and Physical Education, 11, 144.
Edgework:
M. (2008).
UK: Ink Links.
Transnational
Edward Hanlan: The world sculling champion
W.(2006).
Sport. (2008).
Ottawa, ON: True Sport. Retrieved from http://www.truesportpur.
activity
Sport: A prison of measuredtime. London,
Canadian Journal of
physical
of ethnic
American Journal of Sociology, 70, 193205.
Unraveling the garment industry:
and womens
Centre for Ethics in
Canadian Centre for Ethics in Sport. (2010c).
ON: Nelson.
Brooks, E. (2007).
Canadian
ca/files/pdfs/MediaBackgrounderTestingUniversityofWaterlooFootball-
overtraining,
Pediatrics, 119(6),
D., Raby, R., & Thomas, Toronto,
MVP.
Canadian
in
Institutional
sonal relations
Brownrigg,
Gender and sexuality
MA: Harvard
2012 senior
of leisure into
Press.
http://www.canadasoccer.com/index.php?t=project&sid=965.
Canadian
peds.2007-0887.
Brym,
Canada Soccer. (2013).
University
bad.
Centre Daily Times, p. 1B.
and adolescent
eton,
Boston,
University
http://www.basketball.ca/senior-men-p148740.
robust
V: Sport. Edmonton,
Brenner, J. S. (2007).
Brown,
The transformation
Temple
www.basketball.ca/ncaa-national-collegiate-athletic-association-
UK: Routledge.
http://www.theatlantic.com/magazine/print/2011/10/
university sport systems. In communicate
Brown,
of Sport Behavior,
ca/files/pdfs/TS_report_EN_webdownload.pdf.
the-shame-of-college-sports/308643.
Brock,
from
PA:
Coming on strong:
womens sport.
report.
Understanding and preventing sexual
A brain going
October).
to reflexive
New Left Review, 67, 4159.
Spoilsports:
December 6).
Retrieved from
Breton,
Withdrawal from competitive
study. Journal
CCES-RPT-2002Survey-E.pdf.
P.,
Boycoff, J. (2011).
Bratt,
S. K. (1995). century
from
Bourdieu,
Branch,
ten-year
s15154.
Social space and symbolic
1425.
Bourdieu,
Press.
D. P. (2002).
For fun and profit:
Canada Basketball. (2012b). of theoretical
of Toronto
Philadelphia,
Canada Basketball. (2012a).
de classe et position
Centre,
145163.
R. (Ed.). (1990).
Cahn,
of the
Publishing
Canada.
ON: University
consumption.
P.([1983]
Department
Government
to a
and Stewart in
Therites of men: Manhood, politics, and the culture of sport.
A retrospective
Butsch,
Anintroduction
McLelland
Program,
Canadian
youth sport:
of taste.
Canadians: ON:
Multiculturalism
K. L., &Johns,
Press.
book of theory and research for the sociology of education, (pp.
Bourdieu,
V. (1999).
25(2),
Stanford,
with the
of State and the
Toronto,
Coming Toronto,
Butcher, J., Linder,
Press.
Thelogic of practice.
H.(1988).
Canadas people.
Supply and Services,
UK:
Press.
1984).
Cambridge,
Secretary
Burstyn,
University
P.([1979]
history of association
W.(2010).
Policy, 36, 6389. Bourdieu,
Burnet, J. R., & Palmer,
New
& Unwin.
T., & Riddell,
human
Toronto,
A view of
Interuniversity
Responses of the
Sport.
(2005b).
membership.
Equity
Final report.
practices Retrieved
english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/pdfs/pdf_research_ and_stats/2005_Equity_Practices_Questionnaire-CIS-EquityReport-2005.pdf.
questionnaire: from
http://
Canadian
Interuniversity
implications
Sport.
of the
(2007).
choice.
Canada vs U.S.A:
Retrieved
from
The financial
Cavanaugh,
http://english.cis-sic.
ca/information/members_info/pdfs/pdf_research_and_stats/
CBC
july2007CanadavsUSAresearchfinal.pdf. Canadian
Interuniversity
Sport. (2013a).
History
of CIS. Retrieved
from
Interuniversity
Sport. (2013b).
CIS.
Retrieved
Athletic financial
Aboriginal
awards 20112012.
Sport. (2013d,
provided
June 20).
over $12.7
Sport.
from
Athletic
M to student-athletes
scholarships: in
201112.
the P-word.
(2013e).
Athletes
Guide: 20132014.
Centers for
Retrieved from
Sport. (2013f).
violations.
Society. (2006).
Pediatric
Press. (2011,
Sport readiness in children
and youth
September
from
23).
NHL says banana-throwing
game is stupid
and ignorant.
inci-
NFL commissioner
answers letter
Accessed from
from
(2012).
Goodell defends
members of Congress.
Red-
Huffington
Sport
Centres. (2007).
Ottawa,
ON:
Author.
annual
ON: Author.
from
C., & Ingham,
sport.
In
J.
(pp. 6381).
Asport parents guide.
http://www.fieldhockey.ca/
Cantelon,
H. (2006).
(Eds.),
Cantelon,
H., & Gruneau,
In J. Harvey
will travel:
of Toronto
R. (1988).
D., Lemieux, inequality:
T.,
sport
of
& society
Canada, international D. Whitson
and commerce
hockey,
& R. Gruneau
(pp.
215235).
M.(2009,
Retrieved
November
from
ON: University
C. (2004).
study of the
Canadian
of Ottawa Press.
Unionization
and
wage
US, UK and Canada. Journal
of
Haven, Carrington,
of Teachingin
CT: Yale University
D. L.
culture, and late T. (2011).
sports
Secret ritual
B., Andrews,
scape. In
Carter,
We hate gym: Student
M. C. (1989).
of dreams.
alienation
University
from
Affairs.
and manhood in
In foreign fields:
physical
edu-
Victorian
America.
New
NY:
ath-
K. Young
UK: Elsevier.
Clydesdale runners
P.
and technologies
of the
25, 130147.
W.(2002).
Do enclaves
matter in immigrant
McGraw-Hill.
worth the effort?
& Donnelly,
Are organized pro-
Sports in society: Issues and controversies (2nd
Toronto, ON: McGraw-Hill Ryerson.
P. (2009).
Sports in society: Issues and controversies
Coburn, D.(2004). Beyondthe incomeinequality hypothesis:Class,neoliberalism,
and health
Cohen, G.(1980). Clarendon
inequalities.
Social Science
& Medicine, 58(1),
Michael Jordan Inc.:
The global Jordan-
Corporate sport,
Albany,
media
NY: SUNY Press.
The politics and experiences of transnational
UK: Pluto
Karl
Press.
Marxs theory
of history:
Oxford, UK:
A defence.
Press.
S. (1972).
Folk devils and moral panics:
The construction
of the
Mods
Magic Johnson,
AIDS, and the promiscuous
world of professional
sport.
Critical Sociology, 20, 123147.
Collins, T., & Vamplew, W.(2002). of sport and alcohol. Board of
Oxford,
Mud, sweat and beers: A cultural history
UK: Berg.
Canada. (2012).
Canadian income inequality:
Is
Canada
becoming more unequal? Retrievedfrom http://www.conferenceboard.ca/
R. W.(1990).
An iron
man: The body and some contradictions
of
hegemonic masculinity. In
M. A. Messner & D. F. Sabo (Eds.), Sport,
men, and the gender order:
Critical feminist
perspectives
(pp.
83114).
Champaign, IL: Human Kinetics. Connell, R. W.(1995).
Press.
modern America (pp. 177216).
migration. London,
In
hcp/hot-topics/caninequality.aspx.
Physical Education, 14, 467477.
D.,Jackson, S., & Mazur, Z.(2001).
Andrews (Ed.),
big:
Canadian ed., pp. 110143).
Connell,
cation. Journal Carnes,
Oxford,
Running
Coakley,J., & Donnelly, P. (2009). Sports and children:
Conference
9). Lavals field
http://www.universityaffairs.ca/laval-s-field-of-
T. B. (1995).
university
Cole, C., & Denny, H.(2004). Visualizing deviance in post-Reagan America:
of sport for television.
Notjust a game: Essaysin
dreams.aspx. Carlson,
Why English female and rationalisations.
and Rockers. London, UK: MacGibbon and Kee.
Labor Research, 25, 519559. Cardwell,
K. (2004). Motivations
Study of Labor.
Cohen,
Press.
Ottawa,
& Riddell,
A comparative
Theory,
The production
& H. Cantelon (Eds.),
sport sociology (pp. 177193). Card,
Weber and the sociology
market. In
Hockey, culture,
ON: University
Canada vs.
http://www.
4156.
hockey labour
Artificial ice:
Toronto,
from
with pain:
B. R., & Miller,
Coakley, J.,
JAI.
Have skates,
and the changing
Max
& K. Young (Eds.),
Amsterdam:
Retrieved
(2nd Canadianed.). Toronto, ON: McGraw-Hill Ryerson.
A. G. (2002).
Maguire
Affairs.
adjustment? Discussionpaper 449. Bonn, Germany: Institute for the
grams
files/LTHD/parents_guide_eng.pdf. Cantelon,
University
(pp. 163180).
York,
Canadian sport for life:
Retrieved
http://
Coakley,J. (2009). Sports in society: Issues and controversies (10th ed.). New
Canadian Soccer Associations
Capturing the moment. Ottawa,
Childhood obesity. Retrieved from
body. Sociology of Sport Journal,
http://www.huffingtonpost.ca/2013/06/12/nfl-
Association.
(2010).
abroad.
Chase, L. (2008).
commissioner-goodell-_n_3430152.html.
Canadian
debate
Sporting bodies, damaged selves: Sociological studies of sports-related
injury
Chiswick,
nickname,
report:
advocate
H., & Young,
play
(Ed.),
The Hockey News.
http://www.thehockeynews.com/articles/41885-
Press. (2013, June 13).
Soccer
MacLean, gay-rights
http://www.cbc.ca/sports/hockey/ron-
L. (2013, July 22). The value of a degree earned in
Charlesworth, letes
and-ignorant.html.
Canadian
Ron
from
universityaffairs.ca/margin-notes/the-value-of-a-degree-earned-in-
NHL-says-bananathrowing-incident-in-preseason-game-is-stupid-
Post.
season over hazing.
canada-vs-one-earned-abroad/.
Child Health, 10(6), 343344.
dent in pre-season
skins
that
http://www.cbc.ca/news/
McGill scraps football
31).
Retrieved
one earned
http://english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/pdfs/
Paediatric
Canadian
Wall Street? protests
http://www.cbc.ca/sports/football/mcgill-scraps-
Disease Control.
Charbonneau,
History of CIS doping
pdf_research_and_stats/Drug_stats_breakdown_jan_21_2013.pdf.
Retrieved
Occupy
2011 grassroots
www.cdc.gov/Healthypeople/hp2010.htm.
pdfs/pdf_elig_pack/13-14/athletes_guide.pdf.
Canadian
to
Retrieved from
October 18).
from
CBC Sports. (2009, January
http://english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/
Canadian Interuniversity
sport.
No More the new
compared
maclean-gay-rights-advocate-debate-the-p-word-1.853760.
Interuniversity
Canadian
9). Is Idle
up across the globe.
Retrieved
News Release.
Retrieved
hazing probe.
football-season-over-hazing-1.553792.
Interuniversity
Canadian
death prompts
http://www.cbc.ca/news/canada/new-brunswick/
movement
CBC Sports. (2005,
public-_-_english.pdf.
CIS schools
broadcasting
17, 301317.
canada/is-idle-no-more-the-new-occupy-wall-street-1.1397642.
http://english.cis-sic.ca/information/members_info/
pdfs/pdf_research_and_stats/SportBySportAFASummary2011-12_-
Canadian
Canadian sports
November 2). N.B. students from
News. (2013, January
sprang
Sport. (2013c).
from
News.(2011,
Retrieved from
http://english.cis-sic.ca. Canadian Interuniversity
of
n-b-student-s-death-prompts-hazing-probe-1.887974. CBC
About the
The development
Canadian Journal of Communication,
Retrieved
http://english.cis-sic.ca/information/about_cis/cishistory. Canadian
R. (1992).
19201978.
Masculinities. Berkley, CA: University of California
Press. Connell,
R. W.(2005).
Masculinities (2nd
ed.). Berkeley,
CA:
University
of
CaliforniaPress. Connor, J. (2009).
Towards a sociology
of drugs in sport. Sport in Society, 12,
327343.
References
345
Cooky,
C., Messner, M., & Hextrum,
on TV:
Alongitudinal
Sport, 1(3), Cosentino,
Women play sport, but not
news
media. Communication
&
203230.
F. (1974).
study
R. (2013).
study of televised
HanlanCanadas
of nineteenth-century
premier
professionalism.
A history of the concept
Canadian Journal
oarsman:
Ontario
A case
History,
66,
of
of professionalism
in
Canadian
History of Sport and Physical Education,
6,
7581. Cosentino,
Canada.
Afros, Aboriginals and amateur sport in pre-World
Canadas
The Canadian D.,
Ethnic
Group Series, Booklet
Historical
& Ennis,
cation. Journal
No. 26.
War I
Ottawa,
ON:
Society. Alone in a crowd:
and connection
Meeting students
in urban high school
physical edu-
for sexual assault:
ments and judicial
M. A. (1995).
T. J. (1991).
A survey
affairs offices. Journal
Fraternal
of campus police
depart-
room:
Pro-feminist
anal-
and women. Sociology of Sport Journal,
8,
119135. Booze and bar fights:
In J.
McKay,
gender relations,
R. (1959).
Thousand
Gamesin
Asymmetric
hybridities:
Youths at Franco143169.
misogyny on the silver
Journal
of Film and Television
2938.
Comparisons
of intercollegiate
athletes at
by gender, type of sport and affili-
L. (2010).
S. (2012).
New York,
The flat
world and education.
San Francisco,
Sport and international
development:
A critical
sociology.
W. E.(1945).
Davis, N. W., & Duncan,
Some principles
of stratification.
American
M. C. (2006).
Sports knowledge is power: Reinforcing
masculine privilege through fantasy sport league participation.
Deacon, J. (2001,
March 26).
Journal of
Macleans, pp. 2124.
Asearch for deliberate
of the practice environments
J. Starkes
& K. A. Ericsson (Eds.),
An exam-
and volleyball.
Expert performance in sport: 115135).
In
Recent
Champaign,
IL:
Human Kinetics.
Mead and an interpretive
& K. Young
(Eds.),
sociology
Theory, sport
& society
In
K. Young (Ed.),
Sporting
studies
of sports-related
injuries
Amsterdam: JAI. Sport and risk
damaged selves:
(pp. 2957).
Oxford,
culture.
Sociological
UK: Elsevier.
Rentthe podium revisited: Reflections on Vancouver
Policy Options, 31(4),
8486.
Donnelly, P. (2013). Sport participation. In L. Thibault & J. Harvey (Eds.), Sport policy in
Canada (pp.
177213).
Ottawa,
Donnelly,
ON:
University
of
P., Atkinson,
M., Boyle, S., & Szto, C. (2011).
Sport for develop-
mentand peace: A public sociology perspective. Third World Quarterly,
G. (2006).
Homophobia
in sportFact
Womenin
Coaching, 6(2).
of life,
taboo
subject.
Retrieved from
http://
C. (1997).
We are not you:
Peterborough,
ON: Broadview
D. M.(2013).
First
Nations and Canadian
modernity.
Press.
Academic spending
wins? Delta Cost Project. Retrieved from
ON: Centre for Sport Policy Studies.
sport
and physical
Donnelly,
activity.
P., Norman,
P.
White
A biennial report (No.
Studies.
& K. Young (Eds.),
Sport and
Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press.
M., & Kidd, B.(2013).
university sport: Policy
In
Canada (pp. 95119).
Accessed from
Gender equity in
2). Toronto,
Canadian inter-
ON: Centrefor Sport
http://physical.utoronto.ca/docs/csps-
pdfs/cis-gender-equity-report---2013.pdf?sfvrsn=2. P., & Sparks, R. (2000).
Child sexual abuse in sport. In
P. Donnelly
(Ed.), Taking sport seriously: Socialissues in Canadian sport (pp. 108111). Toronto,
ON: Thompson
Educational
Press.
166193.
side.
Globe and Mail. Retrieved from
http://www.theglobeandmail.com/
nasty-side/article9845192/#dashboard/follows.
New York,
Karl
Marxs theory of revolution:
NY: Monthly
The politics of social classes.
Review Press.
Drolet, D.(2006, January 16). University athletic departmentsreview hazing
policies.
University
Affairs.
Retrieved from
L. (2002).
spending:
Who
hazing-policies.aspx.
Dryden,K. (1989). hockey.
The game:
Toronto,
Dubin, C.L. (1990).
A thoughtful
ON: Harper
and provocative look
Commission of inquiry into the use of drugs and banned
Duhatschek,
E. (2013,
The individual
East German doping
History, 31, 218237.
ON: Supply
Mail.
Retrievedfrom
putting
hockeys reputation
in
http://www.theglobeandmail.
com/sports/hockey/hockeys-reputation-in-tatters-by-staged-fights/
Duncan,
M. C. (2006).
ON:
and the state: system.
References
Gender warriors in sports:
Women in the
media. In
New York,
Sport
NY: Routledge.
Dunning, E. (1999). Sport matters: Sociological studies of sport, violence and Dunning,
E.,
New York,
& Waddington,
Some exploratory Sport, 38, 351368.
346
October 2). Staged fights
Globe and
civilization.
analysis of the
Ottawa,
and ServicesCanada.
252).
ed.). Toronto,
Nelson Thomson. R. (2012).
at a life in
& Collins.
A. A. Raney & J. Bryant (Eds.), Handbook of Sports and Media (pp. 231
http://www.deltacostproject.
Deviance and social control (3rd
T., & Horbury,
http://www.
article14671271/. versus athletic
org/pdfs/DeltaCostAIR_AthleticAcademic_Spending_IssueBrief.pdf.
historical
der equality audit. Toronto,
tatters.
www.coach.ca/april-2006-vol-6-no-2-p132855.
P., Hunt,
Donnelly, P., & Donnelly, M. K.(2013). The London 2012 Olympics: Agen-
substances intended to increase athletic performance.
Canadian Journal for
in
Canadian sport.
universityaffairs.ca/university-athletics-departments-review-their-
practice:
in figure skating
advances in research on sport expertise (pp.
A social
Herbert
Maguire
P. (2004).
their
Rink rage.
Deakin, J. M., & Cobley, S.(2003).
Dimeo,
(pp. 83102).
Draper,H.(1978).
Sport & Social Issues, 30(3), 244264.
Deutschmann,
George
In J.
Social issues in Inc.
sports/more-sports/racist-tweets-about-tsn-hosts-reveal-canadas-
Sociological Review, 10, 242249.
Desrochers,
P. (2002).
Publishing,
Dowbiggin, B. (2013). Racisttweets about TSN hostsreveal Canadas nasty
NY: Bloomsbury.
Davis, K., & Moore,
Denis,
of
DosSantos, T. (1970). The concept ofsocial classes. Science and Society, 34,
CA: Jossey Bass.
ination
Taking sport seriously:
ON: Thompson
of sport.
Donnelly, Academic performance
Avante, 1(2), 7893.
Darling-Hammond,
Demers,
P. (2000).
Toronto,
genderin
You throw like a girl: Sport and
university:
ated faculty.
society. Stanford
Canada. Canadian Journal of Sociology, 30(2),
K. E.(1995).
a Canadian
Darnell,
Globalization in the sociology
Donnelly, P., & Harvey,J. (2007). Social classand gender: Intersections in
Press.
& History: An Interdisciplinary
Studies, 35(1),
Masculinities,
Oaks, CA: Sage.
Class and class conflict in industrial
University
D. B. (2005).
Danylchuk,
to the dark side of college
M. A. Messner, & D. Sabo (Eds.),
C., & Denis, C. (2005).
Film
Ajourney
and sport (pp. 162175).
CA: Stanford
screen.
Frustration
Press.
32, 589601.
athletics.
Daniels,
Donnelly,
2010.
of Sport & Social Issues, 19(2),
bonding in the locker
about competition
Curry, T. J. (2000).
phone
USA
Ottawa Press.
ysis of talk
Dallaire,
on poker.
O., & Sears, R.(1939).
CT: Yale University
The local and the global:
Donnelly, P. (2010).
Malestudent-
126140.
Dahrendorf,
N., Mowrer,
New Haven,
P. (1996).
bodies,
of Teaching in Physical Education, 18, 234247.
W., Benedict, J. R., & McDonald,
athletes reported
Curry,
Donnelly,
Donnelly,
C. D. (1999).
needs for relevance
Crosset, T.
Miller,
and aggression.
Donnelly, F. (1998).
Cothran,
April 30). Sport or not a sport? Pot is split
sport. Journal of Sport & Social Issues, 20, 239257.
F. (1975).
sport.
M. (2006,
Today, p. 13C. Dollard, J., Doob, L.,
Ned
241250. Cosentino,
Dodd,
NY: Routledge. I. (2003).
comments.
Sport as a drug and drugs in sport:
International
Review for the Sociology of
Durant,
W.(1926).
Thestory of philosophy. New York,
Durkheim, E. (1951).
Suicide:
NY: Simon and Schuster.
Astudy in sociology.
New York,
Press. Students
D. Macdonald,
London,
L., Jones,
C.,
Winter
Eitzen, S. (2003). York,
the
NY: Rowman
lete in
London,
Ennis,
Celebration
womens
gold
on ice:
The status of the high-performance
ath-
Frye,
ON: Sport
Canada
working class in
England in
1844.
Garden City Park, relevant
Forming
NY: Avery Pub.
curriculum
ton,
M. (2010).
Can
curriculum
Fainaru-Wada,
I do it in
Geiger,
B. (1992).
my pyjamas?
Negotiat-
girls. European Physical
Fernandez,
Sport participation
Presented Annual
at the
IA:
Whitaker
C., OReilly, Canada:
Halifax.
In
M.
T. (2012).
room
teachers
R. (2002).
leisure,
N., Parent,
Sciences
Foer, F. (2004). tion.
M., & Seguin, cohort
Fortin,
and identities:
B.
Gibbons,
inequality:
of
Canada
American life.
Giddens,
of physical
New York,
education.
Giddens,
work,
Francis,
N. R., & Lathrop,
Drill,
movement
Ontario
A. H. (2011).
and sport:
elementary
Studies in Education (Spring), Fraser-Thomas,
J.,
C. (2012).
options.
and negative
developmental
Children
Capitalisms
war
who drill, seldom
are ill.
tradition
in
to 2000.
Historical
Retrieved
from
http://
The physical
and the
possible.
Cul-
participation
of girls in senior
The class structure
physical
32, 222244.
of the advanced societies. London,
UK:
Functionalism:
Apre`sla lutte.
Social
Research, 43,
A. (1979).
Central
problems in social theory.
London,
UK: The
A. (1984).
The constitution
of society.
Berkeley,
CA:
University
of
A. (1987).
Social theory
and modern sociology.
Palo
Alto,
in sport.
CA:
A. (1989).
Sociology.
Oxford,
UK: Polity
Press.
adolescents
positive
Sports Psychologist,
Canadian sport (3rd ed., pp. 251255).
Taking sport Toronto,
ON: Thompson EducationalPublishing. R., Henwood,
K., & McLean,
C. (2005).
tion of normative masculinity.Body tion
G. (2002).
The imperial embrace:
University
of
3762.
British sportsmen and the appropria-
of landscape in nineteenth-century
dissertation,
Body projects and the regula-
& society, 11(1),
Unpublisheddoctoral
Canada.
Western Ontario,
London,
ON.
Gillet, J., White,P., & Young,K.(1996). The prime ministerof Saturday Don Cherry, the
CBC, and the cultural
production
ance.In H. Holmes & D. Taras(Eds.), Seeing ourselves: policy in
Canada (2nd ed., pp. 5972).
Toronto,
ON:
of intoler-
Media power and Harcourt Brace.
Gillis, C. (2009, February 9). Can we please now ban fighting in hockey?
T. (1999).
Frideres, J. S. (1988).
The Lexus and the olive tree.
New York,
NY: Farrar,
W., Alexander,
Macleans, 122(4),
4851.
Gillmor, D.(2013). Is minor hockey worth it? Toronto Star. Retrievedfrom
Racism. In
p. 1816). Edmonton,
Laplante,
of Economics.
Meaningful
A. (1976).
night: Understanding
Strauss & Giroux.
Frisby,
A. (1973).
Gillespie,
6180.
experiences
do to or
Methodologies, 11, 392402.
Critical
seriously: Socialissues in
Canadian Public
23, 323. Freidman,
Giddens,
Canadian
Review Press.
education1850s
& Cote, J. (2009).
athletics
Working Paper. Nashville, TN: Vander-
Gilbert,R.(2011). Playingonthe samepage.In P. Donnelly(Ed.),
The rise and fall of a female
physical
What does intercollegiate
Stanford UniversityPress.
theory of globaliza-
The ecological rift:
NY: Monthly
http://ai.eecs.umich.edu/people/conway/TS/
Department
S. L. (2009).
Giddens,
NY: Basic Books.
An (unlikely)
and policy
United
College Quarterly,
CaliforniaPress.
Gill,
New York,
Canada and the
MacmillanPress.
class-
Policy, 38, 121145.
on the earth.
in
325366.
Dubuque,
Pre-service elementary
T., Milligan, K., & Riddell,
Foster, J. B., Clark, B., & York, R. (2010).
Physical Educa-
Hutchinson.
NY: Harper Perennial.
Recent developments
M. Fried (Trans.). London,
education courses. Canadian Journal of Education,
http://ojs.acadiau.ca/
teachers
How soccer explains the world:
N., Green, D., Lemieux,
Policy,
Gender verification no more? Medscape Womens Health,
Studies
Giddens,
and everyday life.
athletics
M., & Newman, J. (2011).
tural
analysis.
The rise of the creative class: And how its transforming
New York,
and Public
and physical education.
Intercollegiate
University,
Giardina,
& McIntyre.
Association
from
Sport and play in
being and becoming
community,
of sport
E2. Retrieved from
bilt
European Physical Education Review, 18, 380395. Florida,
N. (2013).
Giddens,
Experiences
A critical survey.
for Philosophy
www.accessecon.com/pubs/VUECON/vu10_w05.html.
Wyman (Ed.),
BC: Douglas
Alongitudinal
Retrieved
G.(1991).
conceptions
Getz, M., & Siegfried, J. (2010).
Archetype.
Wm. C. Brown.
Fletcher,
Press.
Crossing Press.
OlympicGenderTesting.html.
The NFL, concus-
NY: Crown
Vancouver,
in
Edmon-
index.php/ASAC/article/view/919/802. Figler, S. K., &
Paper 44, Institute
for colleges and universities?
League of denial:
Administrative
Conference,
University NY: The
16, 3.
West: Globaliza-
of rural communities.
with globalism.
(pp. 183201).
T., Berger, I., Brissette,
(2008).
Trumansburg,
Maryland. Retrieved from http://www.civicyouth.org/
Genel, M.(2000).
Press.
New York,
The trouble
Vancouver forum
ON: Oxford
States: Differences in access, quality, and funding.
Quest, 58, 4159.
Writing off the rural
S. (2013).
sions, and the battle for truth. Fawcett,
Promot-
development
& K. Young (Eds.), Sport and gender
Toronto,
R. K. (2006). Sports, youth and character:
teachers
5(3),
of Alberta
M., & Fainaru,
a community
tion and Sport Pedagogy, 12, 2342.
with teenage
and the transformation
AB: University
In P. White
209233.
the playing field:
Garrett, R., & Wrench, A. (2007). Physical experiences: Primary student
for disengaged
and reshaping the vision of physical
D. (Eds.). (2001).
tion, governments,
women through
develop-
in local sport
UK: Verso.
Education Review, 16, 203222. & Whitson,
Levelling
Galeano, E. (1998). Soccer in the sun and shadow.
Unwin.
education in a high need, low demand world of schools.
Epp, R.,
populations
Management Quarterly, 2(3),
The politics of reality.
Working
ON: Canadian
PopUps/WorkingPapers/WP44Fullinwider.pdf. of the
Creating a culturally
E., & OSullivan,
M.(1983).
University of
Directorate,
Sport.
ing a physical education
of poor
Canada (pp. 121136).
Circle
girls. Sport, Education and Society, 4, 3149.
Enright,
health
Fullinwider,
Ottawa,
Condition
Curriculum:
the
Ottawa,
of doing community
oflow income
European Sport
approach to recreation. in
New
The actualities
W., Reid, C., & Ponic, P. (2007).
ing
and the
myths and paradoxes of sport.
WhyJohnny hates sports.
Ennis, C. D. (2006).
W., & Millar, S. (2002).
and recreation.
Double
medal victory
across Canada.
Association.
ment to promote the inclusion
Handbook of physical education
C. (2013).
(1992).
UK: G. Allen and
C. D. (1999).
D. Kirk,
Frisby,
Beyond the
Final report.
1950).
Engh, F. (1999).
In
& Littlefield.
Fitness and Amateur Engels, F. ([1845]
education.
Sport in Society, 16, 682698.
Associates.
Canada:
(Eds.),
Canadian
Olympics. Fair and foul:
Research
of physical
UK: Sage.
& Weaving,
standards following 2010
perspectives
& M. OSullivan
(pp. 326346).
EKOS
Parks and Recreation Frisby,
Dyson, B. (2006).
Edwards,
parents from low income families
NY: The Free
The Canadian Encyclopedia (2nd ed.,
T., Taylor, J., Tirone,
D. (2005).
Vol III,
AB: Hurtig Publishers. S.,
Bridging the recreation
http://www.thestar.com/news/insight/2013/01/11/is_minor_ hockey_worth_it.html.
Watson, C., Harvey, J.,& divide: Listening to youth and
Giulianotti,
R., & Robertson,
Blackwell
R. (2007).
Globalization and sport.
Publishing.
References
347
Oxford,
UK:
Gladwell,
M. (2009,
fighting
October
and football?
19).
Offensive
play:
How different
The New Yorker. Retrieved
from
are dog-
N.(1970).
ogy. In
Ethnic groups in
M. Kurokawa (Ed.),
NY: Random Goffman,
Goldin,
C.,
dom
London, Melbourne,
Britain.
Lousy and lovely
jobs:
The rising
Six drivers of global change.
The manly art:
M. (2013).
Bare-knuckle
University
prize fighting
in
America.
Americas
corporate
giants are getting crushed. Financial Post. Retrieved from
http://business.
Grasgreen, A.(2012,
BC: Douglas
wars: Popular culture in
& McIntyre.
Retrieved
from
Higher
http://www.insidehighered.com/
lower rates than
10).
Division I basketball
non-athletes.
Inside
players graduate
Higher Education.
at
Retrieved from
Ottawa, Green,
B. (2011).
Has the
Greenberg, J.
and the
G. (2004). American
Framing news
market polarized?
Development
Understanding physical education.
& Knight,
duction,
London,
sweatshops:
media.
Canada.
& Jewkes,
Y. (2005).
social
exclusion.
Social Justice, 32, 2031.
Grossberg, L.,
Wartell,
making: Gruneau,
masters thesis,
and
pro-
Critical/
R. (1988).
Modernization
of
of Calgary,
(2006).
Media-
Oaks, CA: Sage.
Athletes, 1971.
Calgary,
and hegemony:
In J. Harvey
In
L.
AB. MA:
Uni-
Two views on sport and
& H. Cantelon (Eds.), Ottawa,
Notjust a game: ON: University
A case study in television
sports
pro-
Media, sports, and society (pp. 134154).
R. (in press).
inequality
Goodbye
in the pay
R., & Whitson,
and cultural Gruneau, league
R.,
sport,
ON:
Hannerz,
U. (1996).
Fair ball:
McClelland
and social development.
Gordie
for play.
Champaign,
& C.
IL:
culture, (Eds.),
348
3(2).
Canada.
Sport and gender in
Canada,
Towards sex equality in
Cana-
References
Canadian
New York,
NY: New York
& Robert,
B. (1978).
Policing
connections:
Culture,
people,
places.
Environmental
sociology.
integration.
order: Integrating
New York,
NY: Routledge.
Hargreaves,J., & McDonald, I. (2000). Cultural studies and the sociology of In
J. Coakley
Harvey,
& E. Dunning
(Eds.),
Handbook of sport studies
London: Sage.
D. (2005).
A brief history
of neoliberalism.
New York,
NY: Oxford
University Press. D. (2007).
A brief history
of neoliberalism.
Oxford,
UK:
Oxford
An outline
of the
UniversityPress. Sport policy
Canadianstate. Sociology Whats in
and the
welfare state:
of Sport Journal,
a game? In
5, 315329.
P. Donnelly
(Ed.),
Taking sport seri-
Toronto, ON: ThompsonEducationalPublishing.
ously.
Whosesweater is this?
The changing
meanings of hockey
in Quebec. In D. Whitson& R. Gruneau (Eds.), and commerce (pp. 2952).
Toronto,
Artificial ice:
Hockey,
ON: Garamond.
Harvey,J. (2013). Multi-levelgovernanceandsport policyin Canada.In J.
Thibault
& J.
Harvey (Eds.),
Sport policy in
Canada.
Ottawa,
ON:
Universityof OttawaPress. Sport and social
movements. R.(1988).
(pp. 93112).
dents
S., & Courchesne-ONeill,
Sport and the state in
Notjust a game: Essaysin
Ottawa,
S. (2013).
London, UK:Bloomsbury.
ON: University
of
Canada. In J. Harvey
&
Canadian sport sociology
Ottawa Press.
M. E., & Wadsworth, D. D.(2013). Providing stu-
with voice and choice:
Lessons from intervention
research
on
autonomy-supportive climates in physical education. Sport, Education and Society, 18, 3856.
Press.
continentalism:
and corporate
Continental
How
Canada: Sport, identities
ON: Broadview Upmarket
and class
Wadell (Eds.),
AB: AU Press.
Hockey nightin
D. (2001).
promotional
V. Mosco & D. Schiller
D. Taras
V: Sports. Edmonton,
D. (1993).
Whitson,
Howe: Sport participation
In
Journal,
& Stewart.
T., Clarke, J.,
Transnational
H. Cantelon(Eds.),
politics. Peterborough,
&
White (Eds.),
D. A. (1982).
Hastie, P. A., Rudisill,
Canadians communicate Gruneau,
& P.
C., Jefferson,
Harvey, J., & Proulx,
Human Kinetics. Gruneau,
PHEnex
Mugging, the state andlaw and order. London, UK: Macmillan.
the crisis:
Harvey, J. (2006).
Amherst,
CA: Sage. Class, sports,
me.
Press.
Harvey, J., Horne, J., Safai, P., Darnell,
Wenner (Ed.),
R. (1999).
taught
Mediastudies: Areader (pp. 271282).
culture,
Making spectacle:
Newbury Park,
Toronto,
Harvey, J. (2000).
Unpub-
Ottawa Press.
duction.
Gruneau,
Thousand
Canadian sport sociology (pp. 932).
R. (1989).
K. Young
Harvey, J. (1988). Wise, J. (Eds.).
Canada Games
University
Media images
Massachusetts Press.
Essaysin of
&
Class, sport, and social development.
social development.
Gruneau,
D.,
An analysis of
R. (1983).
versity of Gruneau,
Whitney,
what youve
Ottawa, ON: Canadian Advisory Council on the Status of
(pp. 4860).
Nike, global
Communication
of otherness:
Mass mediain a popular culture.
R. (1972).
lished Gruneau,
E.,
Extremes
155182).
Hall, S. (2000). Racistideologies and the media.In P. Marris & S. Thornham
Harvey,
C.,
In
Active
Press.
Hall, A., Slack, T., Smith, G., & Whitson, D.(1991). Sport in
sport.
UK: Sage.
Cultural Studies, 1, 151175. Greer,
Stones in the sneaker:
Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press.
Hannigan, J. (2006)
Canadian labour
ON: Human Resources and Skills
K. (2008).
youth.
London, UK: Routledge.
basketball-players-graduate-lower-rates-non-athletes. & Sand,
for
Aboriginal
University Press.
http://www.insidehighered.com/quicktakes/2013/01/10/division-i-
D.,
(Eds.),
ON: Broadview
Hall, S., Critcher,
January
for
http://ojs.acadiau.ca/index.php/phenex/article/
A., & Richardson,
(Eds.),
full-time-student-peers. A. (2013,
Afoundation
consciousness:
education
Aboriginal youth and their experiencesin physical eduis
(pp. 5674).
society.
news/2012/09/25/report-finds-football-players-graduate-rates-lower-
Green,
Althouse
This
dian sport.
September 25). Gapsin grad rates for athletes. Inside
Education.
11,
Women.
Blockbusters and trade
world. Vancouver,
media:
and Leisure,
Hall, A. (2007). Cultural struggle and resistance: Gender, history, and Cana-
americas-corporate-giants-are-getting-crushed. Grant, P., & Wood, C.(2004).
Methods and
Society
Hall, A. (2002). The girl and the game: A history of womens sport in
Hall,
financialpost.com/2013/07/05/how-the-temp-workers-who-power-
Grasgreen,
ON:
dian sport. In
workers who power
MD: Rowman &
view/1427.
NY: Ran-
Press.
How the temp
a white-race
physical
Retrieved from
polariza-
New York,
H. (1988).
discourse.
& A. Varpalotai
Peterborough,
NY: Cornell
a globalized
Developing
Halas,J. M.(2011).
Review of Economics and Statistics, 89, 118133.
The future:
D., & Cantelon,
sports/television
relevant
cation:
A. (2007).
Lanham:
theory for secondary school physical and health educators (pp.
Cheshire.
Gorn, E. J. (1986).
Grabell,
and technology.
House.
Ithaca,
the
culturally
Press.
Playing for keeps: Sport, the media and society.
of work in
A. (2013).
Whitson,
E. Singleton
University
235264).
265281.
management of spoiled identity.
The race between education
Harvard
M., & Manning,
tion
New York,
NJ: Prentice-Hall.
MA:
AU: Longman
Gore,
Notes on the
& Katz, L. (2008).
Goldlust, J. (1987).
Goos,
Minority responses (pp. 7486).
R.,
Studying
Halas, J. (2006).
Stigma:
Cliffs,
Cambridge,
culture to ideol-
House.
E. (1963).
Englewood
Gruneau,
America: From national
(pp.
Littlefield.
newyorker.com/reporting/2009/10/19/091019fa_fact_gladwell. Glazer,
America for cybercapitalism
http://www.
Hayes, G., & Horne, J. (2011). Sustainable development, shock and awe? London
Major In North
Hayhurst,
L.,
2012 and civil society. Wilson, B., & Frisby,
works: Transnational peace. International
internet
Sociology, 45(5), W.(2011).
749764.
Navigating
neoliberal
net-
platforms in sport for development
and
Reviewfor the Sociology of Sport, 46(3),
315329.
Henslin, J. M., Glenday,
D., Pupo, N., & Duffy,
to earth approach (6th Hickey,
C. (2010).
Canadian ed.).
Hypermasculinity
A. Macphail (Eds.),
Canada.
London,
(2013).
Retrieved
from
Sociology:
ON: Pearson
in schools.
In
A down
Annual
&
Ottawa,
ON:
E. (2011).
fans
P. (2000).
most controversial Retrieved from
racial
tweets in
NFL history:
K. (1998).
Bhabhas third Hooks, B.(1984).
Tourism,
hybridity,
and ambiguity:
The relevance
From the
margin to the center.
Boston,
Passionate politics.
Boston,
Houston,
consumer
culture.
London,
W. (2011).
Women on
(Ed.),
(3rd ed., pp. 256260). Howell,
C. D. (1995).
ball.
Toronto,
Hruby, P. (2012,
Looks first,
13).
knowledge
Hruby, P.(2013b,
of Toronto
In
Hruby, P. (2013c,
August 30).
Earth.
from
Retrieved
Q&A:
Sports on Earth. Retrieved
27).
The
NHL concussion Retrieved
from
deal. Sports on
& Coakley, J. (1991).
implications Journal, Hughes,
Positive
of overconformity
lawsuit:
Another
http://therotation.
deviance
among
ethic.
G.,Sanchez,
school days by an old boy.
Research Unit, Hutchins,
athletes:
R. (1988).
leisure-related F. (2008). Canada, Ingham,
research.
New York,
The sportification
by the
R. Giulianotti
work of
(Ed.),
Palgrave
A., Howell, J.,
Marx,
Sport and
Centre for
The Internet,
digital
NY: Routledge.
process:
ON: Statistics
Educational
Statistics.
for
A biographical
analy-
and Freud. In
modern social theorists
(pp.
1132).
Macmillan.
and Card.
Ethics
T. (1988).
Sport and community:
A
tion.
Olympic
in
Retrieved
Retrieved
Committee. from
Stanley Paul
society:
& Co.
An introduction.
of sport specialization
study.
and training
in junior
Paper presented at the Society for
North
American
All of us, not least
Commissioner,
Regional
Donald
is his own
Ten-
Conference,
Sterling,
now know
man. Sports Illustrated,
The spectacle
of accumulation:
Material and cultural
of the sports/media
complex.
Sport in nineteenth-century
Canada:
fac-
Critical Sociology, 12,
of Alberta,
J., & Holman,
Edmonton,
M.J. (2004).
and hazing. Toronto,
J., Butryn,
Unpublished
female
dissertation,
AB. Makingthe team: Inside the world of sport
ON: Canadian
T., & Masucci, M. (2013).
Canadian
The effects of technodoctoral
triathletes
Scholars
Press.
Afocus group analysis of the
knowledge
of doping.
Sport in
T. (2013,
January
18).
Theater
of pain.
Esquire.
Retrieved
from
M. J. (1995).
Resistance/transformation
Exposing sport as a continuum.
Journal
of the
oppositional
binary:
of Sport and Social Issues, 19(2),
191218. M.J.,
& Snyder,
E. (1989).
women in sport. Kaufman,
M. (1987).
violence.
In
Sport typing:
Arena Review, 13(2), The construction
The social
of masculinity
M. Kaufman (Ed.),
containment
of
7796. and the triad
Beyond patriarchy:
of mens
Essays by men on
sity
Press.
for social change. Journal of Sport and Social Issues, 34, 154175.
Kenyon,G.(1977). Factorsinfluencing the attainment of elite track status in track
and field.
Post-Olympic
Conference Proceedings.
Ottawa,
ON:
Sport. from
(n.d.).
The
Racial
Kenyon,
G., & McPherson, B. (1973).
Becoming involved
in physical activity
and sport: A processofsocialization. In G. L. Rarick(Ed.), Physical activand
http://www.tidesport.org/
racialgenderreportcard.html. International
London: and
Coaching Association of Canada.
& Schilperoort,
Diversity Report
worlds of student
Kaufman,P., & Wolff,E.(2010). Playingand protesting:Sportasa vehicle
and exegesis. Exercise and Sport Science Review, 15, 427465.
Gender
Press.
pleasure,power,andchange(pp. 129). Toronto, ON: Oxford Univer-
Ottawa,
Weber, Durkheim
of Toronto
http://www.esquire.com/features/nfl-injuries-0213-2.
Policy
and social class in recent
Canada, 2005.
A. G. (2004).
review
SK: Social
New York,
culture
changes on its development.
US and
NY:
Journal of Leisure Research, 20(1), 1030.
Sport participation in
Tourism and the
London:
Institute
mediasport.
of race, ethnicity,
Culture,
sis framed
Ingham,
A critique
Nebraska Press.
Society, 16, 654671.
Kane,
Sport beyond television:
media and the rise of networked Hutchison,
May 26).
I. (1970).
Johnson,
The
University of Regina.
B., & Rowe, D. (2012).
Andres Reiner and scoutof
4157. Jobling,
ofthe one per cent (and
Canada. Poverty Papers 5. Regina,
ON: University
Science
Adam Silver,
S. (1984).
Kane,
M., & Douglas, F. (2012). Incomes
everyone else) in
Ifedi,
Jhally,
Sociology of Sport
Hurst and Company. Hunter,
this:
Junod,
Tom Browns
on sport
Culture, Sport, Society,
Understanding the social-cultural
risks
A clinical
GA.
initiations
8, 307325.
T. (1904).
Injury
L. (2014,
Johnson,
to the sport
Canada.
NE: University
Beyond a Boundary.
Atlanta,
logical
sportsonearthblog.com/the-nhl-concussion-lawsuit/. Hughes, R.,
Lincoln,
Sport,
players:
University
Sports on Earth.
15, 2140.
Reflecting
ON: Canadian Scholars Press.
tors in the evolution
http://therotation.sportsonearthblog.com/qa-
November
of denial?
Canadian crisis of
120(2).
the-nfls-concussion-deal/. Hruby, P. (2013d,
Pride and prejudice:
of
2140.
Perspectives on racism and the human services sector: A
Medicine
Jenkins,
Sports on Earth.
The NFLs concussion
and the
Venezuelan bust, baseball boom:
nis and Sports on Earth.
http://www.sportsonearth.com/article/41492872.
March 28). The myth of safe football.
Ben Johnson
crisis
15(1),
NY: Routledge.
N. (2012).
tennis
Maritime base-
http://www.sportsonearth.com/article/40628020/.
Canadian
Sociology of Sport Journal,
and crisis in
Racein play:
New York,
Press. appearances.
identity,
G. (2006).
Jayanthi,
Educational.
A social history of
Maintaining
later.
of race:
P. (2001).
C. L. R. (1963).
Jarvie,
http://www.sportsonearth.com/article/43419226/.
league
C.(2005).
Canadian sport
February 8). The NFL: Forever backward.
Retrieved from
& Ponic,
athletes. Toronto,
UK: Palgrave
Social issues in
ON: Thompson
Northern sandlots: ON: University
Retrieved from
from
Toronto,
December
Hruby, P. (2013a,
TV:
Taking sport seriously:
About ISSA.
Books.
and the
Sociology of Sport Journal,
identity.
C. (Ed.). (1996).
James,
P. Donnelly
A twist
M. H. (2008).
James,
Sport in
(2005).
NY: Vintage
Ben Johnson
identity.
casefor change. Toronto,
MA:
Macmillan.
Association).
New York,
of race:
ing on the new frontier. James,
Feminism is for everybody:
J. (2006).
S.,
Jamail,
MA:
South End Press.
Retrieved
4, 4362.
of
space cultures. Journal of Leisure Research, 30(1), 121156.
South End Press.
Horne,
and national
heroes, national
Feminist theory:
Hooks, B. (2000).
A twist
S.(1998).
Jackson,
nfl/news?slug=ycn-10497693. Hollingshead,
of Sport
The global soul.
racial and national
A
http://ca.sports.yahoo.com/
Sociology
S. (1998).
Jackson,
The top five
How common is intersex?
Retrieved from issa.otago.ac.nz/about.html.
http://www.hockeycanada.ca/en-ca/Corporate/
view. Yahoo! Sports.
America. (n.d.).
http://www.isna.org/faq/frequency.
(International
Jackson,
Author.
About/Basics/Downloads. Holden,
ISSA
and youth Iyer,
Report.
Society of North
from
UK: Routledge.
2013
Intersex
Canada.
M. OSullivan
Young peoples voices in physical education
sport (pp. 108122). Hockey
A. (2014).
Toronto,
ity:
Human growth and development.
New York,
NY: Academic
Kerr, J. H. (2005). Rethinking aggression and violence in sport.
Press.
London, UK:
Routledge. (2009).
Women and sport:
The current situa-
http://www.wcse2011.qa/wp-content/uploads/
2011/05/Women-and-Sport-The-Current-Situation-2009-10-eng-.pdf.
Kerr, J. (2006). Examining the BertuzziMoore Crossing the line
between
sanctioned
NHLice hockey incident:
and unsanctioned
sport. Aggression and Violent Behavior, 11, 315322.
References
349
violence
in
Keynes, J. (1936). York,
The general theory of employment, interest
NY: Harcourt,
Kidd, B.(1983).
Kidd,
G.
The
Kidd, B. (1996a).
Games. In
Five ring circus:
A.
Tomlinson
Toronto,
of
&J. Riordan (Eds.),
Champaign, IL: Kidd, B.(2008). Sport in
new
world:
The Canadian story. In
The story of worker sport (pp.
Sport for development
Athletes
rights in
Canada.
ON:
Journal, Kilborn,
30(1),
tation
and the city.
Sociology of Sport
at the
education
Canadian
Society
Fredericton,
M. (1996).
curriculum
NB,
Manhood in
for
America:
November 1). Concussions:
ball. Sports Illustrated, Kirby,
S.,
& Greaves,
harassment in
110(16),
L. (1996,
D. (2010a).
Physical
Kirk,
D.(2010b).
Kirk,
D. (2013).
history.
New York,
NY:
Law,
are changing foot-
Foul play:
Sexual abuse and
to the
Pre-Olympic
and sports. In
P. Peterson,
Haven, Klein,
London,
A. (1997).
Klingbeil,
London,
C. (2013,
C. G., Gregory,
rics, 125(2), Kremer-Sadlik, ization
114.
& the
New
University
Press.
Skyline
stunt
Council
on
Sport
American
at new tower.
Medicine
and
Journal
of Psychology,
142(5),
Characteristics
of expert
devel-
Psychology,
5(1),
82103.
doi:
Childrens
social-
during sports activities.
Dis-
New York,
NY:
Women, sport and sexuality.
Toronto,
ON:
Stacking in college
Challenging
Olympic power
basketball:
A neglected
analy-
4(4), 403409.
A. (2009).
C. (2012). of power.
Sport and development:
New York,
Mapping the
MacMillan.
D. Brock,
R. Raby,
and the everyday
& M. Thomas (Eds.), Power
(pp. 86109). Toronto, ON: Nelson.
A study
D. (2006,
NY: Palgrave
Whiteness: Normalization
In
and everyday practices
Lewi,
resistance:
R. Levermore & A. Beacom (Eds.), Sport and international
of sports
January
crowd
of Sport
31).
Observer.
behavior:
The case of the
& Social Issues, 13(2),
Canadas
first
Retrievedfrom
great
6991.
multicultural
hockey
http://tobserver.thecentre.
centennialcollege.ca/read_articles.asp?article_id=681.
Li, P.S.(1990). Raceandethnicity. In P.S. Li (Ed.), Canada (pp. 317).
Toronto,
ON:
Oxford
Race and ethnic relations
University
Press.
Liazos,A.(1972). Nuts,sluts, and perverts:Thepovertyofthe sociology of deviance.
Social Problems, 20, 103120.
Lindsay, C.(2008).
W. W. Norton
of the
than
men in
Are women spending Canada? Statistics
moretime on unpaid domestic work Canada
Catalogue
no.
89-630-X.
Ottawa, ON:Statistics Canada.
even Iraqare
S. (2009).
Soccernomics:
Why England Loses,
US,Japan,
Australia,
destined to become the kings of the
New York,
D. G. (2007).
worlds
Why
Turkeyand most popular
NY: Nation Books.
Kuper, S., & Szymanski, S.(2012).
Lindsay,
P. L. (1969).
Soccernomics. New York,
Sport and spectacle in the ancient
Lindsay,
P. L. (1970).
NY: Nation Books.
world.
Malden,
MA:
Racially insensitive
and
http://observer.thecentre.
centennialcollege.ca/opinion/cherry_ian021004.htm.
Laurendeau, J. (2008).
Gendered
risk regimes:
References
The impact
and Physical Education,
of military garrisons
on the
Unpublished
development
Atheoretical
consideration
25, 293309.
1, 3344.
approach.
In
Proceedings of the Second Canadian Symposium on the
History of Sport and Physical Education (pp. 2744). Livingston,
L. A., Tirone, S. C., Miller, A.J.,
tion in coaching
of edgework and gender. Sociology of Sport Journal,
350
Canada, 18071867.
Lindsay, P. L.(1972). George Beersand the national gameconcept: A behavioural
February 10). Cherrys comments: Toronto Observer. Retrieved from
A history of sport in
doctoraldissertation,Universityof Alberta,Edmonton, AB. of sport in British North America. Canadian Journal of History of Sport
Blackwell.
nonsensical.
perceived
Albany, NY: SUNY Press.
R., & Beacom,
Levine-Rasky,
in
doi: 10.1177/0957926507069456.
The conscience of a liberal.
S., & Szymanski,
Langford, I. (2004,
between
maleyouth hockey play-
The Glen Ridge rape and the secret life
Olympic industry
pumpkinincident. Journal
Academy of Pediat-
Lessons from sports:
Germany and Brazil win, and whythe
Kyle,
Sport
Out of bounds:
W. M.(1987).
Levy, L. (1989).
& Company.
sport.
The relation
K. A. (2007).
Our guys:
H. (2008).
field. In
Baseball and nationalism on the
family interaction 3552.
from
Berkeley, CA: University of California Press.
H. (1986).
Levermore,
doi: 10.1542/peds.2009-3009.
to values through
Risk,
and Research, Paper 2. Retrieved
behaviours.
sis. Sociology of Sport Journal,
Handbook of phys-
Dominican dream.
NJ: Princeton
in youth soccer.
course and Society, 18(1),
Kuper,
B. (1997).
Leonard II,
words. National Post, p. A3.
T., & Kim, J. L. (2007).
Krugman, P. (2009).
Exercise
league. Toronto
A. J.,
Injuries
410414.
of
practice
August 6). Pearl divers:
Fitness. (2010).
mountains:
and
Lenskyj,
in physical
Edmonton Journal, p. A1. Koutures,
the
Womens Press.
Press.
October 13). Fighting
in
Journal
development (pp. 125).
The American game, the
border. Princeton,
womens ski
gymnastics: A retrospective study. International
&
UK: Routledge.
M. (Eds.), (2006).
The owls of the two laredos:
TexasMexican
Morality
M. B. (2008).
M., Cote. J., & Ericsson,
perfect suburb.
UK: Sage.
Sugarball:
CT: Yale University
Kline, J. (2011,
E. Baker,
models-based practice
Educational Philosophy and Theory (iFirst),
A. (1991).
Discursive
over
& Sport, 1, 382399.
Work Publications
and propaganda.
Physical education futures.
ical education.
a girl:
opment in rhythmic
Lefkowitz,
Scientific
encyclopedia of education (pp. 459463).
D., & OSullivan,
and
10.1080/1612197X.2008.9671814.
1114).
value and
injury
471495.
Elsevier.
D., Macdonald,
Klein,
Communication
N. M., & Stellino,
Lenskyj,
education
Educational
education. Kirk,
Moroz, S. (2013).
ers good and poor sport
The hits that
presented
B. McGaw (Eds.), International Amsterdam:
&
Annual
Education
Congress, Dallas, TX. Kirk,
J.,
in
3440.
July
sport. Paper
like
parent-created sport climate and competitive
The Free Press. King, P. (2010,
Jumping
and the controversy
Presen-
1.
A cultural
C. (2010). practices
across Canada.
Studies
May 28June
Masculinities,
http://digitalcommons.ryerson.ca/socialwork/2. LaVoi,
Physical
Conference. Kimmel,
masculinity,
123.
M. (2011).
& Adams,
wheel. Social Parkour,
me, ok?:
Space and Society. doi: 10.1016/j.emospa.
Lavallee, L. (2007). Physical activity and healing through the medicine
Queens Printer. Kidder, J. L. (2013).
CA:
responsibility, and neoliberalism in newspaper accounts of backcoun-
and peace.
Toronto,
Mascu-
The ultimate guide. Santa Barbara,
tape it up for Emotion,
exclusionary
try rescue.
M. (1982).
died:
Sociology of Sport Journal,
jumping. Sportin Society, 13(3), 431447.
Society, 11, 370380.
& Eberts,
J.,
Laurendeau,
movement:
Just
emotion.
silences,
143156).
Human Kinetics.
A new social
because Ive
2013.03.010. Laurendeau,
Worker sport in the
this, its
BASE jumping.
BASE jumping:
Laurendeau, J. (2013). embodied
ON: University
risk in
ABC-CLIO.
and Sydney: Pluto Press.
Canadian sport.
youre reading
28, 404420.
&
Money, power and politics at the
London
The struggle for
A. Kuger
B.,
ancient
Press.
Kidd, B. (1996b).
Kidd,
myth of the
Games (pp. 7183).
Toronto
of History of
If
and relational
Laurendeau, J. (2012).
Whannel (Eds.),
Olympic
Canadian Journal
3463.
B. (1984).
Laurendeau, J. (2011). linity
In defence of Tom Longboat.
Sport, 14(1),
and money. New
Brace.
& Smith,
by Canadian immigrants:
and sport system receptivity. Coaching, 3, 403415.
International
Edmonton, AB.
E. L. (2008).
Individual Journal
Participa-
accommodations of Sports Science&
Lodewyk,
K. R., & Pybus,
tion in
of students
C. M. (2013).
in high school
Physical Education,
Long, J. G. (2012). New York, Longley,
Economics 1(3):
K.(2002).
major league sports facilities.
of French
Evidence from
28).
of Sports
Goodbye
Ray Emery, and the
Talk
1907
Coast to
manhood, coast:
(pp. 160202).
and
Ottawa Silver
hockey:
Vio-
SevenMontreal
Hockey in
Toronto,
W.J.,
Loy,
W.J.,
& E. Dunning (Eds.), & Booth,
the sociology
of Toronto
Functionalism,
spectacle:
of sport. In J.
World
Columbia
University
ON: University
Boston,
Kinetics
M. Messner &
Press.
Waterloo
http://www.theglobeandmail.com/
http://www.theglobeandmail.
To infinity
and beyond? In motion:
movement studies (pp. 1544).
E. Singleton
A community
London,
Sage. and
D. (2004).
rian
A descriptive
Press.
profile of physi-
Windsor,
hockey: Journal,
Womenin Sport and Physical Activity Jour-
Marks, L. J.,
articles
published
masters thesis,
Univer-
T.,
high cost of hockey is
Manchester, UK: Manchester University Press.
Should our youth
pay the
D., &
& Michael, J.
W. (2001).
& Franks,
University
Canadians Internet
physical for
C. E. S. (1987).
education
Marx, K.([1847]
since
Sport and politics in
1961.
Montreal,
D. (1990).
sport system.
Montreal,
Marx, K. ([1852]
Science,
medicine,
Marx, K. ([1852]) The game planners: QC:
August 14). Field of dreams: from
Transforming
at the
1936).
McGill-Queens
University
(pp. 5558).
Cricket stadium
proposed for
1935).
IL:
University
1934).
Marx to
http://www2.macleans.ca/2013/02/11/
from
(Ed.),
Alumni
got the
Dinos
back.
Globe and.
London,
Karl
audience.
Association
1422.
51,
UK: Martin Law-
Producing
Olympic
New York,
Capital:
Karl
Marx and Friedrich
Ltd.
to the critique of political economy.
Chicago,
Co-operative.
Vol.
3. Chicago,IL: CharlesH. Kerr &
Co-operative.
Marx: Early writings.
New York,
Thesis on Feuerbach. In
Engels reader (pp. 1079).
International Networks:
Canadian
Marx-Engels-Lenin Institute (Ed.),
UK: Martin Lawrence
Marx, K., & Engels, F. ([1845]
article5400055/.
M. (1996).
Victoria.
New York,
NY: McGraw-Hill.
R.C. Tucker (Ed.), NY:
W.W.
Norton
The
Marx-
& Company.
Marx, K.(1977). Capital: Vol. I. NewYork, NY: Vintage Books.
http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/football/
university-of-calgary-alumni-ensure-dinos-have-top-notch-program/
national television
Mail.
Marx, K.(1963). Economic and philosophical manuscripts.In T.B. Bottomore Marx, K. (1972).
an-expensive-fix-to-a-non-existent-problem/.
November 16).
of
Weydemeyer. In
18461895,
Charles H. Kerr & Company
Company
Macleans. (2013, February 11). Sports scholarships are an expensive fix to a non-
R. (2012,
Globe and
The eighteenth brumaire of Louis Bonaparte.
Marx, K.([1894] 1909).
http://www2.macleans.ca/2012/08/14/
Retrieved from
use exceeds TV time.
The poverty of philosophy. London,
Engels correspondence
field-of-dreams-cricket-stadium-proposed-for-toronto/.
existent problem.
and the future:
732735.
NY:International Publishers.
QC:
Press.
Whitson,
Retrieved
Medical Association
Health, Physical Education and Recreation Journal,
Marx,K.([1859]1911). A contribution
Retrieved
Canadian
internet-use-exceeds-tv-time/article4352565/#dashboard/follows.
making the game an
http://www.theglobeandmail.
Press.
Toronto.
price?
124128.
169(2),
rence Limited.
Federal government involvement
McGill-Queens
Walvin
Martens,F.(1985). Academicachievementofintercollegiate athletesin
game-an-elitist-sport/article5864491/.
Macleans. (2012,
In J. A. Mangan &J.
Retrieved from http://www.theglobeandmail.com/technology/canadians-
com/sports/hockey/increasingly-high-cost-of-hockey-is-making-the-
Canadas
(pp. 17).
Marlow, I. (2010).
Grads, Canadas mostsuccessful team: A
Globeand Mail. Retrieved from
D., Bedecki,
Concerned with
Marchie, A., & Cusimano, M.(2003). Bodychecking and concussionsin ice
ON.
MacGregor, R. (2012). Increasingly
MacIntosh,
A Quarterly Journal
and sport studies
NY: Routledge.
The Edmonton
Windsor,
Canada:
Albion:
(Eds.), Manlinessand morality: Middleclass masculinityin Britain and America,
by
history and analysis oftheir success. Unpublished
elitist sport.
eras.
NY:
New York,
McGraw-Hill.
Risk. New York,
C.(1976).
sity of
Grammarschools and the games ethic in the Victo-
and Edwardian
18001940
in feature
Alberta.
Research, 50, 87102.
Mangan, J. A., & Walvin, J. (1987). Introduction.
Female representation
for
British Studies, 15, 313335.
Press.
MA:
of Educational
Mangan,J. A. (1983).
Theory, sport &
A global approach.
exercise science,
&
of inquiry
ON: Althouse
Artificial limbs. British Medical Journal, 323(7315),
D. (1999).
MacNeill,
Human
Mail. Retrieved from
century:
Alberta Journal
nal, 18, 3851.
MacLeod,
IL:
Mail. from
M., Dunn, J. C., & Marshall,
sport and society. In J. Coakley
Maguire & K. Young (Eds.),
Sports Illustrated in the 1990s.
MacIntosh,
Globe and
Globe and
human
of Toronto
London:
Physical education,
A. (2009).
Macdonald,
and sports. In
Mandigo, J. L., Thompson, L. P., Spence,J. C., Melnychuk, N., Schwartz,
Amsterdam: JAI.
A. (2005).
(5th ed.).
Lupton,
Champaign,
A. Varpalotai (Eds.), Pedagogyin
War
Durkheim, structural functionalism
Media, commerce, culture:
A
Sport, men, and the gender order: Critical feminist perspec-
the twenty-first
Wong
Press.
Handbook of sport studies (pp. 827).
D. (2002). Emile
society (pp. 4162). Lull, J. (2000).
Lumpkin,
masculinity
Sport worlds:
Kinetics.
cal education teachers and related program characteristics in & Booth, D.(2000).
Lumpkin,
Human
players/article4528394/.
Press. Loy,
IL:
com/sports/football/costs-limit-number-of-drug-tests-for-football-
Wan-
C.-K.
Canada to the Second
Inside the sports pages. Toronto,
& Bradley, J. (2002).
Mandigo,J. L., Corlett, J., & Lathrop, A. H.(2012). Physical education in
1907 season. In J.
ON: University
L.,
Champaign,
says/article4321076/.
players.
Brutal butchery, strenuous
and the
Mansfield,
Maki, A. (2012, September 7). Costslimit number of drugtests for football
2350.
Canadian Studies, 40, 125156.
Lorenz, S. L., & Osborne, G. B. (2009). Hockey violence,
basketball
about strenuous
&society
sports/football/doping-common-in-varsity-football-waterloo-player-
The NBA dress
in
and gov-
Theory, sport
May 28). Doping common in varsity football,
player says.
of blackness
hockey. Journal of Sport & Social Issues, 38(1),
and the
Maki, A. (2010,
Ottawa Citizen, p. A11.
Cambridge,
Sport, power, technologies
& K. Young (Eds.),
Cool pose: Black
D. Sabo (Eds.),
p. A16.
to the gangstas:
policing
Lorenz, S. L., & Osborne, G. B. (2006).
Journal of
G.,
sociological perspective.
tives (pp. 109114).
has been a part of hockey
societies, civilizations.
Amsterdam: JAI.
Maguire, J., Jarvie,
Press.
UK: Routledge.
October 1). Just part of the game.
M. (1999).
on English
1998. Journal
MA: Yale University
On-ice violence
Lorenz, S., & Murray, R. (2013).
manhood,
Michel Foucault:
In J. Maguire
Majors, R.(1990).
100 years. Edmonton Journal,
derer rivalry.
Canadians
1943 to
New Haven,
On aggression. London,
Lorenz, S. (2007,
Global sport: Identities,
Press.
ernmentality.
236256.
December
for almost
Lowes,
UK: Polity
(pp. 293314).
Paradoxes of gender.
Lorenz, S. (2004,
(Ed.),
Maguire, J. (1999).
of Teaching
Maguire, J. S. (2002).
partnerships for
The underrepresentation
NHL teams:
Lorber, J. (1994).
lence,
Journal
32, 6177.
Public/private
N. (2000).
code,
factors in the reten-
education.
NY: Routledge.
Canadian
Lorenz,
Investigating
physical
ice
Sociology of Sport Journal,
hockey
for
13, 103124.
a
Marx,
K.,
& Engels, F. (1948).
International
1939).
The Germanideology.
New York,
NY:
New York,
NY:
Publishers. The communist
Publishers.
References
351
manifesto.
Mason, D. (2006).
Expanding
sion and relocation ice:
Questioning the
D. Whitson
Francisco,
The political
of the PETE
New York,
18801920.
NY: Monthly
media:
Enduing issues,
Review
D. G., & Davies,
Governmental
world of physical activity
J.
grant
analysis
A por-
S. (2004).
Health status
at
risk
in
Insights
a
the healthy
A. (2013,
to
May 14).
Vancouver
Parks Board
Xtra. Retrieved from
wants to
status.
Post-Olympic
Association McQuarie,
Factors influencing
Englewood
W., & Curtis, J. (1999).
demic achievement: Mead, G. H. (1962). Chicago, IL:
Mind, self, The
Messner, M. (1990).
Ottawa,
ON:
hockey
of
Messner, M. (2012).
of
Minnesota
Reflections
masculinities.
A. (1970).
France,
The form
15341759.
A. (1987).
18071914. Metzler,
M.
and violence
and function
Miah,
A. (2004). and sport.
Professor
Minneapo-
tion,
On men and
Morrow,
113124.
P. S.,
& Kerr,
activity
in
ences
of intercollegiate
25(4),
346367.
Miller,
sport. Millington,
Thousand B. (2009).
the conduct
The emergence of organized sport,
modelsin
Millington, the
B. (2012). birth
Mott,
Biomedical ethics, gene doping
from
but not a threat [Weblog http://www.andymiah.
6,
to 1909. Journal of Sport
History,
Proceedings of the Fifth
Canadian Symposium on the
(pp. 1123). London, ON. The athletic
warin
British Journal of Sports History, 3, 183190. sport:
Barbara
Ann
Scott and the
post
Canada. Canadian
G. (1987).
George Goulding:
A case study in sport-
18, 2651. D., &
Wamsley, K. G. (2005).
ON: Oxford
Sport in
Canada:
A history. Toronto,
University
Press.
film].
United States:
The transformation & L. Vosko (Eds.),
(pp. 287308).
(2008).
Training
Rules
WomenVision.
of communication in
Canada.In
Changing Canada: Political economy as
Montreal, QC: McGill-Queens Univer-
Press.
M., & Allardyce,
J. (1989).
Curling capital:
Winnipeg and the roarin
Winnipeg, MB: University of Manitoba Press.
game, 18761988.
the
Canadian
and social of Sport
& Rowe,
D. (2001).
Football
League.
Retrieved
from
http://www.cfl.ca/
CFLLegends/moon.html.
Munro,J. (1970). Journal
experiBehavior,
Health and
Globalization and
A proposed sports policy for
Canadians.
Ottawa: Ministryof
Welfare.
Muslim Womenin Sports.(2013, March10). QuebecSoccer Federationfinally hijab on pitch. [Weblog
post].
Muslim Womenin Sports. Retrieved
from http://muslimwomeninsports.blogspot.ca/2013/03/quebec-soccerfederation-finally.html.
Wii has never been modern:
Active video games and
New Media & Society, 11(4), ourselves to life: of Sport
10.1177/0193723512458932.
621640.
Fitness consumerism and
Social Issues.
Nack, W., & Yaeger, D. (1999, September 13). The frightening
and doi:
Illustrated,
References
truth
about
child
Whos coaching your kid?
molestation
in youth sports.
Sports
pp. 3953.
Naiman, J. (2012).
Fernwood.
352
History,
Mullick, R.(2002, February). Warren Moon. CFL Legends. The Official Site of Areality,
student-athletes.
Journal
to
of History of Sport and Physical Education, 18, 3654.
transformation
ed.).
Oaks, CA: Sage.
of biogames.
confidence
of Sport
A case study in amateur conflict:
D., & Leyshon,
Mosco, V. (2003).
sity
academic
Amusing
inception
Sweetheart
W. Clement
physical education (3rd
The athletic,
of conduct.
Conacher. Journal
Mosbacher, D., & Yacker, F (Producers/Directors).
& Stewart.
Miah. Retrieved
G., McKay, J.,
Pretoria
Association,
D. (1987).
allowing
T., Lawrence,
Lionel
Athletic
Toronto,
New
of History of Sport and Physical
modified athletes:
G. (2002).
teachers
Morrow, D., & Wamsley,K. G.(2013). Sport in Canada: A history (3rd ed.).
of physical
NY: Routledge.
Andy
Non-specialist
ON: OxfordUniversityPress.
manhood formula.
net/2010/02/05/is-gene-doping-a-threat-to-sport/. Miller,
D. (1979).
Journal Morrow,
Hathaway.
February 5). Gene doping:
S. (2008).
World War Two image of the female athlete in
in
Sport et politique. Paris, FR: Payot. Genetically
New York,
Miah, A. (2010, post].
Instructional
AZ: Holcomb
Meynaud, J. (1966).
& Bourke,
Canada, 19061908.
203320.
and sport:
The televised
ON: McClelland
Globe
ing excellence. Canadian Journal of History of Sport and Physical Educa-
& Sport, 1(1/2),
Canada learns to play:
W. (2011).
Scottsdale,
P.,
[Documentary
Toronto,
need designated fighters.
http://www.theglobeandmail.com/sports/
History of Sport and Physical Education
Education, 1, 4564. Metcalfe,
UK: Oxford.
New York, NY: Grove
Morrow,D.(1982). The Canadian image abroad:Thegreatlacrossetours of
and aca-
Women, men, and sports.
Canadian Journal
doi:
8, 2039.
Press.
M., & Hunt, D. (2000).
London,
imagination.
Hockey doesnt
from
1876 and 1883. In
Journal of Sport and SocialIssues, 24(4), 380394. Metcalfe,
teur
Morrow,
Masculinity
on communication
Communication
Messner, M., Dunbar,
of Sport.
Morrow, D.(1981). The powerhouse of Canadiansport: The Montreal Ama-
Hall.
Chicago Press.
Taking the field:
MN: University
The sociological
October 2).
Morrow, D.(1986).
Review for the Sociology of Sport, 25(3),
Messner, M. A.(2002).
From
Avante, 5, 3955.
When bodies are weapons:
Sociology
the
of Brazilian
PE. Physical Education and Sport Pedagogy, 13, 129.
Coaching
sport involvement
study.
Morgan,
& society from the standpoint of a behaviorist.
University
sport. International
lis,
of elite
Cliffs, NJ: Prentice
Intercollegiate
Afollow-up
and contesting
537.
Readingsin contemporary sociological theory:
modernity to post-modernity.
Review for the
Thesociological imagination.
Mail. Retrieved
Morrow,
of Canada.
D. (Ed.). (1995).
McTeer,
the attainment
Conference Proceedings.
Constructing
Rio 2016 and the politics
hockey/mirtle-hockey-doesnt-need-designated-fighters/
make its
http://dailyxtra.com/
vancouver/news/vancouver-parks-board-wants-make-spaces-trans-
B. (1977).
S. C. (2012).
teach PE: The nature and influence of personalschool experiences in
friendly. McPherson,
manage-
The Sociologi-
article14654168/.
Ballet and pain: Reflections on arisk-dance
more trans-friendly.
Golf course
responsibility.
at
ON.
450475.
International
W.(1959).
and
16131627.
Qualitative Researchin Sport, Exercise and Health, 3, 152173.
spaces
Ottawa,
Press.
immi-
use of immigrants
Conference,
Super intentions:
The Internet,
Mills, C. W.(1961).
Sociology of Sport Jour-
into
study
Paper presented
10.1177/1012690212455374 Mills, C.
and health service
McEwen, K., and Young, K.(2011).
McKinnon,
development.
century.
centres.
of environmental
R., & Darnell,
Mirtle, J. (2013,
Canada. Social Science & Medicine, 59(8),
culture.
B., & Wilson, B. (2013).
Olympics online:
N. (2012).
of children
and obesity epidemics.
T., & Kennedy,
effect:
Sport Canada Research Initiative
Millington,
age: An ethnographic
Canadian retirement
ment and the evolution
Press.
nal, 24, 302324. McDonald,
the
San
& Sport Pedagogy, 17, 177193.
L. (2007).
Aging in the information
cal Quarterly, 54(3), of
major: Re-touched for the early twenty-first
Physical Education McDermott,
and reformers,
economy
B. A., Lux, K. M., Belcher,
trait
ON: Univer-
CA: R & E Associates.
emerging dilemmas.
B.(2013).
of video gaming in
Millington,
Culture clash: Immigrants
R. (2008).
McCullick,
Toronto,
Millington,
Artificial
Press.
P.(1975).
McChesney,
NHLs expan-
& R.Gruneau (Eds.),
Hockey, culture, and commerce (pp. 181199).
sity of Toronto McBride,
the footprint?
strategy. In
How societies work: Class, power, and change.
Halifax,
NS:
Nanda, S. (2000).
Gender diversity:
Crosscultural variations.
Long
Grove, IL:
Parsons,
Waveland Press. National
Collegiate
from
Athletic
Association.
(2013).
Academics.
Retrieved
dations
http://www.ncaa.org/wps/wcm/connect/public/ncaa/academics/
Pascoe,
N. (2010).
advent
Build it
of Canadian
and the
women
digital television.
will come?
WTSN and the
Canadian Journal of Communica-
Bodies, genders,
R. Raby,
(pp. 6185). Nixon,
H. L.,
Peers,
sexualities:
& M. Thomas (Eds.),
Toronto,
ON:
& Frey, J.
Counting
past two.
In
Norman,
CTV:
A sociology
The network that
of Alberta
M. (2012).
of sport.
Belmont,
CA:
of Hockey
nights
alright
AB:
for tweeting:
C. (2010).
Games. (2013).
narratives
C. (2013).
Olympics
Retrieved from
Canada:
of the
on stolen
and asserting Vancouver
indigenous
peoples and
& A. Giles (Eds.),
Historical foundations
306324.
B., Brody, J., Hayflick, A potential
rights
decline in life
within
the
dis-
New England Journal of
University
Athletics. (2013).
M. (1993).
Readingfootball:
Chapel
Retrieved from
Toronto,
Hill,
Olympic
Paraschak,
of
Journal
http://www.oua.ca.
Carolina
Athlete
sports.
violence
Athlete
Masculinities
and promise.
Park, J. (2005).
Variations
6,
Canadian
Program, 19721981:
of reproduction.
in
race relations:
K. (2013).
Finding
practices in
Media, Politics, 17(8), of
ON: Thompson
QDPEThe
Canadian Journal
Sporting 14(1),
of
strength(s):
events for 121.
facts.
on Cul-
hockey.
from
Educational
of surveillance.
and
If you and
The
World
Canadian sport (pp. 207211).
Anti-Doping
Cultural Studies
Agency and the Critical
Methodolo-
and
middle schools.
and
WADA.
Nature Education, 1(1),
beat him, you own
him, hes your
S. S. Prettyman
77.
bitch:
& B. Lampman
Exploring the role of sports in soci-
MD: Rowman and Littlefield. Why on-ice violence is killing hockey.
Wiley & Sons Canada.
Service. modern
(2004).
Olympics
The real Games.
B. Parental
activity:
331343.
Olympics:
Alexandria,
children
Raboy,
socialization
A meta-analysis.
A history VA:
of the
PBS
Home
of child
and adolescent
Journal of Family Psychology, 21(3),
doi: 10.1037/0893-3200.21.3.331.
L. K., Canadian Medicine
Paediatric
Society,
Committee.
and adolescents
M. (1990).
& Healthy
(2012).
Evaluation
with sport-related
Living
and
management
concussion.
The story
QC: McGill-Queens
Raedeke, T. D. (1997).
Active and
of
Paediatrics
&
31.
Missed opportunities:
Montreal,
Is athlete
burnout
of Canadas broadcasting
University
Press.
morethan just stress? Asport com-
mitment perspective. Journal of Sport and Exercise Psychology, 19, 396417.
racial
Renold,
H., & Hawkins,
minority
E. (2001).
immigrant
Australia. Learning
and the negotiation Journal
Publishing.
in elementary
power. In
Lanham,
& Tinsley,
Canada and
making it in pro hockey. In P. Donnelly
students
Physical Education, 14, 445453.
ON: John
Reitz, J., Zhang, Retrieved
Artificial Ice:
Toronto, ON: University of
Video. Pugliese, J.,
policy.
Insights
Canada. Sport in Society:
pro
& R. Gruneau (Eds.),
Fighting the good fight:
Broadcasting ancient
Sports
10461060.
making it in
Doped bodies:
gies, 5, 174188.
Handbook of physical education
Whois having fun in physical education classes?
Child Health, 17(1),
Straight facts about
culture
http://www.macleans.
Canada. (2014).
Learning culture through sports:
A. (2011).
Purcell,
Canada. Sociology of Sport Journal,
Chances
(Eds.),
Whitson
Sports, gene doping,
Toronto,
and aggression
5768.
Taking sport seriously: Social issues in
Toronto,
global
Proteau,
Public
B. (2004).
Men and
Pitfalls
D.
of sixth-grade
Coaches, language,
http://www.cumberlandminorhockey.ca/to_the_nhl/chances.htm.
Parcels, J. (2011).
http://www.
http://www.phecanada.ca/programs/quality-daily-
S. S. (2006).
(Eds.),
118.
physical cultural
Commerce,
Parcels, J. (2002).
(Ed.),
Prettyman,
Consumption, iden-
Catlett,
history:
patterns
& Thompson,
Aboriginal
& M. OSullivan
of Teachingin
Pray, L. (2008)
Press.
of risk in adventure
The Native Sport and Recreation
V. (1997).
Retrieved from
Health and Education
Experiences
management in turbulent
relationships.
Native sport
Native peoples in
tures,
Accessed from
Toronto Press.
11381145.
NY: Routledge.
& Skilken
and off the ice:
of resistance,
V.,
Mail.
House.
Macleans.
Portman, P. A. (1995).
D. (2005).
United States in the 21st
North
New York,
P. C.,
History of Sport, 26(2),
Paraschak,
of a recover-
physical-education/facts.
R., Layden, J., Carnes,
Understanding lifestyle sports:
of History of Sport, 20(1),
V. (1995).
NY: Random
ety (pp. 7588).
and interpersonal
V. (1989).
Patterns
Paraschak,
and
physical
Journal
Globe and
Canadian challenge. In
291312. Paraschak,
soccer.
Retrieved from
ON: Nelson.
McKenry,
hockey
The (de)composition
Hockey, culture, and commerce (pp. 123139).
D., & Ludwig,
Public issue
Death, danger and the selling
aggression on the rink in
disability:
Qualitative Researchin Sport and Exercise, 4, 175188.
Macdonald,
Physical
Van-
How the popular press created an American
NC: University
Wheaton (Ed.),
N. T.,
C., Hershow,
Sports. Retrieved from
tity and difference (pp. 5569). Pappas,
Canadian
D.
http://www.sirc.ca/
Medicine, 352(11),
Beyond policy analysis:
C. (2004). B.
Absent athletes
(pp. 123140). London, UK: Sage.
Society, 13, 143156.
Canadian-hosted
expectancy in the
Oriard,
In
Interrogating
histories:
& Society, 24, 653665.
Philips, M. G., & Roper, A. P.(2006). Historyof physical education. In D. Kirk,
Aboriginal peoples and sport in
L., Butler, R., Allison,
Ontario
times.
Paralympic
Disability
about jocks
14231438.
Pitter, R.(2006). Racializationand hockeyin Canada:From personaltroublesto a
Olshansky, J. S., Passaro, D.J., Ronald,
Palmer,
Teenage boys talk
ca/education/uniandcollege/should-universities-punish-students-for-
CSPRenewal/documents/CSP_Evaluation_Final_ReportEN.pdf.
spectacle.
discourses.
campus behaviour?
Contesting
and contemporary issues (pp. 3563).
Canadian Sport Policy: Final report.
Pal, L. (2006).
masculinities?
(Dis)empowering
New York,
BC: UBC Press.
century.
Foun-
New York,
Petz, S. (2011, September 21). Should universities punish students for off-
http://www.
native land:
Games. Sportin
Indigenous
Games. In J. Forsyth
couver,
3079).
off-campus-behaviour/.
No
course of the 2010 OBonsawin,
Vol. I (pp.
turbans-at-all-levels-of-canadian-soccer/article12550476/.
Cultural citizen-
new media consumption/production
Canada. Sociology of Sport Journal, 29(3),
Indigenous
Olympic
T. Parsons,
Glencoe.
Multiple
Paralympian.
of
naigcouncil.com/index.php. OBonsawin,
theory:
In
Perrottet, T. (2004). The naked Olympics: The true story of the ancient games.
discussion, and the
Dayin
American
means business. Edmonton,
Press.
Saturday
ship, collective
North
system.
Theories of society:
theglobeandmail.com/sports/soccer/fifa-authorizes-wearing-of-
M. (2001). University
social
Peritz, I. (2013, June 14) FIFA authorizes wearing of turbans at all levels
Nelson.
H. (1996).
ing
of the
& J.R. Pitts (Eds.),
American Behavioral Scientist, 46(10),
D. (2009).
Peers, D.(2012).
Power and everyday practices
Wadsworth. Nolan,
C.J. (2003).
and disabling
Z. (2012).
D. Brock,
Naegele,
of modern sociological
and gender.
tion, 35, 2748. Newman,
An outline
K.D.
NY: The Free Press of
index.html. Neverson,
T. (1961).
E. Shils,
of
Methenys
Sport, 74(2),
Comparisons successes in
of the success of
the
United
States,
Social Science Research, 40, 10511066. the hard
way: Boys, hegemonic
of learner identities
of Sociology of Education, 22(3),
Riemer, B. A., & Visio, tion
N. (2011). offspring
M. E.(2003). classification.
Research
353
masculinity
primary school.
British
369385.
Gender typing
193204.
References
in the
of sports:
Quarterly for
An investigaExercise and
Ritchie, J. B., & Smith, B. H. (1991). awareness: Robertson,
R. (1992).
York,
Globalization:
M. A. (2001).
hockey. Robidoux,
of a mega-event on host region
Social theory
and global culture.
QC:
M. A.(2012)
context.
ON; University
Robinson,
L. (1998).
Harper
London,
Crossing the line:
L. (2002).
of Toronto
Press.
ON:
Black tights:
D. (2003).
Jews,
and sport
Enterprise and heritage:
Violence and sexual assault in
Cross-
Canadas
in the
Toronto,
Ward and beyond:
19001939.
& R. L. Irwin,
Toronto,
ON:
In
(Eds.),
(1997).
New Jersey:
Wilcox,
Sporting dystopias:
D. L.
The making
Albany,
NY: State
whosehonor?
America Indian
mascotsin
American
Transformations
Watching
brief:
Cultural
in
masculinity
NY: Basic Books.
citizenship
and viewing
rights.
Maidenhead,
8(4),
department
of the
politics and hosting the
believe
news
385405.
RBC survey:
more support
Retrieved from
82 per cent of Canadian
needed from
corporate
hockey
Canada. Press
M. (2007).
ease? International
Drugs in sport:
A cure
worse than the
dis-
Journal of Sports Science & Coaching, 2, 335361.
K. (2009). players
Is the cost keeping and parents say.
kids out of minor hockey?
CBC Sports.
Retrieved
from
http://
Toronto,
of Toronto
Press.
(Eds.),
ofrisk. In
D. Andrews
A companion to sport (pp. 112128).
Oxford,
Physical education,
of intersection.
do it!
collective
and sociology
Points
national
and outcomes.
goods industry:
business to transnational
advocacy
network:
Sociology of Sport Jour-
From struggling corporations.
of sport (pp. 2951).
Globalizing sport:
D. S.(2013).
London,
How organizations,
politics are changing sports. Boulder, Sage, G. & Eitzen,
T. Slack (Ed.),
UK: Routledge.
corporations,
CO: Paradigm
Sociology of
In
entrepreneurs
jokes.
diplomacy in the for-
Promoting
the arriviste
city: Producing
2006 playoff
campaign.
International
Review for the
J., Duquette,
G.,
& Mason,
The
War and the
D. (2007).
Cold
of Canadian national identity: Series. In
D. L. Andrews
west: Essays on sport and the
The 1972 Canada
& S. Wagg(Eds.),
War (pp. 171194).
Cold
East plays
London,
Scherer, J., & Harvey,J. (2013). Televisedsport and cultural citizenship in The two
solitudes
of
Canadian
public
broadcasting?
J. Scherer & D. Rowe (Eds.), Sport, public broadcasting, New York,
Retrieved
media, and
Publishers.
North American sport.
from
fail to cool it
NY: Routledge.
Scherer, J., &Jackson, S. (2004). From corporate welfareto national interNewspaper analysis
of the
public
subsidization
of
NHL hockey
debate in Canada.Sociology of Sport Journal, 21, 3660. Scherer, J.,
&Jackson,
S.(2008).
Producing
allblacks.com:
Cultural intermedi-
ariesandthe policing of electronic spacesofsporting consumption. Sociology of Sport Journal, 25, 243262.
The new cultural
economy of the
New Zealand All Blacks.
Oxford,
UK: Peter Lang. & Jackson, S. (2013).
The contested terrain
Blacks: Rugby, commerce, and cultural London,
of the
New Zealand All
politics in the age of globalization.
UK: Peter Lang.
politics
nal, 27(1),
of post-9/11
Canadian identity.
& Rowe, D. (Eds.). (2013).
citizenship: Scherer, J.,
Sociology of Sport Jour-
129. Signallost?
& Sam,
Sport, public broadcasting, and cultural
NewYork, NY:Routledge.
M. (2010).
Policing the cyber agenda:
New media tech-
13(10),
Society,
14691485. Robinson:
Baseball great.
New York, NY: Chelsea
House Publishers.
Sheppard,R.J., &Trudeau,F.(2008). Research onthe outcomes ofelementary physical education.
The Elementary School Journal, 108, 251264.
Shields,D.L., Bredemeier,B. L.,LaVoi, N. M., &Power, C.F.(2005). The sport
behavior
of youth,
parents and coaches:
The good, the bad, and
Shields,
D. L., LaVoi,
N. M., Bredemeier,
B. L.,
& Power,
C. F. (2007).
Pre-
dictors of poor sportspersonship in youth sports: An examination of Madison,
with Johnny
http://sports.yahoo.com/blogs/
olympics-neate-sager/canadian-commentators-fail-cool-johnnyweir-jokes--olympics.html.
personal
Weir
attitudes
and social
Short, J. R. & Kim, Y. H. (1999).
influences.
Journal
of Sport and Exercise
References
Globalization and the city.New
York,
NY:
Longman. Siedentop,
D. (2004).
(5th ed.).
354
In
and cultural
Psychology, 29(6), 747762.
Canadian commentators
Yahoo! Sports.
UK:
the ugly. Journal of Research on Character Education, 3(1), 4359.
WI: Brown and Benchmark. Sager, N. (2010).
Oilers
(re)articulation
school
The sporting
The commercialisation Sage, G. (2011).
Edmonton
Scott, R.(1987). Jackie
14, 317339.
The Nike transnational action
of sport:
206235.
Sage, G. (2004). to
sociology,
Sociology of Sport Journal,
Justice
Organization, nal, 16(3),
WHA All Stars vs. the Soviet
and foreign
nologiesandrecycledclaimsin alocal stadiumdebate.Sport in
UK: Blackwell.
Sage, G. (1999).
recognition
Sociology of Sport, 46(2), 157180.
Scherer, J.,
Sports medicine, health, and the politics
and B. Carrington
Sage, G. (1997).
Media & Society, 9(3), 475496.
& Davidson, J. (2011).
cultural Whentelevision wasyoung: Primetime Canada (19521967).
ON: University
Safai, P. (2013).
production/
Scherer,J., & Koch,J. (2010). Living with war: Sport,citizenship,andthe
too-much.html. P.(1990).
and the
Adidass Beat Rugby
neo-liberal urbanidentity and communities of consumption during the
Scherer, J., Abso-
www.cbc.ca/sports/hockey/ourgame/story/2009/01/16/hockey-costs-
Rutherford,
Scherer, J.,
ism:
B., & Jones,
lutely,
culture
games: Engaging
Scherer,J., &Jackson, S.J. (2010). Globalization, sport and corporate national-
http://www.rbc.com/newsroom/2011/1206-
grant-hockey.html.
Rutherford,
world.
The state of our sweet and savage game.
promotional
of on-line
national team: Franchise
est: Global cultural
Olympics. British Journal of Sociology, 63, 285305.
Royal Bank of Canada. (2011).
Rushall,
Globalization,
New
migration and out next
Canada.
citizenship: Signal lost? (pp. 4873). Still the toy
The bid, the lead-up, the event and the legacy:
households
UK:
Press.
Sports journalism:
media? Journalism,
release.
Scherer, J. (2007).
campaign.
The final
Grace under fire:
ON: Penguin
Canada:
Sport, culture and the media (2nd ed.).
Open University
Rowe, D. (2012).
L. (2002).
Toronto,
city:
A Knopf.
Routledge.
Society, 7(3), 385402.
Rowe, D. (2007).
Arrival
ON: Alfred
USSR Summit
manhood:
from the Revolution to the modern era. New York,
Rowe, D. (2004b).
April 1), p. 1.
D. (2010).
Toronto,
Scherer,
In
New Day Films.
E. A. (1993).
Sport in
Neighborhoods,
R. C.
New York Press.
Rosenstein, J. (Producer).
Rowe, D. (2004a).
Olympics for racist tweet.
http://usatoday30.usatoday.com/sports/
Scherer, J., & Cantelon, H.(2013). 1974
& Stewart.
Women, sport and sexuality.
Athletics in
R. Pitter,
of
Night. (1905,
consumption
and meanings of urban sport cultures (pp. 137152). University
from
gotten series. Journal of Canadian Studies, 47(2), 2959.
Rosenberg,
sports.
a global
UK: Routledge.
McClelland
Saturday
Scanlan,
cultures in
Collins.
Andrews,
Retrieved
olympics/london/soccer/story/2012-07-30/swiss-athlete-banned-
Saunders,
Press.
National
& S. Harvey (Eds.),
national sport. Toronto, Robinson,
University
and translation:
currents of national culture.
Rotundo,
New
A working understanding of professional
McGill-Queens
Tradition
In J. Corner
Swiss soccer player banned from
USA Today.
Stickhandling through the margins: First Nations hockey
Toronto,
K. (1991).
Saraceno, J. (2012).
michel-morganella-olympics/56591966/1.
Men at play:
Montreal,
Canada.
Robins,
The impact
study. Journal of Travel Research,30(1), 310.
NY: Russell Sage.
Robidoux,
in
Alongitudinal
Boston,
Introduction MA:
to physical education,
McGraw-Hill.
fitness and sport
Siedentop,
D., Hastie, P. A., & Van der
education. Skinner,
Champaign, IL:
D. (2008).
Television
D. Ward (Ed.),
Mars, H. (2004).
in
(pp.
326).
Continuity
or change?
In
New York,
NY: Lawrence
traveled
Erlbaum
Theory of collective behavior.
New York,
in
Peer relationships
in physical activity
youth sport and exercise
Canada. (2004).
Surveys Division. M. D.(1983).
Smith,
psychology
contexts: research.
Olympic Sport,
Community
Aroad less
Tepoztlans
Revisiting
South
Health Survey.
W.(1977).
Sparks, R. (1992).
S. Alexander
196186.
International
M. (2013,
Olympic
C. (1999).
Journal
of the
History of
of
Western
Marxism.
the
male: Sports,
127.
Retrieved
of fighting
from
and the
17, 319342.
http://www.sportsnet.ca/cis/the-
The skin Im in: Racism, sports and education.
Halifax,
NS:
Womenin sport:
A Sport Canada policy.
Ottawa,
ON:
Social
movements. Toronto,
ON: Oxford
University
Canada. (2003). portrait:
2001 Census,
The changing
Analysis series:
mosaic. Retrieved
Canadas ethnocul-
from
http://www12.
International
of
& McIntyre.
and sport interventions
in divided
Review for the Sociology of Sport, 45, 258272.
Is white
sport and recreation council:
collar
crime
crime?
Evaluation.
American Sociological
and-into-the-green/. G.,
& Matza, D. (1957).
Techniques
of neutralization:
A theory
of
delinquency. American Sociological Review, 22, 664670. D.(2008).
Unbearable lessons:
Contesting fat
phobia
in physical education. Sociology of Sport Journal, 25, 6696. C., & Tracey, P., with
McMinn,
T. L., Elliott,
T., Beldom, S., Ferry, A.,
The final report on the first national climate survey on homophobia, biphobia,
Human
in
Canadian schools.
Toronto,
ON: EGALE
Canada
Rights Trust.
teamcanadalacrosse.com/team2010.aspx.
(2005,
Canada. (2009).
July
6).
Canadian
and adults.
century,
Earnings 2006
Canada. (2009).
from
Community
The Daily.
Health
Survey:
Retrieved from
http://
and incomes
of
Census highlights.
Retrieved
from
http://
The Canadian labour
diversity in
Canada.
document:
National
market at a glance.
Retrieved
Immigration
Household
and ethnocul-
Survey, 2011. Retrieved
E. P.(1963).
Retrieved from
S. T. (2002).
(Eds.), Theory, Thorpe,
UK:
& society
N.(2013).
In J. Maguire
& K. Young
(pp. 105127). Amsterdam: JAI.
Youth, action sports and political
agency in
national Reviewfor the Sociology of Sport. doi: 10.1177/1012690213490521. and human
Racism, indifference
AsianCanadianteens. Leisure: of Leisure Studies, 24(1),
movement.
London, UK: Routledge.
and the leisure The Journal
experiences
of the Canadian
of South Association
89114.
in their
leisure:
An international
perspective.
Paper pre-
sentedat the 10thInternational MetropolisConference,Toronto, ON. Multiculturalism
and leisure
policy:
Enhancing
the deliv-
ery ofleisure services and supportsfor immigrants and minority
Canada. (2013b).
Time spent on various activities.
Retrieved from
http://www.statcan.gc.ca/tables-tableaux/sum-som/l01/cst01/
2011
citizenship,
The Daily,
R. (1996).
National
ethnic
origin,
Household
Survey: Immigration,
visible
minorities, language and
May 8, 2013.
Tolerable
differences:
Steffenhagen, J. (2013,
AB: University
Living
with deviance (2nd
ed.).
Decentring work: Crit-
Tirone, S., & Pedlar, A. (2000). minority
ethnic
group:
Tirone, S., Livingston,
L. A.,
(pp. 149174).
Understanding the leisure experience ofa
South
Asian teens and young adults in
Canada.
145169. Miller,
A. J., & Smith,
E. L. (2010).
Including
immigrants in elite and recreational sports: The experiences of ath-
May 21). B.C.s young athletes need protection from abu-
Vancouver Sun. Retrieved from
Mair (Eds.),
of Calgary Press.
Society and Leisure, 23(1),
ON: McGraw-Hill.
&H.
perspectives on leisure, development and social change
Calgary,
Canada. (2013c).
place of birth,
Canadians. In S. Arai, D. Reid, ical
famil36a-eng.htm.
http://blogs.vancouversun.
com/2013/05/21/b-c-s-young-athletes-need-protection-from-abusivecoaches-opinion/.
Sport, gender, feminism.
sport
H., & Ahmad,
Tirone, S. (2010).
&id=2820080.
sive coaches.
The making of the English working class. London,
V. Gollancz.
minorities survey estimates.
http://www5.statcan.gc.ca/cansim/pick-choisir?lang=eng&p2=33
Toronto,
Thompson,
Womens Studies Inter-
Tirone, S.(2005). Thechallengesand opportunitiesfaced by migrantsand
010-x2011001-eng.cfm. Labour force
Olomucensis.
387393.
Tinning, R.(2010). Pedagogy
http://www12.statcan.gc.ca/nhs-enm/2011/as-sa/99-010-x/99-
Canada. (2013a).
Universitatis Palackianae
Sport and womens empowerment.
Forum, 10(4),
Tirone, S. (2000). Analytical
Acta
the MiddleEast:Lessons from a grassroots parkourgroupin Gaza. Inter-
eng.pdf. Canada. (2011).
in sport.
Gymnica, 36, 8593.
Thompson,
Canadians over the past
http://www.statcan.gc.ca/pub/71-222-x/71-222-x2008001-
religion.
tive responsibility
Theberge, N.(1987).
www12.statcan.gc.ca/census-recensement.
Stebbins,
BC: Douglas
E. (1945).
national
Canada.
quarter
Statistics
politics
Culture and
Teetzel, S. (2009). Sharing the blame: Complicity, conspiracy, and collec-
www.statcan.gc.ca/daily-quotidien/050706/dq050706a-eng.htm.
Statistics
The cultural
Global Studiesin
Team Canada Lacrosse. (2013). 2010 roster. Retrieved from http://www. S. (2008).
Obesity among children
Statistics
hybridity:
Critical left-realism
and transphobia
canada.cfm.
from
Contingent
movement. Identities:
Gross,Z., Paquin, S., & Schachter, K.(2011). Every class,in every school:
statcan.ca/english/census01/products/analytic/companion/etoimm/
tural
work
Leisure
green. David Suzuki Foundation. Retrievedfrom http://www.davidsuzuki.
Taylor,
Press.
Statistics
of
The tour of babble: Sins, secrets and successes inside the
Sykes, H., & McPhail,
in hockey is here, its in
Author. Staggenborg,
Statistics
and
Journal
Review, 10, 132139.
Sykes,
Canadian television,
Canadian Journal of Communication,
Canada. (1986).
Statistics
in leisure
group.
Suzuki, D. (2012, September 27). Get your kids away from the screen and into the
Fernwood.
Statistics
societies.
movement:
and the International
Blindspot
October 16). The future
CIS. Sportsnet.
tural
anti-golf
R. (2012).
Sutherland,
future-of-fighting-in-hockey-is-here-its-in-the-cis/.
Statistics
minority
org/blogs/science-matters/2012/09/get-your-kids-away-from-the-screen-
Communications:
Delivering
making of TSN.
Sport
Discrimination
ethnic
Sutcliffe Group. (2010). Interprovincial
Canadian Journal of Political and Social Theory, 1(3),
Spence,
BC: UBC
2346.
CBC. Vancouver,
23, 11931216.
D.
the
Special
ON: Butterworths.
Africa and the
of Reginald
Committee,
Stursberg,
Psychology of
Statistics Canada.
Violenceand sport. Toronto,
M. (2006).
Spector,
white
J. (2004).
Sugden, J. (2010).
Canadian
The correspondence
Smythe,
E. L. (1998).
by a
Research, 30(1),
NY: The Free
Sport and Exercise, 4(1). 2539.
Smith,
mountains. Vancouver,
Power, 11, 195213.
A. L. (2003).
Statistics
M., & Jackson,
Stolle-McAllister,
N. J. (1962).
Making meaning out of
experienced
Press. Smith,
M. (2012).
Stodolska,
Change and continuity in an era of
Associates. Smelser,
Stoddart,
Press.
Canada:
Television public policy:
global liberalization
Complete guide to sport
Human Kinetics.
letes, sport Tischler,
A.,
providers and immigrants.
& McCaughtry,
masculinities
are threatened.
Leisure, 34(4),
N. (2011).
403420. me:
When boys
Research Quarterly for Exercise and Sport,
82, 3748.
References
PE is not for
355
TMZ
Sports. (2014, from
April
29).
Donald
Sterling
banned for life.
Retrieved
http://www.tmz.com/2014/04/29/nba-commish-adam-silver-
black player.
deciding-donald-sterling-fate-livestream-l-a-clippers/. Total Sports Management. (2013). from
A., & Deri, J. (2010).
of lesbian
Retrieved
48(6),
S. (2008).
Research note:
context.
M.(2011).
Statistics
face
Review for the Sociology of Sport,
Defining
Aboriginal
in a historical
Women and education:
Canada No 89-503-x.
(1978).
Paris,
General
http://www.statcan.gc.
Way of
Conference,
20th
Greater Toronto.
Way and Canadian of
Regina
Retrieved
Session.
and sport.
Volume I:
28. Retrieved from
Resolu-
http://unesdoc.
(2004).
Poverty by postal code: Prepared jointly
Council on Social
Cougars. (2012).
from
The geogra-
by the
United
Development.
Football:
2010. (2006).
Own the Podium2010.
P. A. (1992).
Reclaiming
at the 2010
Winter
Olympic
history.
from
http://
Mises, L. (1934).
the body:
The quest
Patriots
at play:
Analysis of newspaper
mens and womens ice
Games. International
hockey
Journal of Sport Com-
Surveillance
and control
in sport:
whereabouts system. International
Symbols of
moral superiority:
world order, 18001950. morality:
18001940
UK: J. Cape.
Asociologist
Journal
looks
of Sport Policy,
(pp.
Slavery, sport and the chang-
In J. A. Mangan
Middle class
242260).
&J.
masculinity in
Manchester,
UK:
Walvin (Eds.), Britain
and
Manchester
Man-
America, University
(Ed.),
Violence
and aggression in sport.
Canadian sport sociology (pp. 90101).
Wamsley, K. B. (2008).
Sport and social
gender in the
G. (2005).
Wamsley, K. B., & The boxing
Olympic
modern Games. In
Olympics (pp. 103125).
Toronto,
D. (1998).
of Luther
Crossman
ON: Nelson.
Toronto,
ON:
Nelson.
& K. Wamsley (Eds.),
Global
Celebrating
McCarty.
violent
Journal
Black underparticipation
masculinities:
of Sport
History,
25,
in wildland recreation:
Alter-
Leisure Sciences, 1, 175189.
R., & Karen,
M. (1958).
D. (2001).
main event.
Sports Illustrated,
Gender
of gender (pp.
& Society,
1,
1337).
London,
UK:
Fields in vision:
Television sport and cultural transforma-
UK: Routledge.
G. (2005).
The five rings
and the small screen:
Television,
spon-
sorship, and new mediain the Olympic movement.In K. Young & K. Global Olympics: Historical and sociological studies ofthe
modern Games (pp. 161178). B. (Ed.).
(2004).
Wheaton,
B. (2008).
Amsterdam, Netherlands: Elsevier.
Understanding lifestyle sports:
Consumption, iden-
London, UK: Routledge. From the pavement
to the
Against Sewage. In
Tribal play: Subcultural
journeys
beach:
Politics
and iden-
M. Atkinson & K. Young (Eds.),
through sport (pp. 113134).
White, P.,
& Curtis, J. (1990).
Participation
Anglophones and Francophones in hypotheses. International
Bingley,
in
competitive
sport
among
Canada: Testing competing
Review for the Sociology of Sport, 25, 125143.
tion
at different
developmental
stages during
childhood
and youth:
Multivariate analysesusing Canadian national survey data. Sociology of Sport Journal,
29(2),
186209.
Young
& P.
White (Eds.),
Gender,sport and the injury process.In Sport and gender in
Canada (pp.
K.
259278).
Toronto, ON: Oxford University Press. Whitehead,
M. (2001).
The concept
D. (1998).
of physical literacy.
Physical Education
6,127138.
Circuits
of promotion:
balizationofsport.In L. Wenner(Ed.),
Media,
marketing
MediaSport
and the glo-
(pp. 5722). New
NY: Routledge.
Whitson,D.(2001). Hockeyand Canadian identities: Fromfrozenriversto tity:
streams. In
D. Taras
& B. Rasporich (Eds.),
Canadian studies for the 21st century
A passion for iden-
(pp. 217236). Toronto, ON:
Nelson.
reation.
Paper presented
at the
2011
National
Recreation
October2326, LakeLouise, AB. Retrievedfrom
Summit,
http://lin.ca/sites/
M. (1968).
Annual
Review of
New York,
Sons.
The strongest
New York,
manin history:
NY: Bedminster
Louis
Cyr.
Toronto,
Press. ON:
Whyno, S. (2013,
(pp. 219235). NewYork,
Macmillian.
November 11). NHL commissioner getting too
much attention.
Gary Bettman says
National Post. Retrieved
from http://sports.nationalpost.com/2013/11/11/nhl-commissionergary-bettman-says-debate-over-fighting-getting-too-muchattention/?utm_source=dlvr.it&utm_medium=twitter.
Leveling the playing field:
Cambridge
Olympic Games, mega-events and civil
Globalization, environment, resistance
debate over fighting
Press.
Weiler, P. (2000).
societies:
NY: Palgrave
Economy and society.
Weider, B. (1976).
Whitson,D.(2012). Vancouver2010: Thesaga of EagleridgeBluffs.In G. Hayes & J. Karamichas (Eds.),
Sport and society.
The protestant ethic and the spirit of capitalism.
NY: Charles Scribners
fans.
doi:
Whitson,D.(2011). Changingnotionsof publicgoods:Payingfor publicrec-
NY: Elsevier.
Sociology, 27, 187212.
Mitchell
286305.
default/files/attachments/Whitson_Dave%5B1%5D.pdf.
native explanations.
Weber,
G. (1992).
revenue of
419431. Washburne, R. F. (1978).
Washington,
new
Doing gender.
The social construction
York,
Cana-
men and women: The politics
K. Young
New York,
Whitson,
death
In J.
problems. In J. Crossman (Ed.),
dian sport sociology (2nd ed.) (pp. 139157). Wamsley K., & Pfister,
Weber,
Whannel,
Whitson, K. B. (2003).
The
D. (1987).
and Sport Pedagogy,
Press. Wamsley,
May 28).
White, P., & Young, K. (2007).
and
or conundrum?
76(3),
White, P., & McTeer, W.(2012) Socioeconomic status and sport participa-
Thetheory of money and credit. London,
WADA
Walvin, J. (1987). ing
contentious,
and Sport,
UK: Emerald Group Publishing.
Quest, 44(3), 373396.
2, 255274.
liness
Exercise
Sage Publications.
tity in Surfers
munication, 5, 87108.
Waddington, I. (2010).
(Eds),
Wheaton,
Retrieved
space, revisioning
physical education.
J., & Crossman, J. (2012).
at the
The parent-coach/child-athlete
Cordial,
5260.
tity and difference.
coverage of the gold medal contenders in
Von
sport:
for
L. J. (2007,
Wamsley (Eds.),
About us, club
http://reginacougars.com/sports/2012/2/7/
for gender-sensitive Vincent,
S. D. (2004).
youth
Quarterly
tion. London,
www.vancouver2010.com/en/WinterGames/OwnPodium. Vertinsky,
in
West, C., & Zimmerman,
Whannel,
FB_0207124739.aspx?path=football. Vancouver
& Fretwell,
125151.
0011/001140/114032e.pdf.
phy of neighbourhood poverty 19812001.
University
banana at
http://content.usatoday.com/
West,C., & Zimmerman, D.(1991). Doinggender. In J. Lorber & S. Farrell
charter of physical education
October 24November
unesco.org/images/ United
Research
106(22),
Agender-based statistical report.
Retrieved from
The international
Records of the tions.
M. R.,
relationship
Wertheim,
Journal of Sport History, 35(2), 279283.
ca/pub/89-503-x/2010001/article/11542-eng.pdf. UNESCO.
$200 for throwing
10.1080/02701367.2005.10599300.
and sporting Turcotte,
and the changing
120.
Trembanis,
Hockey fan fined
throwing-banana-at-black-player/1#.UpaN6OKMmHs. Weiss,
Transgender inclusion
softball leagues. International
9).
USA Today. Retrieved from
communities/gameon/post/2012/01/hockey-fan-fined-200-for-
So, you want to play pro hockey!
http://www.totalsportsmgmt.com/pro-hockey.
Travers,
Weir, T. (2012, January
MA: Harvard
356
How the law can makesports better for
University Press.
References
Wickberg,
E. B. (1988).
Vol. I, pp. 415417).
Chinese. In
The Canadian
Encyclopedia (2nd
Edmonton, AB: Hurtig Publishers.
ed.,
Wiersma, L. D., & Fifer, challenges
sented at the
meeting for the
ogy, Vancouver, Williams, J. (1994). satellite
The local
television.
Canadian
genderin
R.
(pp. 5370).
Wilson, B. (2007).
Selective
hockey,
and
ON:
New
ON: Oxford University
University
media, social
Reconsidering
identity.
In
D.
Hockey, culture, of Toronto
Power shift?
Press.
century.
Sport
&
Woolcock,
A sociological
Wuest, D. A.,
Press.
In
University
on sport,
D. Andrews
Politics, consumption,
Yalnizyan,
& Bucher,
and
Press.
Our Olympic story.
and economic
Retrieved from
development:
policy framework.
C. A. (2003).
ed.) St. Louis,
A.(2010).
http://
Toward a
Theory and Society,
27,
Foundations
of physical education and
MI: McGraw-Hill.
Therise of Canadas richest 1%. Ottawa,
tre for Policy
ON:
Young,
Malden,
& Sparks,
R. (1999).
Alternatives.
Retrieved from
A. J. (1988).
als on
Canadian
youth.
Young,
Neo-liberalism, the internet,
Young,
cultures.
(Eds.),
MA: Blackwell
Publishing.
of black athlete of
ON: Canadian Cen-
http://www.policyalternatives.
Press.
D. Andrews and late
A sport history
York, Young,
risk, and liability
(Ed.),
commercials,
19(1),
24(4),
Michael Jordan Inc.:
&
Zirin,
in
malesports
culture.
Sociol-
In J. Coakley London,
to sports
process. In
crime:
& E. Dunning (Eds.), UK: Sage. Aspects of violence,
M. Gatz, M. A. Messner, &
(Eds.), Paradoxes of youth andsport (pp. 207224).
New
University of New York Press.
White, P. (1995). of elite
Sport,
physical
women athletes.
danger, and injury:
Journal of Sport
The
& Social Issues,
4561.
D. (2005).
Whats
States. Chicago, IL:
and
modern America (pp. 217255).
K.,
violence
and gender in the sports
experiences
media portray-
Vol. 2.
10, 373396.
From sports
NY: State
of Nova Scotia:
Press.
Sport and violence.
S.J. Ball-Rokeach
A companion to
Communication,
Michael Jordan, sneaker In
K. (2000).
law,
Zirin,
media culture,
Violence,
Young, K. (2002).
modernization, and the
589627. Wilson, B., & Sparks, R. (2001).
K. (1993).
ogy of Sport Journal,
26(1), 155181.
& B. Carrington
Canadian Journal
Beyond heroes:
NS: Lancelot
Handbook of sports studies (pp. 382407).
Sport, ecological
Impacts
neu-
and culture (pp. 90108).
Sociology of Sport Journal,
D. Andrews
carbon
& M. Silk (Eds.),
Press.
Digital activism:
B. (2013).
NY: SUNY
Utopian moments in the 20th
University
Social capital
synthesis
sport (42nd
Sociology of Sport
perspective. Toronto,
Reflections
modernization.
Wilson, B.,
youth
USA. (n.d.),
M. (1998).
Hantsport,
for development.
Corporate sport,
CT: Yale
ca/publications/reports/rise-canadas-richest-1. & peace:
PA: Temple
In
Communica-
151208.
movements, and global sport studies:
Growth and nature:
sport (pp. 129142).
of Canadian
Canadian Journal of
Dreams of peace and freedom:
theoretical
Press.
Wilson, B., & Millington,
p. B5.
economy
www.wsjusa.com/olympic-inclusion/.
and rave into the
University
wants Redskins renamed,
Towards a political
and regulation.
New Haven,
Womens Ski Jumping
links
Whitson
Inter-
20(1), 81106.
Winter, J. (2006).
Press.
of sport.
D. (1995).
telecommunications
457477.
Wilson, B., & Hayhurst, L. (2009).
Albany,
May 23). Senate
Winseck,
and commerce
Subcultures, youth,
moment and the sociology
Sport and neo-liberalism:
Canadian
Windsor Star. (2014,
tion, masculin-
The paradox of social class and sports involvement.
national Review for the Sociology of Sport, 37, 516.
11, 376397.
QC: McGill-Queens
and ecological
environment.
ice:
Fight, flight, or chill: Montreal,
Wilson, B. (2012b).
and sport
Wilson, T. (2002).
English soccer and the rise of
Canadian
Toronto,
University
Philadelphia,
Paper pre-
The marketing of black
Toronto,
Artificial
24(4),
Oxford
The joys,
parents.
memory in a global culture:
(Eds.),
Wilson, B. (2012a).
trality,
and the global in
pose incorporated:
A revolutionary Journal,
to speak:
NBA coverage. In P. White & K. Young (Eds.), Sport and
Wilson, B. (2006a). 21st century.
turn sport
of Applied Sport Psychol-
Sociology of Sport Journal,
youth,
Gruneau
their
Advancement
Canada (pp. 232253).
Wilson, B.(2006). between
Its
of youth
BC.
Wilson, B. (1999). Cool ity in
A. M. (2005).
and recommendations
D. (2013,
my name, fool? Haymarket
Sport and resistance in the
August 30). The NFL concussion
The Nation. Retrieved from
deal:
Rotten from
http://www.thenation.com/blog/175977/
nfl-concussion-deal-rotten-all-sides#.
References
United
Books.
357
all sides.
Index 1908 Olympic Games, 57 1924 Winter Olympics, 124
Adjusted graduation gap (AGG), Age, 3
1928 Summer Olympic Games,38,
Agency, 14
59, 61 1936 Summer
Aggression, 186 external factors influencing,
Olympic
Games, 259
1968 Summer Olympic 177, 258
222
1972 Summit Series, 45, 61, 64, 238,
Ahmad,
247, 262 1974 Summit Series, 247
Alcohol use, 174 Alienation, 29, 30
Booth, D.,23, 99 Borowy, J., 24
Autor, D., 70
Bosman, Jean-Marc,
Baby boomers, Badminton,
N., 326, 327
309
Bouchard, Eugenier, 144 Boudarbat, B., 69
B
186187 Ahluwalia, Gurdeep, 248
Games, 8,
Autoethnography, 169, 170171 Autonomous social capital, 96
Bourdieu, Pierre, 76, 77, 78, 79, 80, 81, 82, 83
2 85, 96
Bourke, S., 215
Baggataway (lacrosse), 46 Bailey,
Donovan,
Boxing, 49, 54, 57, 183, 184, 188 Boycoff, J., 260
64
Games, 61,
All-Aboriginal
sport system, 109, 110
Ballmer, Steve, 286
Boyle, S., 331
247, 260, 274, 278, 296 1980 Summer Olympic Games, 260
All-American 279
Football
Balsillie,
Boys and Girls Clubs of Canada, 145 Brackenbridge, C. H., 155
1984 Summer Olympic 260, 297
Allardyce, J., 316 Alpine skiing, 9
1976 Summer
1988 Summer 1988
Olympic
Games, 15,
Olympic Games, 43, 262
Winter Olympic 247, 278
Games, 61,
1992 Summer Olympic Games, 43 1994 Winter Olympic Games, 328 1996 Summer Olympic Games, 64
Amateur
Conference,
Jim,
Bandura,
A., 186
Bannerji, Barnes,
Athletic
286
Himani, 39
Bradley, J., 336 Branch, J., 191, 192
J., 263
Barney, R. K., 306
Association of
jumpers,
Branch, T., 221
Canada, 101 Amateur Athletic Union of
BASE
Canada, 101 Amateur rule, 30 Amateurism, 5455,
Basketball, 13, 85, 91, 144, 220
Baseball,
295
163, 170,
325
Brashear, Donald, 190 Bratt, Duane, 205
13, 51, 52, 56, 85
Bassett, John,
236
Baumgartner,
Felix,
2000 Summer Olympics, 90 2002 Winter Olympic Games, 295
call for an end to, 60 contesting, 56
BCE Inc. (prev.
2004 National
discrimination
230,
Braunsdorf, D., 172 Bread Not Circuses, 296 Brenner, J. S., 152
178
CTVglobemedia),
232, 233,
239
Breton, R., 94 Brissette, C., 81
Beacom, 330
British colonizers, 4748
Participation in Sport, 81 2004 Summer Olympic Games, 296
elitism of, 55, 56 entrepreneurs and, 5657
Beal,
British Journal of Medicine, 333 British North America
2006 Winter Olympic Games,191, 295 2008 Summer Olympic Games, 125,
equality of competition in, 55 exclusion concept in, 55
Bean, D. P., 127
racial discrimination
Beckham,
Household Survey on
260, 295 2010
B., 326, 327
Beamish,
Rob, 23, 25, 27, 30, 64, 72
Becket,
and, 100101
H.
(BNA), 47 mail delivery in, 51
W., 54 David,
244,
Winter Olympic Games, 2, 9, 15, 24, 64, 85, 124, 176, 177, 230,
Amber, David, 248 American Academy of Pediatrics, 152
Bedecki, T., 39, 262
240, 245, 247, 260, 268, 274,
American
Belak,
(NHS), 92 2012 Canadian Athlete of the Year, 4 2012 Summer
Olympic
peoples,
culture
American revolution,
21
of, 46
Sports/Recreation
Association of BC, 108 Active Active
Healthy play,
Kids
Canada,
140
205
Actively Engaged: A Policy on Sport for Women and
Girls,
Adams,
Mary Louise,
38, 105, 116,
127
358
Burnet, J. R., 96, 97
Biological determinism,
(1978),
Butryn, T., 175 Butsch, R., 303
8
54
C
Michael, 247
Bilodeau,
Alexandre,
9, 85
Cablinsian, 100
119120
Cahn,
Biotechnology,
40
191, 192, 193,
Burstyn, V., 188, 246, 248 Butcher, J., 151
16
Ten Symposium
Billiards,
sport
Dr. Thomas, 49 Bruce,
Beyond a Boundary,
Big
Arjun, 327 Games,
Gary, 190, 192, 294
and
ethical
innovation
195
dilemmas
from
Susan
Caldwell,
K., 123, 132
Spencer,
Birrell,
S., 131
Calvin,
Blanket
toss,
Campbell,
Blishen scores, 71, 72
Campbell,
Athlete Assistance Program (AAP), 258, 271272
Bloom,
M., 81, 82, 83, 85
Canada
Blumer,
Herbert, 31
Canada Games, 61
Athletes CAN, 271
Board
Aucoin,
M., 166, 325, 326,
University P., 323
46
of Broadcast (BBG),
Athletes, defining oneself as, 172 Sport (AUS),
215
Bompa,
Tutor,
John,
social
Governors
Canada
236
27
Cassie, 246
Clarence, 199, 235
Basketball,
220
stratification
in,
71
Post, 264
Canada Soccer, 220
Bobsleigh, 10 327, 331
236
Calisthenics, 209
in, 333334
Asian Games, 125 Assimilation theory, 93 Associated Press, 101, 107
Atlantic
Adams, Carly, 124, 168
Best, C., 102
Billig,
Winter
Bucher, C. A., 149 Burnaby Now, 102
190, 191
Anglophones, 8, 235 Anti-racism, 259260
Atkinson,
272
Ross,190, 195 Todd, 172,
Bhabha, H. K., 92, 95
Arthur,
subtle racism in sports for, 104 Aboriginal
Bryant, Kobe, 315 Brym, R. J., 12
158
Ancient Olympic Games, 183, 339 Anderssen, E., 158 Andrews, D., 301, 323, 328
Arnold,
3940
Paul,
Bertuzzi,
W.,322
Brownrigg, Michelle, 140 Brunson, Doyle, 10
298
Bettman,
Arctic
see also First Nations peoples;
Bernardo,
30
Bryant, J. E., 141
Irving,
American Warof Independence, 48 Ammirante, Julian, 309, 311, 313, 315
Appadurdai,
212213
Brown,
T., 164, 165, 167
Games, 330
and youth,
events,
Bereska,
War,50
Bernstein,
4647
103
Berger, I., 81
physical
peoples
Rayane,
American
109
Inuit
Benatti,
North America Act (1867),
60, 100 Brock, D., 164 Brohm, Jean-Marie, Brooks, E., 70
Benedict, J. R., 194
physical activities,
sporting
R., 312
militia return to, 50 Sabbath restrictions in, 48 sport as preserve of maleelite, 50 British
2
Bellamy,
MLB), 279
prior to contact,
education
Canada,
American Basketball Association (ABA), 279 Civil
104
Bell, Donald, 151
American League (of American Press, 248
8
culture
Bell
W., 5758,
D. G., 213
Games, 23
legalized racism and, 100 nomadic
George
311, 313, 315
Wade,192, 193, 244
Berlin,
44, 296 Winter Paralympic
Aboriginal
Dr.
American Football League (AFL), 279 American Heart Association, 332
Games, 10,
Olympic
Beers,
Belcher,
and Dance, 149
Marathon, 2
2016 Summer
Health,
American Alliance for Health, Physical Education, Recreation
Games, 65,
230, 240, 295 2013 Goodlife Fitness Toronto 2014 Gay Games,3 2014 Winter Olympic
Alliance for
Physical Education and Recreation, 8
278, 295, 335 2011 National Household Survey
2014
in, 55
Canada
149
Bonspiel (curling
tournament),
Boogaard,
191,
Derek,
51
192, 193, 244
West Universities
Athletics (CWUAA),
Association 215
Canada, colonization,
Canadian Radio-television Telecommunications
15
declining involvement
and
Commission (CRTC),
in sport, 8182
233, 238
issue
of alienation
Chinese migrants, 100
issue
of change
head tax and, 100 Chiswick, B. R., 94, 95
issue
differences in sport organization and structure, 89
Canadian Rugby Football (CRFU), 279
distinctions
Canadian Soccer Association, 130
Chronic traumatic
in, 6769
Canadian Soccer Federation, 107 Canadian Sport Centres, 139
(CTE), 191 Clark, B., 337
in, 9495
Canadian Sport for Life (CS4L), 258, 268, 270
between
and, 8 economic inequality elite 1% in, 6869 ethnic communities
United States
Union
Childhood, 138 Childrens Fitness Tax Credit, 274
139,
criticisms
of, 31 in sport within
organizations,
encephalopathy
of sports
struggle,
29
contribution
sport,
Clarke, J., 1783 Classconflict, 2829
29
Connell, R. A., 16 Connell,
in France in 1840s and 1850s, 74
R.
W., 120, 121
immigration in compared to States, 92
2002), 267268, 269 Canadian Sport Policy (2012) (CSP
ClassStructure of the Advanced Societies, The, 78
Contract bridge, 10
2012), 268, 269, 269f Canadian Sport Policy (CSP), 258 Canadian Sport Policy and Sport
Class, as basis for social power, 79 community as conceptual
Cook, Myrtle, 38
Canadas Policy on Aboriginal Peoples Participation (2002), 110
public service broadcasting in, 235, 241
J., 175
Contribution
to sport,
Cooke,
Matt, 191
Cooky,
Cheryl,
contemporary
Cosentino,
Corlett,
theories of social
J., 207
Canadian Womens Intercollegiate Athletic Union (CWIAU), 215
inequality and, 7677 definition of, 74
Costello,
Canadianness, 39, 105 Cantelon, Hart, 242, 247, 309, 310, 326
divided interests within, 75 fragmentation as conceptual
Cote,J., 142
Capital,
Canadian Amateur Athletic Association (CAAA), Canadian Amateur
55
role of state in, 263
Hockey
Advancement of Women and Sport and Physical Activity (CAAWS),
132, 245, 258,
267, 272 Canadian Broadcasting
Corporation
(CBC), 8, 230, 232, 234, 235, 236, 237, 264 sports programming on, 236, 237, 238 Canadian Centre for Drug-Free Sport, 272 Canadian Centre for Ethics in
Sport
(CCES), 125, 126, 140, 149, 155, 156, 217218, 258, 262, 273
Critical
race studies,
Carnegie, Herb, 101, 248
property and, 76
Critical
sensitivity,
Carnes, M. C., 188 Carrington, B., 328
social inequality and, 7374 solidarity aspect of, 74
Critical theories,
Cartels, 280281 anti-trust laws and, 281282 reasons for success of, 280281
sport participation connection to, 82 status groups as conceptual development in, 75, 76
Catharsis, 185, 186, 190 Catherwood, Ethel, 59
Coachs Corner, 243, 244, 246 Coakley, J., 99, 147, 152, 171, 172, 187, 194, 197, 199, 337, 338
35
David,
Cold
267
Tim, 205
Harvey, Jean, 257 Humphreys, Brad R., 277 Lander, Moshe, 277 Laurendeau, Jason, 163
ethnic,
agreement
bargaining,
4748
by the
French,
47
conflicts
Ritchie, Ian, 19 Scherer, Jay, 1, 138, 230 Tirone, Susan, 90
of social
change,
Manifesto,
321, 322
The, 26, 37, 75
bases of power
Bureau, 281
Competition
equality,
Wilson, Brian, 320
Conacher,
Lionel,
198
globalization,
and, 82 316 313314
Cultural pluralism, 92 Cultural
studies,
34
(physical
present,
65
education),
210
problems
57
Concussions, 153, 191
Canadian Paediatric Society, 152 Canadian Policy Against Doping in
Cheating, 173 Cherry, Don, 100, 122, 193, 243, 244
Conference Board of Canada, 67,
Child labour,
Conflict
1867,
9, 43, 52
209211
Charbonneau, L., 217 Charlesworth, H., 196
with
multi-activity,
210211 Curry,
48
T. J., 194
Curtis, J., 72, 223, 224 Cusimano,
68, 81
class conflict
Cultural
Curriculum
Competition
obesity, 147148
exemption,
Curling,
Wheeler, Ralph E., 138 Whitson, David, 300
Childhood
199
80
Cultural
75
Canadian Olympic Committee (COC), 85, 258, 266
Canadian Press, 106, 111
197
capital,
13
within,
sensitivity,
theory,
as
Culture of disrespect for women, 194
Community, 75 Comparative
19, 21
in,
theory,
sport participation
technologies,
303
Confederation,
in,
as theme
Cultural
Communication
197
hooliganism
Cuban, Mark, 286
20, 29
academic achievement and, 223 challenges of NCAA, 219220 drug-testing policies, 218
Sport, 270, 272
197
or class conflict
Hockey League, The, 101
worldwide audience and, 311312
Media Guild, 234
197
factors
value-added
as driver
Canadian
racial
sense,
Communist
theme
social and; psychological societal
47
British,
302,
of sport
theory,
see also Soccer
Morrow, Don, 43 Paraschak, Victoria, 90
physical education in, 206 sport funding model, 221222
theory,
precipitating
291292
by the
Colored
138
175176,
theme in, 198199
T., 174
Common
nature
convergence
291
Colonization,
1, 122, 123,
emergent norm theory,
(CBA),
Bratt, Duane, 205 Crossman, Jane, 1, 138
Jane,
Crowd disorder (violence),
contagion 273
bargaining
Collins,
Fletcher,
Crossman,
in, 199
Cole, C., 176
Collective
2, 9, 24, 64, 79, 244 9, 49
celebratory
324
S., 173
Beamish, Bob, 64
Sidney,
197198 323,
War, 61, 174,
Collective
34, 3738
Crosset, T. W., 194
Cohen, G., 74 Cohen,
3334
34
studies,
Cross-country,
Lorenz, Stacy L., 183
215
studies,
Crosby,
Learning, 211
S., 150
theories,
gender studies, 34
Canadian Interuniversity Sport (CIS), 3, 133, 215, 216, 217, 218, 219
Union (CIAU),
cultural feminist
Co-operative
Chapter authors, Adams, Mary Louise, 116
Canadian Hockey League, 219 Canadian Interuniversity Athletic
to conflict
Casey,Jack, 84
Coburn,
34, 3940 1314
critical, race studies, 34, 3940
subjective aspect of, 74, 81 Clay, Bryan, 10
272 Canadian Fitness and Lifestyle Research
133, 134, 140, 146, 267, 268, 269f, 270f, 272
compared
Carter, Don, 244 Carter, T., 301
Centre for Health Promotion, Chan, Patrick, 121
Canadian Heritage, 3, 81, 82, 85, 109,
93
War, 50
Cobley,
and
S., 260
Canada,
C., 173
Canadian Constitution, 266 Canadian Council of Sports Medicine,
4,
Cricket
aspect of, 74, 81
Critcher,
Studies (CCCS),
Canadian Football League (CFL), 123, 218, 279, 282, 293
Courchesne-ONeill,
objective
Medicine
Fitness, 153
Crimean
Centersfor Disease Control, 148 Centre for Contemporary Cultural
139, 145
integration of objective and subjective aspects of, 81
political party power as conceptual development in, 75, 76
Association (CCAA), 126 Canadian Community Health
Institute (CFLRI),
on Sport
Carlos, John, 8, 177, 258 Carlson, T. B., 212
Cavanaugh, R., 236 CBC News, 331 CBC Sports, 122, 129
104
D., 211
Council
Cricket, 16, 49, 51, 52, 93
219
Canadian Charter of Rights and Freedoms, 15, 102103, 110, 263 Canadian Collegiate Athletic
Survey, 148
Cothran,
ownership of means of production and, 76
Cardwell, M., 221 Carleton University,
Federation, 54 Canadian Association for the
F., 55, 58, 100, 101,
Murray, 85
Cote, J., 150
development in, 75, 76
26, 74
Capitalism, 21, 25, 26, 27, 74 functions of state in, 263
122, 245
Cool pose in sport, 108
unique elements in life and culture in, 9
Oarsmen, 55
234
development in, 75 complex divisions within, 79
Canadian
of
Association, 54
Connor,
slavery in, 99
winter sports in, 9 Canadian Amateur Association
Wheelmens
class
religious ideas base of, 28
Canadian Sport Policy (2002) (CSP
immigration to, 9496 neoliberal erain, 239 professional sport in, 278280
to
29
growing disparity of wealth in, 68 United
of, 30
sporting
M., 153
2526
Cycling,
base of, 28
Cyr, Louis, 58
Index
359
5253,
58, 85,
144
Dda Vinci, Leonardo, 47 Dahrendorf, R., 75 Dallaire, C.,95
Darling-Hammond,
Davies, N., 213 Davis, Kingsley, 25 Davis, N. W., 334
Ethnic sports associations, 9697 as expression of group identity,
Drug use, 34, 7, 173 complexities of, 174
assupportive environment, Ethnicity theory, 93, 94
enhancers state-sponsored,
Davis-Moore theory, 25 de Champlain, Samuel, 47
Ethnicity,
173
steroids, 55 Dryden, Ken, 186, 190 Dubin Inquiry, 262, 265, 272
Pierre, 20, 30, 120,
Football, 57
Drolet, D., 219 Drug testing, 175
see also Doping; Performance
49, 85, 144, 188,
309310 ethnic minorities and, 97
race and, 103104
Drogba, Didier, 309
L., 213
Football (soccer),
and, 9899
sport and, 9697 Ethnic relations,
Downhill skiing, 85 Draper, H., 74
Darnell, S., 260, 325, 330 Darwin, Charles, 22, 99
de Coubertin,
discrimination
Dowbiggin, 248
Daniels, D. B., 122 Danylchuk, K. E., 223
Foer, Franklin, 300, 301, 306, 307, 315, 316
Ethnic enclaves, 94 Ethnic minority people, 93
Dos Santos, T., 74 Douglas, F., 67
97
97
Forbes magazine, 286 Fortin, N., 67, 68, 69f, 70 Foster, J. B., 337 Foucauldian perspective, Foucault,
9095
concept of, 9192 diversity theories, 9293
Four-dimensional Fox hunting, 50
hegemonic theory of, 9293 immigration and, 92 poverty and, 9798
Francis, N. R., 207, 208 Francophones, 8, 235 Franklin, Jermain, 248
framework,
259, 295 Deacon, James, 153
Dubin, C. L., 262 Dublin Inquiry, 167
sport and, 99 Ethnocentric distortion,
Deakin, J. M., 150 Decathlon, 10
Duffy, A., 5
Ethnoscapes, 327
Free agency, 283
Duhatschek, E., 192 Dumaresq, Michelle, 126
sporting, 327 Euro-Canadians, 8
Freestyle skiing, 10 French colonizers, 47
Duncan, Margaret Carlisle, 122, 334 Dunning, Eric, 174, 198, 199
Eurocentric majority, 94 European Court of Justice, 309
French revolution, 21 Fretwell, S. D., 154
Duquette, G., 247
European Renaissance, 47
Frey, J. H., 147, 151
Durant, W.,45 Durkheim, Emile,
European Union (EU), 302, 305
Frideres, J. S., 102 Friedman, Thomas, 300
Deficit perspective,
109
Definition of sport, importance of organizational and technical aspects component of, 10 standardized and formalized rules component of, 10 Delocalization, 313314 Demers, G., 129
Early childhood
Deutschmann, L., 163, 165, 170, 176 Deviance, 163166 associal construction, 164, 165 cheating and, 173 conceptualizing, 165 and contested, 170
crowd disorder, 175176 definitions of, 165166 disabled bodies and, 169 off the playing field, 175177, 197198 171172
otherness and, 165, 166167 risk sports and, 177178 social control
and, 169170
sport-related, 166 subjectivist analyses of, 165 techniques of rationalization, tolerable, 166
sport facilities,
205
Eberts, M., 271
F
Change,321
technology factor in, 6970 temporary workers factor in, 70, 71
games), 289290, Fantasy leagues, 334 football,
290f
Fawcett, B., 314, 315 Federation Internationale
Grads), 13, 5859, Edmonton Eskimos, 13 Edmonton Oilers, 13
Association (FIFA), 107, 231, 258, 280, 306, 311 Femininity, 117118, 128 biological determinism in sport, 127128
de Football
and, 119
Galeano, Eduardo, 303, 307 Gambling, 4, 49 Game Planners, The: Transforming Canadas Sport System, 29 Garrett, R., 214 Gay people, 118 gender norms and, 118 in sport, 129130 Geiger, N., 219, 223, 224 Gender studies, 34 Gender, 3, 116 concept, 117
Feminism, 131
Edwards, L., 176
G
Games ethic, 209
2
Edmonton Commercial Graduates basketball team (Edmonton
perspectives on sport, 132133 womens sport and, 130131
EGALE, 122 Einstein, Albert, 20
women and, 168
Fur traders, 47, 53 Future, The: Six Drivers of Global
Fair Play Canada, 272 Fairness, 65 Fan cost index (FCI) (for professional
65
W., 97, 323, 324, 330
Frye, Marilyn, 131 Fullinwider, R. K., 151
minimum wagefactor in, 70 recessions leading to lower salaries factor in, 69
unionization factor in, 70
205
Franks, C. E. S., 39, 262 Fraser-Thomas, J., 142
Frisby,
2223
Fainaru, S., 187, 191, 200 Fainaru-Wada, M., 187, 191, 200
Economic capital, 80 Economic inequality, 6970
Education, 2, 3 Edwards, Harry, 339 163
174,
Exercise and Health, 8 Exploitation of athletes, 3
E
Denny, H., 176 Desrochers, D. M., 221
on playing field,
Evolutionary theory,
Dyson, B., 211
Denis, Claude, 92, 104
contextual
22, 23, 26
101
168
Michel, 34, 35, 36, 37
diversity in sport, 126127 doing, 107
Deviantization, 168 Digital era, 250252
Eitzen, D. S., 141, 146, 154, 158, 159, 186, 320
Feminist studies, 34, 3738 Fencing, 54
equality in sport, 132134 heroic status and, 5859
Dimeo, P., 173
EKOS Research Associates, 72
Festina
links to sex, 118
Dimmick, Michael, 157 Disabilities, 169
Embedded social capital, 96 Engels, Friedrich, 26, 37, 74, 75, 785
Fetisov, Viacheslav, 308 Feudalism, 26, 74
Discriminatory practices, 3, 9899 amateurism and, 55
affair,
172
rules in sport, 128129 social construction of, 119 women with disabilities,
131
Engh, F., 151
Fifer, A. M., 154
Diversity, 9293
English Premier League (EPL), 312 Ennis, C. D., 209, 210, 211
Figler, S. K., 152 Figure skating, 121, 144
Genel, M., 125 General Social Survey (GSS),
Djokovic, Novak, 9 Dodd, Mike, 10
Enright, E., 212 Entertainment and Sports
asfeminine sport, 127 Financescapes, 327
133, 140 Genetically Modified Athletes, 333
First Nations peoples, 90
Geographic location,
Doing gender, 107 Doing race, 107108 acting
white,
Programming
108
cool pose, 108 selling
out,
108
Dollard, J., 196 Donnelly,
Michelle
Network (ESPN),
as earliest game players, 4647 hockey (ice) and, 105
10, 122, 300, 312 Environmentalism, 321
K., 125,
133, 216
Donnelly, P., 274, 275, 301, 324, 331,
as driver of social change, 322 sport and, 334336 Epp, R.,304
see also Aboriginal peoples; Inuit peoples Fishing, 48
Giddens, Anthony, 5, 75, 76, 77, 78, 79, 80, 81, 84, 262, 264 Gilbert, R., 232, 249
Equality of competition, steroid use and, 55
Fitness and Amateur Sport Act (FASA) (1961), 61
Gill, R., 121 Gillespie, G., 48
55
Fitness boom, 132
Gillet, J., 193
Equality of opportunity, 6566 Equestrian steeplechase, 49
Fleming, Reggie, 191 Fleming, Sir Sandford, 51
Gilliam, Joe, 102 Gillis, C., 190, 192
Doob, L., 186 Doping, 206
Equipment, evolution in, 5253
Fletcher, Tim, 205, 214 Fleury, Theoren, 157
Gillmor, D., 84 Gini index, 67
Equality of condition,
uniformity
gene, 333334
360
Index
6566
(standardization)
Ericsson, K. A., 150
in university sport, 217218
3
Getz, M.,221 Gibbons, S. L., 210
Donnelly, Peter, 31, 99, 125, 133, 147, 152, 157, 178
337, 338
81,
of, 52
Flood, Curt, 283
for disposable income,
Florida,
for
R., 70
market income,
67
67
Girl and the Game, The: A History of Womens Sport in Canada, 37 Girl Guides, 145 Giulianotti, R., 301 Gladwell, M., 191
foreign
Glazer,
funding
Glenday,
D., 5
safeguard
and, 309310
social
marketing of sports and, 312313 mediascapes process, 327 migration of professional athletes, policies and tensions,
330331
intervention
300305
changes and, 332333 327
of, 304305
Green
Green,
103,
338
57
Governance, 322323 change,
322323
and, 322323
public management forms of, 323 Government, bureaucracy in sport by, 275 direct action tools for policy
140, 146, 147,
185, 186,
144, 209
reason
in sport, 265
for
Immigration, between 1900 and 1920, 56 British (18511861), 52
Athlete
ethnicity and, 92 immersion, 95 poverty and, 97 recent trends, 9596 second- and third-generation,
of, 13
In
of, 4445
Industrial
Hockey
(ice),
37, 38, 53, 131, 132, 138, 142, 184, 249, 337
2, 9, 52, 55,
gender, 3
56, 85, 144
as class-based sport, 8384 Canadian dominance in Winter
Injuries, concussion, 4 Institute for
Hall, Rob, 178 Hall, S., 168, 173 Handbook of Physical Education, 206
Hannigan, John, 336 Hare and hounds, 49
in,
Communication,8 International Monetary Fund (IMF),
104105 157
unwritten code offighting in, 190194 women
and,
Diversity and Ethics in
International Association of Athletics Federations (IAAF), 125, 167 International Journal of Sport
manliness and, 33 myths, 20 abuse in,
66
Sport (prev. The Centre for the Study of Sport in Society), 106
fighting in, 188190
sexual
21, 50
5051
Inequality of condition, Ingham, Alan, 24, 26
93
racism
Revolution,
Industrialization, Inequalities, 3
259, 321
(field),
trends in, 9495 Whose Honor?, 105
Income disparity, 67 Indian Act (1876), 100
and
176
Hockey
95
sports and, 98
as method ofinquiry about the past,45 45
330
Igali, Daniel, 90 Iginla, Jarome, 105
Olympics, 61 equipment costs for, 83
Hanlan, Ned, 58 Hannerz, U., 303, 304
264
H., 122, 245
High-performance sport, 4, 258 Historical sensitivity, 1213
Adolf,
116, 129
Ideoscapes, 327 Idle No More movement, 1415, Ifedi, F., 81
118
High Performance
HIV/AIDS,
130
Ideology, 1516 the medias role, 241242
Hickey, C., 210 Hierarchy of social problems, 166
Hitler,
R., 92 Carol,
Ice Skating, 52
the past vs., 44 263
Habitus, 77, 78, 79, 80, 85 Halas,Joannie, 212, 213 Hall, Ann, 3, 4, 5, 10, 11, 13, 16, 35,
E. J., 188
Hutchison,
I
perspective in, 45 Marxist perspective, 45
L., 234
48
Hutchins, B., 250, 251, 334
345
facts and, 44 importance of objectivity
J., 70
127
R., 277
Hypermasculinity,
118
importance
Brad
G., 67
Hunting,
58
Robin
definitions
H
Goos, M., 70 Gore, Al, 321, 322, 329
165,
Heteronormativity,
bias in,
190, 193, 234, 242, 247, 261, 278 Gymnastics,
Golf, 52, 85 Goodell, Roger, 106
development
36
Gruneau, Richard, 14, 15, 20, 29, 71,
Goldlust, J., 232, 242, 243
intervention
Alliance,
of Seven (G7),
Hunter,
120121
10, 64
working-class,
49 2, 205
Hunt, T., 173
History,
K., 208
Grossberg,
of, 2930
C., 70
implementation,
60, 69, 261
Hockey League, 84
Green, D., 67, 70, 214
Group
of social
(1930s),
Gregory, A.J., 153
Goldberg, Alain, 245
economic
Sports
Humphreys,
173
Paul,
Thomas, kinetics,
Huynh,
of, 1516,
302
Human Rights Code(Ontario),
of
Development in Canada agreement (1985), 266, 273
L., 156
Greenpeace,
E., 176
neoliberalism
222
A., 222
Greenberg,
Glorification of violence, 4 Goal-rational action, 28
as driver
policy,
Green, Tim, 196
Globeand Mail, 9, 10, 105, 122, 152, 239
George,
294
Grant, P., 316 Depression
Human
Heroesin sport, 5758 women, 5859
M., 81, 82, 83, 85
Greaves,
and, 328
process,
Goulding,
sports,
(GPA),
Hughes,
303
Hextrum, averages
153
sports-media complex and, 244 Hegemony,
Heterosexuality,
Greater Toronto
technoscapes
Gorn,
6061
M., 71
Grant,
Great
technological
Goldin,
professional
Grasgreen,
311312 racism in sport and, 310
in sport
legislation,
Gramsci, Antonio, 15, 16, 34
Olympic Games and, 306
Committee,
200
Bay Company,
Hughes, R., 171, 172
Hernandez, t.,
259260
political process of, 301, 302303 professional sports leagues and,
consequences
265
of
287
P., 191,
Hudsons
Henslin, J. M., 5 Henwood, K., 121
for
in sport,
218219
Hegemonic masculinity,
Henderson,
sport participation andfunding for, 274
Grade point
sport,
Canada, 332 Hedger, Jennifer, 246
theory
use of sport for international
nongovernmental organizations (NGOs) and, 329330
Goffman,
reason
and fitness
Grabell,
Hruby,
206
manufacturing,
social policies and sport, 266 sport
Hazing,
cultural,
265
in sport, 265
intervention
300
uneven development
reason for
reason for
social inclusion
305306
and,
order
in sport,
cohesion
subsidizing
world order from,
sport in the future
through
see also State, The
ideoscapes process, 327
sport
for intervention
public
intervention
financescapes process, 327
Ryan,
C. D., 188
Heart and Stroke Foundation
267268
World:
Theory
Globalization, 300
Medicine
266267
Explains the
An (Unlikely)
Health-Based Fitness, 211 Healthy Living Unit, 267, 275
in sport, 265
of nationalism
How Soccer
Howell,
265
for
272
W.,246
Howard,
university
330
49, 50, 55
Program,
Houston,
Health Active Living and Sports
sport, 262
327
world order from,
reason
for sport,
promotion
of, 301302
process,
field
in sport,
products, 303304
new sporting
and,
in sport,
fitness
intervention policy
Horseracing,
257, 331
193
R., 173
Hayes, G.,330 Hayhurst, L., 324, 325, 330 in
policy framework
and, 313314
306308 neoliberalist
sport
273274
intervention
process of, 301, 303304,
(soccer)
257258
national prestige reason for
313314 cultural variations and, 329
new
Hawkins, N., 95
118, 122, 129,
J., 260, 311, 315,
Hosting 5, 199, 247,
257
in sport, 60, 261262
physical
239, 260, 263,
Hasselbeck, Matt, 195 Hastie, P. A., 208, 213
264
in sport,
of, 301302
football
Harvey, Jean,
involvement
in,
consumerism, 313314 corporatized cultures and, 328329
ethnoscapes
Harvey, J., 234, 238,
intervention
302, 303, 311312
process
athletes and,
M. J., 122
Horbury,
D., 68, 322
to sports
mass participation technologies
entertainment
Horne,
265
Holman,
266, 324
organizations,
327328
economic
Harvey,
implementation,
of child labour in, 70
delocalization
257258
action tools for; policy
interrelationship
Globalization, 9, 12, 22, 263 as driver of social change, 321, 322,
cultural
hooks, bell, 131
in sport,
for sports,
indirect
Global labour market, 307309 Global South,
concept
Harris, James, 102 Harris, Josh, 286
273274
336
communication
Homophobia,
policy reason for
high-performance
Global Forum for Sport and
exploitation
Harper, Stephen, 274
cost-sharing
60
intervention
Environment,
Hockey: A White Mans Game, 104
263
and provincial
agreement,
N., 92
Hargreaves, Alison, 178 Hargreaves, Jennifer, 34, 35
evasion of sovereignty, federal
International
(IOC), 3, 10, 15, 30, 38, 120, 125, 168, 174, 176, 177, 230,
58, 123
youth dropout rates from, 151152 Hockey Canada, 85, 131, 153, 176
231, 257, 258, 263, 273, 295, 306, 328, 330, 336
Hockey News, 157 Hockey Nightin Canada(HNIC), 100, 232, 235, 238, 239, 240, 248, 251
Index
Olympic Committee
International
Red Cross/Red
Crescent, 330
361
302